This is a modern-English version of The Bride of Lammermoor, originally written by Scott, Walter. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

The Bride of Lammermoor

by Sir Walter Scott


Contents

INTRODUCTION TO THE BRIDE OF LAMMERMOOR
CHAPTER I.
CHAPTER II.
CHAPTER III.
CHAPTER IV.
CHAPTER V.
CHAPTER VI.
CHAPTER VII.
CHAPTER VIII.
CHAPTER IX.
CHAPTER X.
CHAPTER XI.
CHAPTER XII.
CHAPTER XIII.
CHAPTER XIV.
CHAPTER XV.
CHAPTER XVI.
CHAPTER XVII.
CHAPTER XVIII.
CHAPTER XIX.
CHAPTER XX.
CHAPTER XXI.
CHAPTER XXII.
CHAPTER XXIII.
CHAPTER XXIV.
CHAPTER XXV.
CHAPTER XXVI.
CHAPTER XXVII.
CHAPTER XXVIII.
CHAPTER XXIX.
CHAPTER XXX.
CHAPTER XXXI.
CHAPTER XXXII.
CHAPTER XXXIII.
CHAPTER XXXIV.
CHAPTER XXXV.
[Illustration: cover]

INTRODUCTION TO THE BRIDE OF LAMMERMOOR

The author, on a former occasion, declined giving the real source from which he drew the tragic subject of this history, because, though occurring at a distant period, it might possibly be unpleasing to the feelings of the descendants of the parties. But as he finds an account of the circumstances given in the Notes to Law’s Memorials, by his ingenious friend, Charles Kirkpatrick Sharpe, Esq., and also indicated in his reprint of the Rev. Mr. Symson’s poems appended to the Large Description of Galloway, as the original of the Bride of Lammermoor, the author feels himself now at liberty to tell the tale as he had it from connexions of his own, who lived very near the period, and were closely related to the family of the bride.

The author previously chose not to reveal the true source of the tragic events in this story because, although they happened a long time ago, they might still hurt the feelings of the descendants involved. However, since he found an account of the events in the Notes to Law’s Memorials by his clever friend, Charles Kirkpatrick Sharpe, Esq., and also mentioned in Sharpe's reprint of Rev. Mr. Symson’s poems attached to the Large Description of Galloway, which relates to the original of the Bride of Lammermoor, the author now feels free to share the story as he heard it from his own relatives, who lived very close to the time and were closely connected to the bride's family.

It is well known that the family of Dalrymple, which has produced, within the space of two centuries, as many men of talent, civil and military, and of literary, political, and professional eminence, as any house in Scotland, first rose into distinction in the person of James Dalrymple, one of the most eminent lawyers that ever lived, though the labours of his powerful mind were unhappily exercised on a subject so limited as Scottish jurisprudence, on which he has composed an admirable work.

It is well known that the Dalrymple family, which has produced as many talented individuals—both civil and military, as well as notable figures in literature, politics, and other professions—within the last two centuries as any other family in Scotland, first gained prominence through James Dalrymple. He was one of the most outstanding lawyers ever, although his impressive intellect was unfortunately focused on the narrow field of Scottish law, on which he wrote an excellent work.

He married Margaret, daughter to Ross of Balneel, with whom he obtained a considerable estate. She was an able, politic, and high-minded woman, so successful in what she undertook, that the vulgar, no way partial to her husband or her family, imputed her success to necromancy. According to the popular belief, this Dame Margaret purchased the temporal prosperity of her family from the Master whom she served under a singular condition, which is thus narrated by the historian of her grandson, the great Earl of Stair: “She lived to a great age, and at her death desired that she might not be put under ground, but that her coffin should stand upright on one end of it, promising that while she remained in that situation the Dalrymples should continue to flourish. What was the old lady’s motive for the request, or whether she really made such a promise, I shall not take upon me to determine; but it’s certain her coffin stands upright in the isle of the church of Kirklistown, the burial-place belonging to the family.” The talents of this accomplished race were sufficient to have accounted for the dignities which many members of the family attained, without any supernatural assistance. But their extraordinary prosperity was attended by some equally singular family misfortunes, of which that which befell their eldest daughter was at once unaccountable and melancholy.

He married Margaret, the daughter of Ross of Balneel, and through this union, he acquired a significant estate. She was a capable, clever, and ambitious woman who excelled in everything she pursued, to the point that those who didn't care for her husband or family attributed her success to magic. According to local legend, this Dame Margaret secured her family's wealth from the Master she served under a unique condition, which is described by the historian of her grandson, the great Earl of Stair: "She lived to a great age, and at her death, she requested that she not be buried underground, but that her coffin be placed upright on one end, promising that as long as she remained in that position, the Dalrymples would continue to thrive. I won't speculate on the old lady's motivation for this request or whether she actually made such a promise; however, it is true that her coffin stands upright in the aisle of the church of Kirklistown, the family's burial place." The skills and talents of this remarkable family could explain the honors many of its members achieved without any supernatural help. However, their extraordinary success was accompanied by some equally unusual family tragedies, particularly the one that struck their eldest daughter, which was both baffling and tragic.

Miss Janet Dalrymple, daughter of the first Lord Stair and Dame Margaret Ross, had engaged herself without the knowledge of her parents to the Lord Rutherford, who was not acceptable to them either on account of his political principles or his want of fortune. The young couple broke a piece of gold together, and pledged their troth in the most solemn manner; and it is said the young lady imprecated dreadful evils on herself should she break her plighted faith. Shortly after, a suitor who was favoured by Lord Stair, and still more so by his lady, paid his addresses to Miss Dalrymple. The young lady refused the proposal, and being pressed on the subject, confessed her secret engagement. Lady Stair, a woman accustomed to universal submission, for even her husband did not dare to contradict her, treated this objection as a trifle, and insisted upon her daughter yielding her consent to marry the new suitor, David Dunbar, son and heir to David Dunbar of Baldoon, in Wigtonshire. The first lover, a man of very high spirit, then interfered by letter, and insisted on the right he had acquired by his troth plighted with the young lady. Lady Stair sent him for answer, that her daughter, sensible of her undutiful behaviour in entering into a contract unsanctioned by her parents, had retracted her unlawful vow, and now refused to fulfil her engagement with him.

Miss Janet Dalrymple, the daughter of the first Lord Stair and Dame Margaret Ross, had secretly promised herself to Lord Rutherford, who her parents didn’t approve of because of his political views and lack of money. The couple broke a gold coin together and made a serious pledge to one another; it’s said that the young woman cursed herself with terrible misfortunes if she ever broke her vow. Shortly after, a suitor favored by Lord Stair, and even more so by Lady Stair, began to pursue Miss Dalrymple. She rejected his proposal, and when pressed, revealed her secret engagement. Lady Stair, a woman used to everyone obeying her—even her husband feared to disagree with her—dismissed Miss Dalrymple’s objection as trivial and insisted her daughter agree to marry the new suitor, David Dunbar, son and heir to David Dunbar of Baldoon in Wigtonshire. The first lover, a man of strong character, then intervened by letter, asserting his claim based on the promise made with the young lady. Lady Stair replied that her daughter, recognizing her disobedience for entering into a contract without her parents’ approval, had taken back her unlawful vow and now refused to honor her promise to him.

The lover, in return, declined positively to receive such an answer from any one but his mistress in person; and as she had to deal with a man who was both of a most determined character and of too high condition to be trifled with, Lady Stair was obliged to consent to an interview between Lord Rutherford and her daughter. But she took care to be present in person, and argued the point with the disappointed and incensed lover with pertinacity equal to his own. She particularly insisted on the Levitical law, which declares that a woman shall be free of a vow which her parents dissent from. This is the passage of Scripture she founded on:

The lover firmly refused to accept any answer from anyone except his mistress in person. Since she was dealing with a man who was both very determined and too high in status to be taken lightly, Lady Stair had to agree to a meeting between Lord Rutherford and her daughter. However, she made sure to be present herself and argued with the frustrated and angry lover just as passionately as he did. She specifically pointed out the Levitical law, which states that a woman is released from a vow if her parents disapprove. This is the passage of Scripture she relied on:

“If a man vow a vow unto the Lord, or swear an oath to bind his soul with a bond; he shall not break his word, he shall do according to all that proceedeth out of his mouth.

“If a man makes a vow to the Lord or swears an oath to commit himself; he must not break his word, he must do everything that he has said.”

“If a woman also vow a vow unto the Lord, and bind herself by a bond, being in her father’s house in her youth; And her father hear her vow, and her bond wherewith she hath bound her soul, and her father shall hold his peace at her: then all her vows shall stand, and every bond wherewith she hath bound her soul shall stand.

“If a woman makes a vow to the Lord and commits herself while living at home with her father, and if her father hears her vow and the commitment she has made, but he doesn’t say anything, then her vows will remain valid, and all her commitments will stand.”

“But if her father disallow her in the day that he heareth; not any of her vows, or of her bonds wherewith she hath bound her soul, shall stand: and the Lord shall forgive her, because her father disallowed her.”—Numbers xxx. 2-5.

“But if her father refuses her on the day he hears about it, none of her vows or commitments that she has made will be valid. The Lord will forgive her because her father refused her.” —Numbers xxx. 2-5.

While the mother insisted on these topics, the lover in vain conjured the daughter to declare her own opinion and feelings. She remained totally overwhelmed, as it seemed—mute, pale, and motionless as a statue. Only at her mother’s command, sternly uttered, she summoned strength enough to restore to her plighted suitor the piece of broken gold which was the emblem of her troth. On this he burst forth into a tremendous passion, took leave of the mother with maledictions, and as he left the apartment, turned back to say to his weak, if not fickle, mistresss: “For you, madam, you will be a world’s wonder”; a phrase by which some remarkable degree of calamity is usually implied. He went abroad, and returned not again. If the last Lord Rutherford was the unfortunate party, he must have been the third who bore that title, and who died in 1685.

While the mother insisted on these topics, the lover desperately tried to get the daughter to share her own opinions and feelings. She seemed completely overwhelmed—silent, pale, and motionless like a statue. Only at her mother’s stern command did she find the strength to return the broken piece of gold, which symbolized her promise to her suitor. In response, he erupted in a fit of rage, cursed the mother as he took his leave, and before leaving the room, turned back to say to his weak, if not fickle, mistress: “For you, madam, you will be a world’s wonder”; a phrase that typically suggests some significant misfortune. He went away and never returned. If the last Lord Rutherford was the unfortunate party, he must have been the third to hold that title, who died in 1685.

The marriage betwixt Janet Dalrymple and David Dunbar of Baldoon now went forward, the bride showing no repugnance, but being absolutely passive in everything her mother commanded or advised. On the day of the marriage, which, as was then usual, was celebrated by a great assemblage of friends and relations, she was the same—sad, silent, and resigned, as it seemed, to her destiny. A lady, very nearly connected with the family, told the Author that she had conversed on the subject with one of the brothers of the bride, a mere lad at the time, who had ridden before his sister to church. He said her hand, which lay on his as she held her arm around his waist, was as cold and damp as marble. But, full of his new dress and the part he acted in the procession, the circumstance, which he long afterwards remembered with bitter sorrow and compunction, made no impression on him at the time.

The marriage between Janet Dalrymple and David Dunbar of Baldoon proceeded as planned, with the bride showing no reluctance, but being completely passive in everything her mother instructed or suggested. On the wedding day, which, as was common then, was marked by a large gathering of friends and family, she remained the same—sad, quiet, and seemingly resigned to her fate. A lady connected with the family told the Author that she had talked about it with one of the bride's brothers, who was just a boy at the time and had ridden ahead of his sister to church. He mentioned that her hand, which rested on his as she wrapped her arm around his waist, felt as cold and damp as marble. However, caught up in his new outfit and his role in the procession, he didn’t realize the significance of the moment, which he later recalled with deep regret and sorrow.

The bridal feast was followed by dancing. The bride and bridegroom retired as usual, when of a sudden the most wild and piercing cries were heard from the nuptial chamber. It was then the custom, to prevent any coarse pleasantry which old times perhaps admitted, that the key of the nuptial chamber should be entrusted to the bridesman. He was called upon, but refused at first to give it up, till the shrieks became so hideous that he was compelled to hasten with others to learn the cause. On opening the door, they found the bridegroom lying across the threshold, dreadfully wounded, and streaming with blood. The bride was then sought for. She was found in the corner of the large chimney, having no covering save her shift, and that dabbled in gore. There she sat grinning at them, mopping and mowing, as I heard the expression used; in a word, absolutely insane. The only words she spoke were, “Tak up your bonny bridegroom.” She survived this horrible scene little more than a fortnight, having been married on the 24th of August, and dying on the 12th of September 1669.

The wedding feast was followed by dancing. The bride and groom went to their room as usual when suddenly the most wild and piercing screams erupted from the bridal chamber. At that time, to avoid any inappropriate jokes that might have been acceptable in the past, it was customary for the bridesman to hold the key to the couples’ room. He was asked for the key but initially refused to give it up until the screams became so terrifying that he was forced to hurry with others to find out what was happening. Upon opening the door, they found the groom lying across the threshold, badly wounded and covered in blood. They then searched for the bride. She was found in the corner of the large fireplace, wearing nothing but her nightdress, which was stained with blood. There she sat, grinning at them, making strange faces, as I heard it described; in short, she was completely insane. The only words she spoke were, “Take up your pretty groom.” She survived this horrific incident for just over two weeks, having been married on August 24th and dying on September 12th, 1669.

The unfortunate Baldoon recovered from his wounds, but sternly prohibited all inquiries respecting the manner in which he had received them. “If a lady,” he said, “asked him any question upon the subject, he would neither answer her nor speak to her again while he lived; if a gentleman, he would consider it as a mortal affront, and demand satisfaction as having received such.” He did not very long survive the dreadful catastrophe, having met with a fatal injury by a fall from his horse, as he rode between Leith and Holyrood House, of which he died the next day, 28th March 1682. Thus a few years removed all the principal actors in this frightful tragedy.

The unfortunate Baldoon healed from his injuries but firmly banned any questions about how he got them. “If a lady,” he said, “asked him anything about it, he wouldn’t answer her or speak to her again for the rest of his life; if a gentleman asked, he would see it as a serious insult and demand a duel as if he had been deeply wronged.” He didn’t last long after the terrible incident, having suffered a fatal injury from a fall while riding between Leith and Holyrood House, passing away the next day, March 28, 1682. Thus, just a few years later, all the main figures in this tragic story were gone.

Various reports went abroad on this mysterious affair, many of them very inaccurate, though they could hardly be said to be exaggerated. It was difficult at that time to become acquainted with the history of a Scottish family above the lower rank; and strange things sometimes took place there, into which even the law did not scrupulously inquire.

Various reports circulated about this mysterious situation, many of them very inaccurate, although they couldn't really be called exaggerated. Back then, it was hard to get to know the history of a Scottish family that wasn't of the lower rank; and unusual things sometimes happened there, which even the law didn't thoroughly investigate.

The credulous Mr. Law says, generally, that the Lord President Stair had a daughter, who, “being married, the night she was bride in, was taken from her bridegroom and harled through the house (by spirits, we are given to understand) and afterward died. Another daughter,” he says, “was supposed to be possessed with an evil spirit.”

The gullible Mr. Law claims that Lord President Stair had a daughter who, "on the night of her wedding, was taken away from her husband and dragged through the house (by spirits, as we understand) and later died. He also mentions that another daughter was thought to be possessed by an evil spirit."

My friend, Mr. Sharpe, gives another edition of the tale. According to his information, it was the bridegroom who wounded the bride. The marriage, according to this account, had been against her mother’s inclination, who had given her consent in these ominous words: “Weel, you may marry him, but sair shall you repent it.”

My friend, Mr. Sharpe, shares a different version of the story. According to him, it was the groom who injured the bride. This version says that the marriage happened despite her mother's disapproval, who reluctantly agreed with these foreboding words: “Well, you can marry him, but you’ll regret it deeply.”

I find still another account darkly insinuated in some highly scurrilous and abusive verses, of which I have an original copy. They are docketed as being written “Upon the late Viscount Stair and his family, by Sir William Hamilton of Whitelaw. The marginals by William Dunlop, writer in Edinburgh, a son of the Laird of Househill, and nephew to the said Sir William Hamilton.” There was a bitter and personal quarrel and rivalry betwixt the author of this libel, a name which it richly deserves, and Lord President Stair; and the lampoon, which is written with much more malice than art, bears the following motto:

I found another account subtly hinted at in some really nasty and abusive verses, of which I have an original copy. They are labeled as being written “On the late Viscount Stair and his family, by Sir William Hamilton of Whitelaw. The notes are by William Dunlop, a writer in Edinburgh, a son of the Laird of Househill, and a nephew of the said Sir William Hamilton.” There was a bitter personal feud and rivalry between the author of this libel, which it truly deserves to be called, and Lord President Stair; and the satire, which shows a lot more spite than skill, has the following motto:

Stair’s neck, mind, wife, songs, grandson, and the rest,
Are wry, false, witch, pests, parricide, possessed.

Stair’s neck, mind, wife, songs, grandson, and the rest,
Are twisted, fake, witch, nuisances, murderer, possessed.

This malignant satirist, who calls up all the misfortunes of the family, does not forget the fatal bridal of Baldoon. He seems, though his verses are as obscure as unpoetical, to intimate that the violence done to the bridegroom was by the intervention of the foul fiend, to whom the young lady had resigned herself, in case she should break her contract with her first lover. His hypothesis is inconsistent with the account given in the note upon Law’s Memorials, but easily reconcilable to the family tradition.

This malicious satirist, who brings up all the family's misfortunes, doesn’t forget the tragic wedding of Baldoon. Although his verses are as confusing as they are unpoetic, he seems to suggest that the harm done to the bridegroom was due to the interference of the wicked fiend, to whom the young woman had surrendered herself in case she decided to end her relationship with her first lover. His theory doesn’t match the account in the note on Law’s Memorials, but it lines up easily with the family story.

In all Stair’s offspring we no difference know,
They do the females as the males bestow;
So he of one of his daughters’ marriages gave the ward,
Like a true vassal, to Glenluce’s Laird;
He knew what she did to her master plight,
If she her faith to Rutherfurd should slight,
Which, like his own, for greed he broke outright.
Nick did Baldoon’s posterior right deride,
And, as first substitute, did seize the bride;
Whate’er he to his mistress did or said,
He threw the bridegroom from the nuptial bed,
Into the chimney did so his rival maul,
His bruised bones ne’er were cured but by the fall.

In all of Stair’s kids, we see no difference,
They treat the females just like the males;
So he gave one of his daughters in marriage as a ward,
Like a loyal servant, to the Laird of Glenluce;
He knew what she might do to betray her master,
If she turned her back on Rutherfurd,
Which, out of greed, he broke just like his own word.
Nick mocked Baldoon’s behind,
And as the first choice, he seized the bride;
Whatever he did or said to his mistress,
He threw the groom out of the wedding bed,
And into the chimney he brutally tossed his rival,
His broken bones never healed but from that fall.

One of the marginal notes ascribed to William Dunlop applies to the above lines. “She had betrothed herself to Lord Rutherfoord under horrid imprecations, and afterwards married Baldoon, his nevoy, and her mother was the cause of her breach of faith.”

One of the marginal notes attributed to William Dunlop refers to the lines above. “She had promised herself to Lord Rutherfoord under terrible curses, and later married Baldoon, his nephew, and her mother was the reason for her broken promise.”

The same tragedy is alluded to in the following couplet and note:

The same tragedy is referenced in the following couplet and note:

What train of curses that base brood pursues,
When the young nephew weds old uncle’s spouse.

What kind of curses does that lowly family throw down,
When the young nephew marries his old uncle's wife?

The note on the word “uncle” explains it as meaning “Rutherfoord, who should have married the Lady Baldoon, was Baldoon’s uncle.” The poetry of this satire on Lord Stair and his family was, as already noticed, written by Sir William Hamilton of Whitelaw, a rival of Lord Stair for the situation of President of the Court of Session; a person much inferior to that great lawyer in talents, and equally ill-treated by the calumny or just satire of his contemporaries as an unjust and partial judge. Some of the notes are by that curious and laborious antiquary, Robert Milne, who, as a virulent Jacobite, willingly lent a hand to blacken the family of Stair.

The note on the word “uncle” clarifies that it means “Rutherfoord, who should have married the Lady Baldoon, was Baldoon’s uncle.” The satirical poetry targeting Lord Stair and his family, as mentioned earlier, was written by Sir William Hamilton of Whitelaw, who competed with Lord Stair for the position of President of the Court of Session. He was significantly less skilled than that great lawyer and faced similar treatment from the slander or fair satire of his peers as an unfair and biased judge. Some of the notes were contributed by the meticulous and dedicated antiquarian, Robert Milne, who, as a staunch Jacobite, eagerly helped tarnish the reputation of the Stair family.

Another poet of the period, with a very different purpose, has left an elegy, in which he darkly hints at and bemoans the fate of the ill-starred young person, whose very uncommon calamity Whitelaw, Dunlop, and Milne thought a fitting subject for buffoonery and ribaldry. This bard of milder mood was Andrew Symson, before the Revolution minister of Kirkinner, in Galloway, and after his expulsion as an Episcopalian following the humble occupation of a printer in Edinburgh. He furnished the family of Baldoon, with which he appears to have been intimate, with an elegy on the tragic event in their family. In this piece he treats the mournful occasion of the bride’s death with mysterious solemnity.

Another poet from that time, with a very different goal, wrote an elegy that subtly alludes to and mourns the fate of the unfortunate young person, whose extremely rare misfortune Whitelaw, Dunlop, and Milne found suitable for mockery and crude humor. This gentler poet was Andrew Symson, who was the minister of Kirkinner in Galloway before the Revolution, and after being expelled as an Episcopalian, took on the humble job of a printer in Edinburgh. He provided the Baldoon family, with whom he seemed to have a close relationship, an elegy about the tragic event in their lives. In this piece, he addresses the heartbreaking occasion of the bride’s death with a sense of mysterious solemnity.

The verses bear this title, “On the unexpected death of the virtuous Lady Mrs. Janet Dalrymple, Lady Baldoon, younger,” and afford us the precise dates of the catastrophe, which could not otherwise have been easily ascertained. “Nupta August 12. Domum Ducta August 24. Obiit September 12. Sepult. September 30, 1669.” The form of the elegy is a dialogue betwixt a passenger and a domestic servant. The first, recollecting that he had passed that way lately, and seen all around enlivened by the appearances of mirth and festivity, is desirous to know what had changed so gay a scene into mourning. We preserve the reply of the servant as a specimen of Mr. Symson’s verses, which are not of the first quality:

The verses are titled, “On the unexpected death of the virtuous Lady Mrs. Janet Dalrymple, Lady Baldoon, younger,” and provide us with the exact dates of the tragedy, which wouldn't have been easy to figure out otherwise. “Married August 12. Taken to her home August 24. Died September 12. Buried September 30, 1669.” The elegy is structured as a dialogue between a traveler and a domestic servant. The traveler, recalling that he had passed this way recently and saw the area filled with joy and celebration, wants to know what turned such a cheerful scene into one of sorrow. We include the servant's reply as an example of Mr. Symson’s verses, which are not of the highest quality:

Sir, ’tis truth you’ve told.
We did enjoy great mirth; but now, ah me!
Our joyful song’s turn’d to an elegie.
A virtuous lady, not long since a bride,
Was to a hopeful plant by marriage tied,
And brought home hither. We did all rejoice,
Even for her sake. But presently our voice
Was turn’d to mourning for that little time
That she’d enjoy: she waned in her prime,
For Atropus, with her impartial knife,
Soon cut her thread, and therewithal her life;
And for the time we may it well remember,
It being in unfortunate September;
Where we must leave her till the resurrection.
’Tis then the Saints enjoy their full perfection.

Sir, you’ve spoken the truth.
We had such joy, but now, oh no!
Our happy song has turned into a lament.
A virtuous woman, not long married,
Became linked to a promising future through her marriage,
And was brought here. We all celebrated,
Especially for her. But soon our voices
Changed to mourning for the short time
She would have: she faded in her prime,
For Atropus, with her unforgiving knife,
Quickly cut her thread and ended her life;
And while we may remember it well,
It happened in that unfortunate September;
Where we must leave her until the resurrection.
That’s when the Saints will reach their full glory.

Mr. Symson also poured forth his elegiac strains upon the fate of the widowed bridegroom, on which subject, after a long and querulous effusion, the poet arrives at the sound conclusion, that if Baldoon had walked on foot, which it seems was his general custom, he would have escaped perishing by a fall from horseback. As the work in which it occurs is so scarce as almost to be unique, and as it gives us the most full account of one of the actors in this tragic tale which we have rehearsed, we will, at the risk of being tedious, insert some short specimens of Mr. Symson’s composition. It is entitled:

Mr. Symson also expressed his sorrowful thoughts about the fate of the widowed bridegroom. After a long and complaining reflection, the poet comes to the sensible conclusion that if Baldoon had traveled on foot, which was apparently his usual habit, he would have avoided falling off his horse and perishing. Since the work where this appears is so rare that it’s nearly unique, and it provides the most detailed account of one of the characters in this tragic story we've told, we will, despite the risk of being repetitive, include a few short examples of Mr. Symson’s writing. It’s titled:

“A Funeral Elegie, occasioned by the sad and much lamented death of that worthily respected, and very much accomplished gentleman, David Dunbar, younger, of Baldoon, only son and apparent heir to the right worshipful Sir David Dunbar of Baldoon, Knight Baronet. He departed this life on March 28, 1682, having received a bruise by a fall, as he was riding the day preceding betwixt Leith and Holyrood House; and was honourably interred in the Abbey Church of Holyrood House, on April 4, 1682.”

“A Funeral Elegy, prompted by the sad and greatly mourned death of the highly respected and accomplished gentleman, David Dunbar, younger, of Baldoon, the only son and expected heir to the right honorable Sir David Dunbar of Baldoon, Knight Baronet. He passed away on March 28, 1682, after sustaining an injury from a fall while riding the day before between Leith and Holyrood House; he was honorably buried in the Abbey Church of Holyrood House on April 4, 1682.”

Men might, and very justly too, conclude
Me guilty of the worst ingratitude,
Should I be silent, or should I forbear
At this sad accident to shed a tear;
A tear! said I? ah! that’s a petit thing,
A very lean, slight, slender offering,
Too mean, I’m sure, for me, wherewith t’attend
The unexpected funeral of my friend:
A glass of briny tears charged up to th’ brim.
Would be too few for me to shed for him.

Men could rightly think
I’m guilty of the worst ingratitude,
If I stay silent, or if I hold back
From shedding a tear at this sad event;
A tear, you say? Oh, that’s such a small thing,
A very thin, little offering,
Too insignificant, I’m sure, for me, to honor
The unexpected funeral of my friend:
A glass filled to the brim with salty tears
Would still be too few for me to shed for him.

The poet proceeds to state his intimacy with the deceased, and the constancy of the young man’s attendance on public worship, which was regular, and had such effect upon two or three other that were influenced by his example:

The poet goes on to express his close relationship with the deceased, noting how consistently the young man attended public worship. His regular presence had a significant impact on two or three others who were inspired by his example:

So that my Muse ’gainst Priscian avers,
He, only he, were my parishioners;
Yea, and my only hearers.

So that my Muse defends me against Priscian,
He, only he, is my parishioners;
Yeah, and my only listeners.

He then describes the deceased in person and manners, from which it appears that more accomplishments were expected in the composition of a fine gentleman in ancient than modern times:

He then describes the deceased in terms of appearance and behavior, showing that people had higher expectations for what made a fine gentleman in the past compared to today.

His body, though not very large or tall,
Was sprightly, active, yea and strong withal.
His constitution was, if right I’ve guess’d,
Blood mixt with choler, said to be the best.
In’s gesture, converse, speech, discourse, attire,
He practis’d that which wise men still admire,
Commend, and recommend. What’s that? you’ll say.
’Tis this: he ever choos’d the middle way
’Twixt both th’ extremes. Amost in ev’ry thing
He did the like, ’tis worth our noticing:
Sparing, yet not a niggard; liberal,
And yet not lavish or a prodigal,
As knowing when to spend and when to spare;
And that’s a lesson which not many are
Acquainted with. He bashful was, yet daring
When he saw cause, and yet therein not sparing;
Familiar, yet not common, for he knew
To condescend, and keep his distance too.
He us’d, and that most commonly, to go
On foot; I wish that he had still done so.
Th’ affairs of court were unto him well known;
And yet meanwhile he slighted not his own.
He knew full well how to behave at court,
And yet but seldom did thereto resort;
But lov’d the country life, choos’d to inure
Himself to past’rage and agriculture;
Proving, improving, ditching, trenching, draining,
Viewing, reviewing, and by those means gaining;
Planting, transplanting, levelling, erecting
Walls, chambers, houses, terraces; projecting
Now this, now that device, this draught, that measure,
That might advance his profit with his pleasure.
Quick in his bargains, honest in commerce,
Just in his dealings, being much adverse
From quirks of law, still ready to refer
His cause t’ an honest country arbiter.
He was acquainted with cosmography,
Arithmetic, and modern history;
With architecture and such arts as these,
Which I may call specifick sciences
Fit for a gentleman; and surely he
That knows them not, at least in some degree,
May brook the title, but he wants the thing,
Is but a shadow scarce worth noticing.
He learned the French, be’t spoken to his praise,
In very little more than fourty days.

His body, though not very big or tall,
Was lively, active, and strong overall.
His health was, if I’m guessing right,
A mix of blood and bile, said to be the best type.
In his gestures, conversation, speech, and style,
He practiced what wise people still admire,
Praise, and recommend. What’s that? you might ask.
It’s this: he always chose the middle path
Between both extremes. Almost in everything
He did similarly, it’s worth noting:
Frugal, yet not cheap; generous,
But not wasteful or extravagant,
Knowing when to spend and when to save;
And that’s a lesson not many truly have.
He was shy but brave
When he saw a reason, yet not overly bold;
Friendly, yet not too familiar, for he knew
How to be approachable while keeping his space too.
He usually walked everywhere;
I wish he had kept that up.
He was well acquainted with court affairs;
But he didn’t neglect his own cares.
He knew how to act in court just fine,
But rarely went there; he preferred
The country life, choosing to engage
In farming and agriculture;
Improving land, digging, draining,
Observing, reviewing, and gaining from it;
Planting, moving, leveling, building
Walls, rooms, houses, terraces; planning
Now this, now that idea, this plan, that measure,
To increase his profit alongside pleasure.
Quick in his deals, honest in trade,
Fair in his actions, increasingly averse
To legal tricks, always ready to bring
His case to a fair country judge.
He was knowledgeable in geography,
Math, and modern history;
With architecture and other skills like these,
Which I’d call specific sciences
Suitable for a gentleman; and truly he
Who doesn’t know them, at least to some extent,
May hold the title, but lacks the essence,
Is just a shadow barely worth noticing.
He learned French, and to his credit,
In just a little over forty days.

Then comes the full burst of woe, in which, instead of saying much himself, the poet informs us what the ancients would have said on such an occasion:

Then comes the complete outpouring of sorrow, where, instead of saying much himself, the poet tells us what the ancients would have said in such a situation:

A heathen poet, at the news, no doubt,
Would have exclaimed, and furiously cry’d out
Against the fates, the destinies and starrs,
What! this the effect of planetarie warrs!
We might have seen him rage and rave, yea worse,
’Tis very like we might have heard him curse
The year, the month, the day, the hour, the place,
The company, the wager, and the race;
Decry all recreations, with the names
Of Isthmian, Pythian, and Olympick games;
Exclaim against them all both old and new,
Both the Nemaean and the Lethaean too:
Adjudge all persons, under highest pain,
Always to walk on foot, and then again
Order all horses to be hough’d, that we
Might never more the like adventure see.

A non-believer poet, upon hearing the news, no doubt,
Would have shouted and angrily cried out
Against fate, destiny, and the stars,
What! Is this the result of planetary wars?
We could have seen him rage and rant, even worse,
It’s very likely we would have heard him curse
The year, the month, the day, the hour, the place,
The crowd, the bet, and the race;
Denounce all pastimes, using the names
Of Isthmian, Pythian, and Olympic games;
Condemn them all, both old and new,
Both the Nemean and the Lethean too:
Order that everyone, under the highest penalty,
Always walk on foot, and also decree
That all horses be hobbled, so we
Might never again see such an event.

Supposing our readers have had enough of Mr. Symson’s woe, and finding nothing more in his poem worthy of transcription, we return to the tragic story.

Supposing our readers are tired of Mr. Symson’s sorrow and see nothing else in his poem worth noting, we return to the tragic story.

It is needless to point out to the intelligent reader that the witchcraft of the mother consisted only in the ascendency of a powerful mind over a weak and melancholy one, and that the harshness with which she exercised her superiority in a case of delicacy had driven her daughter first to despair, then to frenzy. Accordingly, the Author has endeavoured to explain the tragic tale on this principle. Whatever resemblance Lady Ashton may be supposed to possess to the celebrated Dame Margaret Ross, the reader must not suppose that there was any idea of tracing the portrait of the first Lord Viscount Stair in the tricky and mean-spirited Sir William Ashton. Lord Stair, whatever might be his moral qualities, was certainly one of the first statesmen and lawyers of his age.

It’s unnecessary to point out to the smart reader that the witchcraft of the mother was really just her strong influence over her weak and troubled daughter, and that the harsh way she wielded her power in a sensitive situation had pushed her daughter into despair and then madness. Therefore, the Author has tried to clarify the tragic story based on this idea. Any similarities Lady Ashton might have to the famous Dame Margaret Ross shouldn't lead the reader to think that there’s any intention of portraying the first Lord Viscount Stair in the sneaky and petty Sir William Ashton. Lord Stair, regardless of his moral character, was definitely one of the leading statesmen and lawyers of his time.

The imaginary castle of Wolf’s Crag has been identified by some lover of locality with that of Fast Castle. The Author is not competent to judge of the resemblance betwixt the real and imaginary scenes, having never seen Fast Castle except from the sea. But fortalices of this description are found occupying, like ospreys’ nests, projecting rocks, or promontories, in many parts of the eastern coast of Scotland, and the position of Fast Castle seems certainly to resemble that of Wolf’s Crag as much as any other, while its vicinity to the mountain ridge of Lammermoor renders the assimilation a probable one.

The fictional castle of Wolf’s Crag has been linked by some local enthusiasts to Fast Castle. The author isn’t in a position to evaluate the similarities between the real and imaginary locations, having only seen Fast Castle from the sea. However, fortresses like this can be found perched on cliffs or headlands in various places along the eastern coast of Scotland, and the location of Fast Castle definitely appears to be similar to Wolf’s Crag as much as any other, especially considering its closeness to the Lammermoor mountain range, which makes the comparison likely.

We have only to add, that the death of the unfortunate bridegroom by a fall from horseback has been in the novel transferred to the no less unfortunate lover.

We just need to mention that in the novel, the unfortunate bridegroom's death from a fall while riding has been switched to the equally unfortunate lover.

CHAPTER I

By Cauk and keel to win your bread,
Wi’ whigmaleeries for them wha need,
Whilk is a gentle trade indeed
To carry the gaberlunzie on.

Old Song.

By boat and ship to earn your living,
With trinkets for those who need,
Which is a fine trade indeed
To keep the beggar going.

Old Song.

Few have been in my secret while I was compiling these narratives, nor is it probable that they will ever become public during the life of their author. Even were that event to happen, I am not ambitious of the honoured distinction, digito monstrari. I confess that, were it safe to cherish such dreams at all, I should more enjoy the thought of remaining behind the curtain unseen, like the ingenious manager of Punch and his wife Joan, and enjoying the astonishment and conjectures of my audience. Then might I, perchance, hear the productions of the obscure Peter Pattieson praised by the judicious and admired by the feeling, engrossing the young and attracting even the old; while the critic traced their fame up to some name of literary celebrity, and the question when, and by whom, these tales were written filled up the pause of conversation in a hundred circles and coteries. This I may never enjoy during my lifetime; but farther than this, I am certain, my vanity should never induce me to aspire.

Few have been aware of my secret while I was putting these stories together, and it’s unlikely they will ever be made public while I’m alive. Even if that were to happen, I’m not seeking the kind of recognition that comes from being pointed at, digito monstrari. I admit that, if it were safe to entertain such dreams, I would prefer the idea of staying behind the scenes, like the clever manager of Punch and his wife Joan, relishing the surprise and speculation of my audience. At that point, I might hear the works of the obscure Peter Pattieson praised by the discerning and admired by the empathetic, captivating the young and even drawing in the old; while the critic traced their fame back to some famous literary figure, and the question of when and by whom these tales were written filled the gaps in conversation in a hundred groups and circles. I may never experience this in my lifetime; but beyond that, I’m sure my vanity should never lead me to aim for anything more.

I am too stubborn in habits, and too little polished in manners, to envy or aspire to the honours assigned to my literary contemporaries. I could not think a whit more highly of myself were I found worthy to “come in place as a lion” for a winter in the great metropolis. I could not rise, turn round, and show all my honours, from the shaggy mane to the tufted tail, “roar you an’t were any nightingale,” and so lie down again like a well-behaved beast of show, and all at the cheap and easy rate of a cup of coffee and a slice of bread and butter as thin as a wafer. And I could ill stomach the fulsome flattery with which the lady of the evening indulges her show-monsters on such occasions, as she crams her parrots with sugar-plums, in order to make them talk before company. I cannot be tempted to “come aloft” for these marks of distinction, and, like imprisoned Samson, I would rather remain—if such must be the alternative—all my life in the mill-house, grinding for my very bread, than be brought forth to make sport for the Philistine lords and ladies. This proceeds from no dislike, real or affected, to the aristocracy of these realms. But they have their place, and I have mine; and, like the iron and earthen vessels in the old fable, we can scarce come into collision without my being the sufferer in every sense. It may be otherwise with the sheets which I am now writing. These may be opened and laid aside at pleasure; by amusing themselves with the perusal, the great will excite no false hopes; by neglecting or condemning them, they will inflict no pain; and how seldom can they converse with those whose minds have toiled for their delight without doing either the one or the other.

I'm too set in my ways and not smooth enough in my manners to envy or crave the accolades given to my literary peers. I wouldn’t think any more highly of myself if I were deemed worthy to be the “star attraction” for a winter in the big city. I can't rise, turn around, and flaunt all my accolades, from my messy hair to my fancy outfit, “roaring” as if I were some nightingale, and then just lie down like a well-trained performer, all for the low price of a cup of coffee and a slice of bread and butter as thin as a wafer. I can't stand the excessive flattery the evening’s hostess lavishes on her showpieces, treating them like sugar-coated parrots that need coaxing to perform. I won’t be lured to “come up” for these marks of distinction, and like imprisoned Samson, I’d prefer to spend my life in the mill-house, grinding for my bread, than be paraded for the entertainment of the privileged. This isn’t due to any real or feigned dislike for the elite in this country. They have their role, and I have mine; like iron and clay vessels in the old fable, we hardly cross paths without me being the one to get hurt. It may be different with the pages I'm writing now. These can be opened and set aside at will; by reading them for entertainment, the powerful won’t spark any false hopes; and by ignoring or dismissing them, they won’t cause any pain—unlike how often they can interact with those who’ve toiled for their enjoyment without causing either.

In the better and wiser tone of feeling, which Ovid only expresses in one line to retract in that which follows, I can address these quires—

In a more thoughtful and wiser way of feeling, which Ovid expresses in just one line only to take back in the next, I can tackle these questions—

Parve, nec invideo, sine me, liber, ibis in urbem.

Parve, I don't envy you; without me, you will go into the city, book.

Nor do I join the regret of the illustrious exile, that he himself could not in person accompany the volume, which he sent forth to the mart of literature, pleasure, and luxury. Were there not a hundred similar instances on record, the rate of my poor friend and school-fellow, Dick Tinto, would be sufficient to warn me against seeking happiness in the celebrity which attaches itself to a successful cultivator of the fine arts.

Nor do I share the regret of the famous exile that he couldn't personally accompany the book he released to the world of literature, pleasure, and luxury. If there weren't a hundred similar cases documented, the fate of my good friend and schoolmate, Dick Tinto, would be enough to caution me against chasing happiness through the fame that comes with being a successful artist.

Dick Tinto, when he wrote himself artist, was wont to derive his origin from the ancient family of Tinto, of that ilk, in Lanarkshire, and occasionally hinted that he had somewhat derogated from his gentle blood in using the pencil for his principal means of support. But if Dick’s pedigree was correct, some of his ancestors must have suffered a more heavy declension, since the good man his father executed the necessary, and, I trust, the honest, but certainly not very distinguished, employment of tailor in ordinary to the village of Langdirdum in the west. Under his humble roof was Richard born, and to his father’s humble trade was Richard, greatly contrary to his inclination, early indentured. Old Mr. Tinto had, however, no reason to congratulate himself upon having compelled the youthful genius of his son to forsake its natural bent. He fared like the school-boy who attempts to stop with his finger the spout of a water cistern, while the stream, exasperated at this compression, escapes by a thousand uncalculated spurts, and wets him all over for his pains. Even so fared the senior Tinto, when his hopeful apprentice not only exhausted all the chalk in making sketches upon the shopboard, but even executed several caricatures of his father’s best customers, who began loudly to murmur, that it was too hard to have their persons deformed by the vestments of the father, and to be at the same time turned into ridicule by the pencil of the son. This led to discredit and loss of practice, until the old tailor, yielding to destiny and to the entreaties of his son, permitted him to attempt his fortune in a line for which he was better qualified.

Dick Tinto, when he called himself an artist, liked to trace his roots back to the ancient Tinto family from Lanarkshire, and sometimes hinted that he had strayed from his noble lineage by using a pencil as his main source of income. But if Dick's family history was accurate, some of his ancestors must have experienced an even greater decline, since his father had the necessary, and I hope honest, though certainly not very distinguished, job of being the village tailor in Langdirdum in the west. Richard was born under his father's modest roof, and contrary to his wishes, he was apprenticed to his father's trade at an early age. However, old Mr. Tinto had no reason to feel proud about forcing his son's youthful talent to abandon its true calling. He was like a schoolboy trying to block the spout of a water cistern with his finger, while the water, frustrated by the obstruction, escaped through countless unanticipated jets, soaking him in the process. The senior Tinto faced a similar fate, as his promising apprentice not only used up all the chalk making sketches on the shop counter but also created several funny drawings of his father's best customers, who began to complain loudly that it was unfair to have their appearances mocked while wearing clothes from the father. This situation led to bad reviews and a loss of business, until the old tailor, surrendering to fate and his son's pleas, allowed him to pursue a career for which he was better suited.

There was about this time, in the village of Langdirdum, a peripatetic brother of the brush, who exercised his vocation sub Jove frigido, the object of admiration of all the boys of the village, but especially to Dick Tinto. The age had not yet adopted, amongst other unworthy retrenchments, that illiberal measure of economy which, supplying by written characters the lack of symbolical representation, closes one open and easily accessible avenue of instruction and emolument against the students of the fine arts. It was not yet permitted to write upon the plastered doorway of an alehouse, or the suspended sign of an inn, “The Old Magpie,” or “The Saracen’s Head,” substituting that cold description for the lively effigies of the plumed chatterer, or the turban’d frown of the terrific soldan. That early and more simple age considered alike the necessities of all ranks, and depicted the symbols of good cheer so as to be obvious to all capacities; well judging that a man who could not read a syllable might nevertheless love a pot of good ale as well as his better-educated neighbours, or even as the parson himself. Acting upon this liberal principle, publicans as yet hung forth the painted emblems of their calling, and sign-painters, if they seldom feasted, did not at least absolutely starve.

At that time, in the village of Langdirdum, there was a traveling painter who worked outdoors, admired by all the local boys, especially by Dick Tinto. The era hadn’t yet taken on, among other misguided cutbacks, the restrictive practice of replacing images with written words, which deprived art students of an easy and accessible way of learning and earning. It was still common to see painted signs on the door of a pub or the hanging sign of an inn, displaying names like “The Old Magpie” or “The Saracen’s Head,” instead of dull descriptions replacing vibrant images of a feathered creature or the scowling face of a menacing Sultan. That earlier, simpler time recognized the needs of all social classes and portrayed symbols of joy in a way that everyone could understand; wisely knowing that a person who couldn't read a word could still enjoy a good pint of beer just as much as their more educated neighbors, or even the clergy. Following this open-minded approach, tavern owners continued to display painted signs of their trade, and sign painters, if they didn't often feast, at least weren’t completely starving.

To a worthy of this decayed profession, as we have already intimated, Dick Tinto became an assistant; and thus, as is not unusual among heaven-born geniuses in this department of the fine arts, began to paint before he had any notion of drawing.

To a deserving person in this fallen profession, as we've already hinted, Dick Tinto became an assistant; and so, as often happens with naturally talented individuals in this field of the fine arts, he started painting before he even understood how to draw.

His talent for observing nature soon induced him to rectify the errors, and soar above the instructions, of his teacher. He particularly shone in painting horses, that being a favourite sign in the Scottish villages; and, in tracing his progress, it is beautiful to observe how by degrees he learned to shorten the backs and prolong the legs of these noble animals, until they came to look less like crocodiles, and more like nags. Detraction, which always pursues merit with strides proportioned to its advancement, has indeed alleged that Dick once upon a time painted a horse with five legs, instead of four. I might have rested his defence upon the license allowed to that branch of his profession, which, as it permits all sorts of singular and irregular combinations, may be allowed to extend itself so far as to bestow a limb supernumerary on a favourite subject. But the cause of a deceased friend is sacred; and I disdain to bottom it so superficially. I have visited the sign in question, which yet swings exalted in the village of Langdirdum; and I am ready to depone upon the oath that what has been idly mistaken or misrepresented as being the fifth leg of the horse, is, in fact, the tail of that quadruped, and, considered with reference to the posture in which he is delineated, forms a circumstance introduced and managed with great and successful, though daring, art. The nag being represented in a rampant or rearing posture, the tail, which is prolonged till it touches the ground, appears to form a point d’appui, and gives the firmness of a tripod to the figure, without which it would be difficult to conceive, placed as the feet are, how the courser could maintain his ground without tumbling backwards. This bold conception has fortunately fallen into the custody of one by whom it is duly valued; for, when Dick, in his more advanced state of proficiency, became dubious of the propriety of so daring a deviation to execute a picture of the publican himself in exchange for this juvenile production, the courteous offer was declined by his judicious employer, who had observed, it seems, that when his ale failed to do its duty in conciliating his guests, one glance at his sign was sure to put them in good humour.

His talent for observing nature quickly made him want to correct his teacher's mistakes and rise above their instructions. He particularly excelled in painting horses, which was a popular subject in Scottish villages. As we track his progress, it's impressive to see how he gradually learned to shorten the backs and lengthen the legs of these magnificent animals, so they started to look less like crocodiles and more like proper horses. Critics, who always pursue talent fiercely as it grows, have claimed that Dick once painted a horse with five legs instead of four. I could have defended him by pointing out that the artistic license in his field allows for all kinds of unique and irregular features, even adding an extra limb to a beloved subject. However, the cause of a deceased friend is sacred, and I refuse to make such a superficial defense. I have visited the sign in question, which still hangs proudly in the village of Langdirdum, and I am prepared to swear that what has been mistakenly thought to be the horse's fifth leg is actually its tail. When considered in relation to the position in which the horse is drawn, it serves as an element that is introduced and executed with great skill, though boldness. The horse is depicted in a rearing stance, and the tail, extended until it touches the ground, appears to create a point of support, providing stability like a tripod for the figure. Without this, it would be hard to imagine how the horse could maintain balance with its feet positioned as they are, avoiding falling backward. This audacious creation has thankfully ended up with someone who appreciates it; for when Dick, having become more skilled, questioned whether it was proper to take such a daring risk and paint a picture of the tavern owner in exchange for this earlier work, the thoughtful offer was declined by his clever employer. He had noticed that when his ale was not quite doing its job to please his patrons, just one look at his sign was enough to lift their spirits.

It would be foreign to my present purpose to trace the steps by which Dick Tinto improved his touch, and corrected, by the rules of art, the luxuriance of a fervid imagination. The scales fell from his eyes on viewing the sketches of a contemporary, the Scottish Teniers, as Wilkie has been deservedly styled. He threw down the brush took up the crayons, and, amid hunger and toil, and suspense and uncertainty, pursued the path of his profession under better auspices than those of his original master. Still the first rude emanations of his genius, like the nursery rhymes of Pope, could these be recovered, will be dear to the companions of Dick Tinto’s youth. There is a tankard and gridiron painted over the door of an obscure change-house in the Back Wynd of Gandercleugh——But I feel I must tear myself from the subject, or dwell on it too long.

It wouldn’t serve my current purpose to outline how Dick Tinto improved his technique and refined his vibrant imagination through artistic rules. When he saw the sketches of a contemporary artist, the Scottish Teniers, as Wilkie is rightly called, everything changed for him. He put down his brush, picked up crayons, and, amidst hunger, hard work, uncertainty, and struggle, pursued his career under better circumstances than his first teacher provided. Still, the initial rough expressions of his talent, much like the nursery rhymes of Pope, would be cherished by those who knew Dick Tinto in his early days. There’s a tankard and a gridiron painted above the door of a small inn in the Back Wynd of Gandercleugh——But I feel I need to move away from this topic or I might linger on it too long.

Amid his wants and struggles, Dick Tinto had recourse, like his brethren, to levying that tax upon the vanity of mankind which he could not extract from their taste and liberality—on a word, he painted portraits. It was in this more advanced state of proficiency, when Dick had soared above his original line of business, and highly disdained any allusion to it, that, after having been estranged for several years, we again met in the village of Gandercleugh, I holding my present situation, and Dick painting copies of the human face divine at a guinea per head. This was a small premium, yet, in the first burst of business, it more than sufficed for all Dick’s moderate wants; so that he occupied an apartment at the Wallace Inn, cracked his jest with impunity even upon mine host himself, and lived in respect and observance with the chambermaid, hostler, and waiter.

Amid his wants and struggles, Dick Tinto turned, like others, to a way of tapping into people's vanity that he couldn’t pull from their taste and generosity—basically, he painted portraits. At this more advanced stage of his skills, when Dick had moved beyond his original line of work and looked down on any mention of it, we ran into each other again after several years in the village of Gandercleugh. I was in my current job, and Dick was painting portraits at a guinea each. This was a small fee, but during his initial surge of business, it was more than enough to cover all of Dick's modest needs. As a result, he stayed at the Wallace Inn, could joke around without worry—even with the innkeeper himself—and was respected by the chambermaid, stableman, and waiter.

Those halcyon days were too serene to last long. When his honour the Laird of Gandercleugh, with his wife and three daughters, the minister, the gauger, mine esteemed patron Mr. Jedediah Cleishbotham, and some round dozen of the feuars and farmers, had been consigned to immortality by Tinto’s brush, custom began to slacken, and it was impossible to wring more than crowns and half-crowns from the hard hands of the peasants whose ambition led them to Dick’s painting-room.

Those peaceful days were too calm to stick around for long. When the honorable Laird of Gandercleugh, along with his wife and three daughters, the minister, the gauger, my esteemed patron Mr. Jedediah Cleishbotham, and about a dozen of the landholders and farmers had been captured for eternity by Tinto’s brush, business started to slow down, and it became impossible to squeeze more than crowns and half-crowns from the tough hands of the peasants whose ambition brought them to Dick’s painting room.

Still, though the horizon was overclouded, no storm for some time ensued. Mine host had Christian faith with a lodger who had been a good paymaster as long as he had the means. And from a portrait of our landlord himself, grouped with his wife and daughters, in the style of Rubens, which suddenly appeared in the best parlour, it was evident that Dick had found some mode of bartering art for the necessaries of life.

Still, even though the horizon was cloudy, there was no storm for a while. Our host had a strong Christian faith, along with a tenant who had been a reliable payer as long as he had the funds. And from a portrait of our landlord, along with his wife and daughters, in the style of Rubens, which suddenly appeared in the best parlor, it was clear that Dick had figured out a way to trade art for the essentials of life.

Nothing, however, is more precarious than resources of this nature. It was observed that Dick became in his turn the whetstone of mine host’s wit, without venturing either at defence or retaliation; that his easel was transferred to a garret-room, in which there was scarce space for it to stand upright; and that he no longer ventured to join the weekly club, of which he had been once the life and soul. In short, Dick Tinto’s friends feared that he had acted like the animal called the sloth, which, heaving eaten up the last green leaf upon the tree where it has established itself, ends by tumbling down from the top, and dying of inanition. I ventured to hint this to Dick, recommended his transferring the exercise of his inestimable talent to some other sphere, and forsaking the common which he might be said to have eaten bare.

Nothing, however, is more uncertain than resources like these. It was noticed that Dick had, in turn, become the target of the innkeeper’s jokes, without attempting to defend himself or retaliate; that his easel was moved to a cramped attic room where there was barely enough space for it; and that he no longer went to the weekly club, where he had once been the life of the party. In short, Dick Tinto’s friends were worried that he had acted like the sloth, which, after eating the last green leaf off the tree it had settled on, eventually falls from the top and dies from starvation. I took the chance to suggest this to Dick, urging him to move his invaluable talent to a different space and leave behind the common ground he might have already exhausted.

“There is an obstacle to my change of residence,” said my friend, grasping my hand with a look of solemnity.

“There’s a barrier to my moving,” said my friend, holding my hand with a serious expression.

“A bill due to my landlord, I am afraid?” replied I, with heartfelt sympathy; “if any part of my slender means can assist in this emergence——”

“A bill due to my landlord, I’m afraid?” I replied, with genuine sympathy. “If any part of my limited resources can help in this situation—”

“No, by the soul of Sir Joshua!” answered the generous youth, “I will never involve a friend in the consequences of my own misfortune. There is a mode by which I can regain my liberty; and to creep even through a common sewer is better than to remain in prison.”

“No, by the soul of Sir Joshua!” answered the generous young man, “I will never put a friend in danger because of my own bad luck. There’s a way for me to get my freedom back; and crawling through a regular sewer is better than staying locked up.”

I did not perfectly understand what my friend meant. The muse of painting appeared to have failed him, and what other goddess he could invoke in his distress was a mystery to me. We parted, however, without further explanation, and I did not see him until three days after, when he summoned me to partake of the foy with which his landlord proposed to regale him ere his departure for Edinburgh.

I didn't fully understand what my friend meant. It seemed like the muse of painting had let him down, and I had no idea what other goddess he could turn to for help. We left each other without any more explanation, and I didn't see him again until three days later, when he called me to join him for the foy his landlord wanted to treat him to before he left for Edinburgh.

I found Dick in high spirits, whistling while he buckled the small knapsack which contained his colours, brushes, pallets, and clean shirt. That he parted on the best terms with mine host was obvious from the cold beef set forth in the low parlour, flanked by two mugs of admirable brown stout; and I own my curiosity was excited concerning the means through which the face of my friend’s affairs had been so suddenly improved. I did not suspect Dick of dealing with the devil, and by what earthly means he had extricated himself thus happily I was at a total loss to conjecture.

I found Dick in great spirits, whistling as he fastened the small backpack that held his paints, brushes, palettes, and clean shirt. It was clear he had parted on good terms with the innkeeper, evident from the cold beef laid out in the cozy parlor, accompanied by two mugs of excellent brown stout. I must admit I was very curious about how my friend's situation had suddenly turned around so much. I didn't think Dick was dabbling in anything shady, but I had no idea how he had managed to improve his circumstances so remarkably.

He perceived my curiosity, and took me by the hand. “My friend,” he said, “fain would I conceal, even from you, the degradation to which it has been necessary to submit, in order to accomplish an honourable retreat from Gandercleaugh. But what avails attempting to conceal that which must needs betray itself even by its superior excellence? All the village—all the parish—all the world—will soon discover to what poverty has reduced Richard Tinto.”

He sensed my curiosity and took my hand. “My friend,” he said, “I would like to hide from you the shame I've had to endure to make an honorable escape from Gandercleaugh. But what's the point in trying to hide something that will inevitably reveal itself through its own greatness? Everyone in the village—the whole parish—everyone will soon see how much poverty has brought Richard Tinto down.”

A sudden thought here struck me. I had observed that our landlord wore, on that memorable morning, a pair of bran new velveteens instead of his ancient thicksets.

A sudden thought occurred to me. I noticed that our landlord was wearing a brand new pair of velveteen trousers that memorable morning instead of his old thick ones.

“What,” said I, drawing my right hand, with the forefinger and thumb pressed together, nimbly from my right haunch to my left shoulder, “you have condescended to resume the paternal arts to which you were first bred—long stitches, ha, Dick?”

“What,” I said, quickly moving my right hand, with my thumb and forefinger pressed together, from my right hip to my left shoulder, “you’ve decided to pick up the family craft you were raised in—long stitches, huh, Dick?”

He repelled this unlucky conjecture with a frown and a pshaw, indicative of indignant contempt, and leading me into another room, showed me, resting against the wall, the majestic head of Sir William Wallace, grim as when severed from the trunk by the orders of the Edward.

He dismissed this unfortunate guess with a frown and a "pshaw," showing his angry disdain. Then he led me into another room where he pointed out the impressive head of Sir William Wallace, as grim as it was when it was cut off by orders from Edward.

The painting was executed on boards of a substantial thickness, and the top decorated with irons, for suspending the honoured effigy upon a signpost.

The painting was done on thick boards, and the top was decorated with metal pieces for hanging the honored figure on a signpost.

“There,” he said, “my friend, stands the honour of Scotland, and my shame; yet not so—rather the shame of those who, instead of encouraging art in its proper sphere, reduce it to these unbecoming and unworthy extremities.”

“There,” he said, “my friend, is the pride of Scotland, and my embarrassment; but not really—more like the embarrassment of those who, instead of supporting art in its rightful place, lower it to these disgraceful and unworthy extremes.”

I endeavoured to smooth the ruffled feelings of my misused and indignant friend. I reminded him that he ought not, like the stag in the fable, to despise the quality which had extricated him from difficulties, in which his talents, as a portrait or landscape painter, had been found unavailing. Above all, I praised the execution, as well as conception, of his painting, and reminded him that, far from feeling dishonoured by so superb a specimen of his talents being exposed to the general view of the public, he ought rather to congratulate himself upon the augmentation of his celebrity to which its public exhibition must necessarily give rise.

I tried to calm the hurt feelings of my upset and angry friend. I reminded him that he shouldn’t, like the stag in the fable, look down on the quality that had helped him out of tough situations where his skills as a portrait or landscape painter had fallen short. Most importantly, I praised both the execution and the idea behind his painting, and I pointed out that, instead of feeling embarrassed about having such an amazing display of his talent shown to the public, he should actually be proud of the boost in his fame that its public exhibition would surely bring.

“You are right, my friend—you are right,” replied poor Dick, his eye kindling with enthusiasm; “why should I shun the name of an—an—(he hesitated for a phrase)—an out-of-doors artist? Hogarth has introduced himself in that character in one of his best engravings; Domenichino, or somebody else, in ancient times, Morland in our own, have exercised their talents in this manner. And wherefore limit to the rich and higher classes alone the delight which the exhibition of works of art is calculated to inspire into all classes? Statues are placed in the open air, why should Painting be more niggardly in displaying her masterpieces than her sister Sculpture? And yet, my friend, we must part suddenly; the carpenter is coming in an hour to put up the—the emblem; and truly, with all my philosophy, and your consolatory encouragement to boot, I would rather wish to leave Gandercleugh before that operation commences.”

“You're right, my friend—you really are,” replied poor Dick, his eyes lighting up with excitement; “why should I shy away from being called an—an—(he paused for the right term)—an outdoor artist? Hogarth has introduced himself in that role in one of his greatest engravings; Domenichino, or someone from ancient times, Morland in our time, have shown their skills this way. And why should we restrict the joy that viewing art can bring to the rich and upper classes only? Statues are placed outdoors; why should painting be stingy in sharing its masterpieces compared to its sister sculpture? And yet, my friend, we must part ways quickly; the carpenter is coming in an hour to put up the—the emblem; and honestly, with all my reasoning and your uplifting support, I'd prefer to leave Gandercleugh before that starts.”

We partook of our genial host’s parting banquet, and I escorted Dick on his walk to Edinburgh. We parted about a mile from the village, just as we heard the distant cheer of the boys which accompanied the mounting of the new symbol of the Wallace Head. Dick Tinto mended his pace to get out of hearing, so little had either early practice or recent philosophy reconciled him to the character of a sign-painter.

We enjoyed our friendly host's farewell dinner, and I walked with Dick towards Edinburgh. We said our goodbyes about a mile from the village, just as we heard the distant cheers of the boys celebrating the raising of the new symbol of the Wallace Head. Dick Tinto quickened his pace to get out of earshot, as neither his past experiences nor recent reflections had prepared him for the idea of being a sign-painter.

In Edinburgh, Dick’s talents were discovered and appreciated, and he received dinners and hints from several distinguished judges of the fine arts. But these gentlemen dispensed their criticism more willingly than their cash, and Dick thought he needed cash more than criticism. He therefore sought London, the universal mart of talent, and where, as is usual in general marts of most descriptions, much more of each commodity is exposed to sale than can ever find purchasers.

In Edinburgh, Dick’s talents were recognized and admired, and he was invited to dinners and given suggestions by several well-known art critics. However, these gentlemen were more generous with their feedback than with their money, and Dick figured he needed cash more than criticism. So, he decided to go to London, the central hub for talent, where, as is often the case in various marketplaces, far more of each item is available for sale than can ever actually be sold.

Dick, who, in serious earnest, was supposed to have considerable natural talents for his profession, and whose vain and sanguine disposition never permitted him to doubt for a moment of ultimate success, threw himself headlong into the crowd which jostled and struggled for notice and preferment. He elbowed others, and was elbowed himself; and finally, by dint of intrepidity, fought his way into some notice, painted for the prize at the Institution, had pictures at the exhibition at Somerset House, and damned the hanging committee. But poor Dick was doomed to lose the field he fought so gallantly. In the fine arts, there is scarce an alternative betwixt distinguished success and absolute failure; and as Dick’s zeal and industry were unable to ensure the first, he fell into the distresses which, in his condition, were the natural consequences of the latter alternative. He was for a time patronised by one or two of those judicious persons who make a virtue of being singular, and of pitching their own opinions against those of the world in matters of taste and criticism. But they soon tired of poor Tinto, and laid him down as a load, upon the principle on which a spoilt child throws away its plaything. Misery, I fear, took him up, and accompanied him to a premature grave, to which he was carried from an obscure lodging in Swallow Street, where he had been dunned by his landlady within doors, and watched by bailiffs without, until death came to his relief. A corner of the Morning Post noticed his death, generously adding, that his manner displayed considerable genius, though his style was rather sketchy; and referred to an advertisement, which announced that Mr. Varnish, a well-known printseller, had still on hand a very few drawings and paintings by Richard Tinto, Esquire, which those of the nobility and gentry who might wish to complete their collections of modern art were invited to visit without delay. So ended Dick Tinto! a lamentable proof of the great truth, that in the fine arts mediocrity is not permitted, and that he who cannot ascend to the very top of the ladder will do well not to put his foot upon it at all.

Dick, who was genuinely believed to have significant natural talent for his profession and whose arrogant and optimistic personality never let him doubt his eventual success, dove headfirst into the crowd that pushed and shoved for attention and opportunities. He nudged others out of the way and got nudged himself; ultimately, through sheer determination, he fought his way into some recognition, painted for a prize at the Institution, had works displayed at the exhibition at Somerset House, and criticized the hanging committee. But poor Dick was destined to lose the battle he fought so bravely. In the fine arts, there's hardly any middle ground between outstanding success and total failure; since Dick's enthusiasm and hard work couldn't secure the first, he fell into the hardships that were the natural result of the latter. For a while, he had the support of a couple of those discerning individuals who pride themselves on being different and opposing popular opinions in taste and criticism. But they quickly grew tired of poor Tinto and discarded him like a spoiled child tosses away a toy. Unfortunately, misery took him in and accompanied him to an early grave, from which he was carried out of an obscure lodging on Swallow Street, where his landlady had been demanding rent inside while bailiffs loomed outside, until death finally came to his aid. A corner of the Morning Post acknowledged his death, generously adding that his manner showed considerable talent, even though his style was somewhat unrefined; it also mentioned an advertisement stating that Mr. Varnish, a well-known printseller, still had a few drawings and paintings by Richard Tinto, Esquire, encouraging the nobility and gentry who wanted to complete their collections of modern art to visit without delay. So ended Dick Tinto! A tragic example of the harsh reality that in the fine arts, mediocrity is not acceptable, and those who can't reach the very top of the ladder should avoid climbing it altogether.

The memory of Tinto is dear to me, from the recollection of the many conversations which we have had together, most of them turning upon my present task. He was delighted with my progress, and talked of an ornamented and illustrated edition, with heads, vignettes, and culs de lampe, all to be designed by his own patriotic and friendly pencil. He prevailed upon an old sergeant of invalids to sit to him in the character of Bothwell, the lifeguard’s-man of Charles the Second, and the bellman of Gandercleugh in that of David Deans. But while he thus proposed to unite his own powers with mine for the illustration of these narratives, he mixed many a dose of salutary criticism with the panegyrics which my composition was at times so fortunate as to call forth.

The memory of Tinto is precious to me, especially when I think of the many conversations we shared, most of which focused on my current project. He was thrilled with my progress and talked about creating a decorated and illustrated edition, complete with portraits, vignettes, and culs de lampe, all to be designed by his own patriotic and friendly hand. He even convinced an old sergeant of invalids to pose for him as Bothwell, the bodyguard of Charles the Second, and as the bellman of Gandercleugh in the role of David Deans. But while he intended to combine his talents with mine for the illustrations of these stories, he also mixed in plenty of helpful criticism alongside the praise that my writing sometimes received.

“Your characters,” he said, “my dear Pattieson, make too much use of the gob box; they patter too much (an elegant phraseology which Dick had learned while painting the scenes of an itinerant company of players); there is nothing in whole pages but mere chat and dialogue.”

“Your characters,” he said, “my dear Pattieson, rely too heavily on the gob box; they patter too much (a fancy term Dick picked up while working on the scenes for a traveling theater troupe); entire pages are filled with nothing but casual conversation and dialogue.”

“The ancient philosopher,” said I in reply, “was wont to say, ‘Speak, that I may know thee’; and how is it possible for an author to introduce his personæ dramatis to his readers in a more interesting and effectual manner than by the dialogue in which each is represented as supporting his own appropriate character?”

“The ancient philosopher,” I replied, “used to say, ‘Speak, so I can know you’; and how can an author introduce their personæ dramatis to readers in a more engaging and effective way than through dialogue, where each character represents their own unique traits?”

“It is a false conclusion,” said Tinto; “I hate it, Peter, as I hate an unfilled can. I grant you, indeed, that speech is a faculty of some value in the intercourse of human affairs, and I will not even insist on the doctrine of that Pythagorean toper, who was of opinion that over a bottle speaking spoiled conversation. But I will not allow that a professor of the fine arts has occasion to embody the idea of his scene in language, in order to impress upon the reader its reality and its effect. On the contrary, I will be judged by most of your readers, Peter, should these tales ever become public, whether you have not given us a page of talk for every single idea which two words might have communicated, while the posture, and manner, and incident, accurately drawn, and brought out by appropriate colouring, would have preserved all that was worthy of preservation, and saved these everlasting ‘said he’s’ and ‘said she’s,’ with which it has been your pleasure to encumber your pages.”

“It’s a wrong conclusion,” Tinto said. “I dislike it, Peter, just like I dislike an empty can. I’ll admit that speech is useful in human interactions, and I won’t even push the idea of that Pythagorean drunk who thought that talking ruined a good conversation. But I won't accept that a professor of the fine arts needs to express the idea of his scene in words to make the reader feel its reality and impact. On the contrary, I believe most of your readers, Peter, if these stories ever get published, will agree that you have given us a page of dialogue for every single idea that could have been expressed in just two words, while the posture, manner, and details—accurately depicted and enhanced with the right colors—would have preserved everything worth keeping and avoided those endless ‘he said’ and ‘she said’ phrases that you’ve chosen to clutter your pages.”

I replied, “That he confounded the operations of the pencil and the pen; that the serene and silent art, as painting has been called by one of our first living poets, necessarily appealed to the eye, because it had not the organs for addressing the ear; whereas poetry, or that species of composition which approached to it, lay under the necessity of doing absolutely the reverse, and addressed itself to the ear, for the purpose of exciting that interest which it could not attain through the medium of the eye.”

I responded, “He mixed up the functions of the pencil and the pen; that the peaceful and quiet art, which painting has been called by one of our best contemporary poets, has to appeal to the eye since it doesn’t have the ability to reach the ear; while poetry, or that kind of writing that is close to it, has to do the exact opposite and speaks to the ear to create the interest it can't earn through the eye.”

Dick was not a whit staggered by my argument, which he contended was founded on misrepresentation. “Description,” he said, “was to the author of a romance exactly what drawing and tinting were to a painter: words were his colours, and, if properly employed, they could not fail to place the scene which he wished to conjure up as effectually before the mind’s eye as the tablet or canvas presents it to the bodily organ. The same rules,” he contended, “applied to both, and an exuberance of dialogue, in the former case, was a verbose and laborious mode of composition which went to confound the proper art of fictitious narrative with that of the drama, a widely different species of composition, of which dialogue was the very essence, because all, excepting the language to be made use of, was presented to the eye by the dresses, and persons, and actions of the performers upon the stage. But as nothing,” said Dick, “can be more dull than a long narrative written upon the plan of a drama, so where you have approached most near to that species of composition, by indulging in prolonged scenes of mere conversation, the course of your story has become chill and constrained, and you have lost the power of arresting the attention and exciting the imagination, in which upon other occasions you may be considered as having succeeded tolerably well.”

Dick wasn't even slightly thrown off by my argument, which he claimed was based on misrepresentation. “Description,” he said, “is to a romance author what drawing and coloring are to a painter: words are his colors, and when used properly, they can effectively bring the scene he wants to evoke right before the mind's eye, just as a canvas does for the physical eye. The same rules,” he argued, “apply to both, and excessive dialogue in writing is a clumsy and laborious way of creating a narrative that confuses the art of fiction with that of drama, which is a completely different form of writing, where dialogue is essential, since everything besides the language is shown to the audience through the costumes, characters, and actions of the performers on stage. But,” said Dick, “nothing can be more boring than a long narrative written like a drama, and where you've come closest to that form by indulging in extended scenes of just conversation, your story has become cold and awkward, losing the ability to capture attention and spark imagination, which you’ve managed to do quite well at other times.”

I made my bow in requital of the compliment, which was probably thrown in by way of placebo, and expressed myself willing at least to make one trial of a more straightforward style of composition, in which my actors should do more, and say less, than in my former attempts of this kind. Dick gave me a patronising and approving nod, and observed that, finding me so docile, he would communicate, for the benefit of my muse, a subject which he had studied with a view to his own art.

I bowed in response to the compliment, which was likely given as a kind of placebo, and said I was at least willing to try a more straightforward style of writing, where my characters would do more and talk less than in my previous efforts. Dick gave me a condescending nod of approval and remarked that, since I was being so agreeable, he would share a topic he had explored for his own work, for the benefit of my creativity.

“The story,” he said, “was, by tradition, affirmed to be truth, although, as upwards of a hundred years had passed away since the events took place, some doubts upon the accuracy of all the particulars might be reasonably entertained.”

“The story,” he said, “was, by tradition, considered to be true, although, since over a hundred years had passed since the events occurred, it’s reasonable to question the accuracy of all the details.”

When Dick Tinto had thus spoken, he rummaged his portfolio for the sketch from which he proposed one day to execute a picture of fourteen feet by eight. The sketch, which was cleverly executed, to use the appropriate phrase, represented an ancient hall, fitted up and furnished in what we now call the taste of Queen Elizabeth’s age. The light, admitted from the upper part of a high casement, fell upon a female figure of exquisite beauty, who, in an attitude of speechless terror, appeared to watch the issue of a debate betwixt two other persons. The one was a young man, in the Vandyke dress common to the time of Charles I., who, with an air of indignant pride, testified by the manner in which he raised his head and extended his arm, seemed to be urging a claim of right, rather than of favour, to a lady whose age, and some resemblance in their features, pointed her out as the mother of the younger female, and who appeared to listen with a mixture of displeasure and impatience.

When Dick Tinto finished speaking, he dug through his portfolio for the sketch he planned to turn into a painting measuring fourteen feet by eight. The sketch, which was skillfully done, depicted an ancient hall decorated in what we now refer to as the style of Queen Elizabeth’s era. Light streaming in from the upper part of a tall window illuminated a female figure of stunning beauty, who, frozen in terror, seemed to be watching a debate between two other people. One was a young man dressed in the Vandyke fashion typical of the time of Charles I, who, with an air of indignant pride, raised his head and extended his arm, appearing to argue a claim of right rather than a request for favor, directed at a lady who looked to be the mother of the younger woman, as indicated by their resemblance. The mother showed a mix of displeasure and impatience as she listened.

Tinto produced his sketch with an air of mysterious triumph, and gazed on it as a fond parent looks upon a hopeful child, while he anticipates the future figure he is to make in the world, and the height to which he will raise the honour of his family. He held it at arm’s length from me—he held it closer—he placed it upon the top of a chest of drawers—closed the lower shutters of the casement, to adjust a downward and favourable light—fell back to the due distance, dragging me after him—shaded his face with his hand, as if to exclude all but the favourite object—and ended by spoiling a child’s copy-book, which he rolled up so as to serve for the darkened tube of an amateur. I fancy my expressions of enthusiasm had not been in proportion to his own, for he presently exclaimed with vehemence: “Mr. Pattieson, I used to think you had an eye in your head.”

Tinto showed off his sketch with a sense of mysterious pride, looking at it like a proud parent gazing at a promising child, dreaming about the future accomplishments that would bring honor to the family. He held it out at arm’s length—then closer—then placed it on top of a chest of drawers—closed the lower shutters of the window to create a better light—stepped back to the right distance, pulling me along—shielded his face with his hand as if to block everything out except his beloved piece—and finally ruined a child’s copybook by rolling it up to use as a dark tube for his amateur setup. I think my enthusiasm didn’t quite match his, because he suddenly exclaimed passionately, “Mr. Pattieson, I used to think you had an eye in your head.”

I vindicated my claim to the usual allowance of visual organs.

I defended my right to the usual number of eyesight capabilities.

“Yet, on my honour,” said Dick, “I would swear you had been born blind, since you have failed at the first glance to discover the subject and meaning of that sketch. I do not mean to praise my own performance, I leave these arts to others; I am sensible of my deficiencies, conscious that my drawing and colouring may be improved by the time I intend to dedicate to the art. But the conception—the expression—the positions—these tell the story to every one who looks at the sketch; and if I can finish the picture without diminution of the original conception, the name of Tinto shall no more be smothered by the mists of envy and intrigue.”

“Honestly,” said Dick, “I swear you must have been born blind, since you couldn’t see the subject and meaning of that sketch right away. I’m not trying to brag about my work; I’ll leave that to others. I’m aware of my shortcomings and know that my drawing and coloring can improve with the time I plan to invest in the art. But the idea—the expression—the poses—they tell the story to anyone who looks at the sketch. If I can complete the picture without losing the original concept, then the name of Tinto won’t be hidden by jealousy and scheming anymore.”

I replied: “That I admired the sketch exceedingly; but that to understand its full merit, I felt it absolutely necessary to be informed of the subject.”

I replied, "I really admired the sketch, but to appreciate its full value, I felt it was essential to know the subject."

“That is the very thing I complain of,” answered Tinto; “you have accustomed yourself so much to these creeping twilight details of yours, that you are become incapable of receiving that instant and vivid flash of conviction which darts on the mind from seeing the happy and expressive combinations of a single scene, and which gathers from the position, attitude, and countenance of the moment, not only the history of the past lives of the personages represented, and the nature of the business on which they are immediately engaged, but lifts even the veil of futurity, and affords a shrewd guess at their future fortunes.”

“That’s exactly what I’m complaining about,” Tinto replied. “You’ve gotten so used to your little details in the dim light that you’ve become unable to feel that immediate and powerful insight that hits you when you see the joyful and meaningful combinations in a single scene. It captures not just the backgrounds and actions of the people involved, but also hints at their future and gives you a smart idea of what’s to come for them.”

“In that case,” replied I, “Painting excels the ape of the renowned Gines de Passamonte, which only meddled with the past and the present; nay, she excels that very Nature who affords her subject; for I protest to you, Dick, that were I permitted to peep into that Elizabeth-chamber, and see the persons you have sketched conversing in flesh and blood, I should not be a jot nearer guessing the nature of their business than I am at this moment while looking at your sketch. Only generally, from the languishing look of the young lady, and the care you have taken to present a very handsome leg on the part of the gentleman, I presume there is some reference to a love affair between them.”

“In that case,” I replied, “Painting surpasses the imitation by the famous Gines de Passamonte, which only dealt with the past and present; in fact, it even surpasses Nature herself, who provides the subject. I swear, Dick, if I were allowed to peek into that Elizabeth-chamber and see the people you’ve drawn interacting in real life, I still wouldn’t be any closer to figuring out what they’re up to than I am right now while looking at your sketch. Based on the young lady’s dreamy expression and the very attractive leg you’ve depicted on the gentleman, I can only assume there’s some kind of love affair happening between them.”

“Do you really presume to form such a bold conjecture?” said Tinto. “And the indignant earnestness with which you see the man urge his suit, the unresisting and passive despair of the younger female, the stern air of inflexible determination in the elder woman, whose looks express at once consciousness that she is acting wrong and a firm determination to persist in the course she has adopted——”

“Do you really think you can make such a bold guess?” said Tinto. “And the angry seriousness with which you see the man push his case, the helpless and passive despair of the younger woman, the serious demeanor of the older woman, whose expression shows that she knows she’s doing something wrong but is still determined to stick to her decision——”

“If her looks express all this, my dear Tinto,” replied I, interrupting him, “your pencil rivals the dramatic art of Mr. Puff in The Critic, who crammed a whole complicated sentence into the expressive shake of Lord Burleigh’s head.”

“If her looks say all of this, my dear Tinto,” I interrupted, “your drawing is as dramatic as Mr. Puff in The Critic, who managed to convey a whole complicated sentence with just the meaningful shake of Lord Burleigh’s head.”

“My good friend, Peter,” replied Tinto, “I observe you are perfectly incorrigible; however, I have compassion on your dulness, and am unwilling you should be deprived of the pleasure of understanding my picture, and of gaining, at the same time, a subject for your own pen. You must know then, last summer, while I was taking sketches on the coast of East Lothian and Berwickshire, I was seduced into the mountains of Lammermoor by the account I received of some remains of antiquity in that district. Those with which I was most struck were the ruins of an ancient castle in which that Elizabeth-chamber, as you call it, once existed. I resided for two or three days at a farmhouse in the neighbourhood, where the aged goodwife was well acquainted with the history of the castle, and the events which had taken place in it. One of these was of a nature so interesting and singular, that my attention was divided between my wish to draw the old ruins in landscape, and to represent, in a history-piece, the singular events which have taken place in it. Here are my notes of the tale,” said poor Dick, handing a parcel of loose scraps, partly scratched over with his pencil, partly with his pen, where outlines of caricatures, sketches of turrets, mills, old gables, and dovecots, disputed the ground with his written memoranda.

“My good friend, Peter,” Tinto said, “I see you are absolutely unchangeable; however, I feel sorry for your dullness, and I don’t want you to miss out on the joy of understanding my painting and at the same time getting a topic for your own writing. You should know that last summer, while I was making sketches along the coast of East Lothian and Berwickshire, I was lured into the Lammermoor mountains by what I heard about some ancient relics in that area. What caught my attention the most were the ruins of an old castle where that Elizabeth chamber, as you call it, once was. I stayed for two or three days at a nearby farmhouse, where the elderly woman who ran it knew all about the castle’s history and the events that took place there. One of these events was so fascinating and unique that I found myself torn between wanting to draw the old ruins as a landscape and portraying, in a historical piece, the remarkable events that occurred there. Here are my notes on the story,” said poor Dick, handing over a bundle of loose papers, some scribbled over with his pencil, others with his pen, where doodles of caricatures, sketches of towers, mills, old gables, and dovecots competed for space with his written notes.

I proceeded, however, to decipher the substance of the manuscript as well as I could, and move it into the following Tale, in which, following in part, though not entirely, my friend Tinto’s advice, I endeavoured to render my narrative rather descriptive than dramatic. My favourite propensity, however, has at times overcome me, and my persons, like many others in this talking world, speak now and then a great deal more than they act.

I went ahead and figured out the main points of the manuscript as best as I could, and turned it into the following story. Although I took some of my friend Tinto’s advice, I tried to make my narrative more descriptive than dramatic. However, my usual tendency sometimes got the better of me, and my characters, like many others in this chatty world, often talk a lot more than they actually do.

CHAPTER II.

Well, lord, we have not got that which we have;
’Tis not enough our foes are this time fled,
Being opposites of such repairing nature.

Henry VI. Part II.

Well, my lord, we don’t have what we have;
It’s not enough that our enemies have fled this time,
Being so different from what needs fixing.

Henry VI. Part II.

In the gorge of a pass or mountain glen, ascending from the fertile plains of East Lothian, there stood in former times an extensive castle, of which only the ruins are now visible. Its ancient proprietors were a race of powerful and warlike barons, who bore the same name with the castle itself, which was Ravenswood. Their line extended to a remote period of antiquity, and they had intermarried with the Douglasses, Humes, Swintons, Hays, and other families of power and distinction in the same country. Their history was frequently involved in that of Scotland itself, in whose annals their feats are recorded. The Castle of Ravenswood, occupying, and in some measure commanding, a pass betweixt Berwickshire, or the Merse, as the southeastern province of Scotland is termed, and the Lothians, was of importance both in times of foreign war and domestic discord. It was frequently beseiged with ardour, and defended with obstinacy, and, of course, its owners played a conspicuous part in story. But their house had its revolutions, like all sublunary things: it became greatly declined from its splendour about the middle of the 17th century; and towards the period of the Revolution, the last proprietor of Ravenswood Castle saw himself compelled to part with the ancient family seat, and to remove himself to a lonely and sea-beaten tower, which, situated on the bleak shores between St. Abb’s Head and the village of Eyemouth, looked out on the lonely and boisterous German Ocean. A black domain of wild pasture-land surrounded their new residence, and formed the remains of their property.

In the valley of a mountain pass, rising from the fertile plains of East Lothian, there once stood a large castle, of which only the ruins are visible today. Its ancient owners were a powerful and warlike family, sharing the same name as the castle itself, which was Ravenswood. Their lineage stretched back to a distant period, and they had intermarried with the Douglasses, Humes, Swintons, Hays, and other notable families in the region. Their history was often intertwined with that of Scotland itself, and their exploits are recorded in the nation’s history. The Castle of Ravenswood, strategically positioned to command a pass between Berwickshire, known as the Merse in southeastern Scotland, and the Lothians, was significant during times of foreign conflict and domestic strife. It was frequently besieged with fervor and defended stubbornly, making its owners prominent figures in history. However, their family experienced its own ups and downs, like all earthly things: it significantly declined from its former glory around the mid-17th century. By the time of the Revolution, the last owner of Ravenswood Castle found himself forced to sell the ancient family home and move to a solitary, windswept tower located on the desolate shores between St. Abb’s Head and the village of Eyemouth, overlooking the turbulent German Ocean. A vast stretch of wild pastureland surrounded their new home, making up the remnants of their former estate.

Lord Ravenswood, the heir of this ruined family, was far from bending his mind to his new condition of life. In the civil war of 1689 he had espoused the sinking side, and although he had escaped without the forfeiture of life or land, his blood had been attainted, and his title abolished. He was now called Lord Ravenswood only in courtesy.

Lord Ravenswood, the heir of this fallen family, did not accept his new way of life. During the civil war of 1689, he had supported the losing side, and even though he managed to survive without losing his life or property, his bloodline was tainted, and his title was abolished. He was now referred to as Lord Ravenswood only as a courtesy.

This forfeited nobleman inherited the pride and turbulence, though not the fortune, of his house, and, as he imputed the final declension of his family to a particular individual, he honoured that person with his full portion of hatred. This was the very man who had now become, by purchase, proprietor of Ravenswood, and the domains of which the heir of the house now stood dispossessed. He was descended of a family much less ancient than that of Lord Ravenswood, and which had only risen to wealth and political importance during the great civil wars. He himself had been bred to the bar, and had held high offices in the state, maintaining through life the character of a skilful fisher in the troubled waters of a state divided by factions, and governed by delegated authority; and of one who contrived to amass considerable sums of money in a country where there was but little to be gathered, and who equally knew the value of wealth and the various means of augmenting it and using it as an engine of increasing his power and influence.

This disinherited nobleman inherited the pride and turmoil, though not the wealth, of his family. Since he blamed his family's downfall on a specific person, he directed all his animosity towards him. This was the very man who had now become the owner of Ravenswood through purchase, taking over the lands from which the heir of the house had been ousted. He came from a family far less prestigious than that of Lord Ravenswood, and which had only gained wealth and political significance during the major civil wars. He had been trained as a lawyer and held high positions in the government, navigating the turbulent political waters of a divided state and a system managed by appointed officials. He managed to accumulate a significant amount of wealth in a country where it was scarce, fully understanding the value of money and the different ways to increase it and use it to boost his power and influence.

Thus qualified and gifted, he was a dangerous antagonist to the fierce and imprudent Ravenswood. Whether he had given him good cause for the enmity with which the Baron regarded him, was a point on which men spoke differently. Some said the quarrel arose merely from the vindictive spirit and envy of Lord Ravenswood, who could not patiently behold another, though by just and fair purchase, become the proprietor of the estate and castle of his forefathers. But the greater part of the public, prone to slander the wealthy in their absence as to flatter them in their presence, held a less charitable opinion. They said that the Lord Keeper (for to this height Sir William Ashton had ascended) had, previous to the final purchase of the estate of Ravenswood, been concerned in extensive pecuniary transactions with the former proprietor; and, rather intimating what was probable than affirming anything positively, they asked which party was likely to have the advantage in stating and enforcing the claims arising out of these complicated affairs, and more than hinted the advantages which the cool lawyer and able politician must necessarily possess over the hot, fiery, and imprudent character whom he had involved in legal toils and pecuniary snares.

Thus qualified and talented, he was a formidable opponent to the fierce and reckless Ravenswood. Whether he had actually given the Baron a reason for his animosity was a matter people debated. Some claimed the conflict stemmed purely from Lord Ravenswood's vengeful nature and jealousy, as he could not tolerate seeing someone else, even through fair and legitimate means, acquire the property and castle of his ancestors. However, the majority of the public, quick to criticize the wealthy when they're not around and to flatter them in their presence, held a less forgiving view. They asserted that the Lord Keeper (to which level Sir William Ashton had risen) had, before finalizing the purchase of the Ravenswood estate, been involved in significant financial dealings with the previous owner; and rather than stating anything definitively, they raised questions about which party was more likely to gain the upper hand in negotiating and asserting the claims arising from these complex dealings, subtly suggesting the advantages the composed lawyer and skilled politician must have over the hot-headed and reckless individual who had become entangled in legal troubles and financial traps.

The character of the times aggravated these suspicions. “In those days there was no king in Israel.” Since the departure of James VI. to assume the richer and more powerful crown of England, there had existed in Scotland contending parties, formed among the aristocracy, by whom, as their intrigues at the court of St. James’s chanced to prevail, the delegated powers of sovereignty were alternately swayed. The evils attending upon this system of government resembled those which afflict the tenants of an Irish estate, the property of an absentee. There was no supreme power, claiming and possessing a general interest with the community at large, to whom the oppressed might appeal from subordinate tyranny, either for justice or for mercy. Let a monarch be as indolent, as selfish, as much disposed to arbitrary power as he will, still, in a free country, his own interests are so clearly connected with those of the public at large, and the evil consequences to his own authority are so obvious and imminent when a different course is pursued, that common policy, as well as common feeling, point to the equal distribution of justice, and to the establishment of the throne in righteousness. Thus, even sovereigns remarkable for usurpation and tyranny have been found rigorous in the administration of justice among their subjects, in cases where their own power and passions were not compromised.

The character of the times intensified these suspicions. “In those days there was no king in Israel.” Since James VI left to take on the wealthier and more powerful crown of England, Scotland had been divided by competing factions among the aristocracy, who, depending on who was winning the intrigues at the court of St. James’s, alternately held the powers of sovereignty. The problems resulting from this system of government were similar to what tenants experience on an Irish estate owned by someone who's absent. There was no supreme authority that claimed to represent the general interest of the community, where the oppressed could turn to for justice or mercy against subordinate tyranny. Even if a king is lazy, selfish, or leaning toward arbitrary power, in a free country, his own interests are closely tied to those of the public, and he clearly understands the negative impact on his own authority that can arise from taking a different approach. Thus, both common sense and sentiment highlight the importance of fair justice and establishing the throne with righteousness. Even tyrannical rulers have sometimes been strict in administering justice among their subjects, especially where their own power and desires were not at stake.

It is very different when the powers of sovereignty are delegated to the head of an aristocratic faction, rivalled and pressed closely in the race of ambition by an adverse leader. His brief and precarious enjoyment of power must be employed in rewarding his partizans, in extending his influence, in oppressing and crushing his adversaries. Even Abou Hassan, the most disinterested of all viceroys, forgot not, during his caliphate of one day, to send a douceur of one thousand pieces of gold to his own household; and the Scottish vicegerents, raised to power by the strength of their faction, failed not to embrace the same means of rewarding them.

It’s quite different when the powers of sovereignty are handed over to the leader of an aristocratic group, who is closely challenged in the race for ambition by a rival leader. His short and unstable time in power has to be used to reward his supporters, expand his influence, and suppress his opponents. Even Abou Hassan, the most selfless of all governors, didn’t forget to send a gift of one thousand gold coins to his own household during his one-day rule; and the Scottish vicegerents, who rose to power through their faction's strength, also used similar ways to reward their followers.

The administration of justice, in particular, was infected by the most gross partiality. A case of importance scarcely occurred in which there was not some ground for bias or partiality on the part of the judges, who were so little able to withstand the temptation that the adage, “Show me the man, and I will show you the law,” became as prevalent as it was scandalous. One corruption led the way to others still more gross and profligate. The judge who lent his sacred authority in one case to support a friend, and in another to crush an enemy, and whose decisions were founded on family connexions or political relations, could not be supposed inaccessible to direct personal motives; and the purse of the wealthy was too often believed to be thrown into the scale to weigh down the cause of the poor litigant. The subordinate officers of the law affected little scruple concerning bribery. Pieces of plate and bags of money were sent in presents to the king’s counsel, to influence their conduct, and poured forth, says a contemporary writer, like billets of wood upon their floors, without even the decency of concealment.

The justice system was seriously tainted by blatant favoritism. Important cases rarely came up without some bias or partiality from the judges, who were so easily swayed that the saying, “Show me the man, and I will show you the law,” became both common and scandalous. One act of corruption often led to even worse ones. A judge who used his powerful position to support a friend in one case and to undermine an enemy in another, making decisions based on family ties or political connections, couldn’t possibly be free from personal motivations. It was commonly believed that the wealth of the rich often tipped the scales against the poor litigants. Lower-level law officers showed little concern for bribery. Gifts like silverware and bags of money were often sent to the king’s counsel to sway their actions and were reportedly delivered, according to a contemporary writer, like logs thrown onto a floor, without any attempt at discretion.

In such times, it was not over uncharitable to suppose that the statesman, practised in courts of law, and a powerful member of a triumphant cabal, might find and use means of advantage over his less skilful and less favoured adversary; and if it had been supposed that Sir William Ashton’s conscience had been too delicate to profit by these advantages, it was believed that his ambition and desire of extending his wealth and consequence found as strong a stimulus in the exhortations of his lady as the daring aim of Macbeth in the days of yore.

In times like these, it wasn't unreasonable to think that a seasoned politician, experienced in legal matters and a key player in a successful group, could find and use ways to gain an advantage over his less skilled and less lucky opponent. And while some might have thought that Sir William Ashton’s conscience was too refined to take advantage of these opportunities, many believed that his ambition and desire to grow his wealth and status were just as strongly motivated by his wife's encouragement as Macbeth’s bold ambitions in the past.

Lady Ashton was of a family more distinguished than that of her lord, an advantage which she did not fail to use to the uttermost, in maintaining and extending her husband’s influence over others, and, unless she was greatly belied, her own over him. She had been beautiful, and was stately and majestic in her appearance. Endowed by nature with strong powers and violent passions, experience had taught her to employ the one, and to conceal, if not to moderate, the other. She was a severe and strict observer of the external forms, at least, of devotion; her hospitality was splendid, even to ostentation; her address and manners, agreeable to the pattern most valued in Scotland at the period, were grave, dignified, and severely regulated by the rules of etiquette. Her character had always been beyond the breath of slander. And yet, with all these qualities to excite respect, Lady Ashton was seldom mentioned in the terms of love or affection. Interest—the interest of her family, if not her own—seemed too obviously the motive of her actions; and where this is the case, the sharp-judging and malignant public are not easily imposed upon by outward show. It was seen and ascertained that, in her most graceful courtesies and compliments, Lady Ashton no more lost sight of her object than the falcon in his airy wheel turns his quick eyes from his destined quarry; and hence, something of doubt and suspicion qualified the feelings with which her equals received her attentions. With her inferiors these feelings were mingled with fear; an impression useful to her purposes, so far as it enforced ready compliance with her requests and implicit obedience to her commands, but detrimental, because it cannot exist with affection or regard.

Lady Ashton came from a more distinguished family than her husband’s, an advantage she fully leveraged to enhance and expand his influence over others, and, if she wasn’t badly misrepresented, her own over him as well. She had been beautiful and carried herself with a stately and majestic presence. Naturally gifted with strong abilities and intense passions, she had learned through experience to use one and to hide, if not temper, the other. She was a strict and observant caretaker of the outward forms of devotion; her hospitality was extravagant, almost to a fault; her manner and demeanor, in line with the most esteemed standards in Scotland at the time, were serious, dignified, and strictly governed by etiquette. Her character had always been above reproach. Yet, despite these qualities that commanded respect, Lady Ashton was rarely spoken of in terms of love or affection. It seemed that interests—whether those of her family or her own—were clearly the motivation behind her actions. When that’s the case, the sharp and judgmental public can easily see through superficial appearances. It was clear that even in her most graceful courtesies and compliments, Lady Ashton never lost sight of her goals, much like a falcon on the hunt never takes its eyes off its target; as a result, there was an air of doubt and suspicion that colored the way her peers responded to her attentions. Among her inferiors, this feeling was mixed with fear; an impression that served her purposes by ensuring prompt compliance and unquestioning obedience to her requests, but it was also detrimental because it cannot coexist with warmth or affection.

Even her husband, it is said, upon whose fortunes her talents and address had produced such emphatic influence, regarded her with respectful awe rather than confiding attachment; and report said, there were times when he considered his grandeur as dearly purchased at the expense of domestic thraldom. Of this, however, much might be suspected, but little could be accurately known: Lady Ashton regarded the honour of her husband as her own, and was well aware how much that would suffer in the public eye should he appear a vassal to his wife. In all her arguments his opinion was quoted as infallible; his taste was appealed to, and his sentiments received, with the air of deference which a dutiful wife might seem to owe to a husband of Sir William Ashton’s rank and character. But there was something under all this which rung false and hollow; and to those who watched this couple with close, and perhaps malicious, scrutiny it seemed evident that, in the haughtiness of a firmer character, higher birth, and more decided views of aggrandisement, the lady looked with some contempt on her husband, and that he regarded her with jealous fear, rather than with love or admiration.

Even her husband, it’s said, whose success her skills and charm had greatly impacted, looked at her with respectful awe instead of close affection; rumors suggested there were times when he thought his status came at the cost of being trapped at home. People might suspect a lot about this, but little could be known for sure: Lady Ashton saw her husband’s honor as her own and understood how much that would suffer in the public eye if he appeared submissive to her. In all her arguments, she quoted his opinions as if they were undeniable; she referred to his taste, and his views were received with the kind of respect a dutiful wife might give to a husband of Sir William Ashton’s rank and stature. However, there was something about it all that felt false and empty; to those who closely, and perhaps maliciously, observed the couple, it seemed clear that, with the arrogance of a stronger character, nobler birth, and clearer ambitions for power, the lady looked down on her husband with some disdain, while he regarded her with jealous fear rather than love or admiration.

Still, however, the leading and favourite interests of Sir William Ashton and his lady were the same, and they failed not to work in concert, although without cordiality, and to testify, in all exterior circumstances, that respect for each other which they were aware was necessary to secure that of the public.

Still, the main interests of Sir William Ashton and his wife were the same, and they didn’t hesitate to work together, even if it wasn’t warm or friendly. They made sure to show the respect for each other that they knew was essential to maintain their public image.

Their union was crowned with several children, of whom three survived. One, the eldest son, was absent on his travels; the second, a girl of seventeen, and the third, a boy about three years younger, resided with their parents in Edinburgh during the sessions of the Scottish Parliament and Privy Council, at other times in the old Gothic castle of Ravenswood, to which the Lord Keeper had made large additions in the style of the 17th century.

Their marriage was blessed with several children, of whom three survived. One, the eldest son, was away traveling; the second, a seventeen-year-old girl, and the third, a boy around three years younger, lived with their parents in Edinburgh during the sessions of the Scottish Parliament and Privy Council, and at other times in the old Gothic castle of Ravenswood, which the Lord Keeper had significantly expanded in a 17th-century style.

Allan Lord Ravenswood, the late proprietor of that ancient mansion and the large estate annexed to it, continued for some time to wage ineffectual war with his successor concerning various points to which their former transactions had given rise, and which were successively determined in favour of the wealthy and powerful competitor, until death closed the litigation, by summoning Ravenswood to a higher bar. The thread of life, which had been long wasting, gave way during a fit of violent and impotent fury with which he was assailed on receiving the news of the loss of a cause, founded, perhaps, rather in equity than in law, the last which he had maintained against his powerful antagonist. His son witnessed his dying agonies, and heard the curses which he breathed against his adversary, as if they had conveyed to him a legacy of vengeance. Other circumstances happened to exasperate a passion which was, and had long been, a prevalent vice in the Scottish disposition.

Allan Lord Ravenswood, the recently deceased owner of that old mansion and its large estate, spent quite a while engaged in an unsuccessful battle with his successor over various issues that had arisen from their past dealings. These disputes were eventually decided in favor of the wealthy and powerful rival until death put an end to the conflict, summoning Ravenswood to a higher court. The fragile thread of life that had been slowly unraveling finally snapped during a fit of intense and helpless rage sparked by the news of losing a legal case—one that was likely based more on fairness than on the law, and the last one he fought against his formidable opponent. His son witnessed his father’s final struggles and heard the curses he muttered against his rival, as if passing on a legacy of revenge. Other events also inflamed a passion that had long been a common flaw in the Scottish character.

It was a November morning, and the cliffs which overlooked the ocean were hung with thick and heavy mist, when the portals of the ancient and half-ruinous tower, in which Lord Ravenswood had spent the last and troubled years of his life, opened, that his mortal remains might pass forward to an abode yet more dreary and lonely. The pomp of attendance, to which the deceased had, in his latter years, been a stranger, was revived as he was about to be consigned to the realms of forgetfulness.

It was a November morning, and the cliffs overlooking the ocean were shrouded in thick, heavy mist when the doors of the old, half-ruined tower, where Lord Ravenswood had spent the last troubled years of his life, opened to allow his remains to move on to an even more dreary and lonely resting place. The show of attendants, which the deceased had been unaccustomed to in his later years, returned as he was about to be laid to rest in the realms of forgetfulness.

Banner after banner, with the various devices and coats of this ancient family and its connexions, followed each other in mournful procession from under the low-browed archway of the courtyard. The principal gentry of the country attended in the deepest mourning, and tempered the pace of their long train of horses to the solemn march befitting the occasion. Trumpets, with banners of crape attached to them, sent forth their long and melancholy notes to regulate the movements of the procession. An immense train of inferior mourners and menials closed the rear, which had not yet issued from the castle gate when the van had reached the chapel where the body was to be deposited.

Banners, each displaying the symbols and crests of this ancient family and its connections, flowed mournfully in a line from the low-arched entrance of the courtyard. The leading gentry of the region attended in deep mourning, matching the pace of their procession to the somber occasion. Trumpets, with black streamers attached, sounded their long, sorrowful notes to guide the movements of the procession. A large group of lesser mourners and servants brought up the rear, still at the castle gate when the front had already reached the chapel where the body was to be laid to rest.

Contrary to the custom, and even to the law, of the time, the body was met by a priest of the Scottish Episcopal communion, arrayed in his surplice, and prepared to read over the coffin of the deceased the funeral service of the church. Such had been the desire of Lord Ravenswood in his last illness, and it was readily complied with by the Tory gentlemen, or Cavaliers, as they affected to style themselves, in which faction most of his kinsmen were enrolled. The Presbyterian Church judicatory of the bounds, considering the ceremony as a bravading insult upon their authority, had applied to the Lord Keeper, as the nearest privy councillor, for a warrant to prevent its being carried into effect; so that, when the clergyman had opened his prayer-book, an officer of the law, supported by some armed men, commanded him to be silent. An insult which fired the whole assembly with indignation was particularly and instantly resented by the only son of the deceased, Edgar, popularly called the Master of Ravenswood, a youth of about twenty years of age. He clapped his hand on his sword, and bidding the official person to desist at his peril from farther interruption, commanded the clergyman to proceed. The man attempted to enforce his commission; but as an hundred swords at once glittered in the air, he contented himself with protesting against the violence which had been offered to him in the execution of his duty, and stood aloof, a sullen and moody spectator of the ceremonial, muttering as one who should say: “You’ll rue the day that clogs me with this answer.”

Against the custom and even the law of the time, a priest from the Scottish Episcopal Church, dressed in his surplice, met the body and prepared to conduct the funeral service over the deceased's coffin. This had been Lord Ravenswood's wish during his final days, and it was readily accepted by the Tory gentlemen, or Cavaliers, as they liked to call themselves, most of whom were related to him. The local Presbyterian Church authorities viewed the ceremony as a direct challenge to their authority and asked the Lord Keeper, the closest privy councillor, for a warrant to stop it from happening. So, just as the clergyman opened his prayer book, a law officer, backed by some armed men, ordered him to be silent. This disrespect sparked outrage in the assembly, especially from the deceased's only son, Edgar, known as the Master of Ravenswood, a young man of about twenty. He put his hand on his sword and warned the official to back off at his own risk while commanding the clergyman to continue. The man tried to enforce his order, but when a hundred swords suddenly flashed in the air, he decided to simply protest the violence against him while standing aside as a gloomy witness to the ceremony, muttering as if to say: "You'll regret the day you put me in this position."

The scene was worthy of an artist’s pencil. Under the very arch of the house of death, the clergyman, affrighted at the scene, and trembling for his own safety, hastily and unwillingly rehearsed the solemn service of the church, and spoke “dust to dust and ashes to ashes,” over ruined pride and decayed prosperity. Around stood the relations of the deceased, their countenances more in anger than in sorrow, and the drawn swords which they brandished forming a violent contrast with their deep mourning habits. In the countenance of the young man alone, resentment seemed for the moment overpowered by the deep agony with which he beheld his nearest, and almost his only, friend consigned to the tomb of his ancestry. A relative observed him turn deadly pale, when, all rites being now duly observed, it became the duty of the chief mourner to lower down into the charnel vault, where mouldering coffins showed their tattered velvet and decayed plating, the head of the corpse which was to be their partner in corruption. He stept to the youth and offered his assistance, which, by a mute motion, Edgar Ravenswood rejected. Firmly, and without a tear, he performed that last duty. The stone was laid on the sepulchre, the door of the aisle was locked, and the youth took possession of its massive key.

The scene could have inspired an artist. Under the archway of the house of mourning, the clergyman, frightened by what he saw and worried for his own safety, quickly and reluctantly recited the solemn church service, saying “dust to dust and ashes to ashes” over fallen pride and fading fortune. Surrounding him were the deceased's relatives, their expressions more angry than sad, and the drawn swords they held created a harsh contrast with their deep mourning clothes. Only the young man's face showed that anger was temporarily overshadowed by the deep pain he felt as he watched his closest, nearly sole, friend being laid to rest in the family tomb. A relative noticed him turn pale when, after all the rituals had been completed, it was the chief mourner's responsibility to lower the head of the corpse into the charnel vault, where decaying coffins revealed their worn velvet and rusted metal. He stepped up to the young man and offered his help, but Edgar Ravenswood silently refused. Resolutely, and without shedding a tear, he carried out that final act. The stone was placed over the grave, the aisle door was locked, and the young man took hold of the heavy key.

As the crowd left the chapel, he paused on the steps which led to its Gothic chancel. “Gentlemen and friends,” he said, “you have this day done no common duty to the body of your deceased kinsman. The rites of due observance, which, in other countries, are allowed as the due of the meanest Christian, would this day have been denied to the body of your relative—not certainly sprung of the meanest house in Scotland—had it not been assured to him by your courage. Others bury their dead in sorrow and tears, in silence and in reverence; our funeral rites are marred by the intrusion of bailiffs and ruffians, and our grief—the grief due to our departed friend—is chased from our cheeks by the glow of just indignation. But it is well that I know from what quiver this arrow has come forth. It was only he that dug the grave who could have the mean cruelty to disturb the obsequies; and Heaven do as much to me and more, if I requite not to this man and his house the ruin and disgrace he has brought on me and mine!”

As the crowd left the chapel, he paused on the steps that led to its Gothic altar. “Gentlemen and friends,” he said, “today you have performed a rare duty for the body of your deceased relative. The respect that is typically given, even to the most humble Christian in other countries, would have been denied to your relative—certainly not from the least noble family in Scotland—if it weren't for your bravery. Others lay their loved ones to rest in sorrow and tears, in silence and with respect; our funeral rites are disrupted by the intrusion of bailiffs and thugs, and our grief—the grief we owe to our departed friend—is wiped from our faces by righteous anger. But I’m glad to know where this unjust act is coming from. Only someone who dug the grave could have the cold-heartedness to disturb the funeral; and may Heaven do as much or more to me if I do not repay this man and his family for the ruin and shame he has brought upon me and mine!”

A numerous part of the assembly applauded this speech, as the spirited expression of just resentment; but the more cool and judicious regretted that it had been uttered. The fortunes of the heir of Ravenswood were too low to brave the farther hostility which they imagined these open expressions of resentment must necessarily provoke. Their apprehensions, however, proved groundless, at least in the immediate consequences of this affair.

A large part of the audience applauded this speech as a passionate expression of rightful anger; however, the more level-headed and thoughtful regretted that it had been said. The fortunes of the heir of Ravenswood were too precarious to risk the further hostility they believed these open expressions of anger would inevitably provoke. Their fears, however, turned out to be unfounded, at least in the immediate aftermath of this incident.

The mourners returned to the tower, there, according to a custom but recently abolished in Scotland, to carouse deep healths to the memory of the deceased, to make the house of sorrow ring with sounds of joviality and debauch, and to diminish, by the expense of a large and profuse entertainment, the limited revenues of the heir of him whose funeral they thus strangely honoured. It was the custom, however, and on the present occasion it was fully observed. The tables swam in wine, the populace feasted in the courtyard, the yeomen in the kitchen and buttery; and two years’ rent of Ravenswood’s remaining property hardly defrayed the charge of the funeral revel. The wine did its office on all but the Master of Ravenswood, a title which he still retained, though forfeiture had attached to that of his father. He, while passing around the cup which he himself did not taste, soon listened to a thousand exclamations against the Lord Keeper, and passionate protestations of attachment to himself, and to the honour of his house. He listened with dark and sullen brow to ebullitions which he considered justly as equally evanescent with the crimson bubbles on the brink of the goblet, or at least with the vapours which its contents excited in the brains of the revellers around him.

The mourners went back to the tower, where, according to a custom that had recently been abolished in Scotland, they would drink to the memory of the deceased, filling the house of mourning with sounds of celebration and excess, trying to lessen the limited funds of the heir of the person they were oddly honoring with this funeral. It was still the custom, and on this occasion, it was fully carried out. The tables overflowed with wine, the crowd feasted in the courtyard, the servants were in the kitchen and pantry; and two years’ rent from Ravenswood’s remaining estate barely covered the cost of the funeral festivities. The wine had its effect on everyone except the Master of Ravenswood, a title he still held, even though his father had lost his. As he passed around the cup he didn’t drink from, he soon heard many loud complaints about the Lord Keeper and passionate declarations of loyalty to him and his family’s honor. He listened with a gloomy and brooding expression to outbursts he thought were just as fleeting as the crimson bubbles on the edge of the goblet, or at least as temporary as the effects of the wine on the minds of the revelers around him.

When the last flask was emptied, they took their leave with deep protestations—to be forgotten on the morrow, if, indeed, those who made them should not think it necessary for their safety to make a more solemn retractation.

When the last flask was emptied, they said their goodbyes with strong feelings—likely to be forgotten by the next day, unless those who made the promises felt the need for a more serious retraction for their own safety.

Accepting their adieus with an air of contempt which he could scarce conceal, Ravenswood at length beheld his ruinous habitation cleared of this confluence of riotous guests, and returned to the deserted hall, which now appeared doubly lonely from the cessation of that clamour to which it had so lately echoed. But its space was peopled by phantoms which the imagination of the young heir conjured up before him—the tarnished honour and degraded fortunes of his house, the destruction of his own hopes, and the triumph of that family by whom they had been ruined. To a mind naturally of a gloomy cast here was ample room for meditation, and the musings of young Ravenswood were deep and unwitnessed.

Accepting their goodbyes with an air of disdain he could barely hide, Ravenswood finally saw his dilapidated home cleared of the rowdy guests and returned to the empty hall, which now felt even lonelier without the noise that had recently filled it. But the space was haunted by visions the young heir conjured up in his mind—the tarnished reputation and fallen fortunes of his family, the destruction of his dreams, and the success of the family that had caused their downfall. For a naturally gloomy mind, this was a lot to think about, and young Ravenswood's thoughts were deep and solitary.

The peasant who shows the ruins of the tower, which still crown the beetling cliff and behold the war of the waves, though no more tenanted saved by the sea-mew and cormorant, even yet affirms that on this fatal night the Master of Ravenswood, by the bitter exclamations of his despair, evoked some evil fiend, under whose malignant influence the future tissue of incidents was woven. Alas! what fiend can suggest more desperate counsels than those adopted under the guidance of our own violent and unresisted passions?

The peasant who points out the ruins of the tower, still perched on the steep cliff overlooking the crashing waves, although now only inhabited by seagulls and cormorants, insists that on that tragic night, the Master of Ravenswood, through his agonized cries of despair, called forth some evil spirit. This dark force then shaped the unfolding events. Alas! What spirit could offer more desperate advice than the reckless and uncontrolled desires we follow ourselves?

CHAPTER III.

Over Gods forebode, then said the King,
That thou shouldst shoot at me.

William Bell, Clim ’o the Cleugh, etc.

Over God's foreboding, then the King said,
That you should shoot at me.

William Bell, Clim ’o the Cleugh, etc.

On the morning after the funeral, the legal officer whose authority had been found insufficient to effect an interruption of the funeral solemnities of the late Lord Ravenswood, hastened to state before the Keeper the resistance which he had met with in the execution of his office.

On the morning after the funeral, the legal officer whose authority had proven inadequate to halt the funeral proceedings of the late Lord Ravenswood rushed to inform the Keeper about the resistance he had encountered while carrying out his duties.

The statesman was seated in a spacious library, once a banqueting-room in the old Castle of Ravenswood, as was evident from the armorial insignia still displayed on the carved roof, which was vaulted with Spanish chestnut, and on the stained glass of the casement, through which gleamed a dim yet rich light on the long rows of shelves, bending under the weight of legal commentators and monkish historians, whose ponderous volumes formed the chief and most valued contents of a Scottish historian [library] of the period. On the massive oaken table and reading-desk lay a confused mass of letters, petitions, and parchments; to toil amongst which was the pleasure at once and the plague of Sir William Ashton’s life. His appearance was grave and even noble, well becoming one who held an high office in the state; and it was not save after long and intimate conversation with him upon topics of pressing and personal interest, that a stranger could have discovered something vacillating and uncertain in his resolutions; an infirmity of purpose, arising from a cautious and timid disposition, which, as he was conscious of its internal influence on his mind, he was, from pride as well as policy, most anxious to conceal from others. He listened with great apparent composure to an exaggerated account of the tumult which had taken place at the funeral, of the contempt thrown on his own authority and that of the church and state; nor did he seem moved even by the faithful report of the insulting and threatening language which had been uttered by young Ravenswood and others, and obviously directed against himself. He heard, also, what the man had been able to collect, in a very distorted and aggravated shape, of the toasts which had been drunk, and the menaces uttered, at the subsequent entertainment. In fine, he made careful notes of all these particulars, and of the names of the persons by whom, in case of need, an accusation, founded upon these violent proceedings, could be witnessed and made good, and dismissed his informer, secure that he was now master of the remaining fortune, and even of the personal liberty, of young Ravenswood.

The statesman was sitting in a large library that used to be a banquet hall in the old Castle of Ravenswood, as shown by the coat of arms still visible on the carved ceiling, made of Spanish chestnut, and on the stained glass window. A soft, rich light filtered through, illuminating the long rows of shelves filled with legal commentaries and monkish histories, which made up the main and most prized contents of a Scottish historian's library of the time. On the sturdy oak table and reading desk lay a chaotic pile of letters, petitions, and documents; sorting through them was both a source of joy and a burden in Sir William Ashton’s life. He looked serious and even noble, fitting for someone in a high office; but it would take long and personal discussions on urgent topics for a stranger to notice his wavering and uncertain decisions—a weakness stemming from his cautious and timid nature, which he was keen to hide from others out of pride and strategy. He listened with apparent calm to an exaggerated recounting of the chaos that erupted at the funeral, the disrespect shown to his authority and that of the church and state. He remained unfazed even when hearing the distressing and threatening words spoken by young Ravenswood and others, clearly aimed at him. He also took in the man’s account of the toasts and threats made during the following gathering, which were reported in a highly exaggerated manner. In short, he carefully noted all these details and the names of those who could testify against the violent actions if needed, and then sent his informant away, confident that he now held the key to young Ravenswood's future and personal freedom.

When the door had closed upon the officer of the law, the Lord Keeper remained for a moment in deep meditation; then, starting from his seat, paced the apartment as one about to take a sudden and energetic resolution. “Young Ravenswood,” he muttered, “is now mine—he is my own; he has placed himself in my hand, and he shall bend or break. I have not forgot the determined and dogged obstinacy with which his father fought every point to the last, resisted every effort at compromise, embroiled me in lawsuits, and attempted to assail my character when he could not otherwise impugn my rights. This boy he has left behind him—this Edgar—this hot-headed, hare-brained fool, has wrecked his vessel before she has cleared the harbor. I must see that he gains no advantage of some turning tide which may again float him off. These memoranda, properly stated to the privy council, cannot but be construed into an aggravated riot, in which the dignity both of the civil and ecclesiastical authorities stands committed. A heavy fine might be imposed; an order for committing him to Edinburgh or Blackness Castle seems not improper; even a charge of treason might be laid on many of these words and expressions, though God forbid I should prosecute the matter to that extent. No, I will not; I will not touch his life, even if it should be in my power; and yet, if he lives till a change of times, what follows? Restitution—perhaps revenge. I know Athole promised his interest to old Ravenswood, and here is his son already bandying and making a faction by his own contemptible influence. What a ready tool he would be for the use of those who are watching the downfall of our administration!”

When the door had closed on the law enforcement officer, the Lord Keeper stayed for a moment in deep thought; then, getting up from his seat, he started pacing the room like someone about to make a sudden, strong decision. “Young Ravenswood,” he muttered, “is now mine—he's my own; he has put himself in my hands, and he will either conform to my wishes or face consequences. I haven't forgotten the stubbornness and relentless fight his father put up over every point, resisting every compromise, dragging me into lawsuits, and trying to damage my reputation when he couldn't challenge my rights. This boy he's left behind—this Edgar—this hot-headed, reckless fool has ruined his chances before he's even set out. I must ensure he doesn't gain any advantage from a change in circumstances that might rescue him. These records, properly presented to the privy council, can only be seen as an aggravated riot, compromising the dignity of both civil and church authorities. A hefty fine could be imposed; sending him to Edinburgh or Blackness Castle seems appropriate; I could even accuse him of treason based on many of his words and actions, though God forbid I should take it that far. No, I will not; I won't take his life, even if I could; but what happens if he survives until the times change? Restitution—perhaps revenge. I know Athole pledged his support to old Ravenswood, and here’s his son already causing a stir and rallying a group with his own pathetic influence. What a useful tool he would be for those looking to bring down our administration!”

While these thoughts were agitating the mind of the wily statesman, and while he was persuading himself that his own interest and safety, as well as those of his friends and party, depended on using the present advantage to the uttermost against young Ravenswood, the Lord Keeper sate down to his desk, and proceeded to draw up, for the information of the privy council, an account of the disorderly proceedings which, in contempt of his warrant, had taken place at the funeral of Lord Ravenswood. The names of most of the parties concerned, as well as the fact itself, would, he was well aware, sound odiously in the ears of his colleagues in administration, and most likely instigate them to make an example of young Ravenswood, at least, in terrorem.

While these thoughts were troubling the mind of the crafty statesman, and while he was convincing himself that his own interests and safety, along with those of his friends and party, depended on fully exploiting the current advantage against young Ravenswood, the Lord Keeper sat down at his desk and began to draft, for the information of the privy council, a report on the unruly events that had occurred in defiance of his order at Lord Ravenswood's funeral. He knew that the names of most of the individuals involved, as well as the incident itself, would sound terrible to his colleagues in government and would likely prompt them to make an example of young Ravenswood, if only to intimidate others.

It was a point of delicacy, however, to select such expressions as might infer the young man’s culpability, without seeming directly to urge it, which, on the part of Sir William Ashton, his father’s ancient antagonist, could not but appear odious and invidious. While he was in the act of composition, labouring to find words which might indicate Edgar Ravenswood to be the cause of the uproar, without specifically making such a charge, Sir William, in a pause of his task, chanced, in looking upward, to see the crest of the family for whose heir he was whetting the arrows and disposing the toils of the law carved upon one of the corbeilles from which the vaulted roof of the apartment sprung. It was a black bull’s head, with the legend, “I bide my time”; and the occasion upon which it was adopted mingled itself singularly and impressively with the subject of his present reflections.

It was a delicate matter, though, to choose words that could suggest the young man's guilt without directly pushing for it, which would have seemed despicable and mean-spirited coming from Sir William Ashton, his father’s long-time rival. While he was trying to write, struggling to find words that could imply Edgar Ravenswood was responsible for the chaos without explicitly accusing him, Sir William paused his task and looked up to see the crest of the family for whose heir he was sharpening his arrows and setting his legal traps carved on one of the cornices supporting the vaulted ceiling of the room. It was a black bull's head with the motto, “I bide my time”; the background story behind its adoption intertwined oddly and powerfully with what he was currently thinking about.

It was said by a constant tradition that a Malisius de Ravenswood had, in the 13th century, been deprived of his castle and lands by a powerful usurper, who had for a while enjoyed his spoils in quiet. At length, on the eve of a costly banquet, Ravenswood, who had watched his opportunity, introduced himself into the castle with a small band of faithful retainers. The serving of the expected feast was impatiently looked for by the guests, and clamorously demanded by the temporary master of the castle. Ravenswood, who had assumed the disguise of a sewer upon the occasion, answered, in a stern voice, “I bide my time”; and at the same moment a bull’s head, the ancient symbol of death, was placed upon the table. The explosion of the conspiracy took place upon the signal, and the usurper and his followers were put to death. Perhaps there was something in this still known and often repeated story which came immediately home to the breast and conscience of the Lord Keeper; for, putting from him the paper on which he had begun his report, and carefully locking the memoranda which he had prepared into a cabinet which stood beside him, he proceeded to walk abroad, as if for the purpose of collecting his ideas, and reflecting farther on the consequences of the step which he was about to take, ere yet they became inevitable.

It was said by a long-standing tradition that a Malisius de Ravenswood had, in the 13th century, been stripped of his castle and lands by a powerful usurper, who had enjoyed his ill-gotten gains in peace for a while. Finally, on the eve of an extravagant banquet, Ravenswood, who had been waiting for the right moment, sneaked into the castle with a small group of loyal followers. The guests eagerly anticipated the feast, and the temporary master of the castle demanded it loudly. Ravenswood, who had disguised himself as a servant for this occasion, replied in a stern tone, “I’m waiting for my moment”; and at that moment, a bull’s head, the traditional symbol of death, was placed on the table. The conspiracy erupted at the signal, and the usurper and his followers were killed. Perhaps there was something in this well-known and often-told tale that resonated deeply with the Lord Keeper; for, setting aside the paper he had started his report on, and carefully locking away the notes he had prepared in a cabinet next to him, he went outside, seemingly to gather his thoughts and further reflect on the consequences of the decision he was about to make before they became unavoidable.

In passing through a large Gothic ante-room, Sir William Ashton heard the sound of his daughter’s lute. Music, when the performers are concealed, affects us with a pleasure mingled with surprise, and reminds us of the natural concert of birds among the leafy bowers. The statesman, though little accustomed to give way to emotions of this natural and simple class, was still a man and a father. He stopped, therefore, and listened, while the silver tones of Lucy Ashton’s voice mingled with the accompaniment in an ancient air, to which some one had adapted the following words:

In walking through a large Gothic hallway, Sir William Ashton heard his daughter's lute. Music, especially when the performers are hidden, brings us a joy that's both surprising and familiar, reminding us of the natural harmony of birds in leafy groves. Although the statesman wasn’t used to showing emotions of this straightforward and natural kind, he was still a man and a father. So, he paused to listen as the sweet sounds of Lucy Ashton’s voice blended with the melody of an old song, to which someone had added the following words:

“Look not thou on beauty’s charming,
Sit thou still when kings are arming,
Taste not when the wine-cup glistens,
Speak not when the people listens,
Stop thine ear against the singer,
From the red gold keep thy finger,
Vacant heart, and hand, and eye,
Easy live and quiet die.”

“Don’t be tempted by beauty’s charm,
Stay calm when kings prepare for war,
Don’t taste when the wine glass sparkles,
Don’t speak when the crowd is listening,
Cover your ears against the singer,
Keep your fingers away from the red gold,
Empty heart, empty hands, empty gaze,
Live easy and die peacefully.”

The sounds ceased, and the Keeper entered his daughter’s apartment.

The sounds stopped, and the Keeper walked into his daughter's apartment.

The words she had chosen seemed particularly adapted to her character; for Lucy Ashton’s exquisitely beautiful, yet somewhat girlish features were formed to express peace of mind, serenity, and indifference to the tinsel of worldly pleasure. Her locks, which were of shadowy gold, divided on a brow of exquisite whiteness, like a gleam of broken and pallid sunshine upon a hill of snow. The expression of the countenance was in the last degree gentle, soft, timid, and feminine, and seemed rather to shrink from the most casual look of a stranger than to court his admiration. Something there was of a Madonna cast, perhaps the result of delicate health, and of residence in a family where the dispositions of the inmates were fiercer, more active, and energetic than her own.

The words she chose seemed perfectly suited to her character; for Lucy Ashton’s beautifully delicate, yet somewhat youthful features were designed to convey calm, tranquility, and a disregard for the superficiality of worldly pleasures. Her hair, a shadowy gold, parted on a flawlessly pale forehead, like a fleeting ray of weak sunshine on a snowy hill. Her face wore a gentle, soft, shy, and feminine expression that appeared to shy away from even the briefest glance of a stranger rather than seek his admiration. There was something resembling a Madonna about her, likely a result of her fragile health and living in a household where the personalities of the members were stronger, more vibrant, and energetic than her own.

Yet her passiveness of disposition was by no means owing to an indifferent or unfeeling mind. Left to the impulse of her own taste and feelings, Lucy Ashton was peculiarly accessible to those of a romantic cast. Her secret delight was in the old legendary tales of ardent devotion and unalterable affection, chequered as they so often are with strange adventures and supernatural horrors. This was her favoured fairy realm, and here she erected her aerial palaces. But it was only in secret that she laboured at this delusive though delightful architecture. In her retired chamber, or in the woodland bower which she had chosen for her own, and called after her name, she was in fancy distributing the prizes at the tournament, or raining down influence from her eyes on the valiant combatants: or she was wandering in the wilderness with Una, under escort of the generous lion; or she was identifying herself with the simple yet noble-minded Miranda in the isle of wonder and enchantment.

Yet her passive nature didn’t stem from an indifferent or unfeeling mind. When left to her own tastes and feelings, Lucy Ashton was especially drawn to romantic ideals. Her hidden joy was in the old legendary stories of deep devotion and unwavering love, often filled with strange adventures and supernatural horrors. This was her beloved fairy world, where she built her dreamy castles. But she only worked on this enchanting yet fanciful vision in secret. In her quiet room or in the wooded nook she had claimed as her own, named after herself, she imagined handing out prizes at a tournament or casting her gaze to influence brave knights: or she wandered in the wilderness with Una, accompanied by the kind lion; or she identified with the simple yet noble Miranda on her island of wonder and magic.

But in her exterior relations to things of this world, Lucy willingly received the ruling impulse from those around her. The alternative was, in general, too indifferent to her to render resistance desirable, and she willingly found a motive for decision in the opinion of her friends which perhaps she might have sought for in vain in her own choice. Every reader must have observed in some family of his acquaintance some individual of a temper soft and yielding, who, mixed with stronger and more ardent minds, is borne along by the will of others, with as little power of opposition as the flower which is flung into a running stream. It usually happens that such a compliant and easy disposition, which resigns itself without murmur to the guidance of others, becomes the darling of those to whose inclinations its own seem to be offered, in ungrudging and ready sacrifice.

But in her interactions with the world, Lucy readily took the lead from those around her. The other option generally felt too unimportant for her to want to resist, and she easily found a reason to make decisions based on her friends' opinions, which she might have struggled to find in her own choices. Every reader has probably seen in some family they know a person who is gentle and accommodating, carried along by stronger, more passionate personalities, with about as much ability to resist as a flower tossed into a flowing stream. Typically, this kind of agreeable and easygoing nature, which submits without complaint to the guidance of others, becomes a favorite of those whose desires it seems to fulfill, offering itself up in selfless and eager sacrifice.

This was eminently the case with Lucy Ashton. Her politic, wary, and worldly father felt for her an affection the strength of which sometimes surprised him into an unusual emotion. Her elder brother, who trode the path of ambition with a haughtier step than his father, had also more of human affection. A soldier, and in a dissolute age, he preferred his sister Lucy even to pleasure and to military preferment and distinction. Her younger brother, at an age when trifles chiefly occupied his mind, made her the confidante of all his pleasures and anxieties, his success in field-sports, and his quarrels with his tutor and instructors. To these details, however trivial, Lucy lent patient and not indifferent attention. They moved and interested Henry, and that was enough to secure her ear.

This was definitely true for Lucy Ashton. Her cautious and savvy father had an affection for her that sometimes surprised him with strong feelings. Her older brother, who pursued ambition more boldly than their father, also had more genuine affection. As a soldier in a wild time, he valued his sister Lucy over pleasure and military rank. Her younger brother, at an age when he mostly focused on small things, shared all his joys and worries with her, including his success in sports and his arguments with his teachers. Lucy listened patiently to these seemingly trivial matters, and since they mattered to Henry, that was enough for her to pay attention.

Her mother alone did not feel that distinguished and predominating affection with which the rest of the family cherished Lucy. She regarded what she termed her daughter’s want of spirit as a decided mark that the more plebeian blood of her father predominated in Lucy’s veins, and used to call her in derision her Lammermoor Shepherdess. To dislike so gentle and inoffensive a being was impossible; but Lady Ashton preferred her eldest son, on whom had descended a large portion of her own ambitious and undaunted disposition, to a daughter whose softness of temper seemed allied to feebleness of mind. Her eldest son was the more partially beloved by his mother because, contrary to the usual custom of Scottish families of distinction, he had been named after the head of the house.

Her mother didn't feel the same deep affection for Lucy that the rest of the family did. She saw what she called her daughter's lack of spirit as a clear sign that Lucy took more after her father's common blood, and she often mocked her by calling her the Lammermoor Shepherdess. It was impossible to dislike someone so gentle and harmless, but Lady Ashton favored her eldest son, who had inherited much of her own ambitious and fearless nature, over a daughter whose gentle temperament seemed linked to a weak mind. Her eldest son was more favored by his mother because, unlike the typical practice in Scottish families of distinction, he had been named after the head of the house.

“My Sholto,” she said, “will support the untarnished honour of his maternal house, and elevate and support that of his father. Poor Lucy is unfit for courts or crowded halls. Some country laird must be her husband, rich enough to supply her with every comfort, without an effort on her own part, so that she may have nothing to shed a tear for but the tender apprehension lest he may break his neck in a foxchase. It was not so, however, that our house was raised, nor is it so that it can be fortified and augmented. The Lord Keeper’s dignity is yet new; it must be borne as if we were used to its weight, worthy of it, and prompt to assert and maintain it. Before ancient authorities men bend from customary and hereditary deference; in our presence they will stand erect, unless they are compelled to prostrate themselves. A daughter fit for the sheepfold or the cloister is ill qualified to exact respect where it is yielded with reluctance; and since Heaven refused us a third boy, Lucy should have held a character fit to supply his place. The hour will be a happy one which disposes her hand in marriage to some one whose energy is greater than her own, or whose ambition is of as low an order.”

“My Sholto,” she said, “will maintain the unblemished honor of his mother’s family and elevate and uphold that of his father. Poor Lucy isn’t suited for courts or busy halls. She needs to marry some country lord who’s wealthy enough to provide her with all the comforts she needs, without her lifting a finger, so that the only thing she might worry about is whether he could get hurt while fox hunting. However, that's not how our family was built, and it isn’t how we can strengthen and grow. The Lord Keeper’s title is still fresh; we must carry it as if we’re used to its weight, deserving of it, and ready to defend and uphold it. Before our ancestors, men bow down out of traditional and hereditary respect; in our presence, they will stand tall unless forced to kneel. A daughter fit for the fields or the convent is poorly equipped to demand respect when it’s given grudgingly; and since Heaven denied us a third son, Lucy should have had a character capable of taking his place. The day will be a joyful one when she is married off to someone with more drive than she has or whose ambitions are of a lower caliber.”

So meditated a mother to whom the qualities of her children’s hearts, as well as the prospect of their domestic happiness, seemed light in comparison to their rank and temporal greatness. But, like many a parent of hot and impatient character, she was mistaken in estimating the feelings of her daughter, who, under a semblance of extreme indifference, nourished the germ of those passions which sometimes spring up in one night, like the gourd of the prophet, and astonish the observer by their unexpected ardour and intensity. In fact, Lucy’s sentiments seemed chill because nothing had occurred to interest or awaken them. Her life had hitherto flowed on in a uniform and gentle tenor, and happy for her had not its present smoothness of current resembled that of the stream as it glides downwards to the waterfall!

So thought a mother whose children's hearts, as well as their chance of happiness at home, seemed minor compared to their status and worldly success. However, like many parents who are fiery and impatient, she misjudged her daughter's feelings, who, beneath a facade of indifference, harbored the beginnings of passions that can suddenly spring to life, like the gourd of the prophet, surprising onlookers with their unexpected heat and intensity. In reality, Lucy's emotions seemed cold only because nothing had happened to engage or stir them. Her life had thus far moved forward in a steady and gentle way, and it was fortunate for her that its current calmness didn't resemble the way a stream flows down to a waterfall!

“So, Lucy,” said her father, entering as her song was ended, “does your musical philosopher teach you to contemn the world before you know it? That is surely something premature. Or did you but speak according to the fashion of fair maidens, who are always to hold the pleasures of life in contempt till they are pressed upon them by the address of some gentle knight?”

“So, Lucy,” said her father, coming in as her song finished, “does your musical philosopher teach you to look down on the world before you understand it? That seems a bit premature. Or did you just say that because it’s the trend among young women, who are always supposed to scorn life’s pleasures until a charming knight makes them appealing?”

Lucy blushed, disclaimed any inference respecting her own choice being drawn from her selection of a song, and readily laid aside her instrument at her father’s request that she would attend him in his walk.

Lucy blushed, denied any implication about her own preferences based on the song she chose, and quickly put down her instrument when her father asked her to join him on his walk.

A large and well-wooded park, or rather chase, stretched along the hill behind the castle, which, occupying, as we have noticed, a pass ascending from the plain, seemed built in its very gorge to defend the forest ground which arose behind it in shaggy majesty. Into this romantic region the father and daughter proceeded, arm in arm, by a noble avenue overarched by embowering elms, beneath which groups of the fallow-deer were seen to stray in distant perspective. As they paced slowly on, admiring the different points of view, for which Sir William Ashton, notwithstanding the nature of his usual avocations, had considerable taste and feeling, they were overtaken by the forester, or park-keeper, who, intent on silvan sport, was proceeding with his crossbow over his arm, and a hound led in leash by his boy, into the interior of the wood.

A large and heavily wooded park, or rather a hunting ground, stretched along the hill behind the castle. The castle, as we've noted, was built in a pass that rose from the plain, seeming to defend the forested area behind it in its rugged beauty. In this picturesque setting, the father and daughter walked together, arm in arm, along a grand avenue lined with leafy elms, under which groups of fallow deer could be seen wandering in the distance. As they strolled slowly, appreciating the various views—something Sir William Ashton, despite his usual work, had a real taste and appreciation for—they were joined by the forester or park-keeper, who was on his way into the woods with his crossbow slung over his arm and a hound on a leash held by his boy.

“Going to shoot us a piece of venison, Norman?” said his master, as he returned the woodsman’s salutation.

“Are you going to get us some venison, Norman?” said his master, as he replied to the woodsman’s greeting.

“Saul, your honour, and that I am. Will it please you to see the sport?”

“Saul, your honor, that's who I am. Would you like to see the game?”

“Oh no,” said his lordship, after looking at his daughter, whose colour fled at the idea of seeing the deer shot, although, had her father expressed his wish that they should accompany Norman, it was probable she would not even have hinted her reluctance.

“Oh no,” said his lordship, after looking at his daughter, whose color drained at the thought of watching the deer being shot. However, if her father had suggested they join Norman, it’s likely she wouldn’t have even hinted at her hesitation.

The forester shrugged his shoulders. “It was a disheartening thing,” he said, “when none of the gentles came down to see the sport. He hoped Captain Sholto would be soon hame, or he might shut up his shop entirely; for Mr. Harry was kept sae close wi’ his Latin nonsense that, though his will was very gude to be in the wood from morning till night, there would be a hopeful lad lost, and no making a man of him. It was not so, he had heard, in Lord Ravenswood’s time: when a buck was to be killed, man and mother’s son ran to see; and when the deer fell, the knife was always presented to the knight, and he never gave less than a dollar for the compliment. And there was Edgar Ravenswood—Master of Ravenswood that is now—when he goes up to the wood—there hasna been a better hunter since Tristrem’s time—when Sir Edgar hauds out, down goes the deer, faith. But we hae lost a’ sense of woodcraft on this side of the hill.”

The forester shrugged. “It was really disappointing,” he said, “when none of the gentlemen came down to see the action. He hoped Captain Sholto would be home soon, or he might have to close up his shop completely; because Mr. Harry was so tied up with his Latin nonsense that, even though he really wanted to be in the woods from morning till night, there would be a great kid lost, and no chance of him becoming a man. It wasn’t like that in Lord Ravenswood’s time: when a buck was going to be killed, every man and his mother ran to watch; and when the deer fell, the knife was always handed to the knight, and he never gave less than a dollar in thanks. And there was Edgar Ravenswood—Master of Ravenswood, that is—when he goes to the woods—there hasn’t been a better hunter since Tristrem’s time—when Sir Edgar lets loose, down goes the deer, for sure. But we’ve lost all sense of woodcraft on this side of the hill.”

There was much in this harangue highly displeasing to the Lord Keeper’s feelings; he could not help observing that his menial despised him almost avowedly for not possessing that taste for sport which in those times was deemed the natural and indispensable attribute of a real gentleman. But the master of the game is, in all country houses, a man of great importance, and entitled to use considerable freedom of speech. Sir William, therefore, only smiled and replied, “He had something else to think upon to-day than killing deer”; meantime, taking out his purse, he gave the ranger a dollar for his encouragement. The fellow received it as the waiter of a fashionable hotel receives double his proper fee from the hands of a country gentleman—that is, with a smile, in which pleasure at the gift is mingled with contempt for the ignorance of the donor. “Your honour is the bad paymaster,” he said, “who pays before it is done. What would you do were I to miss the buck after you have paid me my wood-fee?”

There was a lot in this speech that really upset the Lord Keeper; he couldn't help but notice that his servant looked down on him for not sharing the enthusiasm for hunting that was seen as a must-have trait for a true gentleman back then. But the gamekeeper was a significant figure in every country house and had the freedom to speak his mind. So, Sir William just smiled and replied, “I have other things to focus on today besides hunting deer.” While saying this, he took out his wallet and gave the ranger a dollar as a tip. The guy accepted it like a waiter at a fancy hotel accepts a generous tip from a country gentleman—with a smile that combined genuine happiness for the money and a hint of disdain for the donor's cluelessness. “Your honor is a bad paymaster,” he said, “paying me before the job is done. What would you do if I missed the buck after you've already paid me?”

“I suppose,” said the Keeper, smiling, “you would hardly guess what I mean were I to tell you of a condictio indebiti?

“I suppose,” said the Keeper, smiling, “you probably wouldn’t guess what I mean if I told you about a condictio indebiti?

“Not I, on my saul. I guess it is some law phrase; but sue a beggar, and—your honour knows what follows. Well, but I will be just with you, and if bow and brach fail not, you shall have a piece of game two fingers fat on the brisket.”

“Not me, on my soul. I guess it’s some legal term; but take a beggar to court, and—your honor knows what happens next. Well, I’ll be fair with you, and if the bow and hound don’t miss, you’ll get a piece of game two fingers thick on the brisket.”

As he was about to go off, his master again called him, and asked, as if by accident, whether the Master of Ravenswood was actually so brave a man and so good a shooter as the world spoke him.

As he was about to leave, his master called him back and casually asked if the Master of Ravenswood was really as brave and skilled at shooting as people said he was.

“Brave!—brave enough, I warrant you,” answered Norman. “I was in the wood at Tyninghame when there was a sort of gallants hunting with my lord; on my saul, there was a buck turned to bay made us all stand back—a stout old Trojan of the first head, ten-tyned branches, and a brow as broad as e’er a bullock’s. Egad, he dashed at the old lord, and there would have been inlake among the perrage, if the Master had not whipt roundly in, and hamstrung him with his cutlass. He was but sixteen then, bless his heart!”

“Brave!—brave enough, I assure you,” replied Norman. “I was in the woods at Tyninghame when some nobles were hunting with my lord; I swear, there was a buck that turned to face us and made us all step back—a strong old beast, with ten tines on his antlers and a brow as wide as any bull's. By God, he charged at the old lord, and there would have been trouble among the men if the Master hadn’t quickly jumped in and hamstrung him with his cutlass. He was only sixteen then, bless his heart!”

“And is he as ready with the gun as with the couteau?” said Sir William.

“And is he as skilled with the gun as he is with the knife?” said Sir William.

“He’ll strike this silver dollar out from between my finger and thumb at fourscore yards, and I’ll hold it out for a gold merk; what more would ye have of eye, hand, lead, and gunpowder?”

“He’ll shoot this silver dollar out from between my finger and thumb at eighty yards, and I’ll hold it out for a gold merk; what more do you want from eye, hand, lead, and gunpowder?”

“Oh, no more to be wished, certainly,” said the Lord Keeper; “but we keep you from your sport, Norman. Good morrow, good Norman.”

“Oh, nothing more to wish for, that's for sure,” said the Lord Keeper; “but we’re keeping you from your fun, Norman. Good morning, good Norman.”

And, humming his rustic roundelay, the yeoman went on his road, the sound of his rough voice gradually dying away as the distance betwixt them increased:

And, humming his folk tune, the farmer continued on his path, the sound of his rough voice slowly fading away as the distance between them grew:

“The monk must arise when the matins ring,
    The abbot may sleep to their chime;
But the yeoman must start when the bugles sing
    ’Tis time, my hearts, ’tis time.

There’s bucks and raes on Bilhope braes,
    There’s a herd on Shortwood Shaw;
But a lily-white doe in the garden goes,
    She’s fairly worth them a’.”

“The monk must get up when the matins ring,
    The abbot can sleep through their chime;
But the yeoman must rise when the bugles sound,
    It’s time, my friends, it’s time.

There are bucks and does on Bilhope hills,
    There’s a herd on Shortwood Shaw;
But a pure white doe in the garden walks,
    She’s definitely worth them all.”

“Has this fellow,” said the Lord Keeper, when the yeoman’s song had died on the wind, “ever served the Ravenswood people, that he seems so much interested in them? I suppose you know, Lucy, for you make it a point of conscience to record the special history of every boor about the castle.”

“Has this guy,” said the Lord Keeper, when the yeoman’s song had faded away, “ever worked for the Ravenswood people, that he seems so interested in them? I guess you know, Lucy, since you make it a point to keep track of the unique history of every peasant around the castle.”

“I am not quite so faithful a chronicler, my dear father; but I believe that Norman once served here while a boy, and before he went to Ledington, whence you hired him. But if you want to know anything of the former family, Old Alice is the best authority.”

“I’m not as reliable a storyteller, dear father; but I think Norman worked here as a boy before he went to Ledington, where you hired him. If you want to know about the previous family, Old Alice is the best source.”

“And what should I have to do with them, pray, Lucy,” said her father, “or with their history or accomplishments?”

“And what do I have to do with them, please, Lucy,” her father said, “or with their history or achievements?”

“Nay, I do not know, sir; only that you were asking questions of Norman about young Ravenswood.”

“Nah, I don’t know, sir; just that you were asking Norman questions about young Ravenswood.”

“Pshaw, child!” replied her father, yet immediately added: “And who is Old Alice? I think you know all the old women in the country.”

“Come on, kid!” her father replied, but quickly added: “And who is Old Alice? I bet you know all the old ladies in the area.”

“To be sure I do, or how could I help the old creatures when they are in hard times? And as to Old Alice, she is the very empress of old women and queen of gossips, so far as legendary lore is concerned. She is blind, poor old soul, but when she speaks to you, you would think she has some way of looking into your very heart. I am sure I often cover my face, or turn it away, for it seems as if she saw one change colour, though she has been blind these twenty years. She is worth visiting, were it but to say you have seen a blind and paralytic old woman have so much acuteness of perception and dignity of manners. I assure you, she might be a countess from her language and behaviour. Come, you must go to see Alice; we are not a quarter of a mile from her cottage.”

“To be sure I do, or how could I help the old folks when they’re having tough times? And as for Old Alice, she’s the true queen of elderly women and the ultimate gossip when it comes to legendary stories. She’s blind, poor thing, but when she talks to you, it feels like she can see right into your heart. I often find myself covering my face or looking away, because it seems like she can tell when I change color, even though she’s been blind for twenty years. She’s definitely worth visiting, if only to say you’ve met a blind and paralyzed old woman with such sharp insight and dignified manners. I promise you, she could be a countess with the way she speaks and acts. Come on, you have to go see Alice; we’re not even a quarter of a mile from her cottage.”

“All this, my dear,” said the Lord Keeper, “is no answer to my question, who this woman is, and what is her connexion with the former proprietor’s family?”

“All this, my dear,” said the Lord Keeper, “doesn’t answer my question: who is this woman, and what’s her connection to the previous owner’s family?”

“Oh, it was something of a nouriceship, I believe; and she remained here, because her two grandsons were engaged in your service. But it was against her will, I fancy; for the poor old creature is always regretting the change of times and of property.”

“Oh, it was kind of like a caretaking thing, I think; and she stayed here because her two grandsons were working for you. But I have a feeling it wasn’t her choice; the poor old lady is always lamenting the changes in times and wealth.”

“I am much obliged to her,” answered the Lord Keeper. “She and her folk eat my bread and drink my cup, and are lamenting all the while that they are not still under a family which never could do good, either to themselves or any one else!”

“I really appreciate her,” replied the Lord Keeper. “She and her people eat my food and share my drink, while constantly complaining that they’re not still part of a family that has never done any good, either for themselves or anyone else!”

“Indeed,” replied Lucy, “I am certain you do Old Alice injustice. She has nothing mercenary about her, and would not accept a penny in charity, if it were to save her from being starved. She is only talkative, like all old folk when you put them upon stories of their youth; and she speaks about the Ravenswood people, because she lived under them so many years. But I am sure she is grateful to you, sir, for your protection, and that she would rather speak to you than to any other person in the whole world beside. Do, sir, come and see Old Alice.”

“Of course,” Lucy replied, “I’m sure you’re misjudging Old Alice. She’s not greedy at all and wouldn’t accept a dime in charity, even if it meant saving her from starvation. She’s just chatty, like all older people when you ask them about their past; and she talks about the Ravenswood family because she lived under them for so many years. But I know she appreciates your help, sir, and she would prefer to talk to you over anyone else in the world. Please, sir, come and visit Old Alice.”

And with the freedom of an indulged daughter she dragged the Lord Keeper in the direction she desired.

And with the freedom of a pampered daughter, she pulled the Lord Keeper in the direction she wanted.

CHAPTER IV.

Through tops of the high trees she did descry
A little smoke, whose vapour, thin and light,
Reeking aloft, uprolled to the sky,
Which cheerful sign did send unto her sight,
That in the same did wonne some living wight.

SPENSER.

Through the tops of the tall trees, she noticed
A little smoke, its vapor, thin and light,
Rising up into the sky,
This cheerful sign caught her eye,
Indicating that someone lived nearby.

SPENSER.

Lucy acted as her father’s guide, for he was too much engrossed with his political labours, or with society, to be perfectly acquainted with his own extensive domains, and, moreover, was generally an inhabitant of the city of Edinburgh; and she, on the other hand, had, with her mother, resided the whole summer in Ravenswood, and, partly from taste, partly from want of any other amusement, had, by her frequent rambles, learned to know each lane, alley, dingle, or bushy dell,

Lucy guided her father because he was too caught up in his political work and social life to fully know his vast estate. Plus, he mainly lived in the city of Edinburgh. On the other hand, Lucy had spent the entire summer in Ravenswood with her mother. Out of interest and because there was nothing else to do, she had explored so much that she became familiar with every lane, alley, grove, or grassy valley.

And every bosky bourne from side to side.

And every wooded stream from one side to the other.

We have said that the Lord Keeper was not indifferent to the beauties of nature; and we add, in justice to him, that he felt them doubly when pointed out by the beautiful, simple, and interesting girl who, hanging on his arm with filial kindness, now called him to admire the size of some ancient oak, and now the unexpected turn where the path, developing its maze from glen or dingle, suddenly reached an eminence commanding an extensive view of the plains beneath them, and then gradually glided away from the prospect to lose itself among rocks and thickets, and guide to scenes of deeper seclusion.

We’ve mentioned that the Lord Keeper appreciated the beauty of nature; and to be fair, he felt it even more intensely when it was pointed out by the lovely, simple, and engaging girl who, with a warm, childlike affection, now urged him to admire the size of an ancient oak and then drew his attention to the unexpected curve where the path, twisting through the glen or hollow, suddenly led to a viewpoint that overlooked the vast plains below him. Then, as the path continued, it gradually disappeared among the rocks and bushes, guiding them to areas of deeper solitude.

It was when pausing on one of those points of extensive and commanding view that Lucy told her father they were close by the cottage of her blind protégée; and on turning from the little hill, a path which led around it, worn by the daily steps of the infirm inmate, brought them in sight of the hut, which, embosomed in a deep and obscure dell, seemed to have been so situated purposely to bear a correspondence with the darkened state of its inhabitant.

It was while stopping at one of those spots with a wide and impressive view that Lucy told her dad they were near the cottage of her blind mentee; and as they turned away from the small hill, a path worn by the daily steps of the resident led them to the hut, which, nestled in a deep and shadowy valley, seemed to be deliberately placed to reflect the darkened condition of its occupant.

The cottage was situated immediately under a tall rock, which in some measure beetled over it, as if threatening to drop some detached fragment from its brow on the frail tenement beneath. The hut itself was constructed of turf and stones, and rudely roofed over with thatch, much of which was in a dilapidated condition. The thin blue smoke rose from it in a light column, and curled upward along the white face of the incumbent rock, giving the scene a tint of exquisite softness. In a small and rude garden, surrounded by straggling elder-bushes, which formed a sort of imperfect hedge, sat near to the beehives, by the produce of which she lived, that “woman old” whom Lucy had brought her father hither to visit.

The cottage was located right under a tall rock that loomed above it, as if threatening to drop a piece from its peak onto the fragile structure below. The hut itself was made of turf and stones and had a rough thatched roof, much of which was in bad shape. Thin blue smoke rose from it in a delicate column, curling up along the white face of the overhanging rock, adding a touch of exquisite softness to the scene. In a small, untidy garden, surrounded by wild elder bushes that formed a makeshift hedge, sat close to the beehives, which she depended on for living, that “old woman” whom Lucy had brought her father to visit.

Whatever there had been which was disastrous in her fortune, whatever there was miserable in her dwelling, it was easy to judge by the first glance that neither years, poverty, misfortune, nor infirmity had broken the spirit of this remarkable woman.

Whatever disasters had occurred in her life, whatever miserable conditions she faced at home, it was clear at first glance that neither time, poverty, misfortune, nor illness had diminished the spirit of this remarkable woman.

She occupied a turf seat, placed under a weeping birch of unusual magnitude and age, as Judah is represented sitting under her palm-tree, with an air at once of majesty and of dejection. Her figure was tall, commanding, and but little bent by the infirmities of old age. Her dress, though that of a peasant, was uncommonly clean, forming in that particular a strong contrast to most of her rank, and was disposed with an attention to neatness, and even to taste, equally unusual. But it was her expression of countenance which chiefly struck the spectator, and induced most persons to address her with a degree of deference and civility very inconsistent with the miserable state of her dwelling, and which, nevertheless, she received with that easy composure which showed she felt it to be her due. She had once been beautiful, but her beauty had been of a bold and masculine cast, such as does not survive the bloom of youth; yet her features continued to express strong sense, deep reflection, and a character of sober pride, which, as we have already said of her dress, appeared to argue a conscious superiority to those of her own rank. It scarce seemed possible that a face, deprived of the advantage of sight, could have expressed character so strongly; but her eyes, which were almost totally closed, did not, by the display of their sightless orbs, mar the countenance to which they could add nothing. She seemed in a ruminating posture, soothed, perhaps, by the murmurs of the busy tribe around her to abstraction, though not to slumber.

She sat on a turf seat under a massive, old weeping birch tree, much like Judah is often depicted sitting under his palm tree, appearing both majestic and melancholic. Her figure was tall and commanding, showing little sign of the frailties of old age. Her dress, though simple and peasant-like, was remarkably clean, which made for a striking contrast to most others of her status. It was arranged with care and even a sense of style, both of which were unusual. But what really caught the attention of onlookers was her expression, which led most people to address her with a level of respect and politeness that seemed out of place given the rundown condition of her home; however, she accepted it with an easy grace that indicated she believed it was what she deserved. She had once been beautiful, but her beauty had been bold and masculine, and it didn’t last beyond her youth; still, her features conveyed a sense of intelligence, deep thought, and a sober pride that suggested she felt superior to others of her class. It hardly seemed possible for a face lacking sight to convey such character; her eyes were nearly fully shut, but they didn’t detract from her appearance, as there was nothing they could add. She appeared to be lost in thought, perhaps comforted by the sounds of the bustling crowd around her, though not asleep.

Lucy undid the latch of the little garden gate, and solicited the old woman’s attention. “My father, Alice, is come to see you.”

Lucy unlatched the small garden gate and got the old woman’s attention. “My dad, Alice, is here to see you.”

“He is welcome, Miss Ashton, and so are you,” said the old woman, turning and inclining her head towards her visitors.

“He's welcome, Miss Ashton, and so are you,” said the old woman, turning and nodding her head towards her visitors.

“This is a fine morning for your beehives, mother,” said the Lord Keeper, who, struck with the outward appearance of Alice, was somewhat curious to know if her conversation would correspond with it.

“This is a lovely morning for your beehives, mom,” said the Lord Keeper, who, taken by Alice's appearance, was a bit curious to find out if her conversation matched it.

“I believe so, my lord,” she replied; “I feel the air breathe milder than of late.”

“I think so, my lord,” she replied; “I feel the air is softer than it has been lately.”

“You do not,” resumed the statesman, “take charge of these bees yourself, mother? How do you manage them?”

“You don’t,” the statesman continued, “handle these bees yourself, do you, mom? How do you take care of them?”

“By delegates, as kings do their subjects,” resumed Alice; “and I am fortunate in a prime minister. Here, Babie.”

“By representatives, like kings do their subjects,” Alice continued; “and I’m lucky to have a prime minister. Here, Babie.”

She whistled on a small silver call which hung around her neck, and which at that time was sometimes used to summon domestics, and Babie, a girl of fifteen, made her appearance from the hut, not altogether so cleanly arrayed as she would probably have been had Alice had the use of her eyes, but with a greater air of neatness than was upon the whole to have been expected.

She whistled on a small silver whistle that hung around her neck, which at that time was sometimes used to call for help from the staff. Babie, a fifteen-year-old girl, came out of the hut. She wasn't as clean as she might have been if Alice had been able to see, but she looked neater than one might have expected overall.

“Babie,” said her mistress, “offer some bread and honey to the Lord Keeper and Miss Ashton; they will excuse your awkwardness if you use cleanliness and despatch.”

“Babie,” said her mistress, “please offer some bread and honey to the Lord Keeper and Miss Ashton; they’ll overlook your clumsiness if you focus on being clean and quick.”

Babie performed her mistress’s command with the grace which was naturally to have been expected, moving to and fro with a lobster-like gesture, her feet and legs tending one way, while her head, turned in a different direction, was fixed in wonder upon the laird, who was more frequently heard of than seen by his tenants and dependants. The bread and honey, however, deposited on a plantain leaf, was offered and accepted in all due courtesy. The Lord Keeper, still retaining the place which he had occupied on the decayed trunk of a fallen tree, looked as if he wished to prolong the interview, but was at a loss how to introduce a suitable subject.

Babie completed her mistress’s request with the expected grace, moving back and forth with a slight wobble, her feet and legs pointing one way while her head, turned in another direction, was fixed in awe on the laird, who was talked about more often than seen by his tenants and dependents. The bread and honey, placed on a plantain leaf, was offered and received with proper courtesy. The Lord Keeper, still sitting on the decayed trunk of a fallen tree, seemed to want to keep the conversation going but didn’t know how to bring up a suitable topic.

“You have been long a resident on this property?” he said, after a pause.

“You’ve been living on this property for a while?” he asked after a pause.

“It is now nearly sixty years since I first knew Ravenswood,” answered the old dame, whose conversation, though perfectly civil and respectful, seemed cautiously limited to the unavoidable and necessary task of replying to Sir William.

“It’s now been almost sixty years since I first met Ravenswood,” replied the old woman, whose conversation, while completely polite and respectful, appeared to be carefully restricted to the unavoidable and necessary task of responding to Sir William.

“You are not, I should judge by your accent, of this country originally?” said the Lord Keeper, in continuation.

“You're not originally from this country, judging by your accent, right?” said the Lord Keeper, continuing.

“No; I am by birth an Englishwoman.”

“No; I'm an Englishwoman by birth.”

“Yet you seem attached to this country as if it were your own.”

“Yet you seem so connected to this country, as if it were your own.”

“It is here,” replied the blind woman, “that I have drank the cup of joy and of sorrow which Heaven destined for me. I was here the wife of an upright and affectionate husband for more than twenty years; I was here the mother of six promising children; it was here that God deprived me of all these blessings; it was here they died, and yonder, by yon ruined chapel, they lie all buried. I had no country but theirs while they lived; I have none but theirs now they are no more.”

“It is here,” said the blind woman, “that I have tasted the cup of joy and sorrow that Heaven intended for me. I was here, the wife of a good and loving husband for over twenty years; I was here, the mother of six promising children; it was here that God took away all these blessings; it was here they died, and over there, by that ruined chapel, they are all buried. I had no home but theirs while they were alive; I have none but theirs now that they are gone.”

“But your house,” said the Lord Keeper, looking at it, “is miserably ruinous?”

“But your house,” said the Lord Keeper, looking at it, “is really falling apart?”

“Do, my dear father,” said Lucy, eagerly, yet bashfully, catching at the hint, “give orders to make it better; that is, if you think it proper.”

“Please, my dear father,” said Lucy, eagerly but shyly, picking up on the suggestion, “could you please order to make it better? That is, if you think that's appropriate.”

“It will last my time, my dear Miss Lucy,” said the blind woman; “I would not have my lord give himself the least trouble about it.”

“It will last for my lifetime, my dear Miss Lucy,” said the blind woman; “I wouldn’t want my lord to worry about it at all.”

“But,” said Lucy, “you once had a much better house, and were rich, and now in your old age to live in this hovel!”

“But,” Lucy said, “you used to have a much nicer house and were wealthy, and now in your old age, you’re living in this dump!”

“It is as good as I deserve, Miss Lucy; if my heart has not broke with what I have suffered, and seen others suffer, it must have been strong enough, and the rest of this old frame has no right to call itself weaker.”

“It’s what I deserve, Miss Lucy; if my heart hasn’t broken from what I’ve been through, and from watching others suffer, then it must be strong enough, and the rest of this old body has no right to consider itself weaker.”

“You have probably witnessed many changes,” said the Lord Keeper; “but your experience must have taught you to expect them.”

“You’ve probably seen a lot of changes,” said the Lord Keeper; “but your experiences must have taught you to expect them.”

“It has taught me to endure them, my lord,” was the reply.

“It has taught me to put up with them, my lord,” was the reply.

“Yet you knew that they must needs arrive in the course of years?” said the statesman.

“Yet you knew they had to arrive eventually, right?” said the statesman.

“Ay; as I knew that the stump, on or beside which you sit, once a tall and lofty tree, must needs one day fall by decay, or by the axe; yet I hoped my eyes might not witness the downfall of the tree which overshadowed my dwelling.”

“Yeah; I knew that the stump you’re sitting on, which used to be a tall and majestic tree, would eventually fall due to decay or by the axe; still, I hoped I wouldn’t have to see the fall of the tree that shaded my home.”

“Do not suppose,” said the Lord Keeper, “that you will lose any interest with me for looking back with regret to the days when another family possessed my estates. You had reason, doubtless, to love them, and I respect your gratitude. I will order some repairs in your cottage, and I hope we shall live to be friends when we know each other better.”

“Don’t think,” said the Lord Keeper, “that you’ll lose any favor with me for looking back fondly on the times when another family owned my land. You had good reason to care for them, and I appreciate your gratitude. I’ll arrange for some repairs in your cottage, and I hope we’ll become friends when we get to know each other better.”

“Those of my age,” returned the dame, “make no new friends. I thank you for your bounty, it is well intended undoubtedly; but I have all I want, and I cannot accept more at your lordship’s hand.”

“People my age,” the woman replied, “don’t make new friends. I appreciate your kindness; it’s certainly well meant, but I have all I need and I can’t accept any more from you, my lord.”

“Well, then,” continued the Lord Keeper, “at least allow me to say, that I look upon you as a woman of sense and education beyond your appearance, and that I hope you will continue to reside on this property of mine rent-free for your life.”

“Well, then,” continued the Lord Keeper, “at least let me say that I see you as a woman of intelligence and education that goes beyond your looks, and I hope you'll keep living on my property rent-free for the rest of your life.”

“I hope I shall,” said the old dame, composedly; “I believe that was made an article in the sale of Ravenswood to your lordship, though such a trifling circumstance may have escaped your recollection.”

“I hope so,” said the old woman calmly; “I think that was included in the sale of Ravenswood to you, my lord, although such a minor detail might have slipped your mind.”

“I remember—I recollect,” said his lordship, somewhat confused. “I perceive you are too much attached to your old friends to accept any benefit from their successor.”

“I remember—I remember,” said his lordship, a bit confused. “I see you’re too attached to your old friends to accept any help from their successor.”

“Far from it, my lord; I am grateful for the benefits which I decline, and I wish I could pay you for offering them, better than what I am now about to say.” The Lord Keeper looked at her in some surprise, but said not a word. “My lord,” she continued, in an impressive and solemn tone, “take care what you do; you are on the brink of a precipice.”

“Not at all, my lord; I appreciate the gifts I’m refusing, and I wish I could repay you for offering them in a way that’s better than what I’m about to say.” The Lord Keeper looked at her in surprise but didn’t respond. “My lord,” she continued, in a serious and weighty tone, “be careful about your actions; you’re on the edge of a cliff.”

“Indeed?” said the Lord Keeper, his mind reverting to the political circumstances of the country. “Has anything come to your knowledge—any plot or conspiracy?”

“Really?” said the Lord Keeper, his mind drifting back to the country's political situation. “Do you know of anything—any plot or conspiracy?”

“No, my lord; those who traffic in such commodities do not call to their councils the old, blind, and infirm. My warning is of another kind. You have driven matters hard with the house of Ravenswood. Believe a true tale: they are a fierce house, and there is danger in dealing with men when they become desperate.”

“No, my lord; those who deal in such goods don’t invite the old, blind, or sick to their meetings. My warning is different. You’ve pushed the house of Ravenswood too far. Believe me: they’re a fierce family, and it’s dangerous to deal with desperate men.”

“Tush,” answered the Keeper; “what has been between us has been the work of the law, not my doing; and to the law they must look, if they would impugn my proceedings.”

"Tush," replied the Keeper; "what's happened between us has been the result of the law, not my actions; and if they want to challenge my actions, they need to turn to the law."

“Ay, but they may think otherwise, and take the law into their own hand, when they fail of other means of redress.”

“Yeah, but they might think differently and take matters into their own hands when they can't find other ways to get justice.”

“What mean you?” said the Lord Keeper. “Young Ravenswood would not have recourse to personal violence?”

“What do you mean?” said the Lord Keeper. “Young Ravenswood wouldn’t resort to physical violence?”

“God forbid I should say so! I know nothing of the youth but what is honourable and open. Honourable and open, said I? I should have added, free, generous, noble. But he is still a Ravenswood, and may bide his time. Remember the fate of Sir George Lockhart.”

“God forbid I should say that! I know nothing about the young man except that he is honorable and straightforward. Honorable and straightforward, did I say? I should have added, free-spirited, generous, noble. But he is still a Ravenswood and can wait for the right moment. Remember what happened to Sir George Lockhart.”

The Lord Keeper started as she called to his recollection a tragedy so deep and so recent. The old woman proceeded: “Chiesley, who did the deed, was a relative of Lord Ravenswood. In the hall of Ravenswood, in my presence and in that of others, he avowed publicly his determination to do the cruelty which he afterwards committed. I could not keep silence, though to speak it ill became my station. ‘You are devising a dreadful crime,’ I said, ‘for which you must reckon before the judgment seat.’ Never shall I forget his look, as he replied, ‘I must reckon then for many things, and will reckon for this also.’ Therefore I may well say, beware of pressing a desperate man with the hand of authority. There is blood of Chiesley in the veins of Ravenswood, and one drop of it were enough to fire him in the circumstances in which he is placed. I say, beware of him.”

The Lord Keeper flinched when she reminded him of a tragedy that was both profound and recent. The old woman continued: “Chiesley, the one who committed the act, was a relative of Lord Ravenswood. In the hall of Ravenswood, with me and others present, he openly declared his intent to commit the cruel act he later carried out. I couldn't stay silent, even though it wasn't appropriate for me to speak up. ‘You’re planning a terrible crime,’ I told him, ‘for which you must answer at the judgment seat.’ I’ll never forget his expression when he replied, ‘I have to answer for many things, and I will account for this one, too.’ So I can confidently say, be cautious about provoking a desperate man with authority. There is Chiesley’s blood in Ravenswood’s veins, and just one drop of it would be enough to ignite his anger in his current situation. I say, watch out for him.”

The old dame had, either intentionally or by accident, harped aright the fear of the Lord Keeper. The desperate and dark resource of private assassination, so familiar to a Scottish baron in former times, had even in the present age been too frequently resorted to under the pressure of unusual temptation, or where the mind of the actor was prepared for such a crime. Sir William Ashton was aware of this; as also that young Ravenswood had received injuries sufficient to prompt him to that sort of revenge, which becomes a frequent though fearful consequence of the partial administration of justice. He endeavoured to disguise from Alice the nature of the apprehensions which he entertained; but so ineffectually, that a person even of less penetration than nature had endowed her with must necessarily have been aware that the subject lay near his bosom. His voice was changed in its accent as he replied to her, “That the Master of Ravenswood was a man of honour; and, were it otherwise, that the fate of Chiesley of Dalry was a sufficient warning to any one who should dare to assume the office of avenger of his own imaginary wrongs.” And having hastily uttered these expressions, he rose and left the place without waiting for a reply.

The old lady had, whether on purpose or by chance, brought up the fear of the Lord Keeper. The desperate and dark option of private assassination, something a Scottish baron was familiar with in the past, had still been too often used in the present day, especially under unusual temptations or when the person was already inclined toward such a crime. Sir William Ashton knew this; he also understood that young Ravenswood had suffered enough to push him toward that kind of revenge, which often arises as a dark consequence of a biased justice system. He tried to hide from Alice the nature of the fears he held, but he did so so poorly that anyone with less insight than she naturally possessed would have realized that the issue was close to his heart. His tone changed as he replied to her, “That the Master of Ravenswood is an honorable man; and even if he weren’t, the fate of Chiesley of Dalry should be enough to warn anyone who might consider taking the law into their own hands over imagined wrongs.” After quickly saying this, he stood up and left without waiting for a response.

CHAPTER V.

Is she a Capulet?
O dear account! my life is my foe’s debt.

SHAKESPEARE

Is she a Capulet?
Oh no! My life is owed to my enemy.

SHAKESPEARE

The Lord Keeper walked for nearly a quarter of a mile in profound silence. His daughter, naturally timid, and bred up in those ideas of filial awe and implicit obedience which were inculcated upon the youth of that period, did not venture to interrupt his meditations.

The Lord Keeper walked for almost a quarter of a mile in deep silence. His daughter, naturally shy and raised with the ideas of respect and unquestioning obedience that were instilled in young people at that time, didn’t dare to interrupt his thoughts.

“Why do you look so pale, Lucy?” said her father, turning suddenly round and breaking silence.

“Why do you look so pale, Lucy?” her father asked, suddenly turning around and breaking the silence.

According to the ideas of the time, which did not permit a young woman to offer her sentiments on any subject of importance unless required to do so, Lucy was bound to appear ignorant of the meaning of all that had passed betwixt Alice and her father, and imputed the emotion he had observed to the fear of the wild cattle which grazed in that part of the extensive chase through which they were now walking.

According to the beliefs of the time, which didn’t allow a young woman to express her opinions on important matters unless asked, Lucy had to seem unaware of what had happened between Alice and her father. She attributed the emotion he noticed to the fear of the wild cattle that grazed in the large area they were walking through.

Of these animals, the descendants of the savage herds which anciently roamed free in the Caledonian forests, it was formerly a point of state to preserve a few in the parks of the Scottish nobility. Specimens continued within the memory of man to be kept at least at three houses of distinction—Hamilton, namely, Drumlanrig, and Cumbernauld. They had degenerated from the ancient race in size and strength, if we are to judge from the accounts of old chronicles, and from the formidable remains frequently discovered in bogs and morasses when drained and laid open. The bull had lost the shaggy honours of his mane, and the race was small and light made, in colour a dingy white, or rather a pale yellow, with black horns and hoofs. They retained, however, in some measure, the ferocity of their ancestry, could not be domesticated on account of their antipathy to the human race, and were often dangerous if approached unguardedly, or wantonly disturbed. It was this last reason which has occasioned their being extirpated at the places we have mentioned, where probably they would otherwise have been retained as appropriate inhabitants of a Scottish woodland, and fit tenants for a baronial forest. A few, if I mistake not, are still preserved at Chillingham Castle, in Northumberland, the seat of the Earl of Tankerville.

Of these animals, the descendants of the wild herds that once roamed freely in the Caledonian forests, it used to be a priority for the Scottish nobility to keep a few in their parks. At least three notable estates—Hamilton, Drumlanrig, and Cumbernauld—still had specimens within living memory. They had become smaller and weaker compared to their ancient ancestors, based on accounts from old records and the impressive remains often found in drained bogs and marshes. The bull had lost its thick mane, and the breed was small and slender, featuring a dull white or pale yellow color, with black horns and hooves. However, they still retained some of their ancestors' ferocity, could not be tamed due to their hostility towards humans, and were often dangerous if approached carelessly or disturbed inappropriately. This last point led to their removal from the places mentioned, where they likely would have otherwise been kept as fitting inhabitants of a Scottish woodland and suitable residents for a baronial forest. A few, if I'm not mistaken, are still kept at Chillingham Castle in Northumberland, the home of the Earl of Tankerville.

It was to her finding herself in the vicinity of a group of three or four of these animals, that Lucy thought proper to impute those signs of fear which had arisen in her countenance for a different reason. For she had been familiarised with the appearance of the wild cattle during her walks in the chase; and it was not then, as it may be now, a necessary part of a young lady’s demeanour to indulge in causeless tremors of the nerves. On the present occasion, however, she speedily found cause for real terror.

It was when she found herself near a group of three or four of these animals that Lucy thought it reasonable to attribute the signs of fear on her face to a different cause. She was used to seeing the wild cattle during her walks in the chase, and back then, it wasn’t typical for a young lady to experience unnecessary nervousness. However, this time, she quickly discovered a genuine reason to be terrified.

Lucy had scarcely replied to her father in the words we have mentioned, and he was just about to rebuke her supposed timidity, when a bull, stimulated either by the scarlet colour of Miss Ashton’s mantle, or by one of those fits of capricious ferocity to which their dispositions are liable, detached himself suddenly from the group which was feeding at the upper extremity of a grassy glade, that seemed to lose itself among the crossing and entangled boughs. The animal approached the intruders on his pasture ground, at first slowly, pawing the ground with his hoof, bellowing from time to time, and tearing up the sand with his horns, as if to lash himself up to rage and violence.

Lucy had barely responded to her father in the way we mentioned, and he was just about to scold her for what he thought was her timidity, when a bull, either provoked by the bright red of Miss Ashton’s cloak or by one of those sudden bursts of aggression that they can have, abruptly broke away from the group that was grazing at the far end of a grassy clearing, which seemed to disappear among the crisscrossing and tangled branches. The animal approached the intruders in his pasture, at first slowly, pawing the ground with his hoof, bellowing occasionally, and digging up the sand with his horns, as if to work himself up into a rage.

The Lord Keeper, who observed the animal’s demeanour, was aware that he was about to become mischievous, and, drawing his daughter’s arm under his own, began to walk fast along the avenue, in hopes to get out of his sight and his reach. This was the most injudicious course he could have adopted, for, encouraged by the appearance of flight, the bull began to pursue them at full speed. Assailed by a danger so imminent, firmer courage than that of the Lord Keeper might have given way. But paternal tenderness, “love strong as death,” sustained him. He continued to support and drag onward his daughter, until her fears altogether depriving her of the power of flight, she sunk down by his side; and when he could no longer assist her to escape, he turned round and placed himself betwixt her and the raging animal, which, advancing in full career, its brutal fury enhanced by the rapidity of the pursuit, was now within a few yards of them. The Lord Keeper had no weapons; his age and gravity dispensed even with the usual appendage of a walking sword—could such appendage have availed him anything.

The Lord Keeper, noticing the animal's behavior, realized it was about to get mischievous. He grabbed his daughter's arm and started walking quickly down the avenue, hoping to get out of its sight and reach. This was the worst possible choice he could have made because, encouraged by their apparent flight, the bull charged after them at full speed. Faced with such an immediate danger, even someone braver than the Lord Keeper might have faltered. But his parental love, “love strong as death,” kept him going. He continued to support and pull his daughter along until her fear completely paralyzed her, and she collapsed beside him. When he could no longer help her escape, he turned and positioned himself between her and the raging animal, which was now just a few yards away, its brutal fury fueled by the speed of the chase. The Lord Keeper had no weapons; his age and dignity made it unnecessary for him to carry even a walking sword—if that would have helped him at all.

It seemed inevitable that the father or daughter, or both, should have fallen victims to the impending danger, when a shot from the neighbouring thicket arrested the progress of the animal. He was so truly struck between the junction of the spine with the skull, that the wound, which in any other part of his body might scarce have impeded his career, proved instantly fatal. Stumbling forward with a hideous bellow, the progressive force of his previous motion, rather than any operation of his limbs, carried him up to within three yards of the astonished Lord Keeper, where he rolled on the ground, his limbs darkened with the black death-sweat, and quivering with the last convulsions of muscular motion.

It seemed inevitable that either the father or the daughter, or both, would fall victim to the approaching danger when a shot from the nearby brush stopped the animal in its tracks. It was hit right where the spine meets the skull, and the wound, which in any other part of its body might not have slowed it down, was instantly fatal. Stumbling forward with a horrible roar, the force of its previous motion, rather than any movement of its limbs, pushed it to within three yards of the shocked Lord Keeper, where it collapsed on the ground, its limbs coated in dark, cold sweat, and trembling with the final spasms of muscular movement.

Lucy lay senseless on the ground, insensible of the wonderful deliverance which she had experience. Her father was almost equally stupefied, so rapid and unexpected had been the transition from the horrid death which seemed inevitable to perfect security. He gazed on the animal, terrible even in death, with a species of mute and confused astonishment, which did not permit him distinctly to understand what had taken place; and so inaccurate was his consciousness of what had passed, that he might have supposed the bull had been arrested in its career by a thunderbolt, had he not observed among the branches of the thicket the figure of a man, with a short gun or musquetoon in his hand.

Lucy lay unconscious on the ground, unaware of the incredible rescue she had just experienced. Her father was almost equally dazed, as the sudden and unexpected shift from the terrifying death that seemed certain to complete safety left him stunned. He stared at the animal, frightening even in death, with a kind of silent and confused amazement that prevented him from clearly grasping what had just happened; and his understanding of the events was so vague that he might have believed the bull had been struck down by a thunderbolt if he hadn’t noticed a man among the branches of the thicket, holding a short gun or musketoon.

This instantly recalled him to a sense of their situation: a glance at his daughter reminded him of the necessity of procuring her assistance. He called to the man, whom he concluded to be one of his foresters, to give immediate attention to Miss Ashton, while he himself hastened to call assistance. The huntsman approached them accordingly, and the Lord Keeper saw he was a stranger, but was too much agitated to make any farther remarks. In a few hurried words he directed the shooter, as stronger and more active than himself, to carry the young lady to a neighbouring fountain, while he went back to Alice’s hut to procure more aid.

This immediately brought him back to their situation: a glance at his daughter reminded him that he needed her help. He called to the man, whom he assumed was one of his foresters, to take care of Miss Ashton right away while he rushed off to find more help. The huntsman came over, and the Lord Keeper saw that he was a stranger but felt too agitated to say anything else. In a few quick words, he directed the shooter, who was stronger and more active than he was, to take the young lady to a nearby fountain while he went back to Alice’s hut to get more assistance.

The man to whose timely interference they had been so much indebted did not seem inclined to leave his good work half finished. He raised Lucy from the ground in his arms, and conveying her through the glades of the forest by paths with which he seemed well acquainted, stopped not until he laid her in safety by the side of a plentiful and pellucid fountain, which had been once covered in, screened and decorated with architectural ornaments of a Gothic character. But now the vault which had covered it being broken down and riven, and the Gothic font ruined and demolished, the stream burst forth from the recess of the earth in open day, and winded its way among the broken sculpture and moss-grown stones which lay in confusion around its source.

The man whose timely help they were so grateful for didn’t seem ready to leave his good work unfinished. He picked Lucy up from the ground in his arms and carried her through the forest paths he clearly knew well, not stopping until he placed her safely next to a clear, abundant fountain that had once been covered and adorned with Gothic architectural features. But now, the vault that had sheltered it was broken and shattered, and the Gothic structure was in ruins. The stream burst forth from the ground in broad daylight, winding its way among the broken sculptures and moss-covered stones that lay in disarray around its source.

Tradition, always busy, at least in Scotland, to grace with a legendary tale a spot in itself interesting, had ascribed a cause of peculiar veneration to this fountain. A beautiful young lady met one of the Lords of Ravenswood while hunting near this spot, and, like a second Egeria, had captivated the affections of the feudal Numa. They met frequently afterwards, and always at sunset, the charms of the nymph’s mind completing the conquest which her beauty had begun, and the mystery of the intrigue adding zest to both. She always appeared and disappeared close by the fountain, with which, therefore, her lover judged she had some inexplicable connexion. She placed certain restrictions on their intercourse, which also savoured of mystery. They met only once a week—Friday was the appointed day—and she explained to the Lord of Ravenswood that they were under the necessity of separating so soon as the bell of a chapel, belonging to a hermitage in the adjoining wood, now long ruinous, should toll the hour of vespers. In the course of his confession, the Baron of Ravenswood entrusted the hermit with the secret of this singular amour, and Father Zachary drew the necessary and obvious consequence that his patron was enveloped in the toils of Satan, and in danger of destruction, both to body and soul. He urged these perils to the Baron with all the force of monkish rhetoric, and described, in the most frightful colours, the real character and person of the apparently lovely Naiad, whom he hesitated not to denounce as a limb of the kingdom of darkness. The lover listened with obstinate incredulity; and it was not until worn out by the obstinacy of the anchoret that he consented to put the state and condition of his mistress to a certain trial, and for that purpose acquiesced in Zachary’s proposal that on their next interview the vespers bell should be rung half an hour later than usual. The hermit maintained and bucklered his opinion, by quotations from Malleus Malificarum, Sprengerus, Remigius, and other learned demonologists, that the Evil One, thus seduced to remain behind the appointed hour, would assume her true shape, and, having appeared to her terrified lover as a fiend of hell, would vanish from him in a flash of sulphurous lightning. Raymond of Ravenswood acquiesced in the experiment, not incurious concerning the issue, though confident it would disappoint the expectations of the hermit.

Tradition, always busy, especially in Scotland, to add a legendary tale to an interesting location, assigned a unique significance to this fountain. A beautiful young woman met one of the Lords of Ravenswood while hunting nearby, and like a second Egeria, she captured the heart of the feudal Numa. They started meeting regularly after that, always at sunset, with the allure of the nymph's mind complementing the beauty that had enchanted him, and the mystery of their affair adding excitement to both. She always appeared and vanished near the fountain, which led her lover to believe she had some mysterious connection to it. She set certain limits on their relationship, which also hinted at mystery. They met just once a week—Friday was the chosen day—and she told the Lord of Ravenswood that they had to part as soon as the chapel bell from a nearby hermitage, now long in ruins, tolled for evening prayers. During his confession, the Baron of Ravenswood disclosed the secret of this unusual romance to the hermit, and Father Zachary concluded that his patron was caught in the snares of Satan and in danger of both physical and spiritual ruin. He warned the Baron about these dangers with all the fervor of a monk’s rhetoric, vividly describing the true nature and identity of the seemingly lovely Naiad, whom he boldly proclaimed to be one of the emissaries of darkness. The lover listened with stubborn disbelief; it wasn't until the hermit wore him down with his insistence that he agreed to test the situation with his mistress. For this purpose, he accepted Zachary’s suggestion that on their next meeting, the evening bell should be rung half an hour later than usual. The hermit supported his view with quotes from Malleus Malificarum, Sprengerus, Remigius, and other scholars of demonology, claiming that the Evil One, lured to linger beyond the appointed time, would reveal her true form and present herself to her terrified lover as a demon from hell, disappearing in a burst of sulfurous light. Raymond of Ravenswood agreed to the experiment, curious about the outcome yet confident that it would not meet the hermit’s expectations.

At the appointed hour the lovers met, and their interview was protracted beyond that at which they usually parted, by the delay of the priest to ring his usual curfew. No change took place upon the nymph’s outward form; but as soon as the lengthening shadows made her aware that the usual hour of the vespers chime was passed, she tore herself from her lover’s arms with a shriek of despair, bid him adieu for ever, and, plunging into the fountain, disappeared from his eyes. The bubbles occasioned by her descent were crimsoned with blood as they arose, leading the distracted Baron to infer that his ill-judged curiosity had occasioned the death of this interesting and mysterious being. The remorse which he felt, as well as the recollection of her charms, proved the penance of his future life, which he lost in the battle of Flodden not many months after. But, in memory of his Naiad, he had previously ornamented the fountain in which she appeared to reside, and secured its waters from profanation or pollution by the small vaulted building of which the fragments still remained scattered around it. From this period the house of Ravenswood was supposed to have dated its decay.

At the scheduled time, the lovers met, and their conversation lasted longer than usual because the priest was late to ring the curfew bell. The nymph didn’t change on the outside, but when the shadows grew longer and she realized the usual vespers chime had passed, she tore herself from her lover’s arms with a scream of despair, said goodbye forever, and jumped into the fountain, vanishing from his sight. The bubbles that formed from her plunge were stained with blood as they surfaced, leading the distraught Baron to believe that his misguided curiosity had caused the death of this captivating and mysterious being. The guilt he felt, along with memories of her beauty, became the penance of his future life, which came to an end in the battle of Flodden just a few months later. However, in memory of his Naiad, he had earlier decorated the fountain where she seemed to live and ensured its waters would remain untouched by pollution with a small vaulted structure, the remnants of which are still scattered around it. From this point on, the house of Ravenswood was thought to have begun its decline.

Such was the generally-received legend, which some, who would seem wiser than the vulgar, explained as obscurely intimating the fate of a beautiful maid of plebeian rank, the mistress of this Raymond, whom he slew in a fit of jealousy, and whose blood was mingled with the waters of the locked fountain, as it was commonly called. Others imagined that the tale had a more remote origin in the ancient heathen mythology. All, however, agreed that the spot was fatal to the Ravenswood family; and that to drink of the waters of the well, or even approach its brink, was as ominous to a descendant of that house as for a Grahame to wear green, a Bruce to kill a spider, or a St. Clair to cross the Ord on a Monday.

Such was the widely accepted legend, which some people, who thought they were smarter than everyone else, interpreted as hinting at the fate of a beautiful common girl, the lover of this Raymond, whom he killed in a jealous rage, and whose blood mixed with the waters of the locked fountain, as it was often called. Others believed that the story had an even older connection to ancient pagan mythology. However, everyone agreed that the place was cursed for the Ravenswood family; to drink from the well or even get close to its edge was as unlucky for a descendant of that family as it was for a Grahame to wear green, a Bruce to kill a spider, or a St. Clair to cross the Ord on a Monday.

It was on this ominous spot that Lucy Ashton first drew breath after her long and almost deadly swoon. Beautiful and pale as the fabulous Naiad in the last agony of separation from her lover, she was seated so as to rest with her back against a part of the ruined wall, while her mantle, dripping with the water which her protector had used profusely to recall her senses, clung to her slender and beautifully proportioned form.

It was on this eerie spot that Lucy Ashton first came to after her long and near-fatal fainting spell. Beautiful and pale like a legendary water nymph in the final moments of being apart from her lover, she sat with her back against a part of the crumbling wall, while her cloak, soaked with the water her protector had used generously to revive her, clung to her slender and well-shaped form.

The first moment of recollection brought to her mind the danger which had overpowered her senses; the next called to remembrance that of her father. She looked around; he was nowhere to be seen. “My father, my father!” was all that she could ejaculate.

The first moment she remembered reminded her of the danger that had overwhelmed her senses; the next brought her thoughts to her father. She looked around; he was nowhere in sight. “My father, my father!” was all she could cry out.

“Sir William is safe,” answered the voice of a stranger—“perfectly safe, and will be with you instantly.”

“Sir William is safe,” replied a stranger’s voice—“completely safe, and will be with you right away.”

“Are you sure of that?” exclaimed Lucy. “The bull was close by us. Do not stop me: I must go to seek my father!”

“Are you really sure about that?” Lucy exclaimed. “The bull was right next to us. Don’t hold me back: I need to go find my dad!”

And she rose with that purpose; but her strength was so much exhausted that, far from possessing the power to execute her purpose, she must have fallen against the stone on which she had leant, probably not without sustaining serious injury.

And she got up with that intention; but she was so worn out that, instead of having the energy to carry out her plan, she must have collapsed against the stone she had leaned on, likely suffering some serious injuries in the process.

The stranger was so near to her that, without actually suffering her to fall, he could not avoid catching her in his arms, which, however, he did with a momentary reluctance, very unusual when youth interposes to prevent beauty from danger. It seemed as if her weight, slight as it was, proved too heavy for her young and athletic assistant, for, without feeling the temptation of detaining her in his arms even for a single instant, he again placed her on the stone from which she had risen, and retreating a few steps, repeated hastily “Sir William Ashton is perfectly safe and will be here instantly. Do not make yourself anxious on his account: Fate has singularly preserved him. You, madam, are exhausted, and must not think of rising until you have some assistance more suitable than mine.”

The stranger was so close to her that, without actually letting her fall, he couldn't help but catch her in his arms. He did this with a brief hesitation, which was unusual when youth steps in to protect beauty from danger. It seemed like her weight, though slight, was too much for her young and athletic helper, because without feeling tempted to hold onto her for even a moment longer, he set her back on the stone she had just gotten up from. Stepping back a few paces, he quickly said, “Sir William Ashton is completely safe and will be here any minute. Don’t worry about him; fate has kept him safe. You, madam, are exhausted, and you shouldn’t try to get up until you have some help that’s better than mine.”

Lucy, whose senses were by this time more effectually collected, was naturally led to look at the stranger with attention. There was nothing in his appearance which should have rendered him unwilling to offer his arm to a young lady who required support, or which could have induced her to refuse his assistance; and she could not help thinking, even in that moment, that he seemed cold and reluctant to offer it. A shooting-dress of dark cloth intimated the rank of the wearer, though concealed in part by a large and loose cloak of a dark brown colour. A montero cap and a black feather drooped over the wearer’s brow, and partly concealed his features, which, so far as seen, were dark, regular, and full of majestic, though somewhat sullen, expression. Some secret sorrow, or the brooding spirit of some moody passion, had quenched the light and ingenuous vivacity of youth in a countenance singularly fitted to display both, and it was not easy to gaze on the stranger without a secret impression either of pity or awe, or at least of doubt and curiosity allied to both.

Lucy, who had gathered her senses by this point, naturally found herself observing the stranger with interest. There was nothing about his appearance that should have made him hesitant to offer his arm to a young woman in need of support, nor should it have made her refuse his help; yet she couldn’t shake the feeling that he seemed cold and reluctant to extend it. His dark cloth shooting outfit hinted at his status, though it was partly hidden by a large, loose dark brown cloak. A montero cap and a black feather hung low over his brow, partially obscuring his features, which, as far as she could see, were dark, well-defined, and exuded a majestic, albeit somewhat gloomy, aura. Some hidden sorrow, or the weight of some brooding emotion, had dimmed the vibrant and youthful spirit that might have been his, making his face particularly suited to show both. It was hard to look at the stranger without feeling a mix of pity or awe, or at least a blend of uncertainty and curiosity intertwined with those feelings.

The impression which we have necessarily been long in describing, Lucy felt in the glance of a moment, and had no sooner encountered the keen black eyes of the stranger than her own were bent on the ground with a mixture of bashful embarrassment and fear. Yet there was a necessity to speak, or at last she thought so, and in a fluttered accent she began to mention her wonderful escape, in which she was sure that the stranger must, under Heaven, have been her father’s protector and her own.

The impression we took a long time to describe, Lucy felt in an instant, and as soon as she met the piercing black eyes of the stranger, she looked down, feeling both shy and afraid. Still, she felt she needed to say something, or at least she thought so, and in a nervous tone, she started talking about her amazing escape, believing that the stranger must have, by some divine intervention, been her father's protector as well as her own.

He seemed to shrink from her expressions of gratitude, while he replied abruptly, “I leave you, madam,” the deep melody of his voice rendered powerful, but not harsh, by something like a severity of tone—“I leave you to the protection of those to whom it is possible you may have this day been a guardian angel.”

He appeared to pull away from her expressions of thanks, as he responded abruptly, “I’m leaving you, madam,” the deep richness of his voice strong yet not harsh, tinged with a sense of seriousness—“I leave you in the care of those who, it’s possible, you may have been a guardian angel to today.”

Lucy was surprised at the ambiguity of his language, and, with a feeling of artless and unaffected gratitude, began to deprecate the idea of having intended to give her deliverer any offence, as if such a thing had been possible. “I have been unfortunate,” she said, “in endeavouring to express my thanks—I am sure it must be so, though I cannot recollect what I said; but would you but stay till my father—till the Lord Keeper comes; would you only permit him to pay you his thanks, and to inquire your name?”

Lucy was surprised by how unclear his words were, and with genuine gratitude, she started to downplay any thought that she might have offended her rescuer, as if that could ever be the case. “I must have been unlucky,” she said, “in trying to thank you—I’m sure that’s it, even though I can’t remember what I said; but would you please wait until my father—until the Lord Keeper arrives? Would you let him express his gratitude to you and ask for your name?”

“My name is unnecessary,” answered the stranger; “your father—I would rather say Sir William Ashton—will learn it soon enough, for all the pleasure it is likely to afford him.”

“My name doesn't matter,” replied the stranger; “your father—I would rather say Sir William Ashton—will find out soon enough, and it won't bring him much joy.”

“You mistake him,” said Lucy, earnestly; “he will be grateful for my sake and for his own. You do not know my father, or you are deceiving me with a story of his safety, when he has already fallen a victim to the fury of that animal.”

“You're making a mistake about him,” Lucy said earnestly. “He'll be grateful for my sake and his own. You don't know my father, or you're trying to deceive me with a lie about his safety, when he has already become a victim of that beast's rage.”

When she had caught this idea, she started from the ground and endeavoured to press towards the avenue in which the accident had taken place, while the stranger, though he seemed to hesitate between the desire to assist and the wish to leave her, was obliged, in common humanity, to oppose her both by entreaty and action.

When she got this idea, she started from the ground and tried to make her way to the street where the accident happened, while the stranger, though he seemed torn between wanting to help and wanting to walk away, felt it was only right to stop her both by pleading and physically.

“On the word of a gentleman, madam, I tell you the truth; your father is in perfect safety; you will expose yourself to injury if you venture back where the herd of wild cattle grazed. If you will go”—for, having once adopted the idea that her father was still in danger, she pressed forward in spite of him—“if you will go, accept my arm, though I am not perhaps the person who can with most propriety offer you support.”

“On my word as a gentleman, ma'am, I assure you that your father is completely safe; you risk getting hurt if you go back to where the wild cattle are. If you’re determined to go”—since she was convinced her father was still in danger, she kept pushing ahead despite his warnings—“if you are going to go, please take my arm, even if I may not be the most suitable person to offer you support.”

But, without heeding this intimation, Lucy took him at his word. “Oh, if you be a man,” she said—“if you be a gentleman, assist me to find my father! You shall not leave me—you must go with me; he is dying perhaps while we are talking here!”

But, without paying attention to this hint, Lucy took him at his word. “Oh, if you’re a man,” she said—“if you’re a gentleman, help me find my father! You can’t leave me—you have to come with me; he might be dying while we’re talking here!”

Then, without listening to excuse or apology, and holding fast by the stranger’s arm, though unconscious of anything save the support which it gave, and without which she could not have moved, mixed with a vague feeling of preventing his escape from her, she was urging, and almost dragging, him forward when Sir William Ashton came up, followed by the female attendant of blind Alice, and by two woodcutters, whom he had summoned from their occupation to his assistance. His joy at seeing his daughter safe overcame the surprise with which he would at another time have beheld her hanging as familiarly on the arm of a stranger as she might have done upon his own.

Then, without listening to any excuses or apologies, and holding tightly onto the stranger's arm—unaware of anything except for the support it provided, without which she couldn't move, mixed with a vague feeling of preventing him from leaving her—she was urging and almost dragging him forward when Sir William Ashton approached, followed by the female attendant of blind Alice and two woodcutters he had called in to help. His joy at finding his daughter safe overshadowed the surprise he would have felt at another time seeing her so comfortably hanging on the arm of a stranger, just like she would have done with his own.

“Lucy, my dear Lucy, are you safe?—are you well?” were the only words that broke from him as he embraced her in ecstasy.

“Lucy, my dear Lucy, are you safe?—are you okay?” were the only words that came from him as he hugged her in joy.

“I am well, sir, thank God! and still more that I see you so; but this gentleman,” she said, quitting his arm and shrinking from him, “what must he think of me?” and her eloquent blood, flushing over neck and brow, spoke how much she was ashamed of the freedom with which she had craved, and even compelled, his assistance.

“I’m doing well, sir, thank God! And I’m even happier to see you like this; but this man,” she said, pulling away from him and stepping back, “what must he think of me?” Her flushed cheeks and neck showed how ashamed she was of how freely she had asked for, and even forced, his help.

“This gentleman,” said Sir William Ashton, “will, I trust, not regret the trouble we have given him, when I assure him of the gratitude of the Lord Keeper for the greatest service which one man ever rendered to another—for the life of my child—for my own life, which he has saved by his bravery and presence of mind. He will, I am sure, permit us to request——”

“This gentleman,” said Sir William Ashton, “I hope won’t regret the trouble we’ve caused him. I want to assure him of the Lord Keeper’s gratitude for the greatest service one person has ever done for another—for my child’s life—for my own life, which he saved through his bravery and quick thinking. I’m sure he will allow us to request——”

“Request nothing of ME, my lord,” said the stranger, in a stern and peremptory tone; “I am the Master of Ravenswood.”

“Don’t ask anything of ME, my lord,” said the stranger, in a serious and commanding tone; “I am the Master of Ravenswood.”


There was a dead pause of surprise, not unmixed with less pleasant feelings. The Master wrapt himself in his cloak, made a haughty inclination toward Lucy, muttering a few words of courtesy, as indistinctly heard as they seemed to be reluctantly uttered, and, turning from them, was immediately lost in the thicket.

There was a shocking moment of silence, mixed with some uncomfortable feelings. The Master wrapped himself in his cloak, gave a dismissive nod to Lucy, mumbling a few polite words that were barely audible and seemed to be said with hesitation, and then, turning away from them, quickly disappeared into the bushes.

“The Master of Ravenswood!” said the Lord Keeper, when he had recovered his momentary astonishment. “Hasten after him—stop him—beg him to speak to me for a single moment.”

“The Master of Ravenswood!” said the Lord Keeper, once he had regained his brief shock. “Quick, go after him—stop him—ask him to talk to me for just a moment.”

The two foresters accordingly set off in pursuit of the stranger. They speedily reappeared, and, in an embarrassed and awkward manner, said the gentleman would not return.

The two foresters then headed off to track down the stranger. They quickly returned and, in a somewhat uncomfortable and awkward way, said the gentleman wouldn’t be coming back.

The Lord Keeper took one of the fellows aside, and questioned him more closely what the Master of Ravenswood had said.

The Lord Keeper pulled one of the guys aside and asked him more specifically what the Master of Ravenswood had said.

“He just said he wanda come back,” said the man, with the caution of a prudent Scotchman, who cared not to be the bearer of an unpleasant errand.

“He just said he wants to come back,” said the man, with the caution of a careful Scotsman, who didn’t want to be the messenger of bad news.

“He said something more, sir,” said the Lord Keeper, “and I insist on knowing what it was.”

“He said something else, sir,” the Lord Keeper remarked, “and I need to know what it was.”

“Why, then, my lord,” said the man, looking down, “he said—But it wad be nae pleasure to your lordship to hear it, for I dare say the Master meant nae ill.”

“Why, then, my lord,” said the man, looking down, “he said—But it wouldn't be any pleasure for your lordship to hear it, because I’m sure the Master meant no harm.”

“That’s none of your concern, sir; I desire to hear the very words.”

"That's none of your business, sir; I want to hear the exact words."

“Weel, then,” replied the man, “he said, ‘Tell Sir William Ashton that the next time he and I forgather, he will not be half sae blythe of our meeting as of our parting.’”

"Well, then," replied the man, "he said, ‘Tell Sir William Ashton that the next time he and I meet, he won’t be nearly as happy about our meeting as he will be about saying goodbye.’"

“Very well, sir,” said the Lord Keeper, “I believe he alludes to a wager we have on our hawks; it is a matter of no consequence.”

“Alright, sir,” said the Lord Keeper, “I think he’s referring to a bet we have on our hawks; it’s not a big deal.”

He turned to his daughter, who was by this time so much recovered as to be able to walk home. But the effect, which the various recollections connected with a scene so terrific made upon a mind which was susceptible in an extreme degree, was more permanent than the injury which her nerves had sustained. Visions of terror, both in sleep and in waking reveries, recalled to her the form of the furious animal, and the dreadful bellow with which he accompanied his career; and it was always the image of the Master of Ravenswood, with his native nobleness of countenance and form, that seemed to interpose betwixt her and assured death. It is, perhaps, at all times dangerous for a young person to suffer recollection to dwell repeatedly, and with too much complacency, on the same individual; but in Lucy’s situation it was almost unavoidable. She had never happened to see a young man of mien and features so romantic and so striking as young Ravenswood; but had she seen an hundred his equals or his superiors in those particulars, no one else would have been linked to her heart by the strong associations of remembered danger and escape, of gratitude, wonder, and curiosity. I say curiosity, for it is likely that the singularly restrained and unaccommodating manners of the Master of Ravenswood, so much at variance with the natural expression of his features and grace of his deportment, as they excited wonder by the contrast, had their effect in riveting her attention to the recollections. She knew little of Ravenswood, or the disputes which had existed betwixt her father and his, and perhaps could in her gentleness of mind hardly have comprehended the angry and bitter passions which they had engendered. But she knew that he was come of noble stem; was poor, though descended from the noble and the wealthy; and she felt that she could sympathise with the feelings of a proud mind, which urged him to recoil from the proffered gratitude of the new proprietors of his father’s house and domains. Would he have equally shunned their acknowledgments and avoided their intimacy, had her father’s request been urged more mildly, less abruptly, and softened with the grace which women so well know how to throw into their manner, when they mean to mediate betwixt the headlong passions of the ruder sex? This was a perilous question to ask her own mind—perilous both in the idea and its consequences.

He turned to his daughter, who by now was feeling much better and could walk home. But the impact of the various memories tied to such a terrifying scene affected her fragile mind more deeply than the injury to her nerves. Nightmares and daydreams filled her with visions of terror, bringing back the image of the furious animal and the terrible roar that accompanied its charge; yet it was always the image of the Master of Ravenswood, with his natural nobility, that stood between her and certain death. It’s probably always risky for a young person to let their thoughts linger too long on the same individual, but for Lucy, it was almost inevitable. She had never encountered a young man with such dramatic looks as young Ravenswood; even if she had seen a hundred others who were just as striking or more, none would have captured her heart like he did, tied to a strong mix of remembered danger and escape, gratitude, wonder, and curiosity. I mention curiosity because the Master of Ravenswood’s distinctly reserved and unapproachable behavior, which contrasted sharply with his handsome features and graceful movements, drew her attention even more. She knew little about Ravenswood or the conflicts between her father and his family and might have struggled to understand the anger and bitterness that had arisen from them. But she was aware that he came from noble blood; he was poor, despite his noble and wealthy ancestry, and she felt a deep sympathy for his pride, which led him to reject the gratitude of the new owners of his father’s estate. Would he have still avoided their acknowledgments and shunned their company if her father’s request had been made in a gentler, less abrupt way, softened by the grace that women often bring when brokering between the reckless passions of men? This was a dangerous question to ponder—dangerous both in thought and its potential outcomes.

Lucy Ashton, in short, was involved in those mazes of the imagination which are most dangerous to the young and the sensitive. Time, it is true, absence, change of scene and new faces, might probably have destroyed the illusion in her instance, as it has done in many others; but her residence remained solitary, and her mind without those means of dissipating her pleasing visions. This solitude was chiefly owing to the absence of Lady Ashton, who was at this time in Edinburgh, watching the progress of some state-intrigue; the Lord Keeper only received society out of policy or ostentation, and was by nature rather reserved and unsociable; and thus no cavalier appeared to rival or to obscure the ideal picture of chivalrous excellence which Lucy had pictured to herself in the Master of Ravenswood.

Lucy Ashton was caught up in those complex fantasies that are most perilous for the young and sensitive. It's true that time, distance, a change of scenery, and new faces might have shattered her illusions, as they have for many others; however, she remained isolated, and her mind lacked the distractions that could have diminished her delightful dreams. This solitude was mainly due to Lady Ashton's absence, as she was in Edinburgh dealing with some political intrigue at the time. The Lord Keeper only entertained company for show or out of necessity and was naturally rather reserved and unsociable; as a result, no suitor came to challenge or overshadow the ideal image of chivalric perfection that Lucy had created in her mind of the Master of Ravenswood.


While Lucy indulged in these dreams, she made frequent visits to old blind Alice, hoping it would be easy to lead her to talk on the subject which at present she had so imprudently admitted to occupy so large a portion of her thoughts. But Alice did not in this particular gratify her wishes and expectations. She spoke readily, and with pathetic feeling, concerning the family in general, but seemed to observe an especial and cautious silence on the subject of the present representative. The little she said of him was not altogether so favourable as Lucy had anticipated. She hinted that he was of a stern and unforgiving character, more ready to resent than to pardon injuries; and Lucy combined, with great alarm, the hints which she now dropped of these dangerous qualities with Alice’s advice to her father, so emphatically given, “to beware of Ravenswood.”

While Lucy daydreamed, she often visited old blind Alice, hoping it would be easy to get her to talk about the topic that had taken up so much of her thoughts. However, Alice didn’t accommodate her wishes or expectations in this regard. She spoke freely and with deep emotion about the family in general but seemed to deliberately avoid discussing the current representative. The little she did say about him wasn’t as positive as Lucy had expected. She suggested that he had a harsh and vengeful nature, more inclined to hold grudges than to forgive; and Lucy, with great concern, connected Alice’s warnings about these risky traits with her advice to her father, strongly urging him “to beware of Ravenswood.”

But that very Ravenswood, of whom such unjust suspicions had been entertained, had, almost immediately after they had been uttered, confuted them by saving at once her father’s life and her own. Had he nourished such black revenge as Alice’s dark hints seemed to indicate, no deed of active guilt was necessary to the full gratification of that evil passion. He needed but to have withheld for an instant his indispensable and effective assistance, and the object of his resentment must have perished, without any direct aggression on his part, by a death equally fearful and certain. She conceived, therefore, that some secret prejudice, or the suspicions incident to age and misfortune, had led Alice to form conclusions injurious to the character, and irreconcilable both with the generous conduct and noble features, of the Master of Ravenswood. And in this belief Lucy reposed her hope, and went on weaving her enchanted web of fairy tissue, as beautiful and transient as the film of the gossamer when it is pearled with the morning dew and glimmering to the sun.

But that same Ravenswood, whom people had so unfairly suspected, had quickly disproved their claims by saving both her father’s life and her own. If he had harbored the kind of dark revenge Alice’s hints suggested, he wouldn’t even have needed to commit an act of guilt to satisfy that evil desire. He merely had to withhold his crucial help for a moment, and the target of his anger would have died a terrible and certain death, without him having to do anything directly. She believed, therefore, that some hidden bias, or the doubts that come with age and misfortune, had led Alice to make judgments that were unfair to the character and completely at odds with the generous behavior and noble appearance of the Master of Ravenswood. In this belief, Lucy found her hope and continued to weave her enchanted web of delicate fabric, as beautiful and fleeting as gossamer covered in morning dew, sparkling in the sunlight.

Her father, in the mean while, as well as the Master of Ravenswood, were making reflections, as frequent though more solid than those of Lucy, upon the singular event which had taken place. The Lord Keeper’s first task, when he returned home, was to ascertain by medical advice that his daughter had sustained no injury from the dangerous and alarming situation in which she had been placed. Satisfied on this topic, he proceeded to revise the memoranda which he had taken down from the mouth of the person employed to interrupt the funeral service of the late Lord Ravenswood. Bred to casuistry, and well accustomed to practise the ambidexter ingenuity of the bar, it cost him little trouble to soften the features of the tumult which he had been at first so anxious to exaggerate. He preached to his colleagues of the privy council the necessity of using conciliatory measures with young men, whose blood and temper were hot, and their experience of life limited. He did not hesitate to attribute some censure to the conduct of the officer, as having been unnecessarily irritating.

Her father, along with the Master of Ravenswood, was reflecting, more seriously than Lucy, on the unusual event that had just occurred. The Lord Keeper’s first priority when he got home was to confirm with a doctor that his daughter wasn't hurt from the dangerous and alarming situation she had been in. Once satisfied on that front, he went over the notes he had taken from the person who interrupted the funeral service of the late Lord Ravenswood. Trained in legal reasoning and skilled at navigating tricky situations, it was easy for him to downplay the chaos he had initially wanted to exaggerate. He advised his colleagues on the privy council about the importance of using conciliatory measures with young men, who were hot-headed and inexperienced. He didn't hold back from criticizing the officer's conduct, saying it was unnecessarily provocative.

These were the contents of his public despatches. The letters which he wrote to those private friends into whose management the matter was likely to fall were of a yet more favourable tenor. He represented that lenity in this case would be equally politic and popular, whereas, considering the high respect with which the rites of interment are regarded in Scotland, any severity exercised against the Master of Ravenswood for protecting those of his father from interruption, would be on all sides most unfavourably construed. And, finally, assuming the language of a generous and high-spirited man, he made it his particular request that this affair should be passed over without severe notice. He alluded with delicacy to the predicament in which he himself stood with young Ravenswood, as having succeeded in the long train of litigation by which the fortunes of that noble house had been so much reduced, and confessed it would be most peculiarly acceptable to his own feelings, could he find in some sort to counterbalance the disadvantages which he had occasioned the family, though only in the prosecution of his just and lawful rights. He therefore made it his particular and personal request that the matter should have no farther consequences, and insinuated a desire that he himself should have the merit of having put a stop to it by his favourable report and intercession. It was particularly remarkable that, contrary to his uniform practice, he made no special communication to Lady Ashton upon the subject of the tumult; and although he mentioned the alarm which Lucy had received from one of the wild cattle, yet he gave no detailed account of an incident so interesting and terrible.

These were the contents of his public dispatches. The letters he wrote to private friends who might be involved in handling the situation were even more optimistic. He argued that being lenient in this case would be both smart and popular, while any harsh treatment of the Master of Ravenswood for defending his father's resting place would be seen very negatively, especially considering how seriously burial rites are taken in Scotland. In the end, adopting the tone of a generous and spirited person, he specifically requested that this situation be overlooked without any harsh repercussions. He subtly referred to his own position with young Ravenswood, acknowledging how he had contributed to the long legal battles that had greatly diminished the fortunes of that noble family. He admitted it would mean a lot to him personally if he could somehow make amends for the misfortunes he brought upon them, even though it was in the pursuit of his rightful claims. Therefore, he made a personal request for the matter to have no further consequences and hinted that he wanted to take credit for resolving it through his favorable report and intervention. It was particularly striking that, against his usual practice, he didn't directly inform Lady Ashton about the commotion. Although he mentioned Lucy's fright from one of the wild cattle, he didn’t provide any detailed account of such an interesting and terrifying incident.

There was much surprise among Sir William Ashton’s political friends and colleagues on receiving letters of a tenor so unexpected. On comparing notes together, one smiled, one put up his eyebrows, a third nodded acquiescence in the general wonder, and a fourth asked if they were sure these were all the letters the Lord Keeper had written on the subject. “It runs strangely in my mind, my lords, that none of these advices contain the root of the matter.”

There was a lot of surprise among Sir William Ashton’s political friends and colleagues when they received such unexpected letters. As they compared notes, one smiled, one raised an eyebrow, a third nodded in agreement with the general confusion, and a fourth asked if they were sure these were all the letters the Lord Keeper had written about it. “It doesn’t sit right with me, my lords, that none of these letters address the main issue.”

But no secret letters of a contrary nature had been received, although the question seemed to imply the possibility of their existence.

But no secret letters of a different nature had been received, although the question suggested that they might exist.

“Well,” said an old grey-headed statesman, who had contrived, by shifting and trimming, to maintain his post at the steerage through all the changes of course which the vessel had held for thirty years, “I thought Sir William would hae verified the auld Scottish saying, ‘As soon comes the lamb’s skin to market as the auld tup’s’.”

“Well,” said an old gray-haired politician, who had managed, by shifting and adapting, to keep his position at the helm through all the changes the ship had gone through for thirty years, “I thought Sir William would have proven the old Scottish saying, ‘As soon comes the lamb’s skin to market as the old ram’s.’”

“We must please him after his own fashion,” said another, “though it be an unlooked-for one.”

“We must satisfy him in his own way,” said another, “even if it’s unexpected.”

“A wilful man maun hae his way,” answered the old counsellor.

“A stubborn man must have his way,” replied the old counselor.

“The Keeper will rue this before year and day are out,” said a third; “the Master of Ravenswood is the lad to wind him a pirn.”

“The Keeper will regret this before the year is over,” said a third; “the Master of Ravenswood is the guy to teach him a lesson.”

“Why, what would you do, my lords, with the poor young fellow?” said a noble Marquis present. “The Lord Keeper has got all his estates; he has not a cross to bless himself with.”

“Why, what would you do, my lords, with the poor young guy?” said a noble Marquis present. “The Lord Keeper has taken all his properties; he doesn’t have a penny to his name.”

On which the ancient Lord Turntippet replied,

On which the ancient Lord Turntippet replied,

“If he hasna gear to fine,
He ha shins to pine.

“If he doesn't have gear to fine,
He has shins to pine.”

“And that was our way before the Revolution: Lucitur cum persona, qui luere non potest cum crumena. Hegh, my lords, that’s gude law Latin.”

“And that was our way before the Revolution: Lucitur cum persona, qui luere non potest cum crumena. Hey, my lords, that’s good legal Latin.”

“I can see no motive,” replied the Marquis, “that any noble lord can have for urging this matter farther; let the Lord Keeper have the power to deal in it as he pleases.”

“I can see no reason,” replied the Marquis, “that any noble lord would have for pushing this matter further; let the Lord Keeper handle it as he wishes.”

“Agree, agree—remit to the Lord Keeper, with any other person for fashion’s sake—Lord Hirplehooly, who is bed-ridden—one to be a quorum. Make your entry in the minutes, Mr. Clerk. And now, my lords, there is that young scattergood the Laird of Bucklaw’s fine to be disposed upon. I suppose it goes to my Lord Treasurer?”

“Agree, agree—send it to the Lord Keeper, along with anyone else for appearances—Lord Hirplehooly, who is confined to bed—one to make a quorum. Please record this in the minutes, Mr. Clerk. And now, my lords, we need to address the fine for that young scattergood, the Laird of Bucklaw. I assume it goes to my Lord Treasurer?”

“Shame be in my meal-poke, then,” exclaimed the Lord Turntippet, “and your hand aye in the nook of it! I had set that down for a bye-bit between meals for mysell.”

“Shame on my snack pocket, then,” exclaimed Lord Turntippet, “and your hand always in it! I had planned that as a little treat for myself between meals.”

“To use one of your favourite saws, my lord,” replied the Marquis, “you are like the miller’s dog, that licks his lips before the bag is untied: the man is not fined yet.”

“To use one of your favorite sayings, my lord,” replied the Marquis, “you’re like the miller’s dog, licking his lips before the bag is untied: the man hasn’t been fined yet.”

“But that costs but twa skarts of a pen,” said Lord Turntippet; “and surely there is nae noble lord that will presume to say that I, wha hae complied wi’ a’ compliances, taen all manner of tests, abujred all that was to be abjured, and sworn a’ that was to be sworn, for these thirty years bye-past, sticking fast by my duty to the state through good report and bad report, shouldna hae something now and then to synd my mouth wi’ after sic drouthy wark? Eh?”

“But that costs just two pennies,” said Lord Turntippet; “and surely there’s no noble lord who would dare to say that I, who have complied with all obligations, taken all kinds of tests, renounced everything that needed to be renounced, and sworn every oath for these past thirty years, sticking to my duty to the state through good times and bad, shouldn’t have something now and then to wet my whistle after such thirsty work? Right?”

“It would be very unreasonable indeed, my lord,” replied the Marquis, “had we either thought that your lordship’s drought was quenchable, or observed anything stick in your throat that required washing down.”

“It would be quite unreasonable, my lord,” replied the Marquis, “if we had thought that your lordship’s thirst could be quenched, or noticed anything stuck in your throat that needed to be washed down.”

And so we close the scene on the privy council of that period.

And so we wrap up this part with the advisory council of that time.

CHAPTER VI.

For this are all these warriors come,
    To hear an idle tale;
And o’er our death-accustom’d arms
    Shall silly tears prevail?

HENRY MACKENZIE.

For this, all these warriors have come,
    To hear a pointless story;
And over our death-hardened weapons
    Will foolish tears get the best of us?

HENRY MACKENZIE.

On the evening of the day when the Lord Keeper and his daughter were saved from such imminent peril, two strangers were seated in the most private apartment of a small obscure inn, or rather alehouse, called the Tod’s Den, about three or four miles from the Castle of Ravenswood and as far from the ruinous tower of Wolf’s Crag, betwixt which two places it was situated.

On the evening after the Lord Keeper and his daughter were rescued from such a serious danger, two strangers were sitting in the most private room of a small, unknown inn, or more accurately, an alehouse, called the Tod’s Den. It was located about three or four miles from Ravenswood Castle and the crumbling tower of Wolf’s Crag, positioned between these two sites.

One of these strangers was about forty years of age, tall, and thin in the flanks, with an aquiline nose, dark penetrating eyes, and a shrewd but sinister cast of countenance. The other was about fifteen years younger, short, stout, ruddy-faced, and red-haired, with an open, resolute, and cheerful eye, to which careless and fearless freedom and inward daring gave fire and expression, notwithstanding its light grey colour. A stoup of wine (for in those days it was served out from the cask in pewter flagons) was placed on the table, and each had his quaigh or bicker before him. But there was little appearance of conviviality. With folded arms, and looks of anxious expectation, they eyed each other in silence, each wrapt in his own thoughts, and holding no communication with his neighbour. At length the younger broke silence by exclaiming: “What the foul fiend can detain the Master so long? He must have miscarried in his enterprise. Why did you dissuade me from going with him?”

One of these strangers was about forty years old, tall, and skinny, with a sharp nose, dark, intense eyes, and a clever but slightly menacing expression. The other one was around fifteen years younger, short, stout, with a ruddy face and red hair, sporting an open, determined, and cheerful gaze, which, despite being light grey, was full of a careless and fearless spirit. A jug of wine (because back then it was served from the barrel in pewter mugs) was set on the table, and each had a small drinking vessel in front of him. However, there was little sign of festivity. With their arms crossed and looks of anxious expectation, they silently studied each other, lost in their own thoughts and not communicating with one another. Finally, the younger one broke the silence by exclaiming, “What on earth is keeping the Master so long? He must have failed in his mission. Why did you talk me out of going with him?”

“One man is enough to right his own wrong,” said the taller and older personage; “we venture our lives for him in coming thus far on such an errand.”

“Just one person can fix his own mistakes,” said the taller and older figure; “we risk our lives for him by coming this far on this mission.”

“You are but a craven after all, Craigengelt,” answered the younger, “and that’s what many folk have thought you before now.”

“You're just a coward after all, Craigengelt,” replied the younger one, “and that's what a lot of people have thought of you before now.”

“But what none has dared to tell me,” said Craigengelt, laying his hand on the hilt of his sword; “and, but that I hold a hasty man no better than a fool, I would——” he paused for his companion’s answer.

“But what no one has dared to tell me,” said Craigengelt, putting his hand on the hilt of his sword; “and if I didn’t think a hasty man is no better than a fool, I would——” he paused for his companion’s response.

Would you?” said the other, coolly; “and why do you not then?”

Would you?” said the other, coolly; “and why don’t you?”

Craigengelt drew his cutlass an inch or two, and then returned it with violence into the scabbard—“Because there is a deeper stake to be played for than the lives of twenty hare-brained gowks like you.”

Craigengelt pulled out his cutlass a bit, then slammed it back into the scabbard—“Because there’s more at risk here than the lives of twenty reckless fools like you.”

“You are right there,” said his companion, “for if it were not that these forfeitures, and that last fine that the old driveller Turntippet is gaping for, and which, I dare say, is laid on by this time, have fairly driven me out of house and home, I were a coxcomb and a cuckoo to boot to trust your fair promises of getting me a commission in the Irish brigade. What have I to do with the Irish brigade? I am a plain Scotchman, as my father was before me; and my grand-aunt, Lady Girnington, cannot live for ever.”

“You're absolutely right,” his companion replied, “because if it weren't for these fines and that last penalty that the old fool Turntippet is eagerly waiting for, which I’m sure has been imposed by now, I would be a complete idiot to trust your sweet promises of securing me a commission in the Irish brigade. What do I have to do with the Irish brigade? I'm just a regular Scot, like my father before me; and my grand-aunt, Lady Girnington, won't be around forever.”

“Ay, Bucklaw,” observed Craigengelt, “but she may live for many a long day; and for your father, he had land and living, kept himself close from wadsetters and money-lenders, paid each man his due, and lived on his own.”

“Ay, Bucklaw,” said Craigengelt, “but she might live for many more years; and as for your father, he had land and a good living, stayed away from borrowing and money-lenders, paid everyone what he owed, and lived off his own means.”

“And whose fault is it that I have not done so too?” said Bucklaw—“whose but the devil’s and yours, and such-like as you, that have led me to the far end of a fair estate? And now I shall be obliged, I suppose, to shelter and shift about like yourself: live one week upon a line of secret intelligence from Saint Germains; another upon a report of a rising in the Highlands; get my breakfast and morning draught of sack from old Jacobite ladies, and give them locks of my old wig for the Chevalier’s hair; second my friend in his quarrel till he comes to the field, and then flinch from him lest so important a political agent should perish from the way. All this I must do for bread, besides calling myself a captain!”

“And whose fault is it that I haven’t done the same?” said Bucklaw. “Whose but the devil’s and yours, and people like you, who have led me to the edge of a nice estate? And now, I guess I’ll have to hide and move around like you do: live one week off some secret info from Saint Germains; the next week on a rumor about a revolt in the Highlands; get my breakfast and a morning drink of sack from old Jacobite ladies, and trade them locks of my old wig for the Chevalier’s hair; support my friend in his fight until we get to the battlefield, and then back out so that this crucial political player doesn’t end up dead on the way. I’ve got to do all this for food, and on top of that, I have to call myself a captain!”

“You think you are making a fine speech now,” said Craigengelt, “and showing much wit at my expense. Is starving or hanging better than the life I am obliged to lead, because the present fortunes of the king cannot sufficiently support his envoys?”

“You think you’re giving a great speech now,” said Craigengelt, “and showing a lot of cleverness at my expense. Is starving or being hanged better than the life I have to live, just because the king's current fortunes can’t adequately support his envoys?”

“Starving is honester, Craigengelt, and hanging is like to be the end on’t. But what you mean to make of this poor fellow Ravenswood, I know not. He has no money left, any more than I; his lands are all pawned and pledged, and the interest eats up the rents, and is not satisfied, and what do you hope to make by meddling in his affairs?”

“Starving is more honest, Craigengelt, and hanging seems likely to be the end of it. But I have no idea what you plan to do with this poor guy Ravenswood. He has no money left, just like me; his lands are all mortgaged and pledged, and the interest consumes the rents and is still not satisfied. What do you hope to gain by getting involved in his business?”

“Content yourself, Bucklaw; I know my business,” replied Craigengelt. “Besides that his name, and his father’s services in 1689, will make such an acquisition sound well both at Versailles and Saint Germains, you will also please be informed that the Master of Ravenswood is a very different kind of a young fellow from you. He has parts and address, as well as courage and talents, and will present himself abroad like a young man of head as well as heart, who knows something more than the speed of a horse or the flight of a hawk. I have lost credit of late, by bringing over no one that had sense to know more than how to unharbour a stag, or take and reclaim an eyas. The Master has education, sense, and penetration.”

“Calm down, Bucklaw; I know what I’m doing,” replied Craigengelt. “Not only does his name and his father’s contributions in 1689 carry weight at both Versailles and Saint Germain, but you should also know that the Master of Ravenswood is nothing like you. He’s got intelligence and charm, as well as bravery and skills, and he’ll present himself confidently, like a young man with both brains and heart, who understands more than just how fast a horse can run or how a hawk can fly. I’ve lost credibility lately by only bringing over people who know how to chase a deer or capture a hawk. The Master is educated, perceptive, and insightful.”

“And yet is not wise enough to escape the tricks of a kidnapper, Craigengelt?” replied the younger man. “But don’t be angry; you know you will not fight, and so it is as well to leave your hilt in peace and quiet, and tell me in sober guise how you drew the Master into your confidence?”

“And yet you’re not smart enough to avoid the tricks of a kidnapper, Craigengelt?” replied the younger man. “But don’t get mad; you know you won’t fight, so it’s better to keep your sword out of it and tell me honestly how you got the Master to trust you?”

“By flattering his love of vengeance, Bucklaw,” answered Craigengelt. “He has always distrusted me; but I watched my time, and struck while his temper was red-hot with the sense of insult and of wrong. He goes now to expostulate, as he says, and perhaps thinks, with Sir William Ashton. I say, that if they meet, and the lawyer puts him to his defence, the Master will kill him; for he had that sparkle in his eye which never deceives you when you would read a man’s purpose. At any rate, he will give him such a bullying as will be construed into an assault on a privy councillor; so there will be a total breach betwixt him and government. Scotland will be too hot for him; France will gain him; and we will all set sail together in the French brig ‘L’Espoir,’ which is hovering for us off Eyemouth.”

“By playing into his desire for revenge, Bucklaw,” Craigengelt replied. “He has always been suspicious of me; but I waited for the right moment and struck when he was furious from feeling insulted and wronged. He’s going now to confront, as he puts it, Sir William Ashton. I believe that if they meet and the lawyer puts him on the spot, the Master will kill him; he had that look in his eye that never lies when you’re trying to figure out a man's intentions. At the very least, he will intimidate him so much that it could be seen as an attack on a privy councillor; that would lead to a complete breakdown in relations with the government. Scotland will be too dangerous for him; he’ll head to France, and we’ll all set sail together on the French brig ‘L’Espoir,’ which is waiting for us off Eyemouth.”

“Content am I,” said Bucklaw; “Scotland has little left that I care about; and if carrying the Master with us will get us a better reception in France, why, so be it, a God’s name. I doubt our own merits will procure us slender preferment; and I trust he will send a ball through the Keeper’s head before he joins us. One or two of these scoundrel statesmen should be shot once a year, just to keep the others on their good behaviour.”

“I'm content,” said Bucklaw; “Scotland has very little left that I care about; and if bringing the Master with us will get us a better welcome in France, then so be it, for heaven's sake. I doubt our own abilities will get us much of an advancement; and I hope he’ll take out the Keeper before he joins us. One or two of these corrupt politicians should be eliminated every year, just to keep the rest in line.”

“That is very true,” replied Craigengelt; “and it reminds me that I must go and see that our horses have been fed and are in readiness; for, should such deed be done, it will be no time for grass to grow beneath their heels.” He proceeded as far as the door, then turned back with a look of earnestness, and said to Bucklaw: “Whatever should come of this business, I am sure you will do me the justice to remember that I said nothing to the Master which could imply my accession to any act of violence which he may take it into his head to commit.”

"That's very true," replied Craigengelt. "And it makes me think that I need to go check on the horses to make sure they've been fed and are ready to go because if something happens, there won't be any time to waste." He walked to the door, then turned back with a serious expression and said to Bucklaw, "Whatever happens with this situation, I hope you’ll remember that I didn’t say anything to the Master that could suggest I agreed to any violent actions he might consider."

“No, no, not a single word like accession,” replied Bucklaw; “you know too well the risk belonging to these two terrible words, ‘art and part.’” Then, as if to himself, he recited the following lines:

“No, no, not a single word like accession,” Bucklaw replied; “you know all too well the risk that comes with these two awful words, ‘art and part.’” Then, almost to himself, he recited the following lines:

“The dial spoke not, but it made shrewd signs,
And pointed full upon the stroke of murder.

“The dial didn't speak, but it gave clever signals,
And pointed directly to the moment of murder.

“What is that you are talking to yourself?” said Craigengelt, turning back with some anxiety.

“What are you talking to yourself about?” Craigengelt said, turning back with a bit of anxiety.

“Nothing, only two lines I have heard upon the stage,” replied his companion.

“Nothing, just two lines I've heard on stage,” replied his companion.

“Bucklaw,” said Craigengelt, “I sometimes think you should have been a stage-player yourself; all is fancy and frolic with you.”

“Bucklaw,” said Craigengelt, “I sometimes think you should have been an actor yourself; everything is just fun and games for you.”

“I have often thought so myself,” said Bucklaw. “I believe it would be safer than acting with you in the Fatal Conspiracy. But away, play your own part, and look after the horses like a groom as you are. A play-actor—a stage-player!” he repeated to himself; “that would have deserved a stab, but that Craigengelt’s a coward. And yet I should like the profession well enough. Stay, let me see; ay, I would come out in Alexander:

“I’ve thought that myself often,” said Bucklaw. “I think it’d be safer than being involved with you in the Fatal Conspiracy. But go on, do your own thing, and take care of the horses like the stablehand you are. A performer—a stage actor!” he repeated to himself; “that would deserve a stab, but Craigengelt’s a coward. Still, I’d actually like that job. Wait, let me think; yes, I would want to play Alexander:

Thus from the grave I rise to save my love,
Draw all your swords, and quick as lightning move.
When I rush on, sure none will dare to stay:
’Tis love commands, and glory leads the way.”

Thus from the grave I rise to save my love,
Draw all your swords, and move as fast as lightning.
When I rush in, no one will dare to stay:
It’s love that commands, and glory that leads the way.”

As with a voice of thunder, and his hand upon his sword, Bucklaw repeated the ranting couplets of poor Lee, Craigengelt re-entered with a face of alarm.

As if he had a voice like thunder and his hand on his sword, Bucklaw repeated the crazy couplets of poor Lee, and Craigengelt came back in with a look of fear.

“We are undone, Bucklaw! The Master’s led horse has cast himself over his halter in the stable, and is dead lame. His hackney will be set up with the day’s work, and now he has no fresh horse; he will never get off.”

“We’re in trouble, Bucklaw! The Master’s led horse has thrown himself over his halter in the stable and is now really lame. His hackney will be worn out from today’s work, and now he has no fresh horse; he’s not going anywhere.”

“Egad, there will be no moving with the speed of lightning this bout,” said Bucklaw, drily. “But stay, you can give him yours.”

“Wow, there won’t be any lightning-speed action in this fight,” Bucklaw said dryly. “But wait, you can give him yours.”

“What! and be taken myself? I thank you for the proposal,” said Craigengelt.

“What! And let myself be captured? I appreciate the offer,” said Craigengelt.

“Why,” replied Bucklaw, “if the Lord Keeper should have met with a mischance, which for my part I cannot suppose, for the Master is not the lad to shoot an old and unarmed man—but if there should have been a fray at the Castle, you are neither art not part in it, you know, so have nothing to fear.”

“Why,” replied Bucklaw, “if the Lord Keeper had an accident, which I honestly can’t imagine, because the Master isn’t the kind of guy to shoot an old, unarmed man—but if there was a fight at the Castle, you’re not involved in it at all, so you have nothing to worry about.”

“True, true,” answered the other, with embarrassment; “but consider my commission from Saint Germains.”

“Yeah, that's true,” the other replied, feeling awkward; “but think about my assignment from Saint Germains.”

“Which many men think is a commission of your own making, noble Captain. Well, if you will not give him your horse, why, d——n it, he must have mine.”

“Which a lot of guys think is a task you created yourself, noble Captain. Well, if you won't give him your horse, then damn it, he must take mine.”

“Yours?” said Craigengelt.

"Yours?" asked Craigengelt.

“Ay, mine,” repeated Bucklaw; “it shall never be said that I agreed to back a gentleman in a little affair of honour, and neither helped him on with it nor off from it.”

“Ay, mine,” repeated Bucklaw; “it will never be said that I agreed to support a gentleman in a minor matter of honor, and didn’t either help him with it or get him out of it.”

“You will give him your horse? and have you considered the loss?”

“You're going to give him your horse? Have you thought about what you'll lose?”

“Loss! why, Grey Gilbert cost me twenty Jacobuses, that’s true; but then his hackney is worth something, and his Black Moor is worth twice as much were he sound, and I know how to handle him. Take a fat sucking mastiff whelp, flay and bowel him, stuff the body full of black and grey snails, roast a reasonable time, and baste with oil of spikenard, saffron, cinnamon, and honey, anoint with the dripping, working it in——”

“Loss! Sure, Grey Gilbert cost me twenty Jacobuses, and that’s true; but his horse is worth something, and his Black Moor is worth twice as much if he were sound, and I know how to handle him. Take a fat, sucking mastiff puppy, skin and gut him, stuff the body with black and grey snails, roast for a decent amount of time, and baste with oil of spikenard, saffron, cinnamon, and honey, then coat with the drippings, working it in——”

“Yes, Bucklaw; but in the mean while, before the sprain is cured, nay, before the whelp is roasted, you will be caught and hung. Depend on it, the chase will be hard after Ravenswood. I wish we had made our place of rendezvous nearer to the coast.”

“Yes, Bucklaw; but in the meantime, before the sprain is healed, and before the pup is cooked, you’ll get caught and hanged. Trust me, the pursuit will be tough after Ravenswood. I wish we had chosen a meeting spot closer to the coast.”

“On my faith, then,” said Bucklaw, “I had best go off just now, and leave my horse for him. Stay—stay, he comes: I hear a horse’s feet.”

“Honestly, then,” said Bucklaw, “I should really head out right now and leave my horse for him. Wait—wait, he's coming: I hear a horse’s hooves.”

“Are you sure there is only one?” said Craigengelt. “I fear there is a chase; I think I hear three or four galloping together. I am sure I hear more horses than one.”

“Are you sure there’s only one?” said Craigengelt. “I’m worried there’s a chase; I think I hear three or four galloping together. I definitely hear more horses than one.”

“Pooh, pooh, it is the wench of the house clattering to the well in her pattens. By my faith, Captain, you should give up both your captainship and your secret service, for you are as easily scared as a wild goose. But here comes the Master alone, and looking as gloomy as a night in November.”

“Ugh, it's just the servant girl heading to the well in her wooden shoes. Honestly, Captain, you should give up both your captaincy and your secret job, because you’re as easily frightened as a wild goose. But here comes the Master by himself, looking as gloomy as a November night.”

The Master of Ravenswood entered the room accordingly, his cloak muffled around him, his arms folded, his looks stern, and at the same time dejected. He flung his cloak from him as he entered, threw himself upon a chair, and appeared sunk in a profound reverie.

The Master of Ravenswood walked into the room, his cloak wrapped tightly around him, his arms crossed, his expression serious yet sad. He tossed his cloak aside as he entered, dropped into a chair, and seemed lost in deep thought.

“What has happened? What have you done?” was hastily demanded by Craigengelt and Bucklaw in the same moment.

“What’s happened? What did you do?” Craigengelt and Bucklaw both asked quickly at the same time.

“Nothing!” was the short and sullen answer.

“Nothing!” was the brief and moody response.

“Nothing! and left us, determined to call the old villain to account for all the injuries that you, we, and the country have received at his hand? Have you seen him?”

“Nothing! And you just left us, ready to hold that old villain responsible for all the harm he has caused to you, to us, and to the country? Have you seen him?”

“I have,” replied the Master of Ravenswood.

“I have,” replied the Master of Ravenswood.

“Seen him—and come away without settling scores which have been so long due?” said Bucklaw; “I would not have expected that at the hand of the Master of Ravenswood.”

“Have you seen him—and walked away without settling scores that have been overdue for so long?” said Bucklaw; “I wouldn’t have expected that from the Master of Ravenswood.”

“No matter what you expected,” replied Ravenswood; “it is not to you, sir, that I shall be disposed to render any reason for my conduct.”

“No matter what you expected,” replied Ravenswood, “I’m not going to give you any explanation for my actions, sir.”

“Patience, Bucklaw,” said Craigengelt, interrupting his companion, who seemed about to make an angry reply. “The Master has been interrupted in his purpose by some accident; but he must excuse the anxious curiosity of friends who are devoted to his cause like you and me.”

“Hang in there, Bucklaw,” Craigengelt said, cutting off his friend, who looked like he was about to respond angrily. “The Master has been sidetracked by some unforeseen event, but he has to understand the concern from friends like you and me who are dedicated to his cause.”

“Friends, Captain Craigengelt!” retorted Ravenswood, haughtily; “I am ignorant what familiarity passed betwixt us to entitle you to use that expression. I think our friendship amounts to this, that we agreed to leave Scotland together so soon as I should have visited the alienated mansion of my fathers, and had an interview with its present possessor—I will not call him proprietor.”

“Friends, Captain Craigengelt!” Ravenswood shot back, arrogantly. “I'm not sure what kind of familiarity we have that gives you the right to say that. I believe our friendship is based on the fact that we decided to leave Scotland together as soon as I visited my family's estranged estate and met with its current owner—I won’t call him the proprietor.”

“Very true, Master,” answered Bucklaw; “and as we thought you had in mind to do something to put your neck in jeopardy, Craigie and I very courteously agreed to tarry for you, although ours might run some risk in consequence. As to Craigie, indeed, it does not very much signify: he had gallows written on his brow in the hour of his birth; but I should not like to discredit my parentage by coming to such an end in another man’s cause.”

“That's very true, Master,” Bucklaw replied. “We figured you were planning to do something that could get you in trouble, so Craigie and I kindly decided to wait for you, even though it might put us at some risk. As for Craigie, it doesn't really matter for him: he was destined for the gallows from the moment he was born. But I wouldn't want to tarnish my family's name by dying for someone else's cause.”

“Gentlemen,” said the Master of Ravenswood, “I am sorry if I have occasioned you any inconvenience, but I must claim the right of judging what is best for my own affairs, without rendering explanations to any one. I have altered my mind, and do not design to leave the country this season.”

“Gentlemen,” said the Master of Ravenswood, “I apologize if I have caused you any trouble, but I have to assert my right to decide what’s best for my own affairs without having to explain myself to anyone. I’ve changed my mind and won’t be leaving the country this season.”

“Not to leave the country, Master!” exclaimed Craigengelt. “Not to go over, after all the trouble and expense I have incurred—after all the risk of discovery, and the expense of freight and demurrage!”

“Not to leave the country, Master!” Craigengelt exclaimed. “Not to go after everything I've gone through—the trouble and cost I've incurred—after all the risk of getting caught, and the expense of shipping and delays!”

“Sir,” replied the Master of Ravenswood, “when I designed to leave this country in this haste, I made use of your obliging offer to procure me means of conveyance; but I do not recollect that I pledged myself to go off, if I found occasion to alter my mind. For your trouble on my account, I am sorry, and I thank you; your expense,” he added, putting his hand into his pocket, “admits a more solid compensation: freight and demurrage are matters with which I am unacquainted, Captain Craigengelt, but take my purse and pay yourself according to your own conscience.” And accordingly he tendered a purse with some gold in it to the soi-disant captain.

“Sir,” replied the Master of Ravenswood, “when I planned to leave this country in such a hurry, I accepted your generous offer to arrange transportation for me; however, I don’t recall committing to going if I found a reason to change my mind. I apologize for the trouble caused on my behalf, and I appreciate it; your efforts,” he said, reaching into his pocket, “deserve a more substantial payment. Freight and delays are things I’m not familiar with, Captain Craigengelt, but take my purse and compensate yourself as you see fit.” With that, he offered a purse filled with gold to the self-proclaimed captain.

But here Bucklaw interposed in his turn. “Your fingers, Craigie, seem to itch for that same piece of green network,” said he; “but I make my vow to God, that if they offer to close upon it, I will chop them off with my whinger. Since the Master has changed his mind, I suppose we need stay here no longer; but in the first place I beg leave to tell him——”

But Bucklaw jumped in. “Your fingers, Craigie, look like they’re itching to grab that piece of green net,” he said; “but I swear to God, if you try to close in on it, I’ll cut your hands off with my knife. Since the Master has changed his mind, I guess we don’t need to stay here any longer; but first, I’d like to tell him——”

“Tell him anything you will,” said Craigengelt, “if you will first allow me to state the inconveniences to which he will expose himself by quitting our society, to remind him of the obstacles to his remaining here, and of the difficulties attending his proper introduction at Versailles and Saint Germains without the countenance of those who have established useful connexions.”

“Say whatever you want to him,” Craigengelt said, “but first let me point out the drawbacks he’ll face by leaving our group, remind him of the challenges of staying here, and the problems that come with being properly introduced at Versailles and Saint Germains without the support of those who have built valuable connections.”

“Besides forfeiting the friendship,” said Bucklaw, “of at least one man of spirit and honour.”

“Besides losing the friendship,” said Bucklaw, “of at least one person of character and integrity.”

“Gentlemen,” said Ravenswood, “permit me once more to assure you that you have been pleased to attach to our temporary connexion more importance than I ever meant that it should have. When I repair to foreign courts, I shall not need the introduction of an intriguing adventurer, nor is it necessary for me to set value on the friendship of a hot-headed bully.” With these words, and without waiting for an answer, he left the apartment, remounted his horse, and was heard to ride off.

“Gentlemen,” said Ravenswood, “let me assure you once again that you’ve given more significance to our temporary connection than I ever intended. When I go to foreign courts, I won’t need the introduction of a scheming outsider, nor do I need to rely on the friendship of a hot-headed bully.” With that, and without waiting for a response, he left the room, got back on his horse, and rode away.

“Mortbleu!” said Captain Craigengelt, “my recruit is lost!”

“Darn it!” said Captain Craigengelt, “my recruit is missing!”

“Ay, Captain,” said Bucklaw, “the salmon is off with hook and all. But I will after him, for I have had more of his insolence than I can well digest.”

“Ay, Captain,” said Bucklaw, “the salmon is gone with the hook and everything. But I’ll go after him, because I’ve put up with more of his nonsense than I can handle.”

Craigengelt offered to accompany him; but Bucklaw replied: “No, no, Captain, keep you the check of the chimney-nook till I come back; it’s good sleeping in a haill skin.

Craigengelt offered to go with him; but Bucklaw replied, “No, no, Captain, stay by the fireplace until I return; it’s nice to sleep in a warm skin.”

Little kens the auld wife that sits by the fire,
How cauld the wind blaws in hurle-burle swire.”

Little knows the old woman sitting by the fire,
How cold the wind blows in wild, swirling streets.

And singing as he went, he left the apartment.

And singing as he walked out, he left the apartment.

CHAPTER VII.

Now, Billy Berwick, keep good heart,
    And of thy talking let me be;
But if thou art a man, as I am sure thou art,
    Come over the dike and fight with me.

Old Ballad.

Now, Billy Berwick, stay strong,
    And let me hear you talk;
But if you’re a man, as I’m sure you are,
    Come over the ditch and fight me.

Old Ballad.

The Master of Ravenswood had mounted the ambling hackney which he before rode, on finding the accident which had happened to his led horse, and, for the animal’s ease, was proceeding at a slow pace from the Tod’s Den towards his old tower of Wolf’s Crag, when he heard the galloping of a horse behind him, and, looking back, perceived that he was pursued by young Bucklaw, who had been delayed a few minutes in the pursuit by the irresistable temptation of giving the hostler at the Tod’s Den some recipe for treating the lame horse. This brief delay he had made up by hard galloping, and now overtook the Master where the road traversed a waste moor. “Halt, sir,” cried Bucklaw; “I am no political agent—no Captain Craigengelt, whose life is too important to be hazarded in defence of his honour. I am Frank Hayston of Bucklaw, and no man injures me by word, deed, sign, or look, but he must render me an account of it.”

The Master of Ravenswood had gotten on the calm horse he used to ride after discovering what had happened to his led horse. To make the animal more comfortable, he was moving slowly from Tod’s Den toward his old tower at Wolf’s Crag when he heard a horse galloping behind him. Looking back, he saw that he was being chased by young Bucklaw, who had been briefly delayed in his pursuit because he couldn’t resist giving the hostler at Tod’s Den a tip for treating the lame horse. He made up for that short delay with some fast riding and caught up to the Master where the road crossed a barren moor. “Stop, sir,” shouted Bucklaw; “I’m not a political agent—no Captain Craigengelt, whose life is too valuable to risk for his honor. I’m Frank Hayston of Bucklaw, and no one who wrongs me by word, action, sign, or look can do so without facing the consequences.”

“This is all very well, Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw,” replied the Master of Ravenswood, in a tone the most calm and indifferent; “but I have no quarrel with you, and desire to have none. Our roads homeward, as well as our roads through life, lie in different directions; there is no occasion for us crossing each other.”

“This is all fine, Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw,” replied the Master of Ravenswood, in a tone that was calm and indifferent; “but I have no issue with you and I don’t want to have one. Our paths home, as well as our paths through life, go in different directions; there’s no reason for us to cross each other.”

“Is there not?” said Bucklaw, impetuously. “By Heaven! but I say that there is, though: you called us intriguing adventurers.”

“Is there not?” said Bucklaw, impulsively. “By Heaven! But I say there is, though: you called us scheming adventurers.”

“Be correct in your recollection, Mr. Hayston; it was to your companion only I applied that epithet, and you know him to be no better.”

“Make sure you remember correctly, Mr. Hayston; I only described your companion with that term, and you know he’s no better.”

“And what then? He was my companion for the time, and no man shall insult my companion, right or wrong, while he is in my company.”

“And what then? He was my friend for that time, and no one is going to insult my friend, whether he's right or wrong, while he’s with me.”

“Then, Mr. Hayston,” replied Ravenswood, with the same composure, “you should choose your society better, or you are like to have much work in your capacity of their champion. Go home, sir; sleep, and have more reason in your wrath to-morrow.”

“Then, Mr. Hayston,” replied Ravenswood, maintaining his calm demeanor, “you should pick your friends more wisely, or you'll have a lot of work trying to defend them. Go home, sir; get some sleep, and have more reason for your anger tomorrow.”

“Not so, Master, you have mistaken your man; high airs and wise saws shall not carry it off thus. Besides, you termed me bully, and you shall retract the word before we part.”

“Not so, Master, you’ve got the wrong guy; acting all high and mighty and dropping wise sayings won’t get you out of this. Besides, you called me a bully, and you need to take that back before we leave.”

“Faith, scarcely,” said Ravenswood, “unless you show me better reason for thinking myself mistaken than you are now producing.”

“Faith, hardly,” said Ravenswood, “unless you give me a better reason to believe I’m wrong than what you're presenting right now.”

“Then, Master,” said Bucklaw, “though I should be sorry to offer it to a man of your quality, if you will not justify your incivility, or retract it, or name a place of meeting, you must here undergo the hard word and the hard blow.”

“Then, Master,” said Bucklaw, “even though I’d hate to put this to a man of your stature, if you won’t explain your rudeness, take it back, or suggest a place to meet, you’ll have to face the harsh words and the harsh blow here.”

“Neither will be necessary,” said Ravenswood; “I am satisfied with what I have done to avoid an affair with you. If you are serious, this place will serve as well as another.”

“Neither will be necessary,” said Ravenswood; “I’m good with what I’ve done to steer clear of an issue with you. If you’re serious, this place will work just as well as any other.”

“Dismount then, and draw,” said Bucklaw, setting him an example. “I always thought and said you were a pretty man; I should be sorry to report you otherwise.”

“Get off your horse and fight,” said Bucklaw, showing him how it’s done. “I’ve always thought you were a good-looking guy; I’d hate to say anything different.”

“You shall have no reason, sir,” said Ravenswood, alighting, and putting himself into a posture of defence.

“You won’t have any reason, sir,” said Ravenswood, getting off and taking a defensive stance.

Their swords crossed, and the combat commenced with great spirit on the part of Bucklaw, who was well accustomed to affairs of the kind, and distinguished by address and dexterity at his weapon. In the present case, however, he did not use his skill to advantage; for, having lost temper at the cool and contemptuous manner in which the Master of Ravenswood had long refused, and at length granted, him satisfaction, and urged by his impatience, he adopted the part of an assailant with inconsiderate eagerness. The Master, with equal skill, and much greater composure, remained chiefly on the defensive, and even declined to avail himself of one or two advantages afforded him by the eagerness of his adversary. At length, in a desperate lunge, which he followed with an attempt to close, Bucklaw’s foot slipped, and he fell on the short grassy turf on which they were fighting. “Take your life, sir,” said the Master of Ravenswood, “and mend it if you can.”

Their swords clashed, and the fight started with great enthusiasm from Bucklaw, who was used to these kinds of conflicts and known for his skill and precision with a weapon. However, this time he didn’t use his abilities effectively; frustrated by the calm and dismissive way the Master of Ravenswood had long refused to engage and had finally agreed to the duel, he let his impatience get the better of him and rushed in as an attacker recklessly. The Master, showing equal skill but much more composure, mainly played defensively and even chose not to take advantage of a couple of openings created by Bucklaw’s eagerness. Eventually, in a reckless lunge followed by an attempt to close in, Bucklaw slipped and fell onto the short grassy ground where they were fighting. “Take your life, sir,” said the Master of Ravenswood, “and mend it if you can.”

“It would be but a cobbled piece of work, I fear,” said Bucklaw, rising slowly and gathering up his sword, much less disconcerted with the issue of the combat than could have been expected from the impetuosity of his temper. “I thank you for my life, Master,” he pursued. “There is my hand; I bear no ill-will to you, either for my bad luck or your better swordsmanship.”

“It would be just a messed-up job, I’m afraid,” said Bucklaw, standing up slowly and picking up his sword, much less upset about the outcome of the fight than one might expect from his fiery personality. “I thank you for my life, Master,” he continued. “Here’s my hand; I hold no grudge against you for my bad luck or your superior sword skills.”

The Master looked steadily at him for an instant, then extended his hand to him. “Bucklaw,” he said, “you are a generous fellow, and I have done you wrong. I heartily ask your pardon for the expression which offended you; it was hastily and incautiously uttered, and I am convinced it is totally misapplied.”

The Master looked at him for a moment and then reached out his hand. “Bucklaw,” he said, “you’re a good guy, and I’ve wronged you. I sincerely apologize for the comment that upset you; it was said in haste and without thought, and I believe it was completely misplaced.”

“Are you indeed, Master?” said Bucklaw, his face resuming at once its natural expression of light-hearted carelessness and audacity; “that is more than I expected of you; for, Master, men say you are not ready to retract your opinion and your language.”

“Are you really, Master?” Bucklaw replied, his face quickly returning to its usual look of carefree boldness and cheekiness. “That’s more than I expected from you, because, Master, people say you’re not about to back down from your opinion and your words.”

“Not when I have well considered them,” said the Master.

“Not when I've thought them through,” said the Master.

“Then you are a little wiser than I am, for I always give my friend satisfaction first, and explanation afterwards. If one of us falls, all accounts are settled; if not, men are never so ready for peace as after war. But what does that bawling brat of a boy want?” said Bucklaw. “I wish to Heaven he had come a few minutes sooner! and yet it must have been ended some time, and perhaps this way is as well as any other.”

“Then you’re a bit smarter than I am, because I always make my friend happy first and explain later. If one of us goes down, all bets are off; if not, people are never more eager for peace than after a fight. But what does that loud, annoying kid want?” said Bucklaw. “I wish he had shown up a few minutes earlier! Then again, it had to end eventually, and maybe this way is just as good as any other.”

As he spoke, the boy he mentioned came up, cudgelling an ass, on which he was mounted, to the top of its speed, and sending, like one of Ossian’s heroes, his voice before him: “Gentlemen—gentlemen, save yourselves! for the gudewife bade us tell ye there were folk in her house had taen Captain Craigengelt, and were seeking for Bucklaw, and that ye behoved to ride for it.”

As he talked, the boy he mentioned rode up, whipping a donkey he was on to go as fast as it could, calling out ahead like one of Ossian’s heroes: “Gentlemen—gentlemen, save yourselves! The lady asked us to tell you there are people in her house who have taken Captain Craigengelt, and they're looking for Bucklaw, and you all need to ride out of here.”

“By my faith, and that’s very true, my man” said Bucklaw; “and there’s a silver sixpence for your news, and I would give any man twice as much would tell me which way I should ride.”

“Honestly, that’s really true, my man,” said Bucklaw; “and here’s a silver sixpence for your news, and I’d pay anyone twice that to tell me which way I should go.”

“That will I, Bucklaw,” said Ravenswood; “ride home to Wolf’s Crag with me. There are places in the old tower where you might lie hid, were a thousand men to seek you.”

“Sure, Bucklaw,” said Ravenswood; “come ride home to Wolf’s Crag with me. There are spots in the old tower where you could hide, even if a thousand men were looking for you.”

“But that will bring you into trouble yourself, Master; and unless you be in the Jacobite scrape already, it is quite needless for me to drag you in.”

“But that will get you into trouble as well, Master; and unless you’re already in the Jacobite mess, there's really no reason for me to drag you into it.”

“Not a whit; I have nothing to fear.”

“Not at all; I have nothing to worry about.”

“Then I will ride with you blythely, for, to say the truth, I do not know the rendezvous that Craigie was to guide us to this night; and I am sure that, if he is taken, he will tell all the truth of me, and twenty lies of you, in order to save himself from the withie.”

“Then I will ride with you happily, because honestly, I don’t know the meeting place that Craigie was supposed to take us to tonight; and I’m sure that if he gets caught, he will tell the whole truth about me and a bunch of lies about you to save himself from trouble.”

They mounted and rode off in company accordingly, striking off the ordinary road, and holding their way by wild moorish unfrequented paths, with which the gentlemen were well acquainted from the exercise of the chase, but through which others would have had much difficulty in tracing their course. They rode for some time in silence, making such haste as the condition of Ravenswood’s horse permitted, until night having gradually closed around them, they discontinued their speed, both from the difficulty of discovering their path, and from the hope that they were beyond the reach of pursuit or observation.

They climbed onto their horses and rode off together, veering away from the main road and following wild, seldom-used paths that the gentlemen knew well from hunting, though others would have struggled to find their way. They rode in silence for a while, going as fast as Ravenswood's horse could manage, until nightfall surrounded them. They slowed down, both because it was hard to see the path ahead and because they hoped they were out of reach of anyone who might be chasing them.

“And now that we have drawn bridle a bit,” said Bucklaw, “I would fain ask you a question, Master.”

“And now that we’ve slowed down a bit,” said Bucklaw, “I’d like to ask you a question, Master.”

“Ask and welcome,” said Ravenswood, “but forgive not answering it, unless I think proper.”

“Ask and I’ll listen,” said Ravenswood, “but don’t expect an answer unless I feel it’s right to give one.”

“Well, it is simply this,” answered his late antagonist “What, in the name of old Sathan, could make you, who stand so highly on your reputation, think for a moment of drawing up with such a rogue as Craigengelt, and such a scapegrace as folk call Bucklaw?”

“Well, it’s just this,” replied his recent opponent. “What on earth could make you, someone with such a strong reputation, even think about teaming up with a scoundrel like Craigengelt and a troublemaker like everyone calls Bucklaw?”

“Simply, because I was desperate, and sought desperate associates.”

“Simply put, I was desperate and looked for desperate friends.”

“And what made you break off from us at the nearest?” again demanded Bucklaw.

“And what made you leave us at the nearest?” Bucklaw asked again.

“Because I had changed my mind,” said the Master, “and renounced my enterprise, at least for the present. And now that I have answered your questions fairly and frankly, tell me what makes you associate with Craigengelt, so much beneath you both in birth and in spirit?”

“Because I’ve changed my mind,” said the Master, “and I’ve given up on my plans, at least for now. Now that I’ve answered your questions honestly and directly, tell me why you choose to associate with Craigengelt, who is so much beneath you both in background and in character?”

“In plain terms,” answered Bucklaw, “because I am a fool, who have gambled away my land in these times. My grand-aunt, Lady Girnington, has taen a new tack of life, I think, and I could only hope to get something by a change of government. Craigie was a sort of gambling acquaintance; he saw my condition, and, as the devil is always at one’s elbow, told me fifty lies about his credentials from Versailles, and his interest at Saint Germains, promised me a captain’s commission at Paris, and I have been ass enough to put my thumb under his belt. I dare say, by this time, he has told a dozen pretty stories of me to the government. And this is what I have got by wine, women, and dice, cocks, dogs, and horses.”

"In simple terms," replied Bucklaw, "I'm a fool who has gambled away my land during these times. My grand-aunt, Lady Girnington, has changed her way of life, I think, and I could only hope to gain something through a change in government. Craigie was a sort of gambling buddy; he noticed my situation and, as luck would have it, fed me a bunch of lies about his connections in Versailles and his influence in Saint Germains, promised me a captain's commission in Paris, and I was dumb enough to fall for it. I'm sure by now, he's spun a dozen pretty tales about me to the government. And this is what I've gained from wine, women, dice, roosters, dogs, and horses."

“Yes, Bucklaw,” said the Master, “you have indeed nourished in your bosom the snakes that are now stinging you.”

“Yes, Bucklaw,” said the Master, “you have indeed nurtured the snakes in your embrace that are now biting you.”

“That’s home as well as true, Master,” replied his companion; “but, by your leave, you have nursed in your bosom one great goodly snake that has swallowed all the rest, and is as sure to devour you as my half-dozen are to make a meal on all that’s left of Bucklaw, which is but what lies between bonnet and boot-heel.”

“That’s home as well as true, Master,” replied his companion; “but, if you don't mind me saying, you’ve been caring for one big snake that has consumed everything else, and it will surely take you down just like my half-dozen will feast on whatever is left of Bucklaw, which is just what’s between the hat and the heel of your boot.”

“I must not,” answered the Master of Ravenswood, “challenge the freedom of speech in which I have set example. What, to speak without a metaphor, do you call this monstrous passion which you charge me with fostering?”

“I must not,” replied the Master of Ravenswood, “question the freedom of speech that I have modeled. What, to put it simply, do you call this outrageous passion that you accuse me of encouraging?”

“Revenge, my good sir—revenge; which, if it be as gentle manlike a sin as wine and wassail, with their et cæteras, is equally unchristian, and not so bloodless. It is better breaking a park-pale to watch a doe or damsel than to shoot an old man.”

“Revenge, my good sir—revenge; which, if it is as benign a sin as wine and merriment, along with their et cæteras, is still just as unchristian and not so harmless. It is better to break down a fence to observe a deer or a girl than to harm an old man.”

“I deny the purpose,” said the Master of Ravenswood. “On my soul, I had no such intention; I meant but to confront the oppressor ere I left my native land, and upbraid him with his tyranny and its consequences. I would have stated my wrongs so that they would have shaken his soul within him.”

“I deny the purpose,” said the Master of Ravenswood. “Honestly, I had no such intention; I only meant to confront the oppressor before I left my homeland and call him out for his tyranny and its consequences. I wanted to lay out my grievances in a way that would deeply affect him.”

“Yes,” answered Bucklaw, “and he would have collared you, and cried ‘help,’ and then you would have shaken the soul out of him, I suppose. Your very look and manner would have frightened the old man to death.”

“Yeah,” replied Bucklaw, “and he would have grabbed you and yelled ‘help,’ and then you would have scared the life out of him, I guess. Just your look and attitude would have terrified the old man to death.”

“Consider the provocation,” answered Ravenswood—“consider the ruin and death procured and caused by his hard-hearted cruelty—an ancient house destroyed, an affectionate father murdered! Why, in our old Scottish days, he that sat quiet under such wrongs would have been held neither fit to back a friend nor face a foe.”

“Think about the provocation,” Ravenswood replied. “Think about the destruction and death caused by his cold-hearted cruelty—an ancient family ruined, a loving father killed! Back in our old Scottish days, anyone who remained silent under such wrongs wouldn't be considered fit to support a friend or confront an enemy.”

“Well, Master, I am glad to see that the devil deals as cunningly with other folk as he deals with me; for whenever I am about to commit any folly, he persuades me it is the most necessary, gallant, gentlemanlike thing on earth, and I am up to saddlegirths in the bog before I see that the ground is soft. And you, Master, might have turned out a murd——a homicide, just out of pure respect for your father’s memory.”

“Well, Master, I'm glad to see that the devil tricks others just as cleverly as he tricks me; because whenever I'm about to do something foolish, he convinces me it's the most essential, brave, gentlemanly thing ever, and I’m waist-deep in trouble before I realize the ground is soft. And you, Master, could have ended up a murderer, just out of sheer respect for your father's memory.”

“There is more sense in your language, Bucklaw,” replied the Master, “than might have been expected from your conduct. It is too true, our vices steal upon us in forms outwardly as fair as those of the demons whom the superstitious represent as intriguing with the human race, and are not discovered in their native hideousness until we have clasped them in our arms.”

“There’s more wisdom in what you’re saying, Bucklaw,” the Master replied, “than I would have expected from your behavior. It’s sadly true, our vices creep up on us disguised as something attractive, just like the demons that superstitious people believe are tempting humanity, and we don’t see their true ugliness until we’ve embraced them.”

“But we may throw them from us, though,” said Bucklaw, “and that is what I shall think of doing one of these days—that is, when old Lady Girnington dies.”

“But we can get rid of them,” said Bucklaw, “and that’s what I’m planning to do one of these days—that is, when old Lady Girnington passes away.”

“Did you ever hear the expression of the English divine?” said Ravenswood—“‘Hell is paved with good intentions,’—as much as to say, they are more often formed than executed.”

“Have you ever heard the saying from the English divine?” said Ravenswood—“‘Hell is paved with good intentions,’—meaning that people often have good intentions but rarely follow through.”

“Well,” replied Bucklaw, “but I will begin this blessed night, and have determined not to drink above one quart of wine, unless your claret be of extraordinary quality.”

“Well,” Bucklaw replied, “I’ll start this wonderful night, and I’ve decided not to drink more than a quart of wine, unless your claret is exceptionally good.”

“You will find little to tempt you at Wolf’s Crag,” said the Master. “I know not that I can promise you more than the shelter of my roof; all, and more than all, our stock of wine and provisions was exhausted at the late occasion.”

“You won't find much to lure you at Wolf’s Crag,” said the Master. “I can’t promise you more than the shelter of my roof; everything, and then some, from our stock of wine and supplies was used up at the recent event.”

“Long may it be ere provision is needed for the like purpose,” answered Bucklaw; “but you should not drink up the last flask at a dirge; there is ill luck in that.”

“Long may it be before we need provisions for something like this,” answered Bucklaw; “but you shouldn’t finish off the last flask at a funeral; that brings bad luck.”

“There is ill luck, I think, in whatever belongs to me,” said Ravenswood. “But yonder is Wolf’s Crag, and whatever it still contains is at your service.”

“There’s bad luck, I think, in anything that belongs to me,” said Ravenswood. “But over there is Wolf’s Crag, and whatever it still has is at your service.”

The roar of the sea had long announced their approach to the cliffs, on the summit of which, like the nest of some sea-eagle, the founder of the fortalice had perched his eyrie. The pale moon, which had hitherto been contending with flitting clouds, now shone out, and gave them a view of the solitary and naked tower, situated on a projecting cliff that beetled on the German Ocean. On three sides the rock was precipitous; on the fourth, which was that towards the land, it had been originally fenced by an artificial ditch and drawbridge, but the latter was broken down and ruinous, and the former had been in part filled up, so as to allow passage for a horseman into the narrow courtyard, encircled on two sides with low offices and stables, partly ruinous, and closed on the landward front by a low embattled wall, while the remaining side of the quadrangle was occupied by the tower itself, which, tall and narrow, and built of a greyish stone, stood glimmering in the moonlight, like the sheeted spectre of some huge giant. A wilder or more disconsolate dwelling it was perhaps difficult to conceive. The sombrous and heavy sound of the billows, successively dashing against the rocky beach at a profound distance beneath, was to the ear what the landscape was to the eye—a symbol of unvaried and monotonous melancholy, not unmingled with horror.

The roar of the sea had long signaled their approach to the cliffs, where the founder of the stronghold had built his home, like the nest of a sea eagle. The pale moon, which had been fighting with moving clouds, now broke through and illuminated the solitary, bare tower perched on a jutting cliff overlooking the North Sea. The rock was steep on three sides; on the fourth side, facing inland, it had originally been protected by a manmade ditch and drawbridge, but the drawbridge was broken and in ruins, and the ditch was partly filled in to allow a horseman to enter the narrow courtyard. This courtyard was surrounded on two sides by low buildings and stables, which were also partly in ruins, and was closed off on the landward side by a low, fortified wall. The remaining side of the courtyard was taken up by the tower itself, which stood tall and narrow, made of grey stone, glimmering in the moonlight like the ghostly form of some massive giant. It was hard to imagine a more desolate or grim home. The deep and heavy sound of the waves crashing against the rocky shore far below was to the ear what the landscape was to the eye—a symbol of persistent and monotonous sadness, mixed with a sense of horror.

Although the night was not far advanced, there was no sign of living inhabitant about this forlorn abode, excepting that one, and only one, of the narrow and stanchelled windows which appeared at irregular heights and distances in the walls of the building showed a small glimmer of light.

Although the night was still young, there was no sign of life around this abandoned place, except for one narrow, barred window that appeared at odd heights and distances in the walls of the building, which showed a faint glimmer of light.

“There,” said Ravenswood, “sits the only male domestic that remains to the house of Ravenswood; and it is well that he does remain there, since otherwise we had little hope to find either light or fire. But follow me cautiously; the road is narrow, and admits only one horse in front.”

“There,” said Ravenswood, “is the only male servant left in the Ravenswood house; and it's good that he's still here, because otherwise we’d have little chance of finding any light or warmth. But follow me carefully; the path is narrow and only allows one horse at a time.”

In effect, the path led along a kind of isthmus, at the peninsular extremity of which the tower was situated, with that exclusive attention to strength and security, in preference to every circumstances of convenience, which dictated to the Scottish barons the choice of their situations, as well as their style of building.

In effect, the path ran along a sort of narrow strip of land, at the end of which stood the tower, focusing more on strength and security rather than on any convenience, which influenced the Scottish barons in both the locations they chose and the way they built their structures.

By adopting the cautious mode of approach recommended by the proprietor of this wild hold, they entered the courtyard in safety. But it was long ere the efforts of Ravenswood, though loudly exerted by knocking at the low-browed entrance, and repeated shouts to Caleb to open the gate and admit them, received any answer.

By taking the careful approach suggested by the owner of this wild place, they entered the courtyard safely. However, it took a long time for Ravenswood's efforts, despite his loud knocking at the low entrance and repeated calls for Caleb to open the gate and let them in, to get any response.

“The old man must be departed,” he began to say, “or fallen into some fit; for the noise I have made would have waked the seven sleepers.”

“The old man must be gone,” he started to say, “or passed out from something; because the noise I made would have awakened the seven sleepers.”

At length a timid and hesitating voice replied: “Master—Master of Ravenswood, is it you?”

At last, a nervous and uncertain voice said, “Master—Master of Ravenswood, is that you?”

“Yes, it is I, Caleb; open the door quickly.”

“Yes, it’s me, Caleb; open the door quickly.”

“But it is you in very blood and body? For I would sooner face fifty deevils as my master’s ghaist, or even his wraith; wherefore, aroint ye, if ye were ten times my master, unless ye come in bodily shape, lith and limb.”

“But it’s really you in flesh and blood? Because I would rather face fifty demons than my master’s ghost, or even his spirit; so, get lost, even if you were ten times my master, unless you come in physical form, body and all.”

“It is I, you old fool,” answered Ravenswood, “in bodily shape and alive, save that I am half dead with cold.”

“It’s me, you old fool,” replied Ravenswood, “here in person and alive, except that I’m half dead from the cold.”

The light at the upper window disappeared, and glancing from loophole to loophole in slow succession, gave intimation that the bearer was in the act of descending, with great deliberation, a winding staircase occupying one of the turrets which graced the angles of the old tower. The tardiness of his descent extracted some exclamations of impatience from Ravenswood, and several oaths from his less patient and more mecurial companion. Caleb again paused ere he unbolted the door, and once more asked if they were men of mould that demanded entrance at this time of night.

The light in the upper window went out, and as he glanced from one loophole to another, it became clear that the person was slowly making their way down a winding staircase in one of the turrets of the old tower. The slowness of his descent drew some impatient remarks from Ravenswood and several curses from his more restless and fiery companion. Caleb hesitated again before unlocking the door and asked once more if they were really men who deserved to come in at this late hour.

“Were I near you, you old fool,” said Bucklaw, “I would give you sufficient proofs of my bodily condition.”

“Were I close to you, you old fool,” said Bucklaw, “I would give you enough proof of my physical state.”

“Open the gate, Caleb,” said his master, in a more soothing tone, partly from his regard to the ancient and faithful seneschal, partly perhaps because he thought that angry words would be thrown away, so long as Caleb had a stout iron-clenched oaken door betwixt his person and the speakers.

“Open the gate, Caleb,” his master said in a gentler tone, partly out of respect for the old and loyal steward, and maybe because he believed that getting upset wouldn’t help, as long as Caleb had a strong, iron-clenched oak door separating him from the speakers.

At length Caleb, with a trembling hand, undid the bars, opened the heavy door, and stood before them, exhibiting his thin grey hairs, bald forehead, and sharp high features, illuminated by a quivering lamp which he held in one hand, while he shaded and protected its flame with the other. The timorous, courteous glance which he threw around him, the effect of the partial light upon his white hair and illumined features, might have made a good painting; but our travellers were too impatient for security against the rising storm to permit them to indulge themselves in studying the picturesque. “Is it you, my dear master?—is it you yourself, indeed?” exclaimed the old domestic. “I am wae ye suld hae stude waiting at your ain gate; but wha wad hae thought o’ seeing ye sae sune, and a strange gentleman with a—(Here he exclaimed apart, as it were, and to some inmate of the tower, in a voice not meant to be heard by those in the court)—Mysie—Mysie, woman! stir for dear life, and get the fire mended; take the auld three-legged stool, or ony thing that’s readiest that will make a lowe. I doubt we are but puirly provided, no expecting ye this some months, when doubtless ye was hae been received conform till your rank, as gude right is; but natheless——”

At last, Caleb, with a shaking hand, unlocked the bars, opened the heavy door, and stood before them, showcasing his thin grey hair, bald forehead, and sharp facial features, lit by a flickering lamp he held in one hand while shielding its flame with the other. The anxious, polite look he cast around him, combined with the way the partial light played on his white hair and illuminated features, could have made a striking painting; however, our travelers were too eager to find safety from the approaching storm to take a moment to appreciate the scene. “Is it really you, my dear master?—is it truly you?” exclaimed the old servant. “I’m sorry you had to wait at your own gate; but who would have thought we’d see you so soon, and with a strange gentleman who—”(Here he spoke aside, as if to someone inside the tower, in a voice meant not to be heard by those in the courtyard)—“Mysie—Mysie, woman! hurry up and get the fire going; grab the old three-legged stool, or anything else that’s handy to make a light. I fear we are poorly prepared, not expecting you for some months, when surely you would have been welcomed according to your status, as is right; but still——”

“Natheless, Caleb,” said the Master, “we must have our horses put up, and ourselves too, the best way we can. I hope you are not sorry to see me sooner than you expected?”

“Anyway, Caleb,” said the Master, “we need to get our horses settled, and ourselves too, in the best way possible. I hope you're not disappointed to see me earlier than you thought?”

“Sorry, my lord! I am sure ye sall aye be my lord wi’ honest folk, as your noble ancestors hae been these three hundred years, and never asked a Whig’s leave. Sorry to see the Lord of Ravenswood at ane o’ his ain castles! (Then again apart to his unseen associate behind the screen) Mysie, kill the brood-hen without thinking twice on it; let them care that come ahint. No to say it’s our best dwelling,” he added, turning to Bucklaw; “but just a strength for the Lord of Ravenswood to flee until—that is, no to flee, but to retreat until in troublous times, like the present, when it was ill convenient for him to live farther in the country in ony of his better and mair principal manors; but, for its antiquity, maist folk think that the outside of Wolf’s Crag is worthy of a large perusal.”

“Sorry, my lord! I’m sure you’ll always be my lord with honest people, just like your noble ancestors have been for three hundred years, never asking for a Whig’s permission. It’s a shame to see the Lord of Ravenswood at one of his own castles! (Then again, aside to his unseen associate behind the screen) Mysie, kill the brood-hen without a second thought; let them care who comes after. Not to say it’s our best place,” he added, turning to Bucklaw; “but just a stronghold for the Lord of Ravenswood to stay until—that is, not to flee, but to retreat until these troubled times pass, when it’s inconvenient for him to live further out in the country in any of his better and more important estates; but, for its history, most people think that the outside of Wolf’s Crag deserves a good look.”

“And you are determined we shall have time to make it,” said Ravenswood, somewhat amused with the shifts the old man used to detain them without doors until his confederate Mysie had made her preparations within.

“And you are determined we will have time to get it done,” said Ravenswood, somewhat amused by the old man's tricks to keep them outside while his accomplice Mysie got her things ready inside.

“Oh, never mind the outside of the house, my good friend,” said Bucklaw; “let’s see the inside, and let our horses see the stable, that’s all.”

“Oh, forget about the outside of the house, my good friend,” Bucklaw said, “let’s check out the inside, and let our horses see the stable, that’s all.”

“Oh yes, sir—ay, sir—unquestionably, sir—my lord and ony of his honourable companions——”

“Oh yes, sir—yeah, sir—definitely, sir—my lord and all of his honorable companions——”

“But our horses, my friend—our horses; they will be dead-founded by standing here in the cold after riding hard, and mine is too good to be spoiled; therefore, once more, our horses!” exclaimed Bucklaw.

“But our horses, my friend—our horses; they’re going to be worn out from standing here in the cold after we’ve ridden hard, and mine is too good to be ruined; so, once again, our horses!” exclaimed Bucklaw.

“True—ay—your horses—yes—I will call the grooms”; and sturdily did Caleb roar till the old tower rang again: “John—William—Saunders! The lads are gane out, or sleeping,” he observed, after pausing for an answer, which he knew that he had no human chance of receiving. “A’ gaes wrang when the Master’s out-bye; but I’ll take care o’ your cattle mysell.”

“True—yeah—your horses—sure—I’ll call the grooms”; and Caleb shouted loudly until the old tower echoed: “John—William—Saunders! The guys are either gone out or sleeping,” he noted, after waiting for a response, which he knew he had no chance of getting. “Everything goes wrong when the Master is away; but I’ll look after your cattle myself.”

“I think you had better,” said Ravenswood, “otherwise I see little chance of their being attended to at all.”

“I think you should,” said Ravenswood, “otherwise I don’t see much chance of them being taken care of at all.”

“Whisht, my lord—whisht, for God’s sake,” said Caleb, in an imploring tone, and apart to his master; “if ye dinna regard your ain credit, think on mine; we’ll hae hard eneugh wark to make a decent night o’t, wi’ a’ the lees I can tell.”

“Shh, my lord—please, for God’s sake,” said Caleb, in a pleading tone, stepping aside to speak to his master; “if you don’t care about your own reputation, think about mine; we’ll have a tough enough time making it through the night with all the lies I can share.”

“Well, well, never mind,” said his master; “go to the stable. There is hay and corn, I trust?”

“Well, well, forget it,” said his master; “go to the stable. There’s hay and corn, right?”

“Ou ay, plenty of hay and corn”; this was uttered boldly and aloud, and, in a lower tone, “there was some half fous o’ aits, and some taits o’ meadow-hay, left after the burial.”

“Yeah, plenty of hay and corn,” this was said confidently and loudly, and, in a quieter voice, “there were about half a bushel of oats, and some tons of meadow hay left after the burial.”

“Very well,” said Ravenswood, taking the lamp from his domestic’s unwilling hand, “I will show the stranger upstairs myself.”

“Alright,” said Ravenswood, taking the lamp from his servant’s reluctant hand, “I’ll take the stranger upstairs myself.”

“I canna think o’ that, my lord; if ye wad but have five minutes, or ten minutes, or, at maist, a quarter of an hour’s patience, and look at the fine moonlight prospect of the Bass and North Berwick Law till I sort the horses, I would marshal ye up, as reason is ye suld be marshalled, your lordship and your honourable visitor. And I hae lockit up the siller candlesticks, and the lamp is not fit——”

“I can’t think of that, my lord; if you would just have five minutes, or ten minutes, or at most, a quarter of an hour's patience, and take a look at the beautiful moonlit view of the Bass and North Berwick Law while I get the horses ready, I would arrange you properly, as is only right for you and your distinguished guest. And I have locked up the silver candlesticks, and the lamp isn’t suitable——”

“It will do very well in the mean time,” said Ravenswood, “and you will have no difficulty for want of light in the stable, for, if I recollect, half the roof is off.”

“It'll work just fine for now,” said Ravenswood, “and you won't have any trouble with the lack of light in the stable because, if I remember correctly, half the roof is missing.”

“Very true, my lord,” replied the trusty adherent, and with ready wit instantly added, “and the lazy sclater loons have never come to put it on a’ this while, your lordship.”

“Very true, my lord,” replied the loyal follower, and with quick thinking instantly added, “and the lazy slacker fools have never come to put it on all this time, your lordship.”

“If I were disposed to jest at the calamities of my house,” said Ravenswood, as he led the way upstairs, “poor old Caleb would furnish me with ample means. His passion consists in representing things about our miserable menage, not as they are, but as, in his opinion, they ought to be; and, to say the truth, I have been often diverted with the poor wretch’s expedients to supply what he thought was essential for the credit of the family, and his still more generous apologies for the want of those articles for which his ingenuity could discover no substitute. But though the tower is none of the largest, I shall have some trouble without him to find the apartment in which there is a fire.”

“If I were inclined to joke about the misfortunes of my family,” said Ravenswood as he led the way upstairs, “poor old Caleb would provide me with plenty of material. His passion is to portray our miserable household not as it is, but as he believes it should be; and to be honest, I have often found amusement in the poor guy’s attempts to come up with what he thought was necessary for the family’s reputation, along with his even more generous excuses for the lack of those things for which he couldn't find a substitute. But even though the tower isn’t very large, I will have some difficulty without him in finding the room that has a fire.”

As he spoke thus, he opened the door of the hall. “Here, at least,” he said, “there is neither hearth nor harbour.”

As he said this, he opened the door to the hall. “At least here,” he said, “there's neither a fireplace nor a port.”

It was indeed a scene of desolation. A large vaulted room, the beams of which, combined like those of Westminster Hall, were rudely carved at the extremities, remained nearly in the situation in which it had been left after the entertainment at Allan Lord Ravenswood’s funeral. Overturned pitchers, and black-jacks, and pewter stoups, and flagons still cumbered the large oaken table; glasses, those more perishable implements of conviviality, many of which had been voluntarily sacrificed by the guests in their enthusiastic pledges to favourite toasts, strewed the stone floor with their fragments. As for the articles of plate, lent for the purpose by friends and kinsfolk, those had been carefully withdrawn so soon as the ostentatious display of festivity, equally unnecessary and strangely timed, had been made and ended. Nothing, in short, remained that indicated wealth; all the signs were those of recent wastefulness and present desolation. The black cloth hangings, which, on the late mournful occasion, replaced the tattered moth-eaten tapestries, had been partly pulled down, and, dangling from the wall in irregular festoons, disclosed the rough stonework of the building, unsmoothed either by plaster or the chisel. The seats thrown down, or left in disorder, intimated the careless confusion which had concluded the mournful revel. “This room,” said Ravenswood, holding up the lamp—“this room, Mr. Hayston, was riotous when it should have been sad; it is a just retribution that it should now be sad when it ought to be cheerful.”

It was truly a scene of devastation. A large vaulted room, whose beams, much like those in Westminster Hall, were roughly carved at the ends, remained nearly as it had been left after the gathering at Allan Lord Ravenswood’s funeral. Overturned pitchers, black-jacks, pewter stoups, and flagons cluttered the big oak table; glasses, those more fragile items used for celebration, many of which had been carelessly broken by the guests in their enthusiastic toasts, scattered their pieces across the stone floor. As for the silverware, lent for the occasion by friends and family, that had been carefully removed as soon as the unnecessary and oddly timed display of festivity had come to an end. In short, nothing remained to suggest wealth; all that was left signified recent wastefulness and current ruin. The black cloth hangings, which had replaced the tattered, moth-eaten tapestries for the recent somber occasion, had been partly pulled down, and, hanging from the wall in uneven swags, revealed the rough stonework of the building, unrefined by plaster or chisel. The chairs were thrown down or left in disarray, indicative of the careless chaos that had marked the end of the mournful revelry. “This room,” said Ravenswood, lifting the lamp—“this room, Mr. Hayston, was wild when it should have been mournful; it is a fitting retribution that it should now be mournful when it ought to be lively.”

They left this disconsolate apartment, and went upstairs, where, after opening one or two doors in vain, Ravenswood led the way into a little matted ante-room, in which, to their great joy, they found a tolerably good fire, which Mysie, by some such expedient as Caleb had suggested, had supplied with a reasonable quantity of fuel. Glad at the heart to see more of comfort than the castle had yet seemed to offer, Bucklaw rubbed his hands heartily over the fire, and now listened with more complacency to the apologies which the Master of Ravenswood offered. “Comfort,” he said, “I cannot provide for you, for I have it not for myself; it is long since these walls have known it, if, indeed, they were ever acquainted with it. Shelter and safety, I think, I can promise you.”

They left the gloomy apartment and went upstairs, where, after trying one or two doors unsuccessfully, Ravenswood led the way into a small matted anteroom. To their delight, they found a fairly good fire, which Mysie had kept going with a decent amount of fuel, just as Caleb had suggested. Feeling a sense of comfort that the castle hadn’t offered yet, Bucklaw warmed his hands enthusiastically over the fire and listened more patiently to the apologies that the Master of Ravenswood made. “I can’t provide you with comfort,” he said, “because I don’t have it for myself; it’s been a long time since these walls have felt it, if they ever did. But I believe I can promise you shelter and safety.”

“Excellent matters, Master,” replied Bucklaw, “and, with a mouthful of food and wine, positively all I can require to-night.”

“Everything’s great, Master,” Bucklaw replied, “and with some food and wine, that’s honestly all I need tonight.”

“I fear,” said the Master, “your supper will be a poor one; I hear the matter in discussion betwixt Caleb and Mysie. Poor Balderstone is something deaf, amongst his other accomplishments, so that much of what he means should be spoken aside is overheard by the whole audience, and especially by those from whom he is most anxious to conceal his private manœuvres. Hark!”

“I’m afraid,” said the Master, “your dinner won’t be very good; I can hear what Caleb and Mysie are talking about. Poor Balderstone is a bit deaf, among his other skills, so a lot of what he intends to say privately is heard by everyone, especially by those he’s most trying to keep his secrets from. Listen!”

They listened, and heard the old domestic’s voice in conversation with Mysie to the following effect:

They listened and heard the old housekeeper talking with Mysie about the following:

“Just mak the best o’t—make the besto’t, woman; it’s easy to put a fair face on ony thing.”

“Just make the best of it—make the most of it, woman; it’s easy to put a good spin on anything.”

“But the auld brood-hen? She’ll be as teugh as bow-strings and bend-leather!”

“But the old brood hen? She’ll be as tough as bowstrings and bend leather!”

“Say ye made a mistake—say ye made a mistake, Mysie,” replied the faithful seneschal, in a soothing and undertoned voice; “tak it a’ on yoursell; never let the credit o’ the house suffer.”

“Say you made a mistake—say you made a mistake, Mysie,” replied the loyal steward in a calming and quiet voice; “take it all on yourself; never let the reputation of the house suffer.”

“But the brood-hen,” remonstrated Mysie—“ou, she’s sitting some gate aneath the dais in the hall, and I am feared to gae in in the dark for the bogle; and if I didna see the bogle, I could as ill see the hen, for it’s pit-mirk, and there’s no another light in the house, save that very blessed lamp whilk the Master has in his ain hand. And if I had the hen, she’s to pu’, and to draw, and to dress; how can I do that, and them sitting by the only fire we have?”

“But the hen,” Mysie protested, “oh, she’s sitting somewhere under the dais in the hall, and I’m scared to go in there in the dark because of the ghost; and if I can’t see the ghost, I can hardly see the hen either, because it’s pitch black, and there’s no other light in the house except for that very blessed lamp the Master is holding. And if I had the hen, I need to pluck her, clean her, and get her ready; how can I do that with everyone sitting by the only fire we have?”

“Weel, weel, Mysie,” said the butler, “bide ye there a wee, and I’ll try to get the lamp wiled away frae them.”

“Weel, weel, Mysie,” said the butler, “stay there for a bit, and I’ll try to get the lamp moved away from them.”

Accordingly, Caleb Balderstone entered the apartment, little aware that so much of his by-play had been audible there. “Well, Caleb, my old friend, is there any chance of supper?” said the Master of Ravenswood.

Accordingly, Caleb Balderstone entered the apartment, unaware that much of what he had said had been heard there. “So, Caleb, my old friend, is there any chance of dinner?” asked the Master of Ravenswood.

Chance of supper, your lordship?” said Caleb, with an emphasis of strong scorn at the implied doubt. “How should there be ony question of that, and us in your lordship’s house? Chance of supper, indeed! But ye’ll no be for butcher-meat? There’s walth o’ fat poultry, ready either for spit or brander. The fat capon, Mysie!” he added, calling out as boldly as if such a thing had been in existence.

Chance of dinner, your lordship?” said Caleb, scornfully emphasizing the implied doubt. “How could there be any question about that with us in your lordship’s house? Chance of dinner, really! But you wouldn’t want meat, would you? There’s plenty of fat poultry, ready for roasting or grilling. The fat capon, Mysie!” he added, calling out as confidently as if such a thing actually existed.

“Quite unnecessary,” said Bucklaw, who deemed himself bound in courtesy to relieve some part of the anxious butler’s perplexity, “if you have anything cold, or a morsel of bread.”

“Totally unnecessary,” said Bucklaw, who felt it was his duty to ease some of the anxious butler’s confusion, “if you have something cold, or a piece of bread.”

“The best of bannocks!” exclaimed Caleb, much relieved; “and, for cauld meat, a’ that we hae is cauld eneugh,—how-beit, maist of the cauld meat and pastry was gien to the poor folk after the ceremony of interment, as gude reason was; nevertheless——”

“The best of bannocks!” exclaimed Caleb, feeling much better; “and as for cold meat, all we have is cold enough—however, most of the cold meat and pastries were given to the poor folks after the funeral, as was right; still——”

“Come, Caleb,” said the Master of Ravenswood, “I must cut this matter short. This is the young Laird of Bucklaw; he is under hiding, and therefore, you know——”

“Come on, Caleb,” said the Master of Ravenswood, “I need to make this quick. This is the young Laird of Bucklaw; he’s in hiding, and so you know——”

“He’ll be nae nicer than your lordship’s honour, I’se warrant,” answered Caleb, cheerfully, with a nod of intelligence; “I am sorry that the gentleman is under distress, but I am blythe that he canna say muckle agane our housekeeping, for I believe his ain pinches may match ours; no that we are pinched, thank God,” he added, retracting the admission which he had made in his first burst of joy, “but nae doubt we are waur aff than we hae been, or suld be. And for eating—what signifies telling a lee? there’s just the hinder end of the mutton-ham that has been but three times on the table, and the nearer the bane the sweeter, as your honours weel ken; and—there’s the heel of the ewe-milk kebbuck, wi’ a bit of nice butter, and—and—that’s a’ that’s to trust to.” And with great alacrity he produced his slender stock of provisions, and placed them with much formality upon a small round table betwixt the two gentlemen, who were not deterred either by the homely quality or limited quantity of the repast from doing it full justice. Caleb in the mean while waited on them with grave officiousness, as if anxious to make up, by his own respectful assiduity, for the want of all other attendance.

“He won't be any nicer than your lordship, I assure you,” Caleb replied cheerfully, giving a knowing nod. “I feel bad that the gentleman is in distress, but I'm glad he can’t say much against our housekeeping, since I think his own struggles might match ours; not that we’re struggling, thank God,” he added, quickly taking back the admission he made in his initial burst of joy, “but no doubt we are worse off than we have been, or should be. And as for eating—what's the point of lying? there’s just the last bit of the mutton ham that has only been on the table three times, and the closer to the bone, the sweeter it is, as you well know; and—there’s the end of the ewe’s milk cheese, with a bit of nice butter, and—and that’s all we have to rely on.” With great enthusiasm, he presented his limited stock of provisions and laid them out with much formality on a small round table between the two gentlemen, who were undeterred by either the simple quality or limited quantity of the meal in enjoying it fully. Meanwhile, Caleb waited on them with serious attentiveness, as if eager to make up for the lack of any other service.

But, alas! how little on such occasions can form, however anxiously and scrupulously observed, supply the lack of substantial fare! Bucklaw, who had eagerly eaten a considerable portion of the thrice-sacked mutton-ham, now began to demand ale.

But, unfortunately! no matter how carefully and anxiously it's prepared, nothing can make up for a lack of real food! Bucklaw, who had eagerly devoured a good amount of the repeatedly served mutton-ham, now started asking for ale.

“I wanda just presume to recommend our ale,” said Caleb; “the maut was ill made, and there was awfu’ thunner last week; but siccan water as the Tower well has ye’ll seldome see, Bucklaw, and that I’se engage for.”

“I would just like to recommend our ale,” said Caleb; “the malt was poorly made, and there was terrible thunder last week; but such water as the Tower well has, you’ll rarely see, Bucklaw, and that I can guarantee.”

“But if your ale is bad, you can let us have some wine,” said Bucklaw, making a grimace at the mention of the pure element which Caleb so earnestly recommended.

“But if your ale is bad, you can let us have some wine,” said Bucklaw, making a face at the mention of the clear drink that Caleb so seriously suggested.

“Wine!” answered Caleb, undauntedly, “eneugh of wine! It was but twa days syne—wae’s me for the cause—there was as much wine drunk in this house as would have floated a pinnace. There never was lack of wine at Wolf’s Crag.”

“Wine!” answered Caleb confidently, “enough wine! Just two days ago—woe is me for the reason—there was so much wine consumed in this house that it could have floated a small boat. There’s never a shortage of wine at Wolf’s Crag.”

“Do fetch us some then,” said the master, “instead of talking about it.” And Caleb boldly departed.

“Then go get us some,” said the master, “instead of just talking about it.” And Caleb confidently left.

Every expended butt in the old cellar did he set a-tilt, and shake with the desperate expectation of collecting enough of the grounds of claret to fill the large pewter measure which he carried in his hand. Alas! each had been too devoutly drained; and, with all the squeezing and manoeuvring which his craft as a butler suggested, he could only collect about half a quart that seemed presentable. Still, however, Caleb was too good a general to renounce the field without a strategem to cover his retreat. He undauntedly threw down an empty flagon, as if he had stumbled at the entrance of the apartment, called upon Mysie to wipe up the wine that had never been spilt, and placing the other vessel on the table, hoped there was still enough left for their honours. There was indeed; for even Bucklaw, a sworn friend to the grape, found no encouragement to renew his first attack upon the vintage of Wolf’s Crag, but contented himself, however reluctantly, with a draught of fair water. Arrangements were now made for his repose; and as the secret chamber was assigned for this purpose, it furnished Caleb with a first-rate and most plausible apology for all deficiencies of furniture, bedding, etc.

Every used butt in the old cellar he set up and shook with the desperate hope of collecting enough claret grounds to fill the large pewter measure he carried in his hand. Unfortunately, each one had been drained too completely; with all the squeezing and maneuvering his skills as a butler suggested, he could only gather about half a quart that seemed presentable. Still, Caleb was too good a strategist to leave the scene without a plan to cover his retreat. He bravely dropped an empty flagon as if he had tripped at the entrance of the room, called out to Mysie to clean up the wine that had never been spilled, and placed the other vessel on the table, hoping there was still enough left for their honors. There was indeed; for even Bucklaw, a devoted friend of the grape, found no reason to renew his first attack on the vintage of Wolf’s Crag, but reluctantly settled for a drink of clean water. Arrangements were now made for his rest; and since the secret chamber was designated for this purpose, it provided Caleb with a perfect and very plausible excuse for any shortcomings in furniture, bedding, etc.

“For wha,” said he, “would have thought of the secret chaumer being needed? It has not been used since the time of the Gowrie Conspiracy, and I durst never let a woman ken of the entrance to it, or your honour will allow that it wad not hae been a secret chaumer lang.”

“For what,” he said, “would have thought that the secret chamber would be needed? It hasn’t been used since the time of the Gowrie Conspiracy, and I would never let a woman know about the entrance to it, or your honor would agree that it wouldn't have been a secret chamber for long.”

CHAPTER VIII.

The hearth in hall was black and dead,
No board was dight in bower within,
Nor merry bowl nor welcome bed;
“Here’s sorry cheer,” quoth the Heir of Linne.

Old Ballad

The fireplace in the hall was cold and empty,
No food was set in the room inside,
No cheerful drink or inviting bed;
“There's not much cheer here,” said the Heir of Linne.

Old Ballad

The feelings of the prodigal Heir of Linne, as expressed in that excellent old song, when, after dissipating his whole fortune, he found himself the deserted inhabitant of “the lonely lodge,” might perhaps have some resemblance to those of the Master of Ravenswood in his deserted mansion of Wolf’s Crag. The Master, however, had this advantage over the spendthrift in the legend, that, if he was in similar distress, he could not impute it to his own imprudence. His misery had been bequeathed to him by his father, and, joined to his high blood, and to a title which the courteous might give or the churlish withhold at their pleasure, it was the whole inheritance he had derived from his ancestry. Perhaps this melancholy yet consolatory reflection crossed the mind of the unfortunate young nobleman with a breathing of comfort. Favourable to calm reflection, as well as to the Muses, the morning, while it dispelled the shades of night, had a composing and sedative effect upon the stormy passions by which the Master of Ravenswood had been agitated on the preceding day. He now felt himself able to analyse the different feelings by which he was agitated, and much resolved to combat and to subdue them. The morning, which had arisen calm and bright, gave a pleasant effect even to the waste moorland view which was seen from the castle on looking to the landward; and the glorious ocean, crisped with a thousand rippling waves of silver, extended on the other side, in awful yet complacent majesty, to the verge of the horizon. With such scenes of calm sublimity the human heart sympathises even in its most disturbed moods, and deeds of honour and virtue are inspired by their majestic influence. To seek out Bucklaw in the retreat which he had afforded him, was the first occupation of the Master, after he had performed, with a scrutiny unusually severe, the important task of self-examination. “How now, Bucklaw?” was his morning’s salutation—“how like you the couch in which the exiled Earl of Angus once slept in security, when he was pursued by the full energy of a king’s resentment?”

The feelings of the wasted Heir of Linne, as expressed in that great old song, when he had blown his entire fortune and found himself alone in “the lonely lodge,” might be somewhat similar to those of the Master of Ravenswood in his empty house at Wolf’s Crag. However, the Master had the advantage over the spendthrift in the tale, because if he was in a similar state of distress, he couldn't blame it on his own poor choices. His suffering had been passed down from his father, and together with his noble lineage and a title that could be given or withheld at the whim of others, it was the entirety of what he inherited from his family. Perhaps this sad yet comforting thought crossed the mind of the unfortunate young nobleman, providing him with some solace. The morning, which was clear and bright, not only cleared away the darkness of night but also calmed the turbulent emotions that had disturbed the Master of Ravenswood the day before. He now felt capable of examining the various feelings that were troubling him and was determined to confront and overcome them. The clear and sunny morning created a pleasant view, even of the desolate moorland seen from the castle looking inland; and the magnificent ocean, sparkling with countless rippling waves of silver, stretched out on the other side, awe-inspiring yet peaceful, to the edge of the horizon. Such scenes of calm beauty resonate with the human heart even in its most troubled times, inspiring acts of honor and goodness with their grand influence. Finding Bucklaw in the retreat he had offered him was the Master’s first task after doing an unusually thorough job of self-reflection. “How’s it going, Bucklaw?” was his morning greeting—“how do you like the bed where the exiled Earl of Angus once slept safely, when he was chased by the full wrath of a king?”

“Umph!” returned the sleeper awakened; “I have little to complain of where so great a man was quartered before me, only the mattress was of the hardest, the vault somewhat damp, the rats rather more mutinous than I would have expected from the state of Caleb’s larder; and if there had been shutters to that grated window, or a curtain to the bed, I should think it, upon the whole, an improvement in your accommodations.”

“Umph!” replied the awakened sleeper. “I have very little to complain about since such a great man stayed here before me. The mattress was just really hard, the room a bit damp, and the rats were more rebellious than I expected given Caleb’s food supplies. If there had been shutters for that grated window or a curtain for the bed, I would consider it, overall, an upgrade to your accommodations.”

“It is, to be sure, forlorn enough,” said the Master, looking around the small vault; “but if you will rise and leave it, Caleb will endeavour to find you a better breakfast than your supper of last night.”

“It is definitely pretty bleak,” said the Master, looking around the small vault; “but if you’ll get up and leave it, Caleb will try to find you a better breakfast than the dinner you had last night.”

“Pray, let it be no better,” said Bucklaw, getting up, and endeavouring to dress himself as well as the obscurity of the place would permit—“let it, I say, be no better, if you mean me to preserve in my proposed reformation. The very recollection of Caleb’s beverage has done more to suppress my longing to open the day with a morning draught than twenty sermons would have done. And you, master, have you been able to give battle valiantly to your bosom-snake? You see I am in the way of smothering my vipers one by one.”

“Honestly, I hope it’s not any better,” Bucklaw said as he stood up, trying to get dressed as well as the dimness of the place allowed. “I mean, let it not be any better if you want me to stick to my plan to change. Just thinking about Caleb’s drink has done more to suppress my desire for a morning drink than twenty sermons could have. And you, my friend, have you been able to bravely fight your inner demons? You can see I’m working on getting rid of my troubles one by one.”

“I have commenced the battle, at least, Bucklaw, and I have had a fair vision of an angel who descended to my assistance,” replied the Master.

“I've started the fight, at least, Bucklaw, and I’ve had a clear vision of an angel who came down to help me,” replied the Master.

“Woe’s me!” said his guest, “no vision can I expect, unless my aunt, Lady Grinington, should betake herself to the tomb; and then it would be the substance of her heritage rather than the appearance of her phantom that I should consider as the support of my good resolutions. But this same breakfast, Master—does the deer that is to make the pasty run yet on foot, as the ballad has it?”

“Woe is me!” said his guest, “I can't expect any vision unless my aunt, Lady Grinington, goes to the grave; and even then, I would think more about her legacy than her ghost when it comes to sticking to my good intentions. But what about breakfast, Master— is the deer that’s going to be in the pie still alive, like the song says?”

“I will inquire into that matter,” said his entertainer; and, leaving the apartment, he went in search of Caleb, whom, after some difficulty, he found in an obscure sort of dungeon, which had been in former times the buttery of the castle. Here the old man was employed busily in the doubtful task of burnishing a pewter flagon until it should take the hue and semblance of silver-plate. “I think it may do—I think it might pass, if they winna bring it ower muckle in the light o’ the window!” were the ejaculations which he muttered from time to time, as if to encourage himself in his undertaking, when he was interrupted by the voice of his master.

“I’ll look into that,” said his host; and, leaving the room, he went to find Caleb, who after some effort, he discovered in a dark, dungeon-like space that used to be the castle’s buttery. There, the old man was busy trying to polish a pewter flagon so it would look like silver. “I think it might work—I think it could pass, as long as they don’t show it too much in the light from the window!” were the words he muttered occasionally, seemingly to motivate himself in his task, when he was interrupted by his master’s voice.

“Take this,” said the Master of Ravenswood, “and get what is necessary for the family.” And with these words he gave to the old butler the purse which had on the preceding evening so narrowly escaped the fangs of Craigengelt.

“Take this,” said the Master of Ravenswood, “and get what the family needs.” And with these words, he handed the old butler the purse that had narrowly escaped from Craigengelt's grasp the night before.

The old man shook his silvery and thin locks, and looked with an expression of the most heartfelt anguish at his master as he weighed in his hand the slender treasure, and said in a sorrowful voice, “And is this a’ that’s left?”

The old man shook his thin, silver hair and looked at his master with a pained expression as he held the delicate treasure in his hand, saying in a sorrowful voice, “Is this all that’s left?”

“All that is left at present,” said the Master, affecting more cheerfulness than perhaps he really felt, “is just the green purse and the wee pickle gowd, as the old song says; but we shall do better one day, Caleb.”

“All that’s left right now,” said the Master, trying to sound cheerier than he might actually be feeling, “is just the green purse and the little bit of gold, as the old song goes; but we’ll do better one day, Caleb.”

“Before that day comes,” said Caleb, “I doubt there will be an end of an auld sang, and an auld serving-man to boot. But it disna become me to speak that gate to your honour, and you looking sae pale. Tak back the purse, and keep it to be making a show before company; for if your honour would just take a bidding, and be whiles taking it out afore folk and putting it up again, there’s naebody would refuse us trust, for a’ that’s come and gane yet.”

“Before that day comes,” said Caleb, “I doubt there will be an end to an old song and an old servant too. But it doesn't suit me to talk like that to you, looking so pale. Take back the purse and keep it to show off in front of others; if you would just take a bidding and occasionally take it out in public and put it back again, no one would refuse us trust after everything that has happened.”

“But, Caleb,” said the Master, “I still intend to leave this country very soon, and desire to do so with the reputation of an honest man, leaving no debt behind me, at least of my own contracting.”

“But, Caleb,” said the Master, “I still plan to leave this country very soon, and I want to do so with the reputation of an honest man, leaving no debts behind me, at least ones that I owe.”

“And gude right ye suld gang away as a true man, and so ye shall; for auld Caleb can tak the wyte of whatever is taen on for the house, and then it will be a’ just ae man’s burden; and I will live just as weel in the tolbooth as out of it, and the credit of the family will be a’ safe and sound.”

“And good reason you should go away as a true man, and you will; because old Caleb can take the blame for whatever is done for the house, and then it will all just be one man’s burden; and I will live just as well in the jail as out of it, and the family's reputation will be all safe and sound.”

The Master endeavoured, in vain, to make Caleb comprehend that the butler’s incurring the responsibility of debts in his own person would rather add to than remove the objections which he had to their being contracted. He spoke to a premier too busy in devising ways and means to puzzle himself with refuting the arguments offered against their justice or expediency.

The Master tried, but failed, to make Caleb understand that the butler taking on the responsibility of debts himself would only add to, not lessen, the reasons he had against them being incurred. He was talking to someone too preoccupied with figuring out solutions to bother trying to counter the arguments against their fairness or practicality.

“There’s Eppie Sma’trash will trust us for ale,” said Caleb to himself—“she has lived a’ her life under the family—and maybe wi’ a soup brandy; I canna say for wine—she is but a lone woman, and gets her claret by a runlet at a time; but I’ll work a wee drap out o’ her by fair means or foul. For doos, there’s the doocot; there will be poultry amang the tenants, though Luckie Chirnside says she has paid the kain twice ower. We’ll mak shift, an it like your honour—we’ll mak shift; keep your heart abune, for the house sall haud its credit as lang as auld Caleb is to the fore.”

“There’s Eppie Sma’trash who will trust us for ale,” Caleb said to himself—“she has lived her whole life under the family—and maybe with a little brandy; I can’t say for sure about wine—she’s just a single woman and gets her claret in small batches; but I’ll get a bit out of her by fair means or foul. For the pigeons, there’s the dovecote; there will be some poultry among the tenants, even though Luckie Chirnside says she has paid the rent twice over. We’ll manage, if it pleases you—we’ll manage; keep your spirits up, for the house will maintain its reputation as long as old Caleb is around.”

The entertainment which the old man’s exertions of various kinds enabled him to present to the young gentlemen for three or four days was certainly of no splendid description, but it may readily be believed it was set before no critical guests; and even the distresses, excuses, evasions, and shifts of Caleb afforded amusement to the young men, and added a sort of interest to the scrambling and irregular style of their table. They had indeed occasion to seize on every circumstance that might serve to diversify or enliven time, which otherwise passed away so heavily.

The entertainment that the old man's various efforts provided to the young gentlemen for three or four days wasn’t extravagant, but it’s easy to believe they weren’t hosted by any discerning guests. Even Caleb’s troubles, excuses, evasions, and clever tricks amused the young men and added a certain interest to the chaotic and informal atmosphere of their table. They certainly had to take advantage of every situation that could help break the monotony of time, which otherwise dragged on so slowly.

Bucklaw, shut out from his usual field-sports and joyous carouses by the necessity of remaining concealed within the walls of the castle, became a joyless and uninteresting companion. When the Master of Ravenswood would no longer fence or play at shovel-board; when he himself had polished to the extremity the coat of his palfrey with brush, curry comb, and hair-cloth; when he had seen him eat his provender, and gently lie down in his stall, he could hardly help envying the animal’s apparent acquiescence in a life so monotonous. “The stupid brute,” he said, “thinks neither of the race-ground or the hunting-field, or his green paddock at Bucklaw, but enjoys himself as comfortably when haltered to the rack in this ruinous vault, as if he had been foaled in it; and, I who have the freedom of a prisoner at large, to range through the dungeons of this wretched old tower, can hardly, betwixt whistling and sleeping, contrive to pass away the hour till dinner-time.”

Bucklaw, stuck inside the castle and unable to enjoy his usual sports and lively gatherings, became a dull and uninspiring companion. When the Master of Ravenswood no longer wanted to fence or play shovel-board; when he had thoroughly groomed his horse with a brush, curry comb, and cloth; when he had watched the horse eat its feed and lie down calmly in its stall, he couldn't help but envy the creature's obvious contentment with such a monotonous life. “That stupid animal,” he said, “doesn’t think about the racetrack or the hunting grounds, or his green pasture at Bucklaw, but feels just as comfortable tethered in this crumbling vault as if he were born here; and here I am, with the freedom of a prisoner allowed to wander through the dungeons of this miserable old tower, struggling to pass the time until dinner between whistling and dozing off.”

And with this disconsolate reflection, he wended his way to the bartizan or battlements of the tower, to watch what objects might appear on the distant moor, or to pelt, with pebbles and pieces of lime, the sea-mews and cormorants which established themselves incautiously within the reach of an idle young man.

And with this gloomy thought, he made his way to the tower's battlements to see what might appear on the distant moor or to throw pebbles and bits of lime at the seagulls and cormorants that had carelessly settled within the range of an idle young man.

Ravenswood, with a mind incalculably deeper and more powerful than that of his companion, had his own anxious subjects of reflection, which wrought for him the same unhappiness that sheer enui and want of occupation inflicted on his companion. The first sight of Lucy Ashton had been less impressive than her image proved to be upon reflection. As the depth and violence of that revengeful passion by which he had been actuated in seeking an interview with the father began to abate by degrees, he looked back on his conduct towards the daughter as harsh and unworthy towards a female of rank and beauty. Her looks of grateful acknowledgment, her words of affectionate courtesy, had been repelled with something which approached to disdain; and if the Master of Ravenswood had sustained wrongs at the hand of Sir William Ashton, his conscience told him they had been unhandsomely resented towards his daughter. When his thoughts took this turn of self-reproach, the recollection of Lucy Ashton’s beautiful features, rendered yet more interesting by the circumstances in which their meeting had taken place, made an impression upon his mind at once soothing and painful. The sweetness of her voice, the delicacy of her expressions, the vivid glow of her filial affection, embittered his regret at having repulsed her gratitude with rudeness, while, at the same time, they placed before his imagination a picture of the most seducing sweetness.

Ravenswood, with a mind far deeper and more powerful than that of his companion, had his own troubling thoughts that brought him the same unhappiness that boredom and lack of purpose caused his friend. The first time he saw Lucy Ashton was less striking than her memory turned out to be upon reflection. As the intensity of the vengeful feelings that had driven him to seek an audience with her father gradually faded, he began to see his treatment of Lucy as harsh and unworthy toward a woman of her rank and beauty. Her grateful looks and kind words had been met with something close to disdain; and while Ravenswood had suffered wrongs from Sir William Ashton, he knew in his heart that he had unjustly taken them out on his daughter. When his thoughts shifted to this self-recrimination, the memory of Lucy Ashton’s beautiful face, made even more captivating by the circumstances of their meeting, left him with a mix of comfort and pain. The sweetness of her voice, the gentleness of her words, the warmth of her love for her father deepened his regret for having responded to her gratitude so rudely, even as they painted a picture in his mind of irresistible charm.

Even young Ravenswood’s strength of moral feeling and rectitude of purpose at once increased the danger of cherishing these recollections, and the propensity to entertain them. Firmly resolved as he was to subdue, if possible, the predominating vice in his character, he admitted with willingness—nay, he summoned up in his imagination—the ideas by which it could be most powerfully counteracted; and, while he did so, a sense of his own harsh conduct towards the daughter of his enemy naturally induced him, as if by way of recompense, to invest her with more of grace and beauty than perhaps she could actually claim.

Even young Ravenswood’s strong sense of right and wrong and his determination to do the right thing made it riskier to hold on to these memories, yet he was drawn to them. Though he was committed to overcoming the flaws in his character, he willingly recalled the thoughts that could best counterbalance them; as he did this, his awareness of how harshly he had treated his enemy’s daughter led him to imagine her with more grace and beauty than she might actually possess, almost as a way to make up for his past actions.

Had any one at this period told the Master of Ravenswood that he had so lately vowed vengeance against the whole lineage of him whom he considered, not unjustly, as author of his father’s ruin and death, he might at first have repelled the charge as a foul calumny; yet, upon serious self-examination, he would have been compelled to admit that it had, at one period, some foundation in truth, though, according to the present tone of his sentiments, it was difficult to believe that this had really been the case.

Had anyone at this time told the Master of Ravenswood that he had recently sworn revenge against the entire family of the person he believed, not without reason, to be responsible for his father’s downfall and death, he might have initially dismissed the accusation as a nasty lie; however, upon honest reflection, he would have had to acknowledge that there had been a time when it held some truth, even though, given his current feelings, it was hard to accept that it had ever been true.

There already existed in his bosom two contradictory passions—a desire to revenge the death of his father, strangely qualified by admiration of his enemy’s daughter. Against the former feeling he had struggled, until it seemed to him upon the wane; against the latter he used no means of resistance, for he did not suspect its existence. That this was actually the case was chiefly evinced by his resuming his resolution to leave Scotland. Yet, though such was his purpose, he remained day after day at Wolf’s Crag, without taking measures for carrying it into execution. It is true, that he had written to one or two kinsmen who resided in a distant quarter of Scotland, and particularly to the Marquis of A——, intimating his purpose; and when pressed upon the subject by Bucklaw, he was wont to allege the necessity of waiting for their reply, especially that of the Marquis, before taking so decisive a measure.

He already had two conflicting feelings inside him—a wish to get back at his father's killer, strangely mixed with admiration for his enemy's daughter. He had fought against the first feeling, until it seemed to be fading; but he didn’t resist the second feeling because he didn’t even realize it was there. This became clear when he decided to leave Scotland. Yet, even though that was his plan, he stayed at Wolf’s Crag day after day without doing anything to make it happen. It’s true that he had written to a couple of relatives who lived far away in Scotland, especially to the Marquis of A——, mentioning his plan; and when Bucklaw pressed him on the issue, he often claimed he needed to wait for their replies, particularly the Marquis’s, before making such a big decision.

The Marquis was rich and powerful; and although he was suspected to entertain sentiments unfavourable to the government established at the Revolution, he had nevertheless address enough to head a party in the Scottish privy council, connected with the High Church faction in England, and powerful enough to menace those to whom the Lord Keeper adhered with a probable subversion of their power. The consulting with a personage of such importance was a plausible excuse, which Ravenswood used to Bucklaw, and probably to himself, for continuing his residence at Wolf’s Crag; and it was rendered yet more so by a general report which began to be current of a probable change of ministers and measures in the Scottish administration. The rumours, strongly asserted by some, and as resolutely denied by others, as their wishes or interest dictated, found their way even to the ruinous Tower of Wolf’s Crag, chiefly through the medium of Caleb, the butler, who, among his other excellences, was an ardent politician, and seldom made an excursion from the old fortress to the neighbouring village of Wolf’s Hope without bringing back what tidings were current in the vicinity.

The Marquis was wealthy and influential; and although people suspected he held views against the government set up during the Revolution, he still had enough skill to lead a faction in the Scottish privy council, linked with the High Church group in England, and strong enough to threaten those aligned with the Lord Keeper with a likely overthrow of their power. Consulting someone of such significance was a convincing reason, which Ravenswood used with Bucklaw, and probably convinced himself, to stay at Wolf’s Crag; this was made even more believable by a growing rumor about a potential change of ministers and policies in the Scottish government. The rumors, strongly claimed by some and just as firmly denied by others based on their desires or interests, even reached the crumbling Tower of Wolf’s Crag, primarily through Caleb, the butler, who, among his other qualities, was a passionate politician and rarely left the old fortress for the nearby village of Wolf’s Hope without bringing back the latest news from the area.

But if Bucklaw could not offer any satisfactory objections to the delay of the Master in leaving Scotland, he did not the less suffer with impatience the state of inaction to which it confined him; and it was only the ascendency which his new companion had acquired over him that induced him to submit to a course of life so alien to his habits and inclinations.

But even though Bucklaw couldn't come up with any good reasons to object to the Master delaying his departure from Scotland, he still felt quite frustrated by the inactivity it forced upon him. It was only because of the influence that his new companion had over him that he agreed to live a life so different from his usual habits and preferences.

“You were wont to be thought a stirring active young fellow, Master,” was his frequent remonstrance; “yet here you seem determined to live on and on like a rat in a hole, with this trifling difference, that the wiser vermin chooses a hermitage where he can find food at least; but as for us, Caleb’s excuses become longer as his diet turns more spare, and I fear we shall realise the stories they tell of the sloth,—we have almost eat up the last green leaf on the plant, and have nothing left for it but to drop from the tree and break our necks.”

“You used to be seen as a lively and active young man, Master,” he often complained; “yet here you seem set on living like a rat in a hole, with one small difference: the smarter pests find a safe place where they can at least find food. But as for us, Caleb's excuses grow longer as our food runs thinner, and I worry we’ll end up like the tales they tell about laziness—we've nearly eaten the last green leaf on the plant, and we have nothing left but to fall from the tree and break our necks.”

“Do not fear it,” said Ravenswood; “there is a fate watches for us, and we too have a stake in the revolution that is now impending, and which already has alarmed many a bosom.”

“Don’t be afraid of it,” said Ravenswood; “there’s a fate waiting for us, and we also have a part to play in the revolution that’s about to happen, which has already worried many hearts.”

“What fate—what revolution?” inquired his companion. “We have had one revolution too much already, I think.”

“What fate—what revolution?” his companion asked. “I think we’ve already had one revolution too many.”

Ravenswood interrupted him by putting into his hands a letter.

Ravenswood interrupted him by handing him a letter.

“Oh,” answered Bucklaw, “my dream’s out. I thought I heard Caleb this morning pressing some unfortunate fellow to a drink of cold water, and assuring him it was better for his stomach in the morning than ale or brandy.”

“Oh,” replied Bucklaw, “my dream’s over. I thought I heard Caleb this morning trying to convince some poor guy to drink cold water, insisting it was better for his stomach in the morning than ale or brandy.”

“It was my Lord of A——’s courier,” said Ravenswood, “who was doomed to experience his ostentatious hospitality, which I believe ended in sour beer and herrings. Read, and you will see the news he has brought us.”

“It was my Lord of A——’s courier,” said Ravenswood, “who was unfortunate enough to experience his flashy hospitality, which I believe ended with stale beer and herring. Read this, and you’ll see the news he has brought us.”

“I will as fast as I can,” said Bucklaw; “but I am no great clerk, nor does his lordship seem to be the first of scribes.”

“I'll do it as quickly as I can,” said Bucklaw; “but I'm not much of a scholar, and his lordship doesn't seem to be the best at writing either.”

The reader will peruse, in a few seconds, by the aid our friend Ballantyne’s types, what took Bucklaw a good half hour in perusal, though assisted by the Master of Ravenswood. The tenor was as follows:

The reader will skim, in just a few seconds, with the help of our friend Ballantyne's types, what took Bucklaw a solid half hour to read, even with the Master of Ravenswood's assistance. The content was as follows:

“RIGHT HONOURABLE OUR COUSIN:

“Right Honorable Our Cousin:”

“Our hearty commendations premised, these come to assure you of the interest which we take in your welfare, and in your purpose towards its augmentation. If we have been less active in showing forth our effective good-will towards you than, as a loving kinsman and blood-relative, we would willingly have desired, we request that you will impute it to lack of opportunity to show our good-liking, not to any coldness of our will. Touching your resolution to travel in foreign parts, as at this time we hold the same little advisable, in respect that your ill-willers may, according to the custom of such persons, impute motives for your journey, whereof, although we know and believe you to be as clear as ourselves, yet natheless their words may find credence in places where the belief in them may much prejudice you, and which we should see with more unwillingness and displeasure than with means of remedy.

“Our heartfelt commendations aside, we want to assure you of our concern for your well-being and your goal to improve it. If we have been less active in demonstrating our genuine goodwill towards you than, as a loving family member, we would have liked, we ask that you attribute it to a lack of opportunity to express our fondness, not to any indifference on our part. Regarding your decision to travel abroad, we currently believe it's not advisable, as your detractors might, as is typical for such people, assign motives to your journey. Although we know and believe you to be innocent as ourselves, their words could gain traction in places where the belief in them could harm you, and we would dislike seeing that happen even more than we would dislike finding a way to remedy it.”

“Having thus, as becometh our kindred, given you our poor mind on the subject of your journeying forth of Scotland, we would willingly add reasons of weight, which might materially advantage you and your father’s house, thereby to determine you to abide at Wolf’s Crag, until this harvest season shall be passed over. But what sayeth the proverb, verbum sapienti—a word is more to him that hath wisdom than a sermon to a fool. And albeit we have written this poor scroll with our own hand, and are well assured of the fidelity of our messenger, as him that is many ways bounden to us, yet so it is, that sliddery ways crave wary walking, and that we may not peril upon paper matters which we would gladly impart to you by word of mouth. Wherefore, it was our purpose to have prayed you heartily to come to this our barren Highland country to kill a stag, and to treat of the matters which we are now more painfully inditing to you anent. But commodity does not serve at present for such our meeting, which, therefore, shall be deferred until sic time as we may in all mirth rehearse those things whereof we now keep silence. Meantime, we pray you to think that we are, and will still be, your good kinsman and well-wisher, waiting but for times of whilk we do, as it were, entertain a twilight prospect, and appear and hope to be also your effectual well-doer. And in which hope we heartily write ourself,

“Having shared our humble thoughts about your journey out of Scotland, we would like to offer some important reasons that could greatly benefit you and your family, encouraging you to stay at Wolf’s Crag until this harvest season is over. But what does the saying go, verbum sapienti—a word is more valuable to a wise person than a sermon is to a fool. Even though we have written this brief note by hand and trust our messenger, who is bound to us in many ways, slippery paths require careful steps, and we don't want to risk paper matters that we would prefer to discuss in person. For this reason, we intended to invite you warmly to visit our barren Highland country to hunt a stag and discuss the matters we are now writing to you about. However, our current circumstances don’t allow for such a meeting, so it will have to be postponed until we can joyfully talk about those things we now keep quiet. In the meantime, please remember that we are, and will always be, your good relative and well-wisher, waiting for the right moment, which we somewhat foresee, to be your genuine supporter. With this hope, we sincerely write to you,”

“Right Honourable,
    “Your loving cousin,
    “A——.

"Dear Honourable,
    "Your loving cousin,
    "A——.

“Given from our poor house of B——,” etc.

“Given from our humble home of B——,” etc.

Superscribed—“For the right honourable, and our honoured kinsman, the Master of Ravenswood—These, with haste, haste, post haste—ride and run until these be delivered.”

Superscribed—“For the right honorable, and our esteemed relative, the Master of Ravenswood—These, with urgency, urgency, as fast as possible—ride and run until these are delivered.”

“What think you of this epistle, Bucklaw?” said the Master, when his companion had hammered out all the sense, and almost all the words of which it consisted.

“What do you think of this letter, Bucklaw?” said the Master, once his friend had figured out the meaning and nearly all the words it contained.

“Truly, that the Marquis’s meaning is as great a riddle as his manuscript. He is really in much need of Wit’s Interpreter, or the Complete Letter-Writer, and were I you, I would send him a copy by the bearer. He writes you very kindly to remain wasting your time and your money in this vile, stupid, oppressed country, without so much as offering you the countenance and shelter of his house. In my opinion, he has some scheme in view in which he supposes you can be useful, and he wishes to keep you at hand, to make use of you when it ripens, reserving the power of turning you adrift, should his plot fail in the concoction.”

“Honestly, the Marquis’s intentions are as confusing as his writing. He really needs Wit’s Interpreter or the Complete Letter-Writer, and if I were you, I’d send him a copy with the messenger. He kindly writes to you to continue wasting your time and money in this awful, stupid, oppressive country, without even offering you the support and shelter of his home. I think he has some plan in mind where he believes you could be useful, and he wants to keep you nearby for when it’s ready, all while having the option to get rid of you if his idea falls through.”

“His plot! Then you suppose it is a treasonable business,” answered Ravenswood.

“His scheme! So you think it's a treasonous matter,” replied Ravenswood.

“What else can it be?” replied Bucklaw; “the Marquis has been long suspected to have an eye to Saint Germains.”

“What else could it be?” replied Bucklaw; “the Marquis has long been suspected of having an interest in Saint Germains.”

“He should not engage me rashly in such an adventure,” said Ravenswood; “when I recollect the times of the first and second Charles, and of the last James, truly I see little reason that, as a man or a patriot, I should draw my sword for their descendants.”

“He shouldn’t involve me impulsively in such a risky venture,” said Ravenswood; “when I think about the reigns of the first and second Charles, and the last James, I really see very little reason that, as a man or a patriot, I should take up my sword for their descendants.”

“Humph!” replied Bucklaw; “so you have set yourself down to mourn over the crop-eared dogs whom honest Claver’se treated as they deserved?”

“Humph!” replied Bucklaw; “so you’ve decided to sit around grieving for the crop-eared dogs that the honest Claver’se dealt with as they should have been?”

“They first gave the dogs an ill name, and then hanged them,” replied Ravenswood. “I hope to see the day when justice shall be open to Whig and Tory, and when these nicknames shall only be used among coffee-house politicians, as ‘slut’ and ‘jade’ are among apple-women, as cant terms of idle spite and rancour.”

“They first gave the dogs a bad reputation and then hanged them,” replied Ravenswood. “I hope to see the day when justice is accessible to both Whigs and Tories, and when these nicknames are only used among coffee shop politicians, just like ‘slut’ and ‘jade’ are among fruit sellers, as terms of petty malice and bitterness.”

“That will not be in our days, Master: the iron has entered too deeply into our sides and our souls.”

"That won't happen in our time, Master: the iron has penetrated too deeply into our sides and our souls."

“It will be, however, one day,” replied the Master; “men will not always start at these nicknames as at a trumpet-sound. As social life is better protected, its comforts will become too dear to be hazarded without some better reasons than speculative politics.”

“It will be, however, one day,” replied the Master; “people will not always react to these nicknames like they do to a trumpet blast. As social life is better safeguarded, its comforts will become too valuable to risk without more solid reasons than just theoretical politics.”

“It is fine talking,” answered Bucklaw; “but my heart is with the old song—

“It’s nice talking,” Bucklaw replied, “but my heart is with the old song—

To see good corn upon the rigs,
And a gallow built to hang the Whigs,
And the right restored where the right should be.
Oh, that is the thing that would wanton me.”

To see great corn in the fields,
And a gallows built to hang the Whigs,
And the right set back where it belongs.
Oh, that’s what would make me happy.”

“You may sing as loudly as you will, cantabit vacuus,”—answered the Master; “but I believe the Marquis is too wise, at least too wary, to join you in such a burden. I suspect he alludes to a revolution in the Scottish privy council, rather than in the British kingdoms.”

“You can sing as loudly as you want, cantabit vacuus,” answered the Master; “but I think the Marquis is too smart, or at least too cautious, to get involved with such a burden. I suspect he’s referring to a revolution in the Scottish privy council, not in the British kingdoms.”

“Oh, confusion to your state tricks!” exclaimed Bucklaw—“your cold calculating manœuvres, which old gentlemen in wrought nightcaps and furred gowns execute like so many games at chess, and displace a treasurer or lord commissioner as they would take a rook or a pawn. Tennis for my sport, and battle for my earnest! And you, Master, so deep and considerate as you would seem, you have that within you makes the blood boil faster than suits your present humour of moralising on political truths. You are one of those wise men who see everything with great composure till their blood is up, and then—woe to any one who should put them in mind of their own prudential maxims!”

“Oh, how confusing your state schemes are!” Bucklaw exclaimed. “Your cold, calculating maneuvers, which old men in fancy nightcaps and fur-lined gowns pull off like a chess game, replacing a treasurer or lord commissioner as easily as they’d move a rook or a pawn. I prefer tennis for fun and battle for seriousness! And you, Master, so deep and thoughtful as you pretend to be, have something inside you that makes the blood boil faster than is fitting for your current mood of lecturing on political truths. You’re one of those wise guys who view everything with great calm until your blood is up, and then—watch out for anyone who reminds you of your own sensible rules!”

“Perhaps,” said Ravenswood, “you read me more rightly than I can myself. But to think justly will certainly go some length in helping me to act so. But hark! I hear Caleb tolling the dinner-bell.”

“Maybe,” said Ravenswood, “you understand me better than I do myself. But thinking clearly will definitely help me take the right actions. But wait! I hear Caleb ringing the dinner bell.”

“Which he always does with the more sonorous grace in proportion to the meagreness of the cheer which he has provided,” said Bucklaw; “as if that infernal clang and jangle, which will one day bring the belfry down the cliff, could convert a starved hen into a fat capon, and a blade-bone of mutton into a haunch of venison.”

“Which he always carries out with even more musical charm, depending on how little joy he's provided,” said Bucklaw; “as if that annoying noise, which will eventually cause the belfry to tumble down the cliff, could turn a scrawny hen into a plump turkey and a scrap of mutton into a luxurious haunch of venison.”

“I wish we may be so well off as your worst conjectures surmise, Bucklaw, from the extreme solemnity and ceremony with which Caleb seems to place on the table that solitary covered dish.”

“I hope we’re in a better situation than your worst fears suggest, Bucklaw, given the extreme seriousness and formality with which Caleb appears to set that solitary covered dish on the table.”

“Uncover, Caleb! uncover, for Heaven’s sake!” said Bucklaw; “let us have what you can give us without preface. Why, it stands well enough, man,” he continued, addressing impatiently the ancient butler, who, without reply, kept shifting the dish, until he had at length placed it with mathematical precision in the very midst of the table.

“Uncover it, Caleb! For heaven’s sake, hurry!” said Bucklaw. “Just give us what you have without any introduction. It looks fine enough, man,” he continued, speaking impatiently to the old butler, who, without responding, kept adjusting the dish until he finally positioned it with exact precision right in the center of the table.

“What have we got here, Caleb?” inquired the Master in his turn.

“What do we have here, Caleb?” the Master asked in response.

“Ahem! sir, ye suld have known before; but his honour the Laird of Bucklaw is so impatient,” answered Caleb, still holding the dish with one hand and the cover with the other, with evident reluctance to disclose the contents.

“Ahem! Sir, you should have known before; but his honor the Laird of Bucklaw is so impatient,” answered Caleb, still holding the dish in one hand and the cover in the other, clearly reluctant to reveal what was inside.

“But what is it, a God’s name—not a pair of clean spurs, I hope, in the Border fashion of old times?”

“But what is it, for God’s sake—not just a pair of clean spurs, I hope, like those from the old days on the Border?”

“Ahem! ahem!” reiterated Caleb, “your honour is pleased to be facetious; natheless, I might presume to say it was a convenient fashion, and used, as I have heard, in an honourable and thriving family. But touching your present dinner, I judged that this being St. Magdalen’s [Margaret’s] Eve, who was a worthy queen of Scotland in her day, your honours might judge it decorous, if not altogether to fast, yet only to sustain nature with some slight refection, as ane saulted herring or the like.” And, uncovering the dish, he displayed four of the savoury fishes which he mentioned, adding, in a subdued tone, “that they were no just common herring neither, being every ane melters, and sauted with uncommon care by the housekeeper (poor Mysie) for his honour’s especial use.”

“Ahem! ahem!” Caleb repeated, “Your honor is being playful; however, I must say it was a common practice, and I’ve heard it was done in a respectable and successful family. But regarding your dinner, I thought that since today is St. Magdalen’s [Margaret’s] Eve, who was a noble queen of Scotland in her time, it would be proper for your honors, if not to fast completely, at least to nourish yourselves with something light, like a salted herring or something similar.” As he uncovered the dish, he revealed four of the tasty fish he mentioned, adding in a quieter tone, “These are not just ordinary herring, either; each one is a melt-in-your-mouth delicacy, sautéed with special care by the housekeeper (poor Mysie) just for your honor’s use.”

“Out upon all apologies!” said the Master, “let us eat the herrings, since there is nothing better to be had; but I begin to think with you, Bucklaw, that we are consuming the last green leaf, and that, in spite of the Marquis’s political machinations, we must positively shift camp for want of forage, without waiting the issue of them.”

“Enough with all the apologies!” said the Master. “Let’s eat the herrings, since there’s nothing better available; but I’m starting to agree with you, Bucklaw, that we are running out of resources, and that, despite the Marquis’s political schemes, we definitely need to move camp due to lack of supplies, without waiting to see how things turn out.”

CHAPTER IX.

Ay, and when huntsmen wind the merry horn,
And from its covert starts the fearful prey,
Who, warm’d with youth’s blood in his swelling veins,
Would, like a lifeless clod, outstretched lie,
Shut out from all the fair creation offers?

Ethwald, Act I. Scene 1.

Yeah, and when hunters blow the cheerful horn,
And the frightened game leaps from its hiding place,
Who, filled with the passion of youth in his pumping veins,
Would just lie there like a lifeless lump,
Shut out from everything beautiful in the world?

Ethwald, Act I. Scene 1.

Light meals procure light slumbers; and therefore it is not surprising that, considering the fare which Caleb’s conscience, or his necessity, assuming, as will sometimes happen, that disguise, had assigned to the guests of Wolf’s Crag, their slumbers should have been short.

Light meals lead to light sleep; so it’s not surprising that, given the food that Caleb’s conscience, or his need—sometimes taking on a disguise—had provided for the guests at Wolf’s Crag, their sleep should have been brief.

In the morning Bucklaw rushed into his host’s apartment with a loud halloo, which might have awaked the dead.

In the morning, Bucklaw burst into his host's room with a loud shout that could have woken the dead.

“Up! up! in the name of Heaven! The hunters are out, the only piece of sport I have seen this month; and you lie here, Master, on a bed that has little to recommend it, except that it may be something softer than the stone floor of your ancestor’s vault.”

“Up! Up! For heaven's sake! The hunters are out, the only bit of excitement I’ve seen this month; and you’re just lying here, Master, on a bed that doesn’t have much going for it, except that it might be a bit softer than the stone floor of your ancestor’s vault.”

“I wish,” said Ravenswood, raising his head peevishly, “you had forborne so early a jest, Mr. Hayston; it is really no pleasure to lose the very short repose which I had just begun to enjoy, after a night spent in thoughts upon fortune far harder than my couch, Bucklaw.”

“I wish,” said Ravenswood, lifting his head irritably, “you had held off on that joke, Mr. Hayston; it's honestly no fun to lose the brief rest I had just started to enjoy after a night spent thinking about fortunes much harsher than my bed, Bucklaw.”

“Pschaw, pshaw!” replied his guest; “get up—get up; the hounds are abroad. I have saddled the horses myself, for old Caleb was calling for grooms and lackeys, and would never have proceeded without two hours’ apology for the absence of men that were a hundred miles off. Get up, Master; I say the hounds are out—get up, I say; the hunt is up.” And off ran Bucklaw.

“Pshh, come on!” replied his guest; “get up—get up; the hounds are out. I’ve saddled the horses myself since old Caleb was asking for grooms and servants, and he wouldn’t have started without a two-hour excuse for the absence of men who were a hundred miles away. Get up, Master; I’m telling you the hounds are out—get up, I say; the hunt is on.” And off ran Bucklaw.

“And I say,” said the Master, rising slowly, “that nothing can concern me less. Whose hounds come so near to us?”

“And I say,” said the Master, getting up slowly, “that nothing could matter to me less. Whose hounds are that close to us?”

“The Honourable Lord Bittlebrains’,” answered Caleb, who had followed the impatient Laird of Bucklaw into his master’s bedroom, “and truly I ken nae title they have to be yowling and howling within the freedoms and immunities of your lordship’s right of free forestry.”

“The Honorable Lord Bittlebrains,” replied Caleb, who had followed the impatient Laird of Bucklaw into his master’s bedroom, “and honestly, I don’t know what right they have to be yelling and screaming within the rights and privileges of your lordship’s free forestry.”

“Nor I, Caleb,” replied Ravenswood, “excepting that they have bought both the lands and the right of forestry, and may think themselves entitled to exercise the rights they have paid their money for.”

“Nor I, Caleb,” replied Ravenswood, “except that they have bought both the land and the right to log it, and might feel entitled to use the rights they’ve paid for.”

“It may be sae, my lord,” replied Caleb; “but it’s no gentleman’s deed of them to come here and exercise such-like right, and your lordship living at your ain castle of Wolf’s Crag. Lord Bittlebrains would weel to remember what his folk have been.”

“It might be so, my lord,” replied Caleb; “but it’s not right for them to come here and act that way, especially with your lordship living in your own castle at Wolf’s Crag. Lord Bittlebrains should remember what his people have been.”

“And what we now are,” said the Master, with suppressed bitterness of feeling. “But reach me my cloak, Caleb, and I will indulge Bucklaw with a sight of this chase. It is selfish to sacrifice my guest’s pleasure to my own.”

“And what we currently are,” said the Master, with contained bitterness. “But hand me my cloak, Caleb, and I’ll show Bucklaw this chase. It's selfish to put my own pleasure ahead of my guest's.”

“Sacrifice!” echoed Caleb, in a tone which seemed to imply the total absurdity of his master making the least concession in deference to any one—“sacrifice, indeed!—but I crave your honour’s pardon, and whilk doublet is it your pleasure to wear?”

“Sacrifice!” Caleb shouted, his tone suggesting the complete ridiculousness of his master making even the slightest concession to anyone—“sacrifice, really!—but I beg your pardon, which doublet would you like to wear?”

“Any one you will, Caleb; my wardrobe, I suppose, is not very extensive.”

“Anyone you want, Caleb; I guess my wardrobe isn't very large.”

“Not extensive!” echoed his assistant; “when there is the grey and silver that your lordship bestowed on Hew Hildebrand, your outrider; and the French velvet that went with my lord your father—be gracious to him!—my lord your father’s auld wardrobe to the puir friends of the family; and the drap-de-Berry——”

“Not extensive!” echoed his assistant; “when there is the grey and silver that you gave to Hew Hildebrand, your outrider; and the French velvet that belonged to my lord your father—may he rest in peace!—my lord your father’s old wardrobe to the poor friends of the family; and the drap-de-Berry——”

“Which I gave to you, Caleb, and which, I suppose, is the only dress we have any chance to come at, except that I wore yesterday; pray, hand me that, and say no more about it.”

“Which I gave to you, Caleb, and which, I guess, is the only dress we can get to, except for the one I wore yesterday; please, hand me that, and let’s not discuss it any further.”

“If your honour has a fancy,” replied Caleb, “and doubtless it’s a sad-coloured suit, and you are in mourning; nevertheless, I have never tried on the drap-de-Berry—ill wad it become me—and your honour having no change of claiths at this present—and it’s weel brushed, and as there are leddies down yonder——”

“If you’re interested,” replied Caleb, “and I can see it’s a dark suit since you’re in mourning; still, I’ve never tried on the drap-de-Berry—it wouldn’t suit me at all—and since you don’t have any spare clothes right now—and it’s nicely pressed, and since there are ladies down there——”

“Ladies!” said Ravenswood; “and what ladies, pray?”

“Ladies!” said Ravenswood; “and which ladies are we talking about?”

“What do I ken, your lordship? Looking down at them from the Warden’s Tower, I could but see them glent by wi’ their bridles ringing and their feathers fluttering, like the court of Elfland.”

“What do I know, my lord? Looking down at them from the Warden’s Tower, I could only see them glancing by with their bridles jingling and their feathers fluttering, like the court of Elfland.”

“Well, well, Caleb,” replied the Master, “help me on with my cloak, and hand me my sword-belt. What clatter is that in the courtyard?”

“Well, well, Caleb,” replied the Master, “help me put on my cloak, and pass me my sword-belt. What noise is that in the courtyard?”

“Just Bucklaw bringing out the horses,” said Caleb, after a glance through the window, “as if there werena men eneugh in the castle, or as if I couldna serve the turn of ony o’ them that are out o’ the gate.”

“Just Bucklaw bringing out the horses,” Caleb said after glancing through the window, “as if there aren’t enough men in the castle, or as if I couldn’t help any of those who are outside the gate.”

“Alas! Caleb, we should want little if your ability were equal to your will,” replied the Master.

“Unfortunately, Caleb, we wouldn’t need much if your skills matched your desire,” replied the Master.

“And I hope your lordship disna want that muckle,” said Caleb; “for, considering a’ things, I trust we support the credit of the family as weel as things will permit of,—only Bucklaw is aye sae frank and sae forward. And there he has brought out your lordship’s palfrey, without the saddle being decored wi’ the broidered sumpter-cloth! and I could have brushed it in a minute.”

“And I hope you don’t want that much,” said Caleb; “because, considering everything, I trust we’re upholding the family’s reputation as well as possible—only Bucklaw is always so bold and so eager. And there he has brought out your horse, without the saddle being decorated with the embroidered cloth! I could have cleaned it up in a minute.”

“It is all very well,” said his master, escaping from him and descending the narrow and steep winding staircase which led to the courtyard.

“It’s all good,” said his master, breaking away from him and heading down the narrow, steep, winding staircase that led to the courtyard.

“It may be a’ very weel,” said Caleb, somewhat peevishly; “but if your lordship wad tarry a bit, I will tell you what will not be very weel.”

“It might be all well and good,” said Caleb, a bit irritably; “but if you could just hold on for a moment, I’ll tell you what will not be all that great.”

“And what is that?” said Ravenswood, impatiently, but stopping at the same time.

“And what is that?” Ravenswood asked, a bit impatient, but he paused at the same time.

“Why, just that ye suld speer ony gentleman hame to dinner; for I canna mak anither fast on a feast day, as when I cam ower Bucklaw wi’ Queen Margaret; and, to speak truth, if your lordship wad but please to cast yoursell in the way of dining wi’ Lord Bittlebrains, I’se warrand I wad cast about brawly for the morn; or if, stead o’ that, ye wad but dine wi’ them at the change-house, ye might mak your shift for the awing: ye might say ye had forgot your purse, or that the carline awed ye rent, and that ye wad allow it in the settlement.”

“Why don’t you just ask any gentleman to come home for dinner? I can’t fast on a feast day, like when I came over Bucklaw with Queen Margaret; and to be honest, if you’d just consider dining with Lord Bittlebrains, I bet I could figure things out nicely for tomorrow. Or instead, if you’d just dine with them at the tavern, you could manage for the payment: you could say you forgot your wallet, or that the old woman owed you rent, and you would settle it later.”

“Or any other lie that came uppermost, I suppose?” said his master. “Good-bye, Caleb; I commend your care for the honour of the family.” And, throwing himself on his horse, he followed Bucklaw, who, at the manifest risk of his neck, had begun to gallop down the steep path which led from the Tower as soon as he saw Ravenswood have his foot in the stirrup.

“Or any other lie that popped into your head, I guess?” said his master. “Goodbye, Caleb; I appreciate your concern for the family’s reputation.” And, leaping onto his horse, he chased after Bucklaw, who, at great risk to himself, had started to race down the steep path leading from the Tower as soon as he saw Ravenswood get his foot in the stirrup.

Caleb Balderstone looked anxiously after them, and shook his thin grey locks: “And I trust they will come to no evil; but they have reached the plain, and folk cannot say but that the horse are hearty and in spirits.”

Caleb Balderstone watched them anxiously and shook his thin gray hair. “I hope nothing bad happens to them; but they've made it to the plain, and people can’t deny that the horses are healthy and in good spirits.”

Animated by the natural impetuosity and fire of his temper, young Bucklaw rushed on with the careless speed of a whirlwind. Ravenswood was scarce more moderate in his pace, for his was a mind unwillingly roused from contemplative inactivity, but which, when once put into motion, acquired a spirit of forcible and violent progression. Neither was his eagerness proportioned in all cases to the motive of impulse, but might be compared to the speed of a stone, which rushes with like fury down the hill whether it was first put in motion by the arm of a giant or the hand of a boy. He felt, therefore, in no ordinary degree, the headlong impulse of the chase, a pastime so natural to youth of all ranks, that it seems rather to be an inherent passion in our animal nature, which levels all differences of rank and education, than an acquired habit of rapid exercise.

Fueled by his natural impulsiveness and fiery temperament, young Bucklaw raced forward with the careless speed of a whirlwind. Ravenswood was hardly any slower, as his mind reluctantly shifted from deep thought, but once he got going, he moved with a forceful momentum. His eagerness didn’t always match the reason behind it, but could be likened to the speed of a rock that careens downhill with equal intensity, whether set in motion by a giant's hand or a boy's. He felt the intense drive of the chase, a pastime so instinctive for youth of all backgrounds that it seems more like an inherent passion in our nature, bridging all divides of status and education, rather than just a learned habit of quick exercise.

The repeated bursts of the French horn, which was then always used for the encouragement and direction of the hounds; the deep, though distant baying of the pack; the half-heard cries of the huntsmen; the half-seen forms which were discovered, now emerging from glens which crossed the moor, now sweeping over its surface, now picking their way where it was impeded by morasses; and, above all, the feeling of his own rapid motion, animated the Master of Ravenswood, at last for the moment, above the recollections of a more painful nature by which he was surrounded. The first thing which recalled him to those unpleasing circumstances was feeling that his horse, notwithstanding all the advantages which he received from his rider’s knowledge of the country, was unable to keep up with the chase. As he drew his bridle up with the bitter feeling that his poverty excluded him from the favourite recreation of his forefathers, and indeed their sole employment when not engaged in military pursuits, he was accosted by a well-mounted stranger, who, unobserved, had kept near him during the earlier part of his career.

The repeated sounds of the French horn, which was always used to encourage and guide the hounds; the deep, though distant barking of the pack; the half-heard shouts of the huntsmen; the barely visible figures that appeared, now coming out of the valleys crossing the moor, now moving across its surface, now carefully navigating through the marshy areas; and, above all, the sensation of his own swift movement, lifted the Master of Ravenswood, if only for a moment, above the painful memories that surrounded him. The first thing that reminded him of those unpleasant circumstances was the realization that his horse, despite all the advantages gained from his rider’s familiarity with the area, could not keep up with the chase. As he pulled back on the reins with the bitter realization that his poverty kept him from the favored pastime of his ancestors—and indeed their only occupation when not engaged in military endeavors—he was approached by a well-mounted stranger who had quietly kept pace with him during the earlier part of his ride.

“Your horse is blown,” said the man, with a complaisance seldom used in a hunting-field. “Might I crave your honour to make use of mine?”

“Your horse is done for,” said the man, with a friendliness rarely seen in a hunting field. “Could I ask you to use mine?”

“Sir,” said Ravenswood, more surprised than pleased at such a proposal. “I really do not know how I have merited such a favour at a stranger’s hands.”

“Sir,” said Ravenswood, more surprised than happy at such a proposal. “I honestly don’t know how I’ve earned such a favor from a stranger.”

“Never ask a question about it, Master,” said Bucklaw, who, with great unwillingness, had hitherto reined in his own gallant steed, not to outride his host and entertainer. “Take the goods the gods provide you, as the great John Dryden says; or stay—here, my friend, lend me that horse; I see you have been puzzled to rein him up this half-hour. I’ll take the devil out of him for you. Now, Master, do you ride mine, which will carry you like an eagle.”

“Don’t ever ask about it, Master,” said Bucklaw, who, with great reluctance, had been holding back his own brave horse so he wouldn’t outpace his host. “Take what the gods give you, as the great John Dryden said; or wait—here, my friend, let me use that horse; I can see you’ve been struggling to keep him calm for the last half hour. I’ll take care of him for you. Now, Master, you can ride mine, which will carry you like an eagle.”

And throwing the rein of his own horse to the Master of Ravenswood, he sprung upon that which the stranger resigned to him, and continued his career at full speed. “Was ever so thoughtless a being!” said the Master; “and you, my friend, how could you trust him with your horse?”

And tossing the reins of his own horse to the Master of Ravenswood, he jumped onto the one the stranger had given him and took off at full speed. “Was there ever a more reckless person?” said the Master; “and you, my friend, how could you trust him with your horse?”

“The horse,” said the man, “belongs to a person who will make your honour, or any of your honourable friends, most welcome to him, flesh and fell.”

“The horse,” the man said, “belongs to someone who will treat you, or any of your esteemed friends, very warmly, in body and spirit.”

“And the owner’s name is——?” asked Ravenswood.

“And the owner's name is——?” asked Ravenswood.

“Your honour must excuse me, you will learn that from himself. If you please to take your friend’s horse, and leave me your galloway, I will meet you after the fall of the stag, for I hear they are blowing him at bay.”

“Your honor will have to excuse me; you’ll find that out from him. If you’d like to take your friend’s horse and leave me your galloway, I’ll meet you after the stag falls, because I hear they’re calling him at bay.”

“I believe, my friend, it will be the best way to recover your good horse for you,” answered Ravenswood; and mounting the nag of his friend Bucklaw, he made all the haste in his power to the spot where the blast of the horn announced that the stag’s career was nearly terminated.

“I think, my friend, this will be the best way for you to get your good horse back,” replied Ravenswood. Then, getting on Bucklaw's horse, he rushed as quickly as he could to the place where the sound of the horn indicated that the stag was almost done for.

These jovial sounds were intermixed with the huntsmen’s shouts of “Hyke a Talbot! Hyke a Teviot! now, boys, now!” and similar cheering halloos of the olden hunting-field, to which the impatient yelling of the hounds, now close of the object of their pursuit, gave a lively and unremitting chorus. The straggling riders began now to rally towards the scene of action, collecting from different points as to a common centre.

These cheerful sounds mixed with the hunters’ shouts of “Get a Talbot! Get a Teviot! Come on, guys, let’s go!” and other encouraging cheers from the classic hunting field, while the excited barking of the hounds, now close to their target, provided a continuous and lively backdrop. The scattered riders started to gather around the action, coming together from various directions to a central point.

Bucklaw kept the start which he had gotten, and arrived first at the spot, where the stag, incapable of sustaining a more prolonged flight, had turned upon the hounds, and, in the hunter’s phrase, was at bay. With his stately head bent down, his sides white with foam, his eyes strained betwixt rage and terror, the hunted animal had now in his turn become an object of intimidation to his pursuers. The hunters came up one by one, and watched an opportunity to assail him with some advantage, which, in such circumstances, can only be done with caution. The dogs stood aloof and bayed loudly, intimating at once eagerness and fear, and each of the sportsmen seemed to expect that his comrade would take upon him the perilous task of assaulting and disabling the animal. The ground, which was a hollow in the common or moor, afforded little advantage for approaching the stag unobserved; and general was the shout of triumph when Bucklaw, with the dexterity proper to an accomplished cavalier of the day, sprang from his horse, and dashing suddenly and swiftly at the stag, brought him to the ground by a cut on the hind leg with his short hunting-sword. The pack, rushing in upon their disabled enemy, soon ended his painful struggles, and solemnised his fall with their clamour; the hunters, with their horns and voices, whooping and blowing a mort, or death-note, which resounded far over the billows of the adjacent ocean.

Bucklaw kept the lead he had gained and arrived first at the spot where the stag, unable to run any longer, had turned to face the hounds and was, in hunting terms, at bay. With his proud head lowered, his sides foaming white, and his eyes wild with a mix of rage and fear, the hunted animal had now become a source of intimidation for his pursuers. The hunters gathered one by one, looking for a chance to attack him from a safer position, which in these situations had to be done carefully. The dogs stood back, barking loudly, showing both eagerness and fear, and each hunter seemed to expect that his friends would take on the risky job of attacking and subduing the animal. The ground, which was a dip in the common or moor, offered little cover for approaching the stag unnoticed; cheers of triumph erupted when Bucklaw, with the skill of a seasoned horseman of the time, leaped from his horse and, rushing swiftly at the stag, brought him down with a cut to the hind leg using his short hunting sword. The pack charged in on their wounded opponent, quickly ending his painful struggles and marking his fall with their loud barks; the hunters, with their horns and voices, whooped and blew a mort, or death note, that echoed far over the waves of the nearby ocean.


The huntsman then withdrew the hounds from the throttled stag, and on his knee presented his knife to a fair female form, on a white palfrey, whose terror, or perhaps her compassion, had till then kept her at some distance. She wore a black silk riding-mask, which was then a common fashion, as well for preserving the complexion from the sun and rain, as from an idea of decorum, which did not permit a lady to appear barefaced while engaged in a boisterous sport, and attended by a promiscuous company. The richness of her dress, however, as well as the mettle and form of her palfrey, together with the silvan compliment paid to her by the huntsman, pointed her out to Bucklaw as the principal person in the field. It was not without a feeling of pity, approaching even to contempt, that this enthusiastic hunter observed her refuse the huntsman’s knife, presented to her for the purpose of making the first incision in the stag’s breast, and thereby discovering the venison. He felt more than half inclined to pay his compliments to her; but it had been Bucklaw’s misfortune, that his habits of life had not rendered him familiarly acquainted with the higher and better classes of female society, so that, with all his natural audacity, he felt sheepish and bashful when it became necessary to address a lady of distinction.

The huntsman then pulled the hounds away from the struggling stag and, kneeling, offered his knife to a beautiful woman on a white horse, whose fear—or maybe compassion—had kept her at a distance until now. She wore a black silk riding mask, which was a common trend at the time, used to protect her skin from the sun and rain, and to uphold a sense of decency that prevented a woman from appearing barefaced while engaged in a rough sport surrounded by a mixed crowd. The elegance of her outfit, along with her horse's spirit and appearance, plus the respectful nod from the huntsman, made it clear to Bucklaw that she was the main figure in the area. He observed her turning down the huntsman’s knife, offered to make the first cut in the stag’s breast and reveal the meat, with a sense of pity that almost bordered on disdain. He felt more than a little tempted to compliment her, but Bucklaw's lifestyle had not given him the chance to become familiar with the upper echelons of female society. So, despite his natural boldness, he felt awkward and shy when it came to speaking to a distinguished lady.

Taking unto himself heart of grace (to use his own phrase), he did at length summon up resolution enough to give the fair huntress good time of the day, and trust that her sport had answered her expectation. Her answer was very courteously and modestly expressed, and testified some gratitude to the gallant cavalier, whose exploit had terminated the chase so adroitly, when the hounds and huntsmen seemed somewhat at a stand.

Taking to heart a sense of grace (to use his own phrase), he finally gathered enough courage to greet the lovely huntress warmly and hoped that her hunting had met her expectations. Her response was very polite and modest, expressing some gratitude to the brave knight, whose skill had skillfully ended the chase when both the hounds and the hunters seemed a bit stuck.

“Uds daggers and scabbard, madam,” said Bucklaw, whom this observation brought at once upon his own ground, “there is no difficulty or merit in that matter at all, so that a fellow is not too much afraid of having a pair of antlers in his guts. I have hunted at force five hundred times, madam; and I never yet saw the stag at bay, by land or water, but I durst have gone roundly in on him. It is all use and wont, madam; and I’ll tell you, madam, for all that, it must be done with good heed and caution; and you will do well, madam, to have your hunting-sword right sharp and double-edged, that you may strike either fore-handed or back-handed, as you see reason, for a hurt with a buck’s horn is a perilous and somewhat venomous matter.”

“Your daggers and scabbard, ma'am,” said Bucklaw, who immediately seized the opportunity to speak, “there’s no challenge or skill in that at all, so a guy isn’t too worried about getting a pair of antlers stuck in him. I’ve hunted at least five hundred times, ma'am; and I’ve never seen a stag at bay, whether on land or water, that I wouldn’t have gone after without hesitation. It’s all about experience, ma'am; and I’ll tell you, it’s important to approach it with good care and caution; and it would be wise, ma'am, to keep your hunting sword nice and sharp, so you can strike either forward or backward as needed, because getting hurt by a buck’s horn is dangerous and somewhat toxic.”

“I am afraid, sir,” said the young lady, and her smile was scarce concealed by her vizard, “I shall have little use for such careful preparation.”

“I’m afraid, sir,” said the young lady, and her smile was barely hidden by her mask, “I won’t have much need for such careful preparation.”

“But the gentleman says very right for all that, my lady,” said an old huntsman, who had listened to Bucklaw’s harangue with no small edification; “and I have heard my father say, who was a forester at the Cabrach, that a wild boar’s gaunch is more easily healed than a hurt from the deer’s horn, for so says the old woodman’s rhyme—

“But the gentleman is quite right about that, my lady,” said an old huntsman, who had listened to Bucklaw’s speech with great interest; “and I’ve heard my father, who was a forester at the Cabrach, say that a wild boar’s gash is easier to heal than a wound from a deer’s antler, as the old woodman’s rhyme goes—

If thou be hurt with horn of hart, it brings thee to they bier;
But tusk of boar shall leeches heal, thereof have lesser fear.”

If you're hurt by a stag's horn, it leads you to your grave;
But a boar's tusk will heal you, so you have less to fear.”

“An I might advise,” continued Bucklaw, who was now in his element, and desirous of assuming the whole management, “as the hounds are surbated and weary, the head of the stag should be cabaged in order to reward them; and if I may presume to speak, the huntsman, who is to break up the stag, ought to drink to your good ladyship’s health a good lusty bicker of ale, or a tass of brandy; for if he breaks him up without drinking, the venison will not keep well.”

“May I suggest,” continued Bucklaw, who was clearly in his element and eager to take charge, “since the hounds are tired and worn out, we should cover the head of the stag to reward them; and if I may say so, the huntsman who's going to dress the stag should drink a hearty toast to your ladyship with a good mug of ale or a glass of brandy; because if he dresses it without a drink, the meat won't keep well.”

This very agreeable prescription received, as will be readily believed, all acceptation from the huntsman, who, in requital, offered to Bucklaw the compliment of his knife, which the young lady had declined.

This very pleasant suggestion was, as you can easily imagine, fully accepted by the huntsman, who, in return, offered Bucklaw the compliment of his knife, which the young lady had turned down.

This polite proffer was seconded by his mistress. “I believe, sir,” she said, withdrawing herself from the circle, “that my father, for whose amusement Lord Bittlebrain’s hounds have been out to-day, will readily surrender all care of these matters to a gentleman of your experience.”

This polite offer was supported by his mistress. “I think, sir,” she said, stepping out of the circle, “that my father, for whose entertainment Lord Bittlebrain’s hounds have been out today, will gladly leave all the responsibility for these matters to a gentleman like you.”

Then, bending gracefully from her horse, she wished him good morning, and, attended by one or two domestics, who seemed immediately attached to her service, retired from the scene of action, to which Bucklaw, too much delighted with an opportunity of displaying his woodcraft to care about man or woman either, paid little attention; but was soon stript to his doublet, with tucked-up sleeves, and naked arms up to the elbows in blood and grease, slashing, cutting, hacking, and hewing, with the precision of Sir Tristrem himself, and wrangling and disputing with all around him concerning nombles, briskets, flankards, and raven-bones, then usual terms of the art of hunting, or of butchery, whichever the reader chooses to call it, which are now probably antiquated.

Then, bending gracefully from her horse, she wished him good morning and, accompanied by one or two servants who seemed immediately devoted to her, left the scene. Bucklaw, too excited to show off his skills in the woods to care about anyone else, barely noticed. He soon stripped down to his doublet with sleeves rolled up, arms bare up to the elbows in blood and grease, slashing, cutting, hacking, and chopping with the precision of Sir Tristrem himself, arguing with everyone around him about ribs, briskets, flank cuts, and bones, the usual terms of hunting or butchery—whichever you prefer to call it, which are probably outdated now.

When Ravenswood, who followed a short pace behind his friend, saw that the stag had fallen, his temporary ardour for the chase gave way to that feeling of reluctance which he endured at encountering in his fallen fortunes the gaze whether of equals or inferiors. He reined up his horse on the top of a gentle eminence, from which he observed the busy and gay scene beneath him, and heard the whoops of the huntsmen, gaily mingled with the cry of the dogs, and the neighing and trampling of the horses. But these jovial sounds fell sadly on the ear of the ruined nobleman. The chase, with all its train of excitations, has ever since feudal times been accounted the almost exclusive privilege of the aristocracy, and was anciently their chief employment in times of peace. The sense that he was excluded by his situation from enjoying the silvan sport, which his rank assigned to him as a special prerogative, and the feeling that new men were now exercising it over the downs which had been jealously reserved by his ancestors for their own amusement, while he, the heir of the domain, was fain to hold himself at a distance from their party, awakened reflections calculated to depress deeply a mind like Ravenswood’s, which was naturally contemplative and melancholy. His pride, however, soon shook off this feeling of dejection, and it gave way to impatience upon finding that his volatile friend Bucklaw seemed in no hurry to return with his borrowed steed, which Ravenswood, before leaving the field, wished to see restored to the obliging owner. As he was about to move towards the group of assembled huntsmen, he was joined by a horseman, who, like himself, had kept aloof during the fall of the deer.

When Ravenswood, who was trailing a bit behind his friend, saw that the stag had collapsed, his brief excitement for the hunt faded into a sense of reluctance at facing the gaze of either peers or subordinates due to his fallen fortunes. He pulled up his horse on a gentle rise, from where he observed the lively and cheerful scene below, hearing the shouts of the huntsmen, joyfully mixed with the barking of the dogs, and the whinnying and stomping of the horses. But these cheerful sounds felt heavy to the ears of the ruined nobleman. Ever since feudal times, the hunt, with all its thrills, has been considered the nearly exclusive privilege of the aristocracy, and it was historically their main pastime in times of peace. The realization that he was barred from enjoying the woodland sport, which his status entitled him to as a special right, and the feeling that newcomers were now taking part in it on the downs that his ancestors had carefully preserved for their own enjoyment, while he, the heir to the estate, had to keep his distance from their group, stirred reflections that could deeply depress a mind like Ravenswood’s, which was naturally contemplative and melancholic. However, his pride soon shook off this feeling of sadness, turning into impatience when he noticed that his flighty friend Bucklaw seemed in no rush to return with the borrowed horse, which Ravenswood wanted to make sure was returned to its kind owner before leaving the field. Just as he was about to head toward the group of gathered huntsmen, he was joined by a horseman who, like him, had stayed away during the fall of the deer.

This personage seemed stricken in years. He wore a scarlet cloak, buttoning high upon his face, and his hat was unlooped and slouched, probably by way of defence against the weather. His horse, a strong and steady palfrey, was calculated for a rider who proposed to witness the sport of the day rather than to share it. An attendant waited at some distance, and the whole equipment was that of an elderly gentleman of rank and fashion. He accosted Ravenswood very politely, but not without some embarrassment.

This person seemed quite old. He wore a red cloak that buttoned up high on his face, and his hat was untied and drooping, likely as protection against the weather. His horse, a sturdy and reliable mount, was meant for a rider who intended to watch the day's events rather than participate. An attendant stood some distance away, and the entire setup belonged to an older gentleman of status and style. He greeted Ravenswood very politely, though with a bit of awkwardness.

“You seem a gallant young gentleman, sir,” he said, “and yet appear as indifferent to this brave sport as if you had my load of years on your shoulders.”

“You seem like a brave young man, sir,” he said, “yet you act as if you're as indifferent to this daring sport as if you had my age weighing on you.”

“I have followed the sport with more spirit on other occasions,” replied the Master; “at present, late events in my family must be my apology; and besides,” he added, “I was but indifferently mounted at the beginning of the sport.”

“I’ve been more into the sport before,” replied the Master; “right now, recent events in my family have to be my excuse; and besides,” he added, “I wasn’t well mounted at the start of the event.”

“I think,” said the stranger, “one of my attendants had the sense to accommodate your friend with a horse.”

“I think,” said the stranger, “one of my attendants was smart enough to get your friend a horse.”

“I was much indebted to his politeness and yours,” replied Ravenswood. “My friend is Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw, whom I dare say you will be sure to find in the thick of the keenest sportsmen. He will return your servant’s horse, and take my pony in exchange; and will add,” he concluded, turning his horse’s head from the stranger, “his best acknowledgments to mine for the accommodation.”

“I’m really grateful for your politeness and his,” Ravenswood replied. “My friend is Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw, and I’m sure you’ll find him among the most enthusiastic sportsmen. He’ll return your servant’s horse and take my pony in exchange; and he will add,” he finished, turning his horse away from the stranger, “his best thanks to me for the favor.”

The Master of Ravenswood, having thus expressed himself, began to move homeward, with the manner of one who has taken leave of his company. But the stranger was not so to be shaken off. He turned his horse at the same time, and rode in the same direction, so near to the Master that, without outriding him, which the formal civility of the time, and the respect due to the stranger’s age and recent civility, would have rendered improper, he could not easily escape from his company.

The Master of Ravenswood, having said this, started to head home, acting like someone who has said goodbye to his companions. However, the stranger wasn’t going to let him go that easily. He turned his horse and rode in the same direction, so close to the Master that, without overtaking him—an act that would have been considered rude due to the formal manners of the time and the respect owed to the stranger’s age and recent politeness—he couldn’t easily get away from him.

The stranger did not long remain silent. “This, then,” he said, “is the ancient Castle of Wolf’s Crag, often mentioned in the Scottish records,” looking to the old tower, then darkening under the influence of a stormy cloud, that formed its background; for at the distance of a short mile, the chase, having been circuitous, had brought the hunters nearly back to the point which they had attained when Ravenswood and Bucklaw had set forward to join them.

The stranger didn't stay quiet for long. “So, this,” he said, “is the ancient Castle of Wolf’s Crag, often mentioned in Scottish records,” as he looked at the old tower, now overshadowed by a stormy cloud that loomed behind it; because after a winding chase, the hunters had almost returned to the spot they were at when Ravenswood and Bucklaw had set out to join them.

Ravenswood answered this observation with a cold and distant assent. “It was, as I have heard,” continued the stranger, unabashed by his coldness, “one of the most early possessions of the honourable family of Ravenswood.”

Ravenswood responded to this comment with a cool and distant agreement. “It was, as I’ve heard,” the stranger continued, unfazed by his aloofness, “one of the earliest possessions of the esteemed Ravenswood family.”

“Their earliest possession,” answered the Master, “and probably their latest.”

“Their first possession,” the Master replied, “and likely their last.”

“I—I—I should hope not, sir,” answered the stranger, clearing his voice with more than one cough, and making an effort to overcome a certain degree of hesitation; “Scotland knows what she owes to this ancient family, and remembers their frequent and honourable achievements. I have little doubt that, were it properly represented to her Majesty that so ancient and noble a family were subjected to dilapidation—I mean to decay—means might be found, ad re-ædificandum antiquam domum——”

“I—I—I really hope not, sir,” replied the stranger, clearing his throat with a few coughs and trying to overcome a certain hesitation; “Scotland knows what she owes to this ancient family and remembers their many honorable achievements. I have no doubt that if it were properly presented to her Majesty that such an ancient and noble family was facing decline—I mean decay—then ways might be found, ad re-ædificandum antiquam domum——”

“I will save you the trouble, sir, of discussing this point farther,” interrupted the Master, haughtily. “I am the heir of that unfortunate house—I am the Master of Ravenswood. And you, sir, who seem to be a gentleman of fashion and education, must be sensible that the next mortification after being unhappy is the being loaded with undesired commiseration.”

“I'll spare you the hassle, sir, of talking about this any further,” interrupted the Master, arrogantly. “I am the heir of that unfortunate house—I am the Master of Ravenswood. And you, sir, who appear to be a gentleman of style and education, must realize that the next worst thing after being unhappy is dealing with unwanted pity.”

“I beg your pardon, sir,” said the elder horseman; “I did not know—I am sensible I ought not to have mentioned—nothing could be farther from my thoughts than to suppose——”

“I’m sorry, sir,” said the older horseman; “I didn’t know—I realize I shouldn’t have brought it up—nothing could be further from my mind than to suppose——”

“There are no apologies necessary, sir,” answered Ravenswood, “for here, I suppose, our roads separate, and I assure you that we part in perfect equanimity on my side.”

“There’s no need for apologies, sir,” replied Ravenswood, “because I assume this is where we go our separate ways, and I can assure you that I’m parting with complete composure on my end.”

As speaking these words, he directed his horse’s head towards a narrow causeway, the ancient approach to Wolf’s Crag, of which it might be truly said, in the words of the Bard of Hope, that

As he spoke these words, he turned his horse’s head towards a narrow path, the old way to Wolf’s Crag, of which it could honestly be said, in the words of the Bard of Hope, that

Frequented by few was the grass-cover’d road,
Where the hunter of deer and the warrior trode,
        To his hills that encircle the sea.

Seldom traveled was the grass-covered road,
Where the deer hunter and the warrior walked,
        To his hills that surround the sea.

But, ere he could disengage himself from his companion, the young lady we have already mentioned came up to join the stranger, followed by her servants.

But, before he could free himself from his companion, the young lady we mentioned earlier approached to join the stranger, followed by her servants.

“Daughter,” said the stranger to the unmasked damsel, “this is the Master of Ravenswood.”

“Daughter,” said the stranger to the girl without a mask, “this is the Master of Ravenswood.”

It would have been natural that the gentleman should have replied to this introduction; but there was something in the graceful form and retiring modesty of the female to whom he was thus presented, which not only prevented him from inquiring to whom, and by whom, the annunciation had been made, but which even for the time struck him absolutely mute. At this moment the cloud which had long lowered above the height on which Wolf’s Crag is situated, and which now, as it advanced, spread itself in darker and denser folds both over land and sea, hiding the distant objects and obscuring those which were nearer, turning the sea to a leaden complexion and the heath to a darker brown, began now, by one or two distant peals, to announce the thunders with which it was fraught; while two flashes of lightning, following each other very closely, showed in the distance the grey turrets of Wolf’s Crag, and, more nearly, the rollowing billows of the ocean, crested suddenly with red and dazzling light.

It would have been normal for the gentleman to respond to this introduction; however, there was something about the elegant figure and shy demeanor of the woman he was introduced to that not only made him forget to ask who had made the announcement but also left him completely speechless for the moment. At that moment, the cloud that had long loomed over the hill where Wolf’s Crag is located began to advance, spreading darker and thicker layers over both land and sea, obscuring distant objects and hiding those that were closer, turning the sea a leaden gray and the heath a darker brown. It began to announce its impending thunder with a few distant rumbles, while two flashes of lightning, closely following one another, revealed in the distance the gray turrets of Wolf’s Crag and, more nearby, the rolling waves of the ocean suddenly lit up with a burst of bright red light.

The horse of the fair huntress showed symptoms of impatience and restiveness, and it became impossible for Ravenswood, as a man or a gentleman, to leave her abruptly to the care of an aged father or her menial attendants. He was, or believed himself, obliged in courtesy to take hold of her bridle, and assist her in managing the unruly animal. While he was thus engaged, the old gentleman observed that the storm seemed to increase; that they were far from Lord Bittlebrains’s, whose guests they were for the present; and that he would be obliged to the Master of Ravenswood to point him the way to the nearest place of refuge from the storm. At the same time he cast a wistful and embarrassed look towards the Tower of Wolf’s Crag, which seemed to render it almost impossible for the owner to avoid offering an old man and a lady, in such an emergency, the temporary use of his house. Indeed, the condition of the young huntress made this courtesy indispensable; for, in the course of the services which he rendered, he could not but perceive that she trembled much, and was extremely agitated, from her apprehensions, doubtless, of the coming storm.

The horse of the fair huntress showed signs of impatience and restlessness, and it became impossible for Ravenswood, as a man and a gentleman, to leave her abruptly in the care of her elderly father or her servants. He felt it was his duty to take hold of her bridle and help her manage the unruly animal. While he was doing this, the old gentleman noticed that the storm seemed to be getting worse; they were far from Lord Bittlebrains's, where they were currently guests; and he would appreciate it if the Master of Ravenswood could point him to the nearest safe place from the storm. At the same time, he gave a wistful and embarrassed look toward the Tower of Wolf’s Crag, which made it nearly impossible for the owner to avoid offering shelter to an old man and a lady in such an emergency. In fact, the condition of the young huntress made this gesture necessary; as he helped her, he could see that she was trembling and extremely anxious, likely due to her fears about the approaching storm.

I know not if the Master of Ravenswood shared her terrors, but he was not entirely free from something like a similar disorder of nerves, as he observed, “The Tower of Wolf’s Crag has nothing to offer beyond the shelter of its roof, but if that can be acceptable at such a moment——” he paused, as if the rest of the invitation stuck in his throat. But the old gentleman, his self-constituted companion, did not allow him to recede from the invitation, which he had rather suffered to be implied than directly expressed.

I don't know if the Master of Ravenswood felt her fears, but he wasn't completely free from something like a similar nervous condition, as he remarked, “The Tower of Wolf’s Crag has nothing to provide except for the protection of its roof, but if that can be welcome at such a moment—” he paused, as if the rest of the invitation was caught in his throat. But the old gentleman, his self-appointed companion, didn't let him back away from the invitation, which he had preferred to suggest rather than state outright.

“The storm,” said the stranger, “must be an apology for waiving ceremony; his daughter’s health was weak, she had suffered much from a recent alarm; he trusted their intrusion on the Master of Ravenswood’s hospitality would not be altogether unpardonable in the circumstances of the case: his child’s safety must be dearer to him than ceremony.”

“The storm,” said the stranger, “must be an excuse for skipping the formalities; his daughter’s health was fragile, and she had been through a lot after a recent scare; he hoped that their interruption of the Master of Ravenswood’s hospitality wouldn’t be too unforgivable given the situation: his child’s safety must matter more to him than formalities.”

There was no room to retreat. The Master of Ravenswood led the way, continuing to keep hold of the lady’s bridle to prevent her horse from starting at some unexpected explosion of thunder. He was not so bewildered in his own hurried reflections but that he remarked, that the deadly paleness which had occupied her neck and temples, and such of her features as the riding-mask left exposed, gave place to a deep and rosy suffusion; and he felt with embarrassment that a flush was by tacit sympathy excited in his own cheeks. The stranger, with watchfulness which he disguised under apprehensions of the safety of his daughter, continued to observe the expression of the Master’s countenance as they ascended the hill to Wolf’s Crag. When they stood in front of that ancient fortress, Ravenswood’s emotions were of a very complicated description; and as he led the way into the rude courtyard, and hallooed to Caleb to give attendance, there was a tone of sternness, almost of fierceness, which seemed somewhat alien from the courtesies of one who is receiving honoured guests.

There was no way to back out. The Master of Ravenswood took the lead, still holding onto the lady’s horse to keep it calm during the sudden thunder. He was lost in his own hurried thoughts but noticed that the deadly paleness that had covered her neck and temples, as well as the parts of her face that the riding mask left visible, was replaced by a deep rosy glow; he felt awkwardly that a blush had also been ignited in his own cheeks. The stranger, pretending to be concerned about his daughter's safety, continued to watch the Master’s face as they climbed the hill to Wolf’s Crag. When they arrived in front of the old fortress, Ravenswood felt a mix of emotions, and as he led the way into the rough courtyard and called out to Caleb for assistance, there was a tone of seriousness, almost hostility, that felt somewhat out of place for someone welcoming honored guests.

Caleb came; and not the paleness of the fair stranger at the first approach of the thunder, nor the paleness of any other person, in any other circumstances whatever, equalled that which overcame the thin cheeks of the disconsolate seneschal when he beheld this accession of guests to the castle, and reflected that the dinner hour was fast approaching. “Is he daft?” he muttered to himself;—“is he clean daft a’thegither, to bring lords and leddies, and a host of folk behint them, and twal o’clock chappit?” Then approaching the Master, he craved pardon for having permitted the rest of his people to go out to see the hunt, observing, that “They wad never think of his lordship coming back till mirk night, and that he dreaded they might play the truant.”

Caleb arrived; and neither the pale complexion of the beautiful stranger at the first sound of thunder, nor anyone else's pallor in any other situation, matched the sudden whiteness that spread across the thin cheeks of the distressed steward when he saw this influx of guests to the castle, realizing that dinner time was quickly approaching. “Is he crazy?” he muttered to himself; “is he completely out of his mind to bring lords and ladies, along with a whole crowd, and it's nearly noon?” Then, approaching the Master, he apologized for letting the rest of his staff go out to watch the hunt, noting that “They wouldn’t think his lordship would come back until it was dark, and he was worried they might skip out.”

“Silence, Balderstone!” said Ravenswood, sternly; “your folly is unseasonable. Sir and madam,” he said, turning to his guests, “this old man, and a yet older and more imbecile female domestic, form my whole retinue. Our means of refreshing you are more scanty than even so miserable a retinue, and a dwelling so dilapidated, might seem to promise you; but, such as they may chance to be, you may command them.”

“Silence, Balderstone!” Ravenswood said firmly. “Your foolishness is inappropriate. Sir and madam,” he continued, addressing his guests, “this old man and an even older and more senile female servant make up my entire staff. Our ability to refresh you is more limited than even what a miserable staff and a rundown place like this might suggest; however, whatever we have, you are welcome to.”

The elder stranger, struck with the ruined and even savage appearance of the Tower, rendered still more disconsolate by the lowering and gloomy sky, and perhaps not altogether unmoved by the grave and determined voice in which their host addressed them, looked round him anxiously, as if he half repented the readiness with which he had accepted the offered hospitality. But there was now no opportunity of receding from the situation in which he had placed himself.

The older stranger, taken aback by the dilapidated and almost wild look of the Tower, made even more disheartened by the dark and gloomy sky, and perhaps slightly swayed by the serious and firm tone of their host, glanced around nervously, as if he somewhat regretted how quickly he had accepted their hospitality. But there was no chance now to back out of the position he had put himself in.

As for Caleb, he was so utterly stunned by his master’s public and unqualified acknowledgment of the nakedness of the land, that for two minutes he could only mutter within his hebdomadal beard, which had not felt the razor for six days, “He’s daft—clean daft—red wud, and awa’ wit! But deil hae Caleb Balderstone,” said he, collecting his powers of invention and resource, “if the family shall lose credit, if he were as mad as the seven wise masters!” He then boldly advanced, and in spite of his master’s frowns and impatience, gravely asked, “If he should not serve up some slight refection for the young leddy, and a glass of tokay, or old sack—or——”

As for Caleb, he was completely shocked by his master’s public and unreserved acknowledgment of the land’s emptiness. For two minutes, he could only mutter beneath his weekly beard, which hadn’t been shaved for six days, “He’s crazy—totally crazy—out of his mind! But no way will Caleb Balderstone let the family lose face, even if he’s as mad as those seven wise guys!” He then confidently approached and, despite his master’s frowns and impatience, seriously asked, “Shouldn't he prepare some light snacks for the young lady, along with a glass of tokay or old sack—or——”

“Truce to this ill-timed foolery,” said the Master, sternly; “put the horses into the stable, and interrupt us no more with your absurdities.”

“Enough of this ridiculous nonsense,” said the Master, sternly; “put the horses in the stable, and stop interrupting us with your absurdities.”

“Your honour’s pleasure is to be obeyed aboon a’ things,” said Caleb; “nevertheless, as for the sack and tokay which it is not your noble guests’ pleasure to accept——”

“Your honor’s wishes come first above all else,” said Caleb; “however, regarding the sack and tokay that your esteemed guests don’t want to accept——”

But here the voice of Bucklaw, heard even above the clattering of hoofs and braying of horns with which it mingled, announced that he was scaling the pathway to the Tower at the head of the greater part of the gallant hunting train.

But here the voice of Bucklaw, heard even above the noise of hoofs and the sound of horns that mixed with it, announced that he was making his way up the path to the Tower at the front of most of the brave hunting party.

“The deil be in me,” said Caleb, taking heart in spite of this new invasion of Philistines, “if they shall beat me yet! The hellicat ne’er-do-weel! to bring such a crew here, that will expect to find brandy as plenty as ditch-water, and he kenning sae absolutely the case in whilk we stand for the present! But I trow, could I get rid of thae gaping gowks of flunkies that hae won into the courtyard at the back of their betters, as mony a man gets preferment, I could make a’ right yet.”

“Damn it,” said Caleb, feeling brave despite this latest wave of intruders, “they won't beat me again! That good-for-nothing! To bring a bunch of people here who expect to find brandy as common as water, knowing exactly what situation we're in right now! But I think, if I could just get rid of those useless flunkies who have snuck into the courtyard behind their betters, just like many men get ahead, I could make everything right again.”

The measures which he took to execute this dauntless resolution, the reader shall learn in the next chapter.

The steps he took to carry out this fearless decision will be revealed in the next chapter.

CHAPTER X.

With throat unslaked, with black lips baked,
    Agape they heard him call;
Gramercy they for joy did grin,
And all at once their breath drew in,
    As they had been drinking all!

COLERIDGE’S Rime of the Ancient Mariner.

With parched throats and chapped lips,
    They opened their mouths to hear him call;
They smiled with gratitude for the joy,
And all at once they gasped,
    As if they had been drinking everything!

COLERIDGE’S Rime of the Ancient Mariner.

Hayston of Bucklaw was one of the thoughtless class who never hesitate between their friend and their jest. When it was announced that the principal persons of the chase had taken their route towards Wolf’s Crag, the huntsmen, as a point of civility, offered to transfer the venison to that mansion; a proffer which was readily accepted by Bucklaw, who thought much of the astonishment which their arrival in full body would occasion poor old Caleb Balderstone, and very little of the dilemma to which he was about to expose his friend the Master, so ill circumstanced to receive such a party. But in old Caleb he had to do with a crafty and alert antagonist, prompt at supplying, upon all emergencies, evasions and excuses suitable, as he thought, to the dignity of the family.

Hayston of Bucklaw was one of those thoughtless people who never hesitate to choose between their friend and a good laugh. When it was announced that the main group from the hunt was heading towards Wolf’s Crag, the huntsmen, as a polite gesture, offered to take the deer to that house; a suggestion that Bucklaw eagerly accepted. He couldn't wait to see the look of surprise on poor old Caleb Balderstone's face when they arrived all together, and he gave little thought to the tough situation he was putting his friend the Master in, who was not really equipped to host such a large group. But old Caleb was a clever and quick-thinking opponent, always ready to come up with evasions and excuses that he thought would be suitable for maintaining the family's dignity.

“Praise be blest!” said Caleb to himself, “ae leaf of the muckle gate has been swung to wi’ yestreen’s wind, and I think I can manage to shut the ither.”

“Thank goodness!” Caleb said to himself, “one side of the big gate has been swung shut by last night’s wind, and I think I can handle closing the other one.”

But he was desirous, like a prudent governor, at the same time to get rid, if possible, of the internal enemy, in which light he considered almost every one who eat and drank, ere he took measures to exclude those whom their jocund noise now pronounced to be near at hand. He waited, therefore, with impatience until his master had shown his two principal guests into the Tower, and then commenced his operations.

But he wanted, like a careful leader, to eliminate, if possible, the internal threat, viewing almost everyone who ate and drank as a potential enemy. Before he took steps to exclude those whom their cheerful noise suggested were close by, he waited impatiently until his master had shown his two main guests into the Tower, and then he began his actions.

“I think,” he said to the stranger menials, “that, as they are bringing the stag’s head to the castle in all honour, we, who are indwellers, should receive them at the gate.”

“I think,” he said to the strangers nearby, “that since they are bringing the stag’s head to the castle with all due respect, we, who live here, should greet them at the gate.”

The unwary grooms had no sooner hurried out, in compliance with this insidious hint, than, one folding-door of the ancient gate being already closed by the wind, as has been already intimated, honest Caleb lost no time in shutting the other with a clang, which resounded from donjon-vault to battlement. Having thus secured the pass, he forthwith indulged the excluded huntsmen in brief parley, from a small projecting window, or shot-hole, through which, in former days, the warders were wont to reconnoitre those who presented themselves before the gates. He gave them to understand, in a short and pity speech, that the gate of the castle was never on any account opened during meal-times; that his honour, the Master of Ravenswood, and some guests of quality, had just sat down to dinner; that there was excellent brandy at the hostler-wife’s at Wolf’s Hope down below; and he held out some obscure hint that the reckoning would be discharged by the Master; but this was uttered in a very dubious and oracular strain, for, like Louis XIV., Caleb Balderstone hesitated to carry finesse so far as direct falsehood, and was content to deceive, if possible, without directly lying.

The unsuspecting grooms had barely rushed out, following this sneaky suggestion, when one of the folding doors of the old gate was already closed by the wind, as mentioned before. Honest Caleb wasted no time slamming the other door shut, creating a loud clang that echoed from the dungeon to the battlement. Having secured the entrance, he then decided to give the excluded hunters a brief chance to talk from a small window, or shot-hole, where, in the past, the guards would watch those who approached the gates. He made it clear, in a short but sympathetic speech, that the castle gate was never opened during meal times; that his honor, the Master of Ravenswood, and some distinguished guests had just sat down to dinner; that there was great brandy available at the innkeeper's place at Wolf’s Hope down below; and he suggested in a vague way that the Master would cover the bill. However, this was said in a rather uncertain and mysterious tone, as Caleb Balderstone, like Louis XIV, was hesitant to go so far as to tell a direct lie, preferring to mislead if possible without outright falsifying the truth.

This annunciation was received with surprise by some, with laughter by others, and with dismay by the expelled lackeys, who endeavoured to demonstrate that their right of readmission, for the purpose of waiting upon their master and mistress, was at least indisputable. But Caleb was not in a humour to understand or admit any distinctions. He stuck to his original proposition with that dogged but convenient pertinacity which is armed against all conviction, and deaf to all reasoning. Bucklaw now came from the rear of the party, and demanded admittance in a very angry tone. But the resolution of Caleb was immovable.

This announcement surprised some, amused others, and dismayed the expelled servants, who tried to prove that their right to return and serve their master and mistress was definitely valid. But Caleb wasn't in the mood to recognize or accept any exceptions. He held firmly to his initial stance with that stubborn yet convenient determination that resists all persuasion and ignores all logic. Bucklaw then came from the back of the group and angrily demanded entry. But Caleb's resolve remained unyielding.

“If the king on the throne were at the gate,” he declared, “his ten fingers should never open it contrair to the established use and wont of the family of Ravenswood, and his duty as their head-servant.”

“If the king on the throne were at the gate,” he declared, “his ten fingers should never open it contrary to the long-standing traditions and duties of the Ravenswood family, and his role as their chief servant.”

Bucklaw was now extremely incensed, and with more oaths and curses than we care to repeat, declared himself most unworthily treated, and demanded peremptorily to speak with the Master of Ravenswood himself.

Bucklaw was now really angry, and with more swearing and cursing than we want to repeat, he declared that he had been treated very unfairly and insisted on speaking directly with the Master of Ravenswood himself.

But to this also Caleb turned a deaf ear. “He’s as soon a-bleeze as a tap of tow, the lad Bucklaw,” he said; “but the deil of ony master’s face he shall see till he has sleepit and waken’d on’t. He’ll ken himsell better the morn’s morning. It sets the like o’ him, to be bringing a crew of drunken hunters here, when he kens there is but little preparation to sloken his ain drought.” And he disappeared from the window, leaving them all to digest their exclusion as they best might.

But Caleb ignored this as well. “Bucklaw is as likely to be in a good mood as a spark of tow,” he said; “but he won’t see any master’s face until he’s gone to sleep and woken up. He’ll know better by tomorrow morning. It’s just like him to bring a bunch of drunken hunters here when he knows there’s not much to quench his own thirst.” And he left the window, leaving them all to deal with their exclusion as best they could.

But another person, of whose presence Caleb, in the animation of the debate, was not aware, had listened in silence to its progress. This was the principal domestic of the stranger—a man of trust and consequence—the same who, in the hunting-field, had accommodated Bucklaw with the use of his horse. He was in the stable when Caleb had contrived the expulsion of his fellow-servants, and thus avoided sharing the same fate, from which his personal importance would certainly not have otherwise saved him.

But another person, whom Caleb didn't notice during the lively debate, had been quietly listening. This was the main servant of the stranger—a trusted and important man—who had earlier helped Bucklaw by lending him a horse for hunting. He was in the stable when Caleb managed to get rid of his fellow servants, thereby avoiding the same outcome, which his personal significance wouldn't have protected him from otherwise.

This personage perceived the manœuvre of Caleb, easily appreciated the motive of his conduct, and knowing his master’s intentions towards the family of Ravenswood, had no difficulty as to the line of conduct he ought to adopt. He took the place of Caleb (unperceived by the latter) at the post of audience which he had just left, and announced to the assembled domestics, “That it was his master’s pleasure that Lord Bittlebrain’s retinue and his own should go down to the adjacent change-house and call for what refreshments they might have occasion for, and he should take care to discharge the lawing.”

This person noticed Caleb's move, quickly understood why he was acting that way, and knowing what his master wanted for the Ravenswood family, decided on his own course of action. He stepped into Caleb's place (without Caleb noticing) at the spot he had just vacated, and told the gathered staff, “It’s my master’s wish that Lord Bittlebrain’s retinue and my own should head over to the nearby inn and order whatever refreshments they need, and I’ll make sure to settle the bill.”

The jolly troop of huntsmen retired from the inhospitable gate of Wolf’s Crag, execrating, as they descended the steep pathway, the niggard and unworthy disposition of the proprietor, and damning, with more than silvan license, both the castle and its inhabitants. Bucklaw, with many qualities which would have made him a man of worth and judgment in more favourable circumstances, had been so utterly neglected in point of education, that he was apt to think and feel according to the ideas of the companions of his pleasures. The praises which had recently been heaped upon himself he contrasted with the general abuse now levelled against Ravenswood; he recalled to his mind the dull and monotonous days he had spent in the Tower of Wolf’s Crag, compared with the joviality of his usual life; he felt with great indignation his exclusion from the castle, which he considered as a gross affront, and every mingled feeling led him to break off the union which he had formed with the Master of Ravenswood.

The cheerful group of hunters left the unwelcoming gates of Wolf’s Crag, grumbling as they descended the steep path about the stingy and undeserving nature of the owner, and cursing, with more than a wild spirit, both the castle and its residents. Bucklaw, who had many qualities that could have made him a person of value and judgment in better circumstances, was so completely overlooked in terms of education that he tended to think and feel based on the ideas of his pleasure-seeking friends. The praises that had recently been showered upon him contrasted sharply with the widespread criticism now aimed at Ravenswood; he remembered the dull and monotonous days he had spent in the Tower of Wolf’s Crag, compared to the liveliness of his usual life; he felt a strong indignation about being excluded from the castle, which he viewed as a serious insult, and all these mixed emotions pushed him to end his connection with the Master of Ravenswood.

On arriving at the change-house of the village of Wolf’s Hope, he unexpectedly met with an acquaintance just alighting from his horse. This was no other than the very respectable Captain Craigengelt, who immediately came up to him, and, without appearing to retain any recollection of the indifferent terms on which they had parted, shook him by the hand in the warmest manner possible. A warm grasp of the hand was what Bucklaw could never help returning with cordiality, and no sooner had Craigengelt felt the pressure of his fingers than he knew the terms on which he stood with him.

On arriving at the village change-house of Wolf’s Hope, he unexpectedly ran into an acquaintance just getting off his horse. This was none other than the respectable Captain Craigengelt, who immediately approached him and, without seeming to remember the awkward way they had parted, shook his hand as warmly as possible. Bucklaw always responded to a firm handshake with enthusiasm, and as soon as Craigengelt felt the grip of his fingers, he understood their relationship.

“Long life to you, Bucklaw!” he exclaimed; “there’s life for honest folk in this bad world yet!”

“Long life to you, Bucklaw!” he exclaimed; “there's still hope for good people in this tough world!”

The Jacobites at this period, with what propriety I know not, used, it must be noticed, the term of honest men as peculiarly descriptive of their own party.

The Jacobites during this time, for reasons I can't say, notably referred to themselves as honest men, which they felt uniquely described their group.

“Ay, and for others besides, it seems,” answered Bucklaw; “otherways, how came you to venture hither, noble Captain?”

“Yeah, and for others too, it looks like,” replied Bucklaw; “otherwise, how did you dare to come here, noble Captain?”

“Who—I? I am as free as the wind at Martinmas, that pays neither land-rent nor annual; all is explained—all settled with the honest old drivellers yonder of Auld Reekie. Pooh! pooh! they dared not keep me a week of days in durance. A certain person has better friends among them than you wot of, and can serve a friend when it is least likely.”

“Who—me? I’m as free as the wind at Martinmas, not paying rent or anything else; everything’s clear—everything’s squared away with those honest old folks over in Auld Reekie. Come on! They wouldn’t dare keep me locked up for a week. Someone has better connections among them than you know about and can help a friend when it’s least expected.”

“Pshaw!” answered Hayston, who perfectly knew and thoroughly despised the character of this man, “none of your cogging gibberish; tell me truly, are you at liberty and in safety?”

“Pshaw!” replied Hayston, who fully understood and completely despised this man’s character, “none of your nonsense; tell me honestly, are you safe and free?”

“Free and safe as a Whig bailie on the causeway of his own borough, or a canting Presbyterian minister in his own pulpit; and I came to tell you that you need not remain in hiding any longer.”

“Free and safe like a Whig bailie on the sidewalk of his own town, or a self-righteous Presbyterian minister in his own pulpit; and I came to tell you that you don’t have to stay hidden any longer.”

“Then I suppose you call yourself my friend, Captain Craigengelt?” said Bucklaw.

“Then I guess you think you’re my friend, Captain Craigengelt?” said Bucklaw.

“Friend!” replied Craigengelt, “my cock of the pit! why, I am thy very Achates, man, as I have heard scholars say—hand and glove—bark and tree—thine to life and death!”

“Friend!” replied Craigengelt, “my champion! I am your very Achates, just like I've heard scholars say—hand in hand—bark and tree—yours for life and death!”

“I’ll try that in a moment,” answered Bucklaw. “Thou art never without money, however thou comest by it. Lend me two pieces to wash the dust out of these honest fellows’ throats in the first place, and then——”

“I’ll do that in a minute,” Bucklaw replied. “You’re never short on cash, no matter how you get it. Lend me two coins to clear the dust out of these good guys’ throats first, and then——”

“Two pieces! Twenty are at thy service, my lad, and twenty to back them.”

“Two pieces! Twenty are at your service, my friend, and twenty to support them.”

“Ay, say you so?” said Bucklaw, pausing, for his natural penetration led him to suspect some extraordinary motive lay couched under an excess of generosity. “Craigengelt, you are either an honest fellow in right good earnest, and I scarce know how to believe that; or you are cleverer than I took you for, and I scarce know how to believe that either.”

“Really, is that so?” said Bucklaw, stopping for a moment, as his natural insight made him suspect that there was something unusual behind an overflow of generosity. “Craigengelt, you’re either genuinely an honest guy, which I can hardly believe; or you’re smarter than I thought, and I can hardly believe that either.”

L’un n’empeche pas l’autre,” said Craigengelt. “Touch and try; the gold is good as ever was weighed.”

One doesn’t prevent the other,” said Craigengelt. “Go ahead and test it; the gold is just as valuable as it ever was.”

He put a quantity of gold pieces into Bucklaw’s hand, which he thrust into his pocket without either counting or looking at them, only observing, “That he was so circumstanced that he must enlist, though the devil offered the press-money”; and then turning to the huntsmen, he called out, “Come along, my lads; all is at my cost.”

He handed a bunch of gold coins to Bucklaw, who shoved them into his pocket without counting or even glancing at them, simply noting, “I’m in a situation where I have to enlist, even if the devil offers me the recruiting bonus”; then he turned to the hunters and shouted, “Let’s go, guys; it’s all on me.”

“Long life to Bucklaw!” shouted the men of the chase.

“Cheers for Bucklaw!” shouted the men of the hunt.

“And confusion to him that takes his share of the sport, and leaves the hunters as dry as a drumhead,” added another, by way of corollary.

“And good luck to anyone who enjoys the fun and leaves the hunters feeling totally empty,” added another, as a side note.

“The house of Ravenswood was ance a gude and an honourable house in this land,” said an old man; “but it’s lost its credit this day, and the Master has shown himself no better than a greedy cullion.”

“The house of Ravenswood was once a good and honorable house in this land,” said an old man; “but it’s lost its reputation today, and the Master has proven himself no better than a greedy lowlife.”

And with this conclusion, which was unanimously agreed to by all who heard it, they rushed tumultuously into the house of entertainment, where they revelled till a late hour. The jovial temper of Bucklaw seldom permitted him to be nice in the choice of his associates; and on the present occasion, when his joyous debauch received additional zest from the intervention of an unusual space of sobriety, and almost abstinence, he was as happy in leading the revels as if his comrades had been sons of princes. Craigengelt had his own purposes in fooling him up to the top of his bent; and having some low humour, much impudence, and the power of singing a good song, understanding besides thoroughly the disposition of his regained associate, he headily succeeded in involving him bumper-deep in the festivity of the meeting.

And with this conclusion, which everyone who heard it agreed on, they hurried excitedly into the tavern, where they partied until late at night. Bucklaw's cheerful personality rarely made him picky about who he hung out with; and on this occasion, when his joyful binge was made even more exciting by a rare period of sobriety and almost no drinking, he was just as happy leading the celebrations as if his friends were princes. Craigengelt had his own reasons for getting him riled up; and with some low humor, a lot of sass, and the ability to sing a good song, plus a solid understanding of his reconnected friend’s mood, he skillfully got Bucklaw fully immersed in the fun of the gathering.

A very different scene was in the mean time passing in the Tower of Wolf’s Crag. When the Master of Ravenswood left the courtyard, too much busied with his own perplexed reflections to pay attention to the manœuvre of Caleb, he ushered his guests into the great hall of the castle.

A very different scene was happening at the Tower of Wolf’s Crag. When the Master of Ravenswood left the courtyard, too preoccupied with his own confusing thoughts to notice Caleb's actions, he led his guests into the castle's grand hall.

The indefatigable Balderstone, who, from choice or habit, worked on from morning to night, had by degrees cleared this desolate apartment of the confused relics of the funeral banquet, and restored it to some order. But not all his skill and labour, in disposing to advantage the little furniture which remained, could remove the dark and disconsolate appearance of those ancient and disfurnished walls. The narrow windows, flanked by deep indentures into the walls, seemed formed rather to exclude than to admit the cheerful light; and the heavy and gloomy appearance of the thunder-sky added still farther to the obscurity.

The tireless Balderstone, who either by choice or habit worked from morning till night, had slowly cleaned up the empty room, getting rid of the messy leftovers from the funeral feast and bringing some order back to it. But despite all his skill and effort in arranging the little furniture that remained, he couldn’t shake the dark and gloomy look of those old, bare walls. The narrow windows, set deep into the walls, seemed designed more to keep out the light than to let it in, and the heavy, dark storm clouds only added to the overall gloom.

As Ravenswood, with the grace of a gallant of that period, but not without a certain stiffness and embarrassment of manner, handed the young lady to the upper end of the apartment, her father remained standing more near to the door, as if about to disengage himself from his hat and cloak. At this moment the clang of the portal was heard, a sound at which the stranger started, stepped hastily to the window, and looked with an air of alarm at Ravenswood, when he saw that the gate of the court was shut, and his domestics excluded.

As Ravenswood, with the charm of a gentleman from that time, but also showing a bit of awkwardness, escorted the young lady to the far end of the room, her father stayed closer to the door, as if he was about to take off his hat and cloak. At that moment, they heard the loud sound of the door, which startled the stranger. He rushed to the window and looked at Ravenswood with a worried expression when he noticed the court gate was closed and that his servants were not allowed in.

“You have nothing to fear, sir,” said Ravenswood, gravely; “this roof retains the means of giving protection, though not welcome. Methinks,” he added, “it is time that I should know who they are that have thus highly honoured my ruined dwelling!” The young lady remained silent and motionless, and the father, to whom the question was more directly addressed, seemed in the situation of a performer who has ventured to take upon himself a part which he finds himself unable to present, and who comes to a pause when it is most to be expected that he should speak. While he endeavoured to cover his embarrassment with the exterior ceremonials of a well-bred demeanour, it was obvious that, in making his bow, one foot shuffled forward, as if to advance, the other backward, as if with the purpose of escape; and as he undid the cape of his coat, and raised his beaver from his face, his fingers fumbled as if the one had been linked with rusted iron, or the other had weighed equal with a stone of lead. The darkness of the sky seemed to increase, as if to supply the want of those mufflings which he laid aside with such evident reluctance. The impatience of Ravenswood increased also in proportion to the delay of the stranger, and he appeared to struggle under agitation, though probably from a very different cause. He laboured to restrain his desire to speak, while the stranger, to all appearance, was at a loss for words to express what he felt necessary to say.

“You have nothing to worry about, sir,” Ravenswood said seriously. “This roof still has the means to provide protection, even if it’s not welcome. I think,” he added, “it’s time I find out who has honored my ruined home so highly!” The young lady stayed silent and still, while the father, who was more directly addressed, looked like a performer who had taken on a role he couldn’t fulfill, pausing when he should have spoken. While he tried to cover his unease with the polite manners of a well-bred person, it was clear that when he bowed, one foot edged forward as if to approach, while the other stepped back as if to escape. As he unfastened the cape of his coat and lifted his hat from his face, his fingers fumbled as if one was stuck in rusted iron or the other weighed as much as a leaden stone. The darkness of the sky seemed to deepen, as if compensating for the coverings he removed so reluctantly. Ravenswood's impatience grew with the stranger’s delay, and he appeared to be struggling with agitation, likely for a very different reason. He tried to hold back his urge to speak, while the stranger, for all appearances, was at a loss for words to convey what he felt he needed to say.

At length Ravenswood’s impatience broke the bounds he had imposed upon it. “I perceive,” he said, “that Sir William Ashton is unwilling to announced himself in the Castle of Wolf’s Crag.”

At last, Ravenswood's impatience reached its limit. “I see,” he said, “that Sir William Ashton is hesitant to show himself at the Castle of Wolf’s Crag.”

“I had hoped it was unnecessary,” said the Lord Keeper, relieved from his silence, as a spectre by the voice of the exorcist, “and I am obliged to you, Master of Ravenswood, for breaking the ice at once, where circumstances—unhappy circumstances, let me call them—rendered self-introduction peculiarly awkward.”

“I had hoped it wasn't needed,” said the Lord Keeper, finally speaking up like a ghost summoned by the exorcist's voice. “I appreciate you, Master of Ravenswood, for getting the conversation started right away when the situation—unfortunate situation, I should say—made it really awkward for me to introduce myself.”

“And I am not then,” said the Master of Ravenswood, gravely, “to consider the honour of this visit as purely accidental?”

“And I’m not supposed to take the honor of this visit as just a coincidence?” said the Master of Ravenswood, seriously.

“Let us distinguish a little,” said the Keeper, assuming an appearance of ease which perhaps his heart was a stranger to; “this is an honour which I have eagerly desired for some time, but which I might never have obtained, save for the accident of the storm. My daughter and I are alike grateful for this opportunity of thanking the brave man to whom she owes her life and I mine.”

“Let’s clarify something,” said the Keeper, trying to appear relaxed, even though his heart didn’t feel that way; “this is an honor I’ve wanted for a long time, but I probably wouldn’t have gotten it if it hadn’t been for the storm. My daughter and I are both thankful for the chance to express our gratitude to the brave man who saved her life and mine.”

The hatred which divided the great families in the feudal times had lost little of its bitterness, though it no longer expressed itself in deeds of open violence. Not the feelings which Ravenswood had begun to entertain towards Lucy Ashton, not the hospitality due to his guests, were able entirely to subdue, though they warmly combated, the deep passions which arose within him at beholding his father’s foe standing in the hall of the family of which he had in a great measure accelerated the ruin. His looks glanced from the father to the daughter with an irresolution of which Sir William Ashton did not think it proper to await the conclusion. He had now disembarrassed himself of his riding-dress, and walking up to his daughter, he undid the fastening of her mask.

The hatred that split the powerful families during feudal times hadn't lost much of its bitterness, even though it no longer showed itself through acts of open violence. Neither the feelings that Ravenswood was beginning to have for Lucy Ashton nor the hospitality owed to his guests could completely suppress, although they strongly fought against it, the intense emotions that surged within him upon seeing his father's enemy standing in the hall of the family that he had largely helped to bring to ruin. His gaze flickered between the father and the daughter with a hesitation that Sir William Ashton decided it was inappropriate to wait out. Having changed out of his riding clothes, he walked up to his daughter and removed the fastening of her mask.

“Lucy, my love,” he said, raising her and leading her towards Ravenswood, “lay aside your mask, and let us express our gratitude to the Master openly and barefaced.”

“Lucy, my love,” he said, lifting her and guiding her toward Ravenswood, “take off your mask, and let’s show our thanks to the Master openly and without disguise.”

“If he will condescend to accept it,” was all that Lucy uttered; but in a tone so sweetly modulated, and which seemed to imply at once a feeling and a forgiving of the cold reception to which they were exposed, that, coming from a creature so innocent and so beautiful, her words cut Ravenswood to the very heart for his harshness. He muttered something of surprise, something of confusion, and, ending with a warm and eager expression of his happiness at being able to afford her shelter under his roof, he saluted her, as the ceremonial of the time enjoined upon such occasions. Their cheeks had touched and were withdrawn from each other; Ravenswood had not quitted the hand which he had taken in kindly courtesy; a blush, which attached more consequence by far than was usual to such ceremony, still mantled on Lucy Ashton’s beautiful cheek, when the apartment was suddenly illuminated by a flash of lightning, which seemed absolutely to swallow the darkness of the hall. Every object might have been for an instant seen distinctly. The slight and half-sinking form of Lucy Ashton; the well-proportioned and stately figure of Ravenswood, his dark features, and the fiery yet irresolute expression of his eyes; the old arms and scutcheons which hung on the walls of the apartment, were for an instant distinctly visible to the Keeper by a strong red brilliant glare of light. Its disappearance was almost instantly followed by a burst of thunder, for the storm-cloud was very near the castle; and the peal was so sudden and dreadful, that the old tower rocked to its foundation, and every inmate concluded it was falling upon them. The soot, which had not been disturbed for centuries, showered down the huge tunnelled chimneys; lime and dust flew in clouds from the wall; and, whether the lightning had actually struck the castle or whether through the violent concussion of the air, several heavy stones were hurled from the mouldering battlements into the roaring sea beneath. It might seem as if the ancient founder of the castle were bestriding the thunderstorm, and proclaiming his displeasure at the reconciliation of his descendant with the enemy of his house.

“If he’s willing to accept it,” was all Lucy said; but her tone was so sweet and seemed to express both feeling and forgiveness for the cold reception they faced that, coming from someone so innocent and beautiful, her words struck Ravenswood deeply for his harshness. He muttered something in surprise, something in confusion, and then, with a warm and eager expression of happiness at being able to offer her shelter under his roof, he greeted her as was customary in those moments. Their cheeks had touched and then pulled back; Ravenswood hadn’t let go of the hand he had taken in kind courtesy; a blush, more significant than usual for such a situation, lingered on Lucy Ashton’s beautiful cheek when the room was suddenly lit up by a flash of lightning that seemed to swallow the darkness of the hall. For an instant, every object was clearly visible. The delicate, slightly sinking form of Lucy Ashton; the well-proportioned and stately figure of Ravenswood, with his dark features and the fiery yet uncertain look in his eyes; the old arms and crests that hung on the walls of the room were illuminated by a brilliant red glare of light. This moment was quickly followed by a loud clap of thunder, as the storm was very close to the castle; the sound was so sudden and terrifying that the old tower shook to its foundation, and everyone inside thought it was collapsing. The soot, which hadn’t been disturbed for centuries, poured down the massive chimneys; lime and dust flew in clouds from the walls, and whether the lightning had actually struck the castle or if it was just the violent pressure of the air, several heavy stones were sent crashing from the decaying battlements into the roaring sea below. It seemed as if the ancient founder of the castle were riding the thunderstorm, announcing his displeasure at the reconciliation of his descendant with the enemy of his house.

The consternation was general, and it required the efforts of both the Lord Keeper and Ravenswood to keep Lucy from fainting. Thus was the Master a second time engaged in the most delicate and dangerous of all tasks, that of affording support and assistance to a beautiful and helpless being, who, as seen before in a similar situation, had already become a favourite of his imagination, both when awake and when slumbering. If the genius of the house really condemned a union betwixt the Master and his fair guest, the means by which he expressed his sentiments were as unhappily chosen as if he had been a mere mortal. The train of little attentions, absolutely necessary to soothe the young lady’s mind, and aid her in composing her spirits, necessarily threw the Master of Ravenswood into such an intercourse with her father as was calculated, for the moment at least, to break down the barrier of feudal enmity which divided them. To express himself churlishly, or even coldly, towards an old man whose daughter (and such a daughter) lay before them, overpowered with natural terror—and all this under his own roof, the thing was impossible; and by the time that Lucy, extending a hand to each, was able to thank them for their kindness, the Master felt that his sentiments of hostility towards the Lord Keeper were by no means those most predominant in his bosom.

The panic was widespread, and both the Lord Keeper and Ravenswood had to work hard to keep Lucy from fainting. Once again, the Master found himself engaged in the most delicate and risky task of supporting and helping a beautiful and vulnerable person, who, as seen before in a similar situation, had already captured his imagination, both when he was awake and asleep. If the spirit of the house truly opposed a union between the Master and his lovely guest, the way it expressed those sentiments was as poorly chosen as if it were just a regular person. The series of little gestures needed to calm the young lady's mind and help her steady herself inevitably put the Master of Ravenswood in a position to interact with her father, which, at least for now, began to break down the feud that separated them. Acting gruffly or even coolly towards an old man whose daughter (and such a daughter) lay before them, overwhelmed with fear—and all this in his own home—was impossible. By the time Lucy managed to extend a hand to each of them and thank them for their kindness, the Master realized that his feelings of hostility towards the Lord Keeper were far from the most prominent in his heart.

The weather, her state of health, the absence of her attendants, all prevented the possibility of Lucy Ashton renewing her journey to Bittlebrains House, which was full five miles distant; and the Master of Ravenswood could not but, in common courtesy, offer the shelter of his roof for the rest of the day and for the night. But a flush of less soft expression, a look much more habitual to his features, resumed predominance when he mentioned how meanly he was provided for the entertainment of his guests.

The weather, her health, and the absence of her attendants all made it impossible for Lucy Ashton to continue her journey to Bittlebrains House, which was a full five miles away; so the Master of Ravenswood had no choice but, out of common courtesy, to offer her the shelter of his home for the rest of the day and for the night. However, a less gentle expression and a look more familiar to his face returned when he spoke about how poorly he was equipped to host his guests.

“Do not mention deficiencies,” said the Lord Keeper, eager to interrupt him and prevent his resuming an alarming topic; “you are preparing to set out for the Continent, and your house is probably for the present unfurnished. All this we understand; but if you mention inconvenience, you will oblige us to seek accommodations in the hamlet.”

“Don’t bring up any shortcomings,” said the Lord Keeper, eager to cut him off and steer clear of a troubling subject. “You’re getting ready to head to the Continent, and your house is probably still empty for now. We get it; however, if you talk about any inconveniences, you’ll make us have to find a place to stay in the village.”

As the Master of Ravenswood was about to reply, the door of the hall opened, and Caleb Balderstone rushed in.

As the Master of Ravenswood was about to respond, the door to the hall swung open, and Caleb Balderstone hurried in.

CHAPTER XI.

Let them have meat enough, woman—half a hen;
There be old rotten pilchards—put them off too;
’Tis but a little new anointing of them,
And a strong onion, that confounds the savour.

Love’s Pilgrimage.

Let them have enough meat, woman—half a hen;
There are old rotten pilchards—get rid of those too;
It just takes a little new seasoning on them,
And a strong onion, which ruins the flavor.

Love’s Pilgrimage.

The thunderbolt, which had stunned all who were within hearing of it, had only served to awaken the bold and inventive genius of the flower of majors-domo. Almost before the clatter had ceased, and while there was yet scarce an assurance whether the castle was standing or falling, Caleb exclaimed, “Heaven be praised! this comes to hand like the boul of a pint-stoup.” He then barred the kitchen door in the face of the Lord Keeper’s servant, whom he perceived returning from the party at the gate, and muttering, “How the deil cam he in?—but deil may care. Mysie, what are ye sitting shaking and greeting in the chimney-neuk for? Come here—or stay where ye are, and skirl as loud as ye can; it’s a’ ye’re gude for. I say, ye auld deevil, skirl—skirl—louder—louder, woman; gar the gentles hear ye in the ha’. I have heard ye as far off as the Bass for a less matter. And stay—down wi’ that crockery——”

The thunderbolt, which had shocked everyone who heard it, only inspired the bold and creative genius of the head steward. Almost before the noise had stopped, and while it was still unclear whether the castle was standing or falling, Caleb shouted, “Thank goodness! This is just what we needed.” He then locked the kitchen door in front of the Lord Keeper’s servant, who he saw returning from the party at the gate, and muttered, “How did he get in?—but who cares. Mysie, why are you sitting there shaking and crying in the corner? Come here—or stay where you are, and scream as loud as you can; that’s all you’re good for. I say, you old devil, scream—scream—louder—louder, woman; make the gentlemen hear you in the hall. I’ve heard you as far away as the Bass for less. And wait—put that crockery down—”

And with a sweeping blow, he threw down from a shelf some articles of pewter and earthenware. He exalted his voice amid the clatter, shouting and roaring in a manner which changed Mysie’s hysterical terrors of the thunder into fears that her old fellow-servant was gone distracted. “He has dung down a’ the bits o’ pigs, too—the only thing we had left to haud a soup milk—and he has spilt the hatted hit that was for the Master’s dinner. Mercy save us, the auld man’s gaen clean and clear wud wi’ the thunner!”

And with a sweeping motion, he knocked some pewter and ceramic items off a shelf. He raised his voice above the noise, shouting and roaring in a way that turned Mysie’s hysterical fear of the thunder into worries that her old coworker had lost his mind. “He’s knocked down all the little pieces of pots, too—the only things we had left to hold soup—and he’s spilled the hot dish that was meant for the Master’s dinner. Oh my gosh, the old man’s completely gone insane with the thunder!”

“Haud your tongue, ye b——!” said Caleb, in the impetuous and overbearing triumph of successful invention, “a’s provided now—dinner and a’thing; the thunner’s done a’ in a clap of a hand!”

"Shut your mouth, you b——!” said Caleb, in the impulsive and arrogant triumph of a successful idea, “everything’s ready now—dinner and all; the thunder's gone in the blink of an eye!”

“Puir man, he’s muckle astray,” said Mysie, looking at him with a mixture of pity and alarm; “I wish he may ever come hame to himsell again.”

“Poor guy, he’s really lost,” said Mysie, looking at him with a mix of pity and concern; “I hope he can find his way back to himself again.”

“Here, ye auld doited deevil,” said Caleb, still exulting in his extrication from a dilemma which had seemed insurmountable; “keep the strange man out of the kitchen; swear the thunner came down the chimney and spoiled the best dinner ye ever dressed—beef—bacon—kid—lark—leveret—wild- fowl—venison, and what not. Lay it on thick, and never mind expenses. I’ll awa’ up to the la’. Make a’ the confusion ye can; but be sure ye keep out the strange servant.”

“Here, you old fool,” said Caleb, still thrilled to be out of a problem that had seemed impossible; “keep the strange guy out of the kitchen; say that lightning hit the chimney and ruined the best dinner you ever prepared—beef—bacon—kid—lark—leveret—wild fowl—venison, and everything else. Make it sound really intense, and don’t worry about the cost. I’ll head upstairs. Create as much chaos as you can; just make sure to keep that strange servant out.”

With these charges to his ally, Caleb posted up to the hall, but stopping to reconnoitre through an aperture, which time, for the convenience of many a domestic in succession, had made in the door, and perceiving the situation of Miss Ashton, he had prudence enough to make a pause, both to avoid adding to her alarm and in order to secure attention to his account of the disastrous effects of the thunder.

With these instructions for his ally, Caleb walked up to the hall, but stopped to look through a gap that time had created in the door for the convenience of many housekeepers before him. Noticing Miss Ashton’s situation, he wisely decided to pause, both to avoid increasing her anxiety and to ensure that he could focus on explaining the disastrous effects of the thunder.

But when he perceived that the lady was recovered, and heard the conversation turn upon the accommodation and refreshment which the castle afforded, he thought it time to burst into the room in the manner announced in the last chapter.

But when he noticed that the lady was feeling better and heard the conversation shift to the meals and amenities that the castle offered, he figured it was time to enter the room in the way that was mentioned in the last chapter.

“Willawins!—willawins! Such a misfortune to befa’ the house of Ravenswood, and I to live to see it.”

“Willawins!—willawins! What a disaster to strike the house of Ravenswood, and here I am, living to witness it.”

“What is the matter, Caleb?” said his master, somewhat alarmed in his turn; “has any part of the castle fallen?”

“What’s wrong, Caleb?” his master asked, feeling a bit alarmed; “has any part of the castle collapsed?”

“Castle fa’an! na, but the sute’s fa’an, and the thunner’s come right down the kitchen-lum, and the things are a’ lying here awa’, there awa’, like the Laird o’ Hotchpotch’s lands; and wi’ brave guests of honour and quality to entertain (a low bow here to Sir William Ashton and his daughter), and naething left in the house fit to present for dinner, or for supper either, for aught that I can see!”

“Castle's fallen! No, but the suit's fallen, and the thunder’s come right down the kitchen chimney, and the things are all lying here and there, like the Laird of Hotchpotch’s lands; and with distinguished guests of honor to entertain (a low bow here to Sir William Ashton and his daughter), and nothing left in the house suitable to serve for dinner, or for supper either, as far as I can see!”

“I very believe you, Caleb,” said Ravenswood, drily.

“I really believe you, Caleb,” said Ravenswood, dryly.

Balderstone here turned to his master a half-upbraiding, half-imploring countenance, and edged towards him as he repeated, “It was nae great matter of preparation; but just something added to your honour’s ordinary course of fare—petty cover, as they say at the Louvre—three courses and the fruit.”

Balderstone turned to his master with a look that was partly scolding and partly pleading, and moved closer as he repeated, “It wasn’t a huge deal to prepare; just something extra to your honor’s usual meals—petty cover, as they say at the Louvre—three courses and the fruit.”

“Keep your intolerable nonsense to yourself, you old fool!” said Ravenswood, mortified at his officiousness, yet not knowing how to contradict him, without the risk of giving rise to scenes yet more ridiculous.

“Keep your annoying nonsense to yourself, you old fool!” said Ravenswood, embarrassed by his meddling, yet unsure how to argue with him without risking even more ridiculous scenes.

Caleb saw his advantage, and resolved to improve it. But first, observing that the Lord Keeper’s servant entered the apartment and spoke apart with his master, he took the same opportunity to whisper a few words into Ravenswood’s ear: “Haud your tongue, for heaven’s sake, sir; if it’s my pleasure to hazard my soul in telling lees for the honour of the family, it’s nae business o’ yours; and if ye let me gang on quietly, I’se be moderate in my banquet; but if ye contradict me, deil but I dress ye a dinner fit for a duke!”

Caleb saw his chance and decided to take advantage of it. But first, noticing that the Lord Keeper’s servant had entered the room and was speaking privately with his master, he seized the opportunity to whisper a few words into Ravenswood’s ear: “For heaven’s sake, keep quiet, sir; if I want to risk my soul by spinning tales for the family’s honor, that’s none of your business; and if you let me go on quietly, I’ll keep it reasonable at my feast; but if you challenge me, I swear I’ll make you a dinner fit for a duke!”

Ravenswood, in fact, thought it would be best to let his officious butler run on, who proceeded to enumerate upon his fingers—“No muckle provision—might hae served four persons of honour,—first course, capons in white broth—roast kid—bacon with reverence; second course, roasted leveret—butter crabs—a veal florentine; third course, blackcock—it’s black eneugh now wi’ the sute—plumdamas—a tart—a flam—and some nonsense sweet things, and comfits—and that’s a’,” he said, seeing the impatience of his master—“that’s just a’ was o’t—forbye the apples and pears.”

Ravenswood actually thought it would be best to let his bossy butler keep talking, who then started counting on his fingers—“Not much food—could've served four honored guests—first course, capons in white broth—roast kid—bacon with respect; second course, roasted leveret—butter crabs—a veal Florentine; third course, blackcock—it’s dark enough now with the soot—plumdamas—a tart—a flam—and some silly sweet things, and treats—and that’s it,” he said, noticing his master's impatience—“that’s all there was—besides the apples and pears.”

Miss Ashton had by degrees gathered her spirits, so far as to pay some attention to what was going on; and observing the restrained impatience of Ravenswood, contrasted with the peculiar determination of manner with which Caleb detailed his imaginary banquet, the whole struck her as so ridiculous that, despite every effort to the contrary, she burst into a fit of incontrollable laughter, in which she was joined by her father, though with more moderation, and finally by the Master of Ravenswood himself, though conscious that the jest was at his own expense. Their mirth—for a scene which we read with little emotion often appears extremely ludicrous to the spectators—made the old vault ring again. They ceased—they renewed—they ceased—they renewed again their shouts of laughter! Caleb, in the mean time, stood his ground with a grave, angry, and scornful dignity, which greatly enhanced the ridicule of the scene and mirth of the spectators.

Miss Ashton had gradually collected herself enough to pay some attention to what was happening, and noticing Ravenswood’s suppressed impatience alongside Caleb’s peculiar determination as he recounted his imaginary feast, she found the whole thing so ridiculous that, despite trying not to, she burst out laughing uncontrollably. Her father joined in, though more restrained, and eventually, even the Master of Ravenswood laughed, knowing the joke was at his own expense. Their laughter—for a scene that we read with little emotion often seems extremely funny to those watching—echoed through the old vault. They paused, then laughed again, and then paused once more before bursting into laughter again! Meanwhile, Caleb maintained his stance with a serious, angry, and scornful dignity, which only added to the ridiculousness of the scene and the amusement of the onlookers.

At length, when the voices, and nearly the strength, of the laughers were exhausted, he exclaimed, with very little ceremony: “The deil’s in the gentles! they breakfast sae lordly, that the loss of the best dinner ever cook pat fingers to makes them as merry as if it were the best jeest in a’ George Buchanan. If there was as little in your honours’ wames as there is in Caleb Balderstone’s, less caickling wad serve ye on sic a gravaminous subject.”

At last, when the laughter and almost all the strength of the laughers had worn out, he exclaimed, with hardly any formality: “There’s something wrong with these gentlemen! They eat breakfast so lavishly that losing the best dinner ever made doesn’t bother them at all, as if it were the best joke in all of George Buchanan. If there was as little in your stomachs as there is in Caleb Balderstone’s, less cackling would be enough for you on such a serious topic.”

Caleb’s blunt expression of resentment again awakened the mirth of the company, which, by the way, he regarded not only as an aggression upon the dignity of the family, but a special contempt of the eloquence with which he himself had summed up the extent of their supposed losses. “A description of a dinner,” as he said afterwards to Mysie, “that wad hae made a fu’ man hungry, and them to sit there laughing at it!”

Caleb’s straightforward expression of resentment once again sparked laughter among the group, which he saw not only as an attack on the family’s dignity but also as a particular insult to the way he had described their supposed losses. “A description of a dinner,” he later said to Mysie, “that would have made a full man hungry, and they’re just sitting there laughing at it!”

“But,” said Miss Ashton, composing her countenance as well as she could, “are all these delicacies so totally destroyed that no scrap can be collected?”

“But,” said Miss Ashton, trying to keep her composure, “are all these treats completely ruined so that not a single piece can be salvaged?”

“Collected, my leddy! what wad ye collect out of the sute and the ass? Ye may gang down yoursell, and look into our kitchen—the cookmaid in the trembling exies—the gude vivers lying a’ about—beef, capons, and white broth—florentine and flams—bacon wi’ reverence—and a’ the sweet confections and whim-whams—ye’ll see them a’, my leddy—that is,” said he, correcting himself, “ye’ll no see ony of them now, for the cook has soopit them up, as was weel her part; but ye’ll see the white broth where it was spilt. I pat my fingers in it, and it tastes as like sour milk as ony thing else; if that isna the effect of thunner, I kenna what is. This gentleman here couldna but hear the clash of our haill dishes, china and silver thegither?”

“Collected, my lady! What would you collect from the suit and the donkey? You can go down yourself and take a look in our kitchen—the cook is in a bit of a panic—the good food is all over the place—beef, chickens, and white broth—Florentine and flams—bacon with respect—and all the sweet treats and snacks—you’ll see them all, my lady—that is,” he said, correcting himself, “you won’t see any of them now, because the cook has cleaned it all up, as was her duty; but you’ll see the white broth where it spilled. I dipped my fingers in it, and it tastes just like sour milk; if that’s not the result of thunder, I don’t know what is. This gentleman here couldn’t have missed the clatter of all our dishes, china and silver together?”

The Lord Keeper’s domestic, though a statesman’s attendant, and of course trained to command his countenance upon all occasions, was somewhat discomposed by this appeal, to which he only answered by a bow.

The Lord Keeper’s servant, although he was a statesman’s assistant and naturally trained to maintain his expression at all times, was a bit unsettled by this request, to which he simply responded with a bow.

“I think, Mr. Butler,” said the Lord Keeper, who began to be afraid lest the prolongation of this scene should at length displease Ravenswood—“I think that, were you to retire with my servant Lockhard—he has travelled, and is quite accustomed to accidents and contingencies of every kind, and I hope betwixt you, you may find out some mode of supply at this emergency.”

“I think, Mr. Butler,” said the Lord Keeper, who began to worry that dragging this situation out might eventually upset Ravenswood—“I believe that if you were to step aside with my servant Lockhard—he’s traveled and is well-accustomed to various challenges and situations, and I hope between the two of you, you can come up with some solution for this emergency.”

“His honour kens,” said Caleb, who, however hopeless of himself of accomplishing what was desirable, would, like the high-spirited elephant, rather have died in the effort than brooked the aid of a brother in commission—“his honour kens weel I need nae counsellor, when the honour of the house is concerned.”

“His honor knows,” said Caleb, who, despite feeling hopeless about achieving what he wanted, would, like the proud elephant, rather have died trying than accept help from a brother in duty—“his honor knows well I don’t need a counselor, when the honor of the house is at stake.”

“I should be unjust if I denied it, Caleb,” said his master; “but your art lies chiefly in making apologies, upon which we can no more dine than upon the bill of fare of our thunder-blasted dinner. Now, possibly Mr. Lockhard’s talent may consist in finding some substitute for that which certainly is not, and has in all probability never been.”

“I would be unfair if I denied it, Caleb,” said his master; “but your skill mainly lies in making excuses, which we can no more feast on than the menu of our storm-damaged dinner. Now, perhaps Mr. Lockhard’s talent lies in discovering some replacement for what definitely is not, and likely has never been.”

“Your honour is pleased to be facetious,” said Caleb, “but I am sure that, for the warst, for a walk as far as Wolf’s Hope, I could dine forty men—no that the folk there deserve your honour’s custom. They hae been ill advised in the matter of the duty eggs and butter, I winna deny that.”

“Your honor is trying to be funny,” said Caleb, “but I’m sure that, at the very least, for a walk as far as Wolf’s Hope, I could feed forty men—though I won’t say the folks there deserve your honor’s patronage. They’ve made some poor choices regarding the duty on eggs and butter, I won’t deny that.”

“Do go consult together,” said the Master; “go down to the village, and do the best you can. We must not let our guests remain without refreshment, to save the honour of a ruined family. And here, Caleb, take my purse; I believe that will prove your best ally.”

“Go talk amongst yourselves,” said the Master; “head down to the village and do what you can. We can't let our guests go without refreshments to preserve the honor of a fallen family. And here, Caleb, take my wallet; I think that will be your best help.”

“Purse! purse, indeed!” quoth Caleb, indignantly flinging out of the room; “what suld I do wi’ your honour’s purse, on your ain grund? I trust we are no to pay for our ain?”

“Purse! purse, really!” Caleb said, angrily storming out of the room; “what should I do with your honor’s purse, on your own ground? I hope we’re not expected to pay for our own?”

The servants left the hall; and the door was no sooner shut than the Lord Keeper began to apologise for the rudeness of his mirth; and Lucy to hope she had given no pain or offence to the kind-hearted faithful old man.

The servants left the hall; and as soon as the door was shut, the Lord Keeper started to apologize for the rudeness of his laughter; and Lucy hoped she hadn't caused any pain or offense to the kind-hearted, loyal old man.

“Caleb and I must both learn, madam, to undergo with good humour, or at least with patience, the ridicule which everywhere attaches itself to poverty.”

“Caleb and I both need to learn, ma'am, to handle the mockery that comes with poverty with good humor, or at least with patience.”

“You do yourself injustice, Master of Ravenswood, on my word of honour,” answered his elder guest. “I believe I know more of your affairs than you do yourself, and I hope to show you that I am interested in them; and that—in short, that your prospects are better than you apprehend. In the mean time, I can conceive nothing so respectable as the spirit which rises above misfortune, and prefers honourable privations to debt or dependence.”

“You're doing yourself a disservice, Master of Ravenswood, I swear,” replied his older guest. “I think I understand your situation better than you do, and I want to prove to you that I'm genuinely interested in it; that—in short, your future is brighter than you fear. In the meantime, I can't imagine anything more admirable than the spirit that rises above hardship and chooses honorable sacrifices over debt or dependence.”

Whether from fear of offending the delicacy or awakening the pride of the Master, the Lord Keeper made these allusions with an appearance of fearful and hesitating reserve, and seemed to be afraid that he was intruding too far, in venturing to touch, however lightly, upon such a topic, even when the Master had led to it. In short, he appeared at once pushed on by his desire of appearing friendly, and held back by the fear of intrusion. It was no wonder that the Master of Ravenswood, little acquainted as he then was with life, should have given this consummate courtier credit for more sincerity than was probably to be found in a score of his cast. He answered, however, with reserve, that he was indebted to all who might think well of him; and, apologising to his guests, he left the hall, in order to make such arrangements for their entertainment as circumstances admitted.

Whether out of fear of offending the sensitivity or triggering the pride of the Master, the Lord Keeper made these references with a worried and hesitant demeanor, seeming to worry that he was overstepping by even lightly touching on such a topic, even when the Master had brought it up. In short, he appeared to be pushed forward by his desire to seem friendly, yet also held back by the fear of being intrusive. It’s no surprise that the Master of Ravenswood, who was still inexperienced in life, believed this polished courtier had more sincerity than might actually be found in many like him. He responded, though cautiously, that he was grateful to anyone who thought well of him; and, apologizing to his guests, he left the hall to arrange for their entertainment as best as he could.

Upon consulting with old Mysie, the accommodations for the night were easily completed, as indeed they admitted of little choice. The Master surrendered his apartment for the use of Miss Ashton, and Mysie, once a person of consequence, dressed in a black satin gown which had belonged of yore to the Master’s grandmother, and had figured in the court-balls of Henrietta Maria, went to attend her as lady’s-maid. He next inquired after Bucklaw, and understanding he was at the change-house with the huntsmen and some companions, he desired Caleb to call there, and acquaint him how he was circumstanced at Wolf’s Crag; to intimate to him that it would be most convenient if he could find a bed in the hamlet, as the elder guest must necessarily be quartered in the secret chamber, the only spare bedroom which could be made fit to receive him. The Master saw no hardship in passing the night by the hall fire, wrapt in his campaign-cloak; and to Scottish domestics of the day, even of the highest rank, nay, to young men of family or fashion, on any pinch, clean straw, or a dry hayloft, was always held good night-quarters.

After talking with old Mysie, the arrangements for the night were quickly sorted out, as there wasn't much choice. The Master gave up his room for Miss Ashton, and Mysie, who used to be someone important, dressed in a black satin gown that once belonged to the Master’s grandmother and had been worn at the court balls of Henrietta Maria, went to serve her as a lady's maid. He then asked about Bucklaw and learned that he was at the tavern with the huntsmen and some friends. He told Caleb to go there and let him know what was happening at Wolf’s Crag; to mention that it would be best if he could find a bed in the village since the older guest definitely had to stay in the secret chamber, the only spare room that could be made suitable for him. The Master didn’t see any problem with spending the night by the fire in the hall, wrapped in his campaign cloak; and for Scottish servants of that time, even those of high rank, as well as young men of family or status, a clean pile of straw or a dry hayloft was always considered acceptable sleeping quarters.

For the rest, Lockhard had his master’s orders to bring some venison from the inn, and Caleb was to trust to his wits for the honour of his family. The Master, indeed, a second time held out his purse; but, as it was in sight of the strange servant, the butler thought himself obliged to decline what his fingers itched to clutch. “Couldna he hae slippit it gently into my hand?” said Caleb; “but his honour will never learn how to bear himsell in siccan cases.”

For the rest, Lockhard had his master's orders to bring back some venison from the inn, and Caleb had to rely on his wits to uphold his family's honor. The Master, in fact, offered his money a second time, but since it was in front of the strange servant, the butler felt he had to refuse what he was itching to grab. “Couldn’t he have slipped it quietly into my hand?” said Caleb; “but his honor will never learn how to handle himself in situations like this.”

Mysie, in the mean time, according to a uniform custom in remote places in Scotland, offered the strangers the produce of her little dairy, “while better meat was getting ready.” And according to another custom, not yet wholly in desuetude, as the storm was now drifting off to leeward, the Master carried the Keeper to the top of his highest tower to admire a wide and waste extent of view, and to “weary for his dinner.”

Mysie, meanwhile, following a common tradition in remote areas of Scotland, offered the visitors some of her small dairy products “while better food was being prepared.” Additionally, following another tradition that hasn't completely faded away, as the storm began to move away, the Master took the Keeper to the top of his tallest tower to enjoy a broad and desolate view and to “get hungry for his dinner.”

CHAPTER XII.

“Now dame,” quoth he, “Je vous dis sans doute,
Had I nought of a capon but the liver,
And of your white bread nought but a shiver,
And after that a roasted pigge’s head
(But I ne wold for me no beast were dead),
Then had I with you homely sufferaunce.”

CHAUCER, Sumner’s Tale.

“Now, lady,” he said, “I’ll tell you for sure,
Even if I only had the liver of a capon,
And just a crumb of your white bread,
And after that a roasted pig’s head
(But I wouldn't want any animal to be killed for me),
Then I could endure a simple meal with you.”

CHAUCER, Sumner’s Tale.

It was not without some secret misgivings that Caleb set out upon his exploratory expedition. In fact, it was attended with a treble difficulty. He dared not tell his master the offence which he had that morning given to Bucklaw, just for the honour of the family; he dared not acknowledge he had been too hasty in refusing the purse; and, thirdly, he was somewhat apprehensive of unpleasant consequences upon his meeting Hayston under the impression of an affront, and probably by this time under the influence also of no small quantity of brandy.

It was with some secret doubts that Caleb set out on his exploratory trip. In fact, it was facing three major challenges. He couldn’t tell his boss about the offense he had given to Bucklaw that morning, all for the family's honor; he couldn’t admit he had been too quick to refuse the purse; and, lastly, he was a bit worried about the potential fallout from running into Hayston, who would likely feel insulted and may have also had a fair amount of brandy by now.

Caleb, to do him justice, was as bold as any lion where the honour of the family of Ravenswood was concerned; but his was that considerate valour which does not delight in unnecessary risks. This, however, was a secondary consideration; the main point was to veil the indigence of the housekeeping at the castle, and to make good his vaunt of the cheer which his resources could procure, without Lockhard’s assistance, and without supplies from his master. This was as prime a point of honour with him as with the generous elephant with whom we have already compared him, who, being overtasked, broke his skull through the desperate exertions which he made to discharge his duty, when he perceived they were bringing up another to his assistance.

Caleb, to be fair, was as brave as any lion when it came to the honor of the Ravenswood family; however, he had a thoughtful bravery that didn't seek out unnecessary risks. Still, that was a secondary concern; the main issue was to hide the lack of resources at the castle and to deliver on his promise of the hospitality his means could provide, without Lockhard’s help or any supplies from his master. This was as crucial to him as it was for the noble elephant we previously compared him to, who, overworked, injured himself while trying desperately to fulfill his duty when he saw another brought in to help.

The village which they now approached had frequently afforded the distressed butler resources upon similar emergencies; but his relations with it had been of late much altered.

The village they were now nearing had often provided the troubled butler with help in similar situations; however, his relationship with it had changed a lot recently.

It was a little hamlet which straggled along the side of a creek formed by the discharge of a small brook into the sea, and was hidden from the castle, to which it had been in former times an appendage, by the intervention of the shoulder of a hill forming a projecting headland. It was called Wolf’s Hope (i.e. Wolf’s Haven), and the few inhabitants gained a precarious subsistence by manning two or three fishing-boats in the herring season, and smuggling gin and brandy during the winter months. They paid a kind of hereditary respect to the Lords of Ravenswood; but, in the difficulties of the family, most of the inhabitants of Wolf’s Hope had contrived to get feu-rights to their little possessions, their huts, kail-yards, and rights of commonty, so that they were emancipated from the chains of feudal dependence, and free from the various exactions with which, under every possible pretext, or without any pretext at all, the Scottish landlords of the period, themselves in great poverty, were wont to harass their still poorer tenants at will. They might be, on the whole, termed independent, a circumstance peculiarly galling to Caleb, who had been wont to exercise over them the same sweeping authority in levying contributions which was exercised in former times in England, when “the royal purveyors, sallying forth from under the Gothic portcullis to purchase provisions with power and prerogative, instead of money, brought home the plunder of an hundred markets, and all that could be seized from a flying and hiding country, and deposited their spoil in an hundred caverns.”

It was a small village that stretched along the side of a creek formed by a small brook flowing into the sea, and it was hidden from the castle, which used to be connected to it, by the slope of a hill that jutted out. It was called Wolf’s Hope (i.e. Wolf’s Haven), and the few residents made a meager living by manning two or three fishing boats during herring season and smuggling gin and brandy in the winter months. They held a sort of hereditary respect for the Lords of Ravenswood; however, during the family’s struggles, most of the villagers had managed to secure rights to their small properties, their huts, gardens, and common land, freeing them from the constraints of feudal dependence and the various demands that the impoverished Scottish landlords of that time would impose on their even poorer tenants, often without justification. Overall, they could be considered independent, which was particularly frustrating for Caleb, who was used to exerting sweeping control over them, similar to how the royal agents in England once did, coming out from beneath the Gothic gate to acquire food by authority instead of payment, bringing back the spoils of a hundred markets and everything they could seize from a fleeing and hiding populace, storing their loot in a hundred caves.

Caleb loved the memory and resented the downfall of that authority, which mimicked, on a petty scale, the grand contributions exacted by the feudal sovereigns. And as he fondly flattered himself that the awful rule and right supremacy, which assigned to the Barons of Ravenswood the first and most effective interest in all productions of nature within five miles of their castle, only slumbered, and was not departed for ever, he used every now and then to give the recollection of the inhabitants a little jog by some petty exaction. These were at first submitted to, with more or less readiness, by the inhabitants of the hamlet; for they had been so long used to consider the wants of the Baron and his family as having a title to be preferred to their own, that their actual independence did not convey to them an immediate sense of freedom. They resembled a man that has been long fettered, who, even at liberty, feels in imagination the grasp of the handcuffs still binding his wrists. But the exercise of freedom is quickly followed with the natural consciousness of its immunities, as the enlarged prisoner, by the free use of his limbs, soon dispels the cramped feeling they had acquired when bound.

Caleb cherished the memory and resented the loss of that authority, which mirrored, on a smaller scale, the grand demands imposed by feudal lords. He liked to believe that the harsh rule and rightful power, which gave the Barons of Ravenswood the primary and strongest claim to all natural resources within five miles of their castle, was merely dormant and not gone forever. Occasionally, he would remind the villagers of this by imposing minor demands. At first, the villagers accepted these demands with varying degrees of willingness, as they had been accustomed to viewing the needs of the Baron and his family as more important than their own. Their current independence didn’t immediately make them feel free. They were like a man who has been shackled for a long time, who, even when free, still imagines the weight of the cuffs on his wrists. However, the experience of freedom quickly brings a natural awareness of its privileges, just as a newly freed prisoner soon shakes off the discomfort of the tightness he felt while restrained.

The inhabitants of Wolf’s Hope began to grumble, to resist, and at length positively to refuse compliance with the exactions of Caleb Balderstone. It was in vain he reminded them, that when the eleventh Lord Ravenswood, called the Skipper, from his delight in naval matters, had encouraged the trade of their port by building the pier (a bulwark of stones rudely piled together), which protected the fishing-boats from the weather, it had been matter of understanding that he was to have the first stone of butter after the calving of every cow within the barony, and the first egg, thence called the Monday’s egg, laid by every hen on every Monday in the year.

The people of Wolf’s Hope started to complain, resist, and eventually outright refuse to comply with the demands of Caleb Balderstone. He reminded them that when the eleventh Lord Ravenswood, known as the Skipper because of his passion for naval affairs, supported their port's trade by building the pier (a makeshift wall of stones piled together), it was agreed that he would receive the first stone of butter after every cow in the barony calved, and the first egg, known as the Monday's egg, laid by each hen every Monday of the year.

The feuars heard and scratched their heads, coughed, sneezed, and being pressed for answer, rejoined with one voice, “They could not say”—the universal refuge of a Scottish peasant when pressed to admit a claim which his conscience owns, or perhaps his feelings, and his interest inclines him to deny.

The farmers listened, scratched their heads, coughed, sneezed, and when pushed for an answer, replied in unison, “They couldn’t say”—the usual fallback of a Scottish peasant when confronted with a claim that their conscience acknowledges, but their feelings and self-interest lead them to deny.

Caleb, however, furnished the notables of Wolf’s Hope with a note of the requisition of butter and eggs, which he claimed as arrears of the aforesaid subsidy, or kindly aid, payable as above mentioned; and having intimated that he would not be averse to compound the same for goods or money, if it was inconvenient to them to pay in kind, left them, as he hoped, to debate the mode of assessing themselves for that purpose. On the contrary, they met with a determined purpose of resisting the exaction, and were only undecided as to the mode of grounding their opposition, when the cooper, a very important person on a fishing-station, and one of the conscript fathers of the village, observed, “That their hens had caickled mony a day for the Lords of Ravenswood, and it was time they suld caickle for those that gave them roosts and barley.” An unanimous grin intimated the assent of the assembly. “And,” continued the orator, “if it’s your wull, I’ll just tak a step as far as Dunse for Davie Dingwall, the writer, that’s come frae the North to settle amang us, and he’ll pit this job to rights, I’se warrant him.”

Caleb, however, provided the leaders of Wolf’s Hope with a note requesting butter and eggs, which he claimed were owed as part of the previously mentioned subsidy, or support. He also hinted that he wouldn't mind negotiating for goods or money if paying in kind was inconvenient for them. He left them to discuss how they would assess themselves for that purpose. On the contrary, they had a firm intention to resist the demand and were only uncertain about how to frame their opposition when the cooper, a very important figure in a fishing community and one of the village's respected elders, remarked, “Their hens have clucked many days for the Lords of Ravenswood, and it’s about time they clucked for those who provide them with roosts and barley.” A unanimous grin signaled the agreement of the group. “And,” the speaker continued, “if it’s your wish, I’ll just take a trip to Dunse for Davie Dingwall, the writer who has come from the North to settle among us, and he'll sort this out for sure.”

A day was accordingly fixed for holding a grand palaver at Wolf’s Hope on the subject of Caleb’s requisitions, and he was invited to attend at the hamlet for that purpose.

A day was set for a big palaver at Wolf’s Hope to discuss Caleb’s requests, and he was invited to come to the village for that reason.

He went with open hands and empty stomach, trusting to fill the one on his master’s account and the other on his own score, at the expense of the feuars of Wolf’s Hope. But, death to his hopes! as he entered the eastern end of the straggling village, the awful form of Davie Dingwall, a sly, dry, hard-fisted, shrewd country attorney, who had already acted against the family of Ravenswood, and was a principal agent of Sir William Ashton, trotted in at the western extremity, bestriding a leathern portmanteau stuffed with the feu-charters of the hamlet, and hoping he had not kept Mr. Balderstone waiting, “as he was instructed and fully empowered to pay or receive, compound or compensate, and, in fine, to agé as accords respecting all mutual and unsettled claims whatsoever, belonging or competent to the Honourable Edgar Ravenswood, commonly called the Master of Ravenswood——”

He went in with open hands and an empty stomach, hoping to fill one on his master’s account and the other for himself, at the expense of the landowners of Wolf’s Hope. But, all his hopes were dashed! As he entered the eastern end of the scattered village, the terrible figure of Davie Dingwall, a sly, tightfisted, shrewd country attorney who had already acted against the Ravenswood family and was a key agent of Sir William Ashton, came trotting in from the western end, riding a worn leather suitcase stuffed with the land charters of the village, hoping he hadn’t kept Mr. Balderstone waiting. “He was instructed and fully authorized to pay or receive, negotiate or settle, and, in short, to agé regarding all mutual and unsettled claims whatsoever, belonging to or owed to the Honourable Edgar Ravenswood, commonly known as the Master of Ravenswood——”

“The Right Honourable Edgar Lord Ravenswood,” said Caleb, with great emphasis; for, though conscious he had little chance of advantage in the conflict to ensue, he was resolved not to sacrifice one jot of honour.

“The Right Honourable Edgar Lord Ravenswood,” Caleb said with great emphasis; even though he knew he had little chance of gaining anything in the upcoming conflict, he was determined not to lose any bit of his honor.

“Lord Ravenswood, then,” said the man of business—“we shall not quarrel with you about titles of courtesy—commonly called Lord Ravenswood, or Master of Ravenswood, heritable proprietor of the lands and barony of Wolf’s Crag, on the one part, and to John Whitefish and others, feuars in the town of Wolf’s Hope, within the barony aforesaid, on the other part.”

“Lord Ravenswood, then,” said the business guy—“we won’t argue with you about titles of respect—commonly known as Lord Ravenswood, or Master of Ravenswood, hereditary owner of the lands and estate of Wolf’s Crag, on one side, and John Whitefish and others, leaseholders in the town of Wolf’s Hope, within the aforementioned estate, on the other side.”

Caleb was conscious, from sad experience, that he would wage a very different strife with this mercenary champion than with the individual feuars themselves, upon whose old recollections, predilections, and habits of thinking he might have wrought by an hundred indirect arguments, to which their deputy-representative was totally insensible. The issue of the debate proved the reality of his apprehensions. It was in vain he strained his eloquence and ingenuity, and collected into one mass all arguments arising from antique custom and hereditary respect, from the good deeds done by the Lords of Ravenswood to the community of Wolf’s Hope in former days, and from what might be expected from them in future. The writer stuck to the contents of his feu-charters; he could not see it: ’twas not in the bond. And when Caleb, determined to try what a little spirit would do, deprecated the consequences of Lord Ravenswood’s withdrawing his protection from the burgh, and even hinted in his using active measures of resentment, the man of law sneered in his face.

Caleb knew from painful experience that he'd have a very different battle with this hired champion than with the individual feuars themselves. He might have influenced their old memories, preferences, and ways of thinking with a hundred indirect arguments, but their representative was completely unaware of that. The outcome of the debate confirmed his fears. No matter how hard he tried to be eloquent and clever, and no matter how many arguments he gathered about ancient customs and inherited respect, about the good deeds the Lords of Ravenswood had done for the community of Wolf's Hope in the past, and what could be expected from them in the future, it was useless. The lawyer stuck to the specifics of his feu-charters; he couldn't see beyond it: it wasn’t in the contract. When Caleb, determined to see if a little spirit would help, warned about the consequences of Lord Ravenswood withdrawing his protection from the town and even hinted at possible retaliatory actions, the lawyer just sneered at him.

“His clients,” he said, “had determined to do the best they could for their own town, and he thought Lord Ravenswood, since he was a lord, might have enough to do to look after his own castle. As to any threats of stouthrief oppression, by rule of thumb, or via facti, as the law termed it, he would have Mr. Balderstone recollect, that new times were not as old times; that they lived on the south of the Forth, and far from the Highlands; that his clients thought they were able to protect themselves; but should they find themselves mistaken, they would apply to the government for the protection of a corporal and four red-coats, who,” said Mr. Dingwall, with a grin, “would be perfectly able to secure them against Lord Ravenswood, and all that he or his followers could do by the strong hand.”

“His clients,” he said, “decided to do their best for their town, and he believed that Lord Ravenswood, being a lord, probably had enough on his plate taking care of his own castle. Regarding any threats of robbery or oppression, as the law called it, he would remind Mr. Balderstone that times have changed; they lived south of the Forth, far from the Highlands; his clients were confident they could protect themselves. But if they found out they were wrong, they would ask the government for help from a corporal and four soldiers, who,” Mr. Dingwall said with a grin, “would be more than capable of keeping them safe from Lord Ravenswood and everything he or his men could do with force.”

If Caleb could have concentrated all the lightnings of aristocracy in his eye, to have struck dead this contemner of allegiance and privilege, he would have launched them at his head, without respect to the consequences. As it was, he was compelled to turn his course backward to the castle; and there he remained for full half a day invisible and inaccessible even to Mysie, sequestered in his own peculiar dungeon, where he sat burnishing a single pewter plate and whistling “Maggie Lauder” six hours without intermission.

If Caleb could have focused all the power of aristocracy in his gaze to take down this person who disrespected loyalty and privilege, he would have done it without caring about the aftermath. Instead, he had to head back to the castle, where he stayed completely hidden and unreachable, even to Mysie, locked away in his own little cell. He spent six hours polishing a single pewter plate while whistling “Maggie Lauder” non-stop.

The issue of this unfortunate requisition had shut against Caleb all resources which could be derived from Wolf’s Hope and its purlieus, the El Dorado, or Peru, from which, in all former cases of exigence, he had been able to extract some assistance. He had, indeed, in a manner vowed that the deil should have him, if ever he put the print of his foot within its causeway again. He had hitherto kept his word; and, strange to tell, this secession had, as he intended, in some degree, the effect of a punishment upon the refractory feuars. Mr. Balderstone had been a person in their eyes connected with a superior order of beings, whose presence used to grace their little festivities, whose advice they found useful on many occasions, and whose communications gave a sort of credit to their village. The place, they acknowledged, “didna look as it used to do, and should do, since Mr. Caleb keepit the castle sae closely; but doubtless, touching the eggs and butter, it was a most unreasonable demand, as Mr. Dingwall had justly made manifest.”

The problem with this unfortunate demand had cut off all resources for Caleb that he could have gotten from Wolf’s Hope and its surroundings, the El Dorado, or Peru, from which he had previously been able to get some help in tough times. He had, in fact, kind of vowed that the devil could have him if he ever set foot on its path again. He had kept his promise; and, strangely enough, this decision had, as he intended, somewhat punished the stubborn feuars. Mr. Balderstone had been someone they viewed as part of a higher order of people, whose presence used to brighten their little celebrations, whose advice they found helpful on many occasions, and whose communications gave a sense of credibility to their village. They acknowledged that the place “didn’t look like it used to and should, since Mr. Caleb kept the castle so closely; but doubtless, regarding the eggs and butter, it was a completely unreasonable demand, as Mr. Dingwall had rightly pointed out.”

Thus stood matters betwixt the parties, when the old butler, though it was gall and wormwood to him, found himself obliged either to ackowledge before a strange man of quality, and, what was much worse, before that stranger’s servant, the total inability of Wolf’s Crag to produce a dinner, or he must trust to the compassion of the feuars of Wolf’s Hope. It was a dreadful degradation; but necessity was equally imperious and lawless. With these feelings he entered the street of the village.

Thus stood matters between the parties, when the old butler, even though it was extremely painful for him, found himself forced to either admit in front of a stranger of high status, and what was even worse, in front of that stranger’s servant, the complete inability of Wolf’s Crag to provide a dinner, or he must rely on the pity of the feuars of Wolf’s Hope. It was a terrible embarrassment; but necessity was equally demanding and ruthless. With these thoughts in mind, he entered the street of the village.

Willing to shake himself from his companion as soon as possible, he directed Mr. Lockhard to Luckie Sma-trash’s change-house, where a din, proceeding from the revels of Bucklaw, Craigengelt, and their party, sounded half-way down the street, while the red glare from the window overpowered the grey twilight which was now settling down, and glimmered against a parcel of old tubs, kegs, and barrels, piled up in the cooper’s yard, on the other side of the way.

Willing to break away from his companion as soon as he could, he pointed Mr. Lockhard to Luckie Sma-trash’s tavern, where the noise from Bucklaw, Craigengelt, and their group echoed halfway down the street. The bright light from the window cut through the dim twilight settling in and reflected off a bunch of old tubs, kegs, and barrels stacked up in the cooper’s yard across the street.

“If you, Mr. Lockhard,” said the old butler to his companion, “will be pleased to step to the change-house where that light comes from, and where, as I judge, they are now singing ‘Cauld Kail in Aberdeen,’ ye may do your master’s errand about the venison, and I will do mine about Bucklaw’s bed, as I return frae getting the rest of the vivers. It’s no that the venison is actually needfu’,” he added, detaining his colleague by the button, “to make up the dinner; but as a compliment to the hunters, ye ken; and, Mr. Lockhard, if they offer ye a drink o’ yill, or a cup o’ wine, or a glass o’ brandy, ye’ll be a wise man to take it, in case the thunner should hae soured ours at the castle, whilk is ower muckle to be dreaded.”

“If you, Mr. Lockhard,” said the old butler to his companion, “would kindly head over to the outbuilding where that light is coming from, and where, as I assume, they are currently singing ‘Cauld Kail in Aberdeen,’ you can take care of your master’s request about the venison, and I’ll handle my task regarding Bucklaw’s bed while I’m coming back from getting the rest of the supplies. It’s not that the venison is actually necessary for dinner,” he added, holding his colleague by the button, “but as a gesture toward the hunters, you know; and, Mr. Lockhard, if they offer you a drink of ale, or a cup of wine, or a glass of brandy, it would be wise to accept it, in case the thunder has spoiled ours at the castle, which is quite a risk to consider.”

He then permitted Lockhard to depart; and with foot heavy as lead, and yet far lighter than his heart, stepped on through the unequal street of the straggling village, meditating on whom he ought to make his first attack. It was necessary he should find some one with whom old acknowledged greatness should weigh more than recent independence, and to whom his application might appear an act of high dignity, relenting at once and soothing. But he could not recollect an inhabitant of a mind so constructed. “Our kail is like to be cauld eneugh too,” he reflected, as the chorus of “Cauld Kail in Aberdeen” again reached his ears. The minister—he had got his presentation from the late lord, but they had quarrelled about teinds; the brewster’s wife—she had trusted long, and the bill was aye scored up, and unless the dignity of the family should actually require it, it would be a sin to distress a widow woman. None was so able—but, on the other hand, none was likely to be less willing—to stand his friend upon the present occasion, than Gibbie Girder, the man of tubs and barrels already mentioned, who had headed the insurrection in the matter of the egg and butter subsidy. “But a’ comes o’ taking folk on the right side, I trow,” quoted Caleb to himself; “and I had ance the ill hap to say he was but a Johnny New-come in our town, and the carle bore the family an ill-will ever since. But he married a bonny young quean, Jean Lightbody, auld Lightbody’s daughter, him that was in the steading of Loup-the-Dyke; and auld Lightbody was married himsell to Marion, that was about my lady in the family forty years syne. I hae had mony a day’s daffing wi’ Jean’s mither, and they say she bides on wi’ them. The carle has Jacobuses and Georgiuses baith, an ane could get at them; and sure I am, it’s doing him an honour him or his never deserved at our hand, the ungracious sumph; and if he loses by us a’thegither, he is e’en cheap o’t: he can spare it brawly.”

He then allowed Lockhard to leave; and with feet as heavy as lead, and yet much lighter than his heart, he walked through the uneven street of the scattered village, thinking about who he should approach first. It was necessary for him to find someone whose established greatness was more significant than recent independence, and to whom his request might seem like a dignified act, both forgiving and comforting. But he couldn’t remember a resident whose mind was structured that way. “Our meal is likely to be cold enough too,” he thought, as the tune of “Cold Meal in Aberdeen” reached his ears again. The minister—he had received his position from the late lord, but they had fallen out over tithes; the brewster’s wife—she had been patient for a long time, and the bill was always tallied up, and unless the dignity of the family truly required it, it would be wrong to distress a widow. No one was better qualified—but on the other hand, no one was likely to be less willing—to support him at that moment than Gibbie Girder, the man of tubs and barrels he had mentioned earlier, who had led the protest over the egg and butter subsidy. “But all comes from taking folks on the right side, I suppose,” Caleb mused to himself; “and I once foolishly remarked that he was just a newcomer in our town, and the guy has held a grudge against our family ever since. But he married a lovely young woman, Jean Lightbody, old Lightbody’s daughter, the one from the Loup-the-Dyke farm; and old Lightbody himself was married to Marion, who worked for my lady in the family forty years ago. I’ve had many a good laugh with Jean’s mother, and they say she still lives with them. The guy has Jacobuses and Georgiuses both, if only one could get to them; and I’m sure it's doing him an honor he or his family never deserved from us, the ungrateful fool; and if he loses everything from us, it’s just as well: he can easily afford it.”

Shaking off irresolution, therefore, and turning at once upon his heel, Caleb walked hastily back to the cooper’s house, lifted the latch without ceremony, and, in a moment, found himself behind the hallan, or partition, from which position he could, himself unseen, reconnoitre the interior of the but, or kitchen apartment, of the mansion.

Shaking off his doubts and quickly turning around, Caleb hurried back to the cooper's house, lifted the latch without hesitation, and soon found himself behind the hallan, or partition, where he could observe the interior of the but, or kitchen, without being seen.

Reverse of the sad menage at the Castle of Wolf’s Crag, a bickering fire roared up the cooper’s chimney. His wife, on the one side, in her pearlings and pudding-sleeves, put the last finishing touch to her holiday’s apparel, while she contemplated a very handsome and good-humoured face in a broken mirror, raised upon the bink (the shelves on which the plates are disposed) for her special accommodation. Her mother, old Luckie Loup-the-Dyke, “a canty carline” as was within twenty miles of her, according to the unanimous report of the cummers, or gossips, sat by the fire in the full glory of a grogram gown, lammer beads, and a clean cockernony, whiffing a snug pipe of tobacco, and superintending the affairs of the kitchen; for—sight more interesting to the anxious heart and craving entrails of the desponding seneschal than either buxom dame or canty cummer—there bubbled on the aforesaid bickering fire a huge pot, or rather cauldron, steaming with beef and brewis; while before it revolved two spits, turned each by one of the cooper’s apprentices, seated in the opposite corners of the chimney, the one loaded with a quarter of mutton, while the other was graced with a fat goose and a brace of wild ducks. The sight and scent of such a land of plenty almost wholly overcame the drooping spirits of Caleb. He turned, for a moment’s space to reconnoitre the ben, or parlour end of the house, and there saw a sight scarce less affecting to his feelings—a large round table, covered for ten or twelve persons, decored (according to his own favourite terms) with napery as white as snow, grand flagons of pewter, intermixed with one or two silver cups, containing, as was probable, something worthy the brilliancy of their outward appearance, clean trenchers, cutty spoons, knives and forks, sharp, burnished, and prompt for action, which lay all displayed as for an especial festival.

Reverse of the sad situation at the Castle of Wolf’s Crag, a lively fire crackled up the cooper’s chimney. His wife, dressed in her pearls and puffed sleeves, was putting the final touches on her holiday outfit while admiring her pretty and cheerful face in a cracked mirror, which was set up on the bink (the shelves for the dishes) just for her. Her mother, old Luckie Loup-the-Dyke, “a cheerful old woman” as everyone agreed within twenty miles, was sitting by the fire in a grand grogram dress, wearing lammer beads and a clean cockernony, puffing on a cozy pipe of tobacco, while keeping an eye on the kitchen. For—far more interesting to the troubled heart and empty belly of the worried steward than either the lively woman or the cheerful gossip—there simmered on the crackling fire a huge pot, or rather a cauldron, steaming with beef and broth; while in front of it, two spits turned, each managed by one of the cooper’s apprentices sitting in opposite corners of the chimney—one spit loaded with a quarter of mutton, and the other topped with a plump goose and a pair of wild ducks. The sight and smell of such an abundance almost completely lifted Caleb’s sagging spirits. He turned for a brief moment to look at the ben, or parlor end of the house, and there found a scene equally stirring— a large round table set for ten or twelve people, decored (as he liked to call it) with napery as white as snow, grand pewter flagons mixed with one or two silver cups, probably containing something deserving of their shine, clean trenchers, cutty spoons, knives and forks, sharp, polished, and ready to use, all laid out for a special celebration.

“The devil’s in the peddling tub-coopering carl!” muttered Caleb, in all the envy of astonishment; “it’s a shame to see the like o’ them gusting their gabs at sic a rate. But if some o’ that gude cheer does not find its way to Wolf’s Crag this night, my name is not Caleb Balderstone.”

“The devil’s in the peddling tub-coopering carl!” muttered Caleb, filled with envy and astonishment; “it’s a shame to see them boasting so much. But if some of that good food doesn’t make its way to Wolf’s Crag tonight, my name isn’t Caleb Balderstone.”

So resolving, he entered the apartment, and, in all courteous greeting, saluted both the mother and the daughter. Wolf’s Crag was the court of the barony, Caleb prime minister at Wolf’s Crag; and it has ever been remarked that, though the masculine subject who pays the taxes sometimes growls at the courtiers by whom they are imposed, the said courtiers continue, nevertheless, welcome to the fair sex, to whom they furnish the newest small-talk and the earliest fashions. Both the dames were, therefore, at once about old Caleb’s neck, setting up their throats together by way of welcome.

So deciding, he walked into the apartment and greeted both the mother and daughter warmly. Wolf’s Crag was the court of the barony, with Caleb as the prime minister there; it has always been noted that even though the men who pay the taxes sometimes grumble about the courtiers who impose them, those same courtiers remain popular with women, who they treat to the latest gossip and trends. So, both ladies immediately wrapped their arms around old Caleb's neck, cheerfully welcoming him.

“Ay, sirs, Mr. Balderstone, and is this you? A sight of you is gude for sair een. Sit down—sit down; the gudeman will be blythe to see you—ye nar saw him sae cadgy in your life; but we are to christen our bit wean the night, as ye will hae heard, and doubtless ye will stay and see the ordinance. We hae killed a wether, and ane o’ our lads has been out wi’ his gun at the moss; ye used to like wild-fowl.”

“Aye, gentlemen, Mr. Balderstone, is that you? It's good to see you; your presence is a relief for tired eyes. Sit down—please, have a seat; the man of the house will be happy to see you—you’ve never seen him this cheerful in your life. We’re going to have a christening for our little one tonight, as you probably heard, and surely you’ll want to stay and witness the ceremony. We’ve roasted a lamb, and one of our guys has gone out with his gun to the marsh; you used to enjoy wild game.”

“Na, na, gudewife,” said Caleb; “I just keekit in to wish ye joy, and I wad be glad to hae spoken wi’ the gudeman, but——” moving, as if to go away.

“Ah, no, good wife,” said Caleb; “I just dropped by to wish you joy, and I would’ve liked to speak with your husband, but——” he said, moving as if to leave.

“The ne’er a fit ye’s gang,” said the elder dame, laughing and holding him fast, with a freedom which belonged to their old acquaintance; “wha kens what ill it may bring to the bairn, if ye owerlook it in that gate?”

“The never a fit you’re going,” said the older woman, laughing and holding him tightly, with a familiarity that came from their long friendship; “who knows what harm it might bring to the child if you ignore it like that?”

“But I’m in a preceese hurry, gudewife,” said the butler, suffering himself to be dragged to a seat without much resistance; “and as to eating,” for he observed the mistress of the dwelling bustling about to place a trencher for him—“as for eating—lack-a-day, we are just killed up yonder wi’ eating frae morning to night! It’s shamefu’ epicurism; but that’s what we hae gotten frae the English pock-puddings.”

“But I’m in a real hurry, ma'am,” said the butler, allowing himself to be pulled to a seat without much protest; “and as for eating,” since he noticed the lady of the house rushing around to set a plate for him—“as for eating—oh dear, we are just worn out up there from eating from morning to night! It’s disgraceful gluttony; but that’s what we’ve gotten from the English sausage-makers.”

“Hout, never mind the English pock-puddings,” said Luckie Lightbody; “try our puddings, Mr. Balderstone; there is black pudding and white-hass; try whilk ye like best.”

“Hout, forget about the English blood puddings,” said Luckie Lightbody; “try our puddings, Mr. Balderstone; there's black pudding and white-hass; see which one you like best.”

“Baith gude—baith excellent—canna be better; but the very smell is eneugh for me that hae dined sae lately (the faithful wretch had fasted since daybreak). But I wanda affront your housewifeskep, gudewife; and, with your permission, I’se e’en pit them in my napkin, and eat them to my supper at e’en, for I am wearied of Mysie’s pastry and nonsense; ye ken landward dainties aye pleased me best, Marion, and landward lasses too (looking at the cooper’s wife). Ne’er a bit but she looks far better than when she married Gilbert, and then she was the bonniest lass in our parochine and the neist till’t. But gawsie cow, goodly calf.”

“Both good—both excellent—can’t be better; but just the smell is enough for me since I dined so recently (the poor soul had fasted since dawn). But I don't want to offend your hospitality, good wife; and, with your permission, I’ll just wrap them in my napkin and eat them for dinner later, because I’m tired of Mysie’s pastries and nonsense; you know I’ve always preferred country treats, Marion, and country girls too (looking at the cooper’s wife). She looks much better than when she married Gilbert, and back then she was the prettiest girl in our parish and the closest to it. But hefty cow, good calf.”

The women smiled at the compliment each to herself, and they smiled again to each other as Caleb wrapt up the puddings in a towel which he had brought with him, as a dragoon carries his foraging bag to receive what my fall in his way.

The women smiled at the compliment to themselves, and they smiled again at each other as Caleb wrapped up the puddings in a towel he had brought with him, like a soldier carries his bag to collect whatever he comes across.

“And what news at the castle?” quo’ the gudewife.

“And what’s the news at the castle?” said the goodwife.

“News! The bravest news ye ever heard—the Lord Keeper’s up yonder wi’ his fair daughter, just ready to fling her at my lord’s head, if he winna tak her out o’ his arms; and I’se warrant he’ll stitch our auld lands of Ravenswood to her petticoat tail.”

“News! The bravest news you’ve ever heard—the Lord Keeper’s up there with his beautiful daughter, just ready to toss her at my lord’s head if he won’t take her out of his arms; and I bet he’ll sew our old lands of Ravenswood to her skirt.”

“Eh! sirs—ay!—and will hae her? and is she weel-favoured? and what’s the colour o’ her hair? and does she wear a habit or a railly?” were the questions which the females showered upon the butler.

“Hey! sirs—yeah!—and will he have her? and is she good-looking? and what’s the color of her hair? and does she wear a dress or trousers?” were the questions that the women bombarded the butler with.

“Hout tout! it wad tak a man a day to answer a’ your questions, and I hae hardly a minute. Where’s the gudeman?”

“Hush! It would take a guy a whole day to answer all your questions, and I barely have a minute. Where’s the man of the house?”

“Awa’ to fetch the minister,” said Mrs. Girder, “precious Mr. Peter Bide-the-Bent, frae the Mosshead; the honest man has the rheumatism wi’ lying in the hills in the persecution.”

“Away to get the minister,” said Mrs. Girder, “dear Mr. Peter Bide-the-Bent, from the Mosshead; the good man has rheumatism from lying in the hills during the persecution.”

“Ay! Whig and a mountain-man, nae less!” said Caleb, with a peevishness he could not suppress. “I hae seen the day, Luckie, when worthy Mr. Cuffcushion and the service-book would hae served your turn (to the elder dame), or ony honest woman in like circumstances.”

“Ay! A Whig and a mountain man, no less!” said Caleb, with annoyance he couldn’t hide. “I've seen the day, Luckie, when good Mr. Cuffcushion and the service book would’ve worked for you (to the older woman), or any respectable woman in similar situations.”

“And that’s true too,” said Mrs. Lightbody, “but what can a body do? Jean maun baith sing her psalms and busk her cockernony the gate the gudeman likes, and nae ither gate; for he’s maister and mair at hame, I can tell ye, Mr. Balderstone.”

“And that’s true too,” said Mrs. Lightbody, “but what can someone do? Jean has to sit and sing her psalms and dress her way that her husband likes, and no other way; because he’s the master and more at home, I can tell you, Mr. Balderstone.”

“Ay, ay, and does he guide the gear too?” said Caleb, to whose projects masculine rule boded little good.

“Ay, ay, and does he control the gear too?” said Caleb, to whose plans masculine authority promised little success.

“Ilka penny on’t; but he’ll dress her as dink as a daisy, as ye see; sae she has little reason to complain: where there’s ane better aff there’s ten waur.”

“Every penny counts; but he’ll dress her as nicely as possible, as you see; so she has little reason to complain: where there’s one better off, there are ten worse.”

“Aweel, gudewife,” said Caleb, crestfallen, but not beaten off, “that wasna the way ye guided your gudeman; but ilka land has its ain lauch. I maun be ganging. I just wanted to round in the gudeman’s lug, that I heard them say up-bye yonder that Peter Puncheon, that was cooper to the Queen’s stores at the Timmer Burse at Leith, is dead; sae I though that maybe a word frae my lord to the Lord Keeper might hae served Gilbert; but since he’s frae hame——”

“Well, goodwife,” said Caleb, feeling downcast but not defeated, “that wasn’t the way you guided your husband; but every land has its own laws. I have to be going. I just wanted to let your husband know that I heard them say up there that Peter Puncheon, who was a cooper for the Queen’s stores at the Timber Bourse in Leith, has died; so I thought maybe a word from my lord to the Lord Keeper might have helped Gilbert; but since he’s away——”

“O, but ye maun stay his hame-coming,” said the dame. “I aye telled the gudeman ye meant weel to him; but he taks the tout at every bit lippening word.”

“O, but you must stop his coming home,” said the lady. “I always told the goodman you meant well to him; but he takes offense at every little word.”

“Aweel, I’ll stay the last minute I can.”

“A well, I’ll stay the last minute I can.”

“And so,” said the handsome young spouse of Mr. Girder, “ye think this Miss Ashton is weel-favoured? Troth, and sae should she, to set up for our young lord, with a face and a hand, and a seat on his horse, that might become a king’s son. D’ye ken that he aye glowers up at my window, Mr. Balderstone, when he chaunces to ride thro’ the town? Sae I hae a right to ken what like he is, as weel as ony body.”

"And so," said the good-looking young husband of Mr. Girder, "you think this Miss Ashton is attractive? Truly, she should be, to catch the eye of our young lord, with a face and a figure, and a way of riding that could suit a king's son. Do you know he always stares up at my window, Mr. Balderstone, whenever he happens to ride through town? So I have every right to know what he's like, just like anyone else."

“I ken that brawly,” said Caleb, “for I hae heard his lordship say the cooper’s wife had the blackest ee in the barony; and I said, ‘Weel may that be, my lord, for it was her mither’s afore her, as I ken to my cost.’ Eh, Marion? Ha, ha, ha! Ah! these were merry days!”

“I know that well,” said Caleb, “because I’ve heard his lordship say that the cooper’s wife had the darkest eyes in the barony; and I replied, ‘That may very well be, my lord, because it was her mother’s before her, as I know from experience.’ Oh, Marion? Ha, ha, ha! Ah! those were happy days!”

“Hout awa’, auld carle,” said the old dame, “to speak sic daffing to young folk. But, Jean—fie, woman, dinna ye hear the bairn greet? I’se warrant it’s that dreary weid has come ower’t again.”

“Hush now, old man,” said the old woman, “it’s foolish to talk like that to young people. But, Jean—come on, woman, can’t you hear the baby crying? I bet it’s that dreadful weather that’s come over us again.”

Up got mother and grandmother, and scoured away, jostling each other as they ran, into some remote corner of the tenement, where the young hero of the evening was deposited. When Caleb saw the coast fairly clear, he took an invigorating pinch of snuff, to sharpen and confirm his resolution.

Up got mom and grandma and hurried away, bumping into each other as they ran into a far-off corner of the apartment building, where the young hero of the evening was waiting. When Caleb saw that the coast was clear, he took an energizing pinch of snuff to strengthen and solidify his resolve.

“Cauld be my cast,” thought he, “if either Bide-the-Bent or Girder taste that broach of wild-fowl this evening”; and then addressing the eldest turnspit, a boy of about eleven years old, and putting a penny into his hand, he said, “Here is twal pennies, my man; carry that ower to Mrs. Sma’trash, and bid her fill my mill wi’ snishing, and I’ll turn the broche for ye in the mean time; and she will gie ye a ginge-bread snap for your pains.”

“Could be my luck,” he thought, “if either Bide-the-Bent or Girder tries that wild-fowl roast this evening.” Then he turned to the eldest turnspit, a boy of about eleven, and handed him a penny, saying, “Here’s twelve pennies, my boy; take this over to Mrs. Sma’trash and ask her to fill my mill with snishing, and I’ll handle the roasting for you in the meantime; she’ll give you a gingerbread snap for your trouble.”

No sooner was the elder boy departed on this mission than Caleb, looking the remaining turnspit gravely and steadily in the face, removed from the fire the spit bearing the wild-fowl of which he had undertaken the charge, clapped his hat on his head, and fairly marched off with it, he stopped at the door of the change-house only to say, in a few brief words, that Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw was not to expect a bed that evening in the castle.

No sooner had the older boy left on this mission than Caleb, looking the remaining turnspit seriously and steadily in the face, took the spit with the wildfowl he was responsible for off the fire, put his hat on, and marched off with it. He stopped at the door of the change-house just to say, in a few brief words, that Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw should not expect a bed that night in the castle.

If this message was too briefly delivered by Caleb, it became absolute rudeness when conveyed through the medium of a suburb landlady; and Bucklaw was, as a more calm and temperate man might have been, highly incensed. Captain Craigengelt proposed, with the unanimous applause of all present, that they should course the old fox (meaning Caleb) ere he got to cover, and toss him in a blanket. But Lockhard intimated to his master’s servants and those of Lord Bittlebrains, in a tone of authority, that the slightest impertinence to the Master of Ravenswood’s domestic would give Sir William Ashton the highest offence. And having so said, in a manner sufficient to prevent any aggression on their part, he left the public-house, taking along with him two servants loaded with such provisions as he had been able to procure, and overtook Caleb just when he had cleared the village.

If Caleb delivered this message too briefly, it became outright rude when passed on by a landlady from the suburbs; and Bucklaw, like a calmer person might have been, was really angry. Captain Craigengelt suggested, with everyone present enthusiastically agreeing, that they should chase the old fox (meaning Caleb) before he could escape and toss him in a blanket. But Lockhard warned his master’s servants and those of Lord Bittlebrains, in an authoritative tone, that any disrespect towards the Master of Ravenswood’s servant would greatly upset Sir William Ashton. After saying this in a way that ensured they wouldn’t take any action, he left the pub, taking two servants with him who were loaded with whatever supplies he could find, and caught up with Caleb just as he was leaving the village.

CHAPTER XIII.

Should I take aught of you? ’Tis true I begged now;
And what is worse than that, I stole a kindness;
And, what is worst of all, I lost my way in’t.

Wit without Money.

Should I take anything from you? It’s true I asked for it now;
And what’s worse than that, I took a favor;
And, what’s the worst of all, I got lost in it.

Wit without Money.

The face of the little boy, sole witness of Caleb’s infringement upon the laws at once of property and hospitality, would have made a good picture. He sat motionless, as if he had witnessed some of the spectral appearances which he had heard told of in a winter’s evening; and as he forgot his own duty, and allowed his spit to stand still, he added to the misfortunes of the evening by suffering the mutton to burn as black as a coal. He was first recalled from his trance of astonishment by a hearty cuff administered by Dame Lightbody, who, in whatever other respects she might conform to her name, was a woman strong of person, and expert in the use of her hands, as some say her deceased husband had known to his cost.

The little boy's face, the only witness to Caleb's violation of both property and hospitality laws, would have made a great picture. He sat there frozen, as if he had seen some of the ghostly sights he’d heard about on winter evenings; and as he lost track of his own task and let the spit stop moving, he contributed to the troubles of the night by letting the mutton burn to a crisp. He was brought back from his state of shock by a hearty slap from Dame Lightbody, who, in other ways she might fit her name, was a strong woman and skilled with her hands, as some say her late husband had learned the hard way.

“What garr’d ye let the roast burn, ye ill-clerkit gude-for-nought?”

“What made you let the roast burn, you useless good-for-nothing?”

“I dinna ken,” said the boy.

“I don’t know,” said the boy.

“And where’s that ill-deedy gett, Giles?”

“And where’s that shady guy, Giles?”

“I dinna ken,” blubbered the astonished declarant.

“I don't know,” cried the surprised witness.

“And where’s Mr. Balderstone?—and abune a’, and in the name of council and kirk-session, that I suld say sae, where’s the broche wi’ the wild-fowl?” As Mrs. Girder here entered, and joined her mother’s exclamations, screaming into one ear while the old lady deafened the other, they succeeded in so utterly confounding the unhappy urchin, that he could not for some time tell his story at all, and it was only when the elder boy returned that the truth began to dawn on their minds.

“And where’s Mr. Balderstone?—and above all, in the name of the council and church session, I have to say, where’s the brooch with the wildfowl?” Just then, Mrs. Girder walked in and added to her mother's exclamations, yelling into one ear while the old lady shouted in the other. They completely overwhelmed the poor boy, leaving him unable to tell his story for a while, and it was only when the older boy returned that the truth started to become clear to them.

“Weel, sirs!” said Mrs. Lightbody, “wha wad hae thought o’ Caleb Balderstone playing an auld acquaintance sic a pliskie!”

“Weel, sirs!” said Mrs. Lightbody, “who would have thought of Caleb Balderstone playing an old acquaintance such a prank!”

“Oh, weary on him!” said the spouse of Mr. Girder; “and what am I to say to the gudeman? He’ll brain me, if there wasna anither woman in a’ Wolf’s Hope.”

“Oh, poor guy!” said Mr. Girder’s wife; “and what am I supposed to tell my husband? He’ll go crazy on me if there wasn’t another woman in all of Wolf’s Hope.”

“Hout tout, silly quean,” said the mother; “na, na, it’s come to muckle, but it’s no come to that neither; for an he brain you he maun brain me, and I have garr’d his betters stand back. Hands aff is fair play; we maunna heed a bit flyting.”

“Hush now, silly girl,” said the mother; “no, no, it’s come to a lot, but it’s not come to that either; for if he wants to hit you, he has to hit me first, and I’ve made sure those better than him keep their distance. Hands off is fair play; we shouldn’t care about a little arguing.”

The tramp of horses now announced the arrival of the cooper, with the minister. They had no sooner dismounted than they made for the kitchen fire, for the evening was cool after the thunderstorm, and the woods wet and dirty. The young gudewife, strong in the charms of her Sunday gown and biggonets, threw herself in the way of receiving the first attack, while her mother, like the veteran division of the Roman legion, remained in the rear, ready to support her in case of necessity. Both hoped to protract the discovery of what had happened—the mother, by interposing her bustling person betwixt Mr. Girder and the fire, and the daughter, by the extreme cordiality with which she received the minister and her husband, and the anxious fears which she expressed lest they should have “gotten cauld.”

The sound of horses approaching signaled the arrival of the cooper and the minister. As soon as they got off their horses, they headed straight for the kitchen fire because the evening was cool after the thunderstorm, leaving the woods damp and muddy. The young housewife, proud in her Sunday dress and bonnet, positioned herself to take the lead in welcoming them, while her mother, like a seasoned soldier in a Roman legion, stayed back, ready to support her if needed. Both hoped to delay revealing what had happened—the mother by bustling around to block Mr. Girder from getting too close to the fire, and the daughter by warmly greeting the minister and her husband and expressing her worries that they might be “getting cold.”

“Cauld!” quoted the husband, surlily, for he was not of that class of lords and masters whose wives are viceroys over them, “we’ll be cauld eneugh, I think, if ye dinna let us in to the fire.”

“Cold!” the husband said grumpily, since he was not one of those lords and masters whose wives hold power over them. “We'll be cold enough, I think, if you don’t let us in by the fire.”

And so saying, he burst his way through both lines of defence; and, as he had a careful eye over his property of every kind, he perceived at one glance the absence of the spit with its savoury burden. “What the deil, woman——”

And with that, he pushed through both lines of defense; and, since he was always mindful of his belongings, he quickly noticed the missing spit with its delicious load. “What the hell, woman——”

“Fie for shame!” exclaimed both the women; “and before Mr. Bide-the-Bent!”

“Shame on you!” both women exclaimed; “and in front of Mr. Bide-the-Bent!”

“I stand reproved,” said the cooper; “but—”

“I admit I was wrong,” said the barrel maker; “but—”

“The taking in our mouths the name of the great enemy of our souls,” said Mr. Bide-the-Bent—

“The act of uttering the name of the great enemy of our souls,” said Mr. Bide-the-Bent—

“I stand reproved,” said the cooper.

“I stand corrected,” said the barrel maker.

“—Is an exposing ourselves to his temptations,” continued the reverend monitor, “and in inviting, or, in some sort, a compelling, of him to lay aside his other trafficking with unhappy persons, and wait upon those in whose speech his name is frequent.”

“—Is exposing ourselves to his temptations,” continued the reverend monitor, “and in inviting, or in some way compelling, him to set aside his dealings with unhappy people and focus on those who frequently mention his name.”

“Weel, weel, Mr. Bide-the-Bent, can a man do mair than stand reproved?” said the cooper; “but jest let me ask the women what for they hae dished the wild-fowl before we came.”

“Well, well, Mr. Bide-the-Bent, can a man do more than stand corrected?” said the cooper; “but just let me ask the women why they served the wild fowl before we arrived.”

“They arena dished, Gilbert,” said his wife; “but—but an accident——”

“They're not served, Gilbert,” his wife said; “but—but an accident——”

“What accident?” said Girder, with flashing eyes. “Nae ill come ower them, I trust? Uh?”

“What accident?” Girder asked, his eyes flashing. “I hope nothing bad has happened to them, right?”

His wife, who stood much in awe of him, durst not reply, but her mother bustled up to her support, with arms disposed as if they were about to be a-kimbo at the next reply.—“I gied them to an acquaintance of mine, Gibbie Girder; and what about it now?”

His wife, who was quite intimidated by him, didn’t dare to respond, but her mother rushed in to back her up, hands on her hips, ready for the next exchange. —“I gave them to a friend of mine, Gibbie Girder; so what’s the issue now?”

Her excess of assurance struck Girder mute for an instant. “And ye gied the wild-fowl, the best end of our christening dinner, to a friend of yours, ye auld rudas! And what might his name be, I pray ye?”

Her overwhelming confidence left Girder speechless for a moment. “And you gave the wildfowl, the best part of our christening dinner, to a friend of yours, you old rascal! And what might his name be, if I may ask?”

“Just worthy Mr. Caleb Balderstone—frae Wolf’s Crag,” answered Marion, prompt and prepared for battle.

“Just worthy Mr. Caleb Balderstone—from Wolf’s Crag,” answered Marion, quick and ready for a fight.

Girder’s wrath foamed over all restraint. If there was a circumstance which could have added to the resentment he felt, it was that this extravagant donation had been made in favour of our friend Caleb, towards whom, for reasons to which the reader is no stranger, he nourished a decided resentment. He raised his riding-wand against the elder matron, but she stood firm, collected in herself, and undauntedly brandished the iron ladle with which she had just been flambing (Anglicè, basting) the roast of mutton. Her weapon was certainly the better, and her arm not the weakest of the two; so that Gilbert thought it safest to turn short off upon his wife, who had by this time hatched a sort of hysterical whine, which greatly moved the minister, who was in fact as simple and kind-hearted a creature as ever breathed. “And you, ye thowless jade, to sit still and see my substance disponed upon to an idle, drunken, reprobate, worm-eaten serving-man, just because he kittles the lugs o’ a silly auld wife wi’ useless clavers, and every twa words a lee? I’ll gar you as gude——”

Girder’s anger boiled over all restraint. If there was anything that could have added to the resentment he felt, it was that this extravagant donation was made in favor of our friend Caleb, toward whom, for reasons familiar to the reader, he held deep resentment. He raised his riding wand against the older woman, but she stood her ground, composed and fearlessly brandishing the iron ladle with which she had just been basting the roast of mutton. Her weapon was definitely the better one, and her arm was not the weaker of the two; so Gilbert thought it safer to turn abruptly toward his wife, who had by now developed a sort of hysterical whine that deeply affected the minister, who was actually as simple and kind-hearted a person as ever lived. “And you, you foolish girl, to sit there and watch my possessions being given to an idle, drunken, useless serving man, just because he flatters the ears of a silly old woman with pointless chatter, and with every other word a lie? I’ll make you as good——”

Here the minister interposed, both by voice and action, while Dame Lightbody threw herself in front of her daughter, and flourished her ladle.

Here, the minister stepped in, both with his words and gestures, while Dame Lightbody positioned herself in front of her daughter, waving her ladle around.


“Am I no to chastise my ain wife?” exclaimed the cooper very indignantly.

“Am I not allowed to correct my own wife?” exclaimed the cooper very indignantly.

“Ye may chastise your ain wife if ye like,” answered Dame Lightbody; “but ye shall never lay finger on my daughter, and that ye may found upon.”

“Feel free to punish your own wife if you want,” replied Dame Lightbody; “but you will never lay a finger on my daughter, and you can count on that.”

“For shame, Mr. Girder!” said the clergyman; “this is what I little expected to have seen of you, that you suld give rein to your sinful passions against your nearest and your dearest, and this night too, when ye are called to the most solemn duty of a Christian parent; and a’ for what? For a redundancy of creature-comforts, as worthless as they are unneedful.”

“For shame, Mr. Girder!” said the clergyman; “I never expected to see you let your sinful passions take over against your closest family, and tonight of all nights, when you’re called to the most important duty of a Christian parent; and all for what? For an excess of comforts that are as pointless as they are unnecessary.”

“Worthless!” exclaimed the cooper. “A better guse never walkit on stubble; two finer, dentier wild ducks never wat a feather.”

“Useless!” shouted the cooper. “A better goose never walked on stubble; two nicer, more delicate wild ducks never had a feather.”

“Be it sae, neighbour,” rejoined the minister; “but see what superfluities are yet revolving before your fire. I have seen the day when ten of the bannocks which stand upon that board would have been an acceptable dainty to as many men, that were starving on hills and bogs, and in caves of the earth, for the Gospel’s sake.”

“Maybe so, neighbor,” the minister replied; “but look at the excess food still sitting by your fire. I remember a time when ten of those flatbreads on the table would have been a welcome treat for just as many men who were starving on the hills, in the swamps, and in caves, all for the sake of the Gospel.”

“And that’s what vexes me maist of a’,” said the cooper, anxious to get some one to sympathise with his not altogether causeless anger; “an the quean had gien it to ony suffering sant, or to ony body ava but that reaving, lying, oppressing Tory villain, that rade in the wicked troop of militia when it was commanded out against the sants at Bothwell Brig by the auld tyrant Allan Ravenswood, that is gane to his place, I wad the less hae minded it. But to gie the principal parts o’ the feast to the like o’ him——!”

“And that’s what bothers me the most,” said the cooper, eager to find someone who would understand his somewhat justifiable anger; “if the woman had given it to any suffering saint, or to anyone at all but that thieving, lying, oppressive Tory villain, who rode with the wicked militia when they were sent against the saints at Bothwell Brig by the old tyrant Allan Ravenswood, who has since left this world, I would have cared less. But to give the main parts of the feast to someone like him—!”

“Aweel, Gilbert,” said the minister, “and dinna ye see a high judgment in this? The seed of the righteous are not seen begging their bread: think of the son of a powerful oppressor being brought to the pass of supporting his household from your fulness.”

“Awell, Gilbert,” said the minister, “don’t you see the heavy judgment in this? The children of the righteous aren't seen begging for food: consider the son of a powerful oppressor having to rely on your generosity to support his family.”

“And, besides,” said the wife, “it wasna for Lord Ravenswood neither, an he wad hear but a body speak: it was to help to entertain the Lord Keeper, as they ca’ him, that’s up yonder at Wolf’s Crag.”

“And, besides,” said the wife, “it wasn’t for Lord Ravenswood either, if he would just listen to someone speak: it was to help entertain the Lord Keeper, as they call him, who’s up there at Wolf’s Crag.”

“Sir William Ashton at Wolf’s Crag!” ejaculated the astonished man of hoops and staves.

“Sir William Ashton at Wolf’s Crag!” exclaimed the shocked man with hoops and staves.

“And hand and glove wi’ Lord Ravenswood,” added Dame Lightbody.

“And hand in glove with Lord Ravenswood,” added Dame Lightbody.

“Doited idiot! that auld, clavering sneckdrawer wad gar ye trow the moon is made of green cheese. The Lord Keeper and Ravenswood! they are cat and dog, hare and hound.”

“Dumb idiot! That old, rambling fool will make you believe the moon is made of green cheese. The Lord Keeper and Ravenswood! They are like cat and dog, hare and hound.”

“I tell ye they are man and wife, and gree better than some others that are sae,” retorted the mother-in-law; “forbye, Peter Puncheon, that’s cooper the Queen’s stores, is dead, and the place is to fill, and——”

“I tell you they are married, and they get along better than some others do," the mother-in-law shot back; "besides, Peter Puncheon, the cooper for the Queen’s stores, is dead, and the position needs to be filled, and——”

“Od guide us, wull ye haud your skirling tongues!” said Girder,—for we are to remark, that this explanation was given like a catch for two voices, the younger dame, much encouraged by the turn of the debate, taking up and repeating in a higher tone the words as fast as they were uttered by her mother.

"God help us, will you keep your screaming tongues quiet!" said Girder,—for we should note that this explanation was given like a duet, the younger woman, feeling encouraged by the direction of the conversation, quickly echoing her mother's words in a higher pitch as soon as they were spoken.

“The gudewife says naething but what’s true, maister,” said Girder’s foreman, who had come in during the fray. “I saw the Lord Keeper’s servants drinking and driving ower at Luckie Sma’trash’s, ower-bye yonder.”

“The lady speaks nothing but the truth, sir,” said Girder’s foreman, who had entered during the commotion. “I saw the Lord Keeper’s servants drinking and making a scene at Luckie Sma’trash’s, just over there.”

“And is their maister up at Wolf’s Crag?” said Girder.

“And is their master up at Wolf’s Crag?” said Girder.

“Ay, troth is he,” replied his man of confidence.

"Yes, it's true," replied his trusted confidant.

“And friends wi’ Ravenswood?”

"And friends with Ravenswood?"

“It’s like sae,” answered the foreman, “since he is putting up wi’ him.”

“It’s like that,” answered the foreman, “since he is putting up with him.”

“And Peter Puncheon’s dead?”

"And Peter Puncheon is dead?"

“Ay, ay, Puncheon has leaked out at last, the auld carle,” said the foreman; “mony a dribble o’ brandy has gaen through him in his day. But as for the broche and the wild-fowl, the saddle’s no aff your mare yet, maister, and I could follow and bring it back, for Mr. Balderstone’s no far aff the town yet.”

“Ay, ay, Puncheon has finally spilled the beans, that old man,” said the foreman; “he's had his share of brandy over the years. But as for the brooch and the wildfowl, your mare's still saddled, sir, and I could track it down and bring it back since Mr. Balderstone isn’t too far from town yet.”

“Do sae, Will; and come here, I’ll tell ye what to do when ye owertake him.”

“Do that, Will; and come here, I’ll tell you what to do when you catch up to him.”

He relieved the females of his presence, and gave Will his private instructions.

He sent the women away and gave Will his private instructions.

“A bonny-like thing,” said the mother-in-law, as the cooper re-entered the apartment, “to send the innocent lad after an armed man, when ye ken Mr. Balderstone aye wears a rapier, and whiles a dirk into the bargain.”

“A pretty thing,” said the mother-in-law, as the cooper re-entered the room, “to send the poor kid after an armed man, when you know Mr. Balderstone always carries a sword, and sometimes a dagger too.”

“I trust,” said the minister, “ye have reflected weel on what ye have done, lest you should minister cause of strife, of which it is my duty to say, he who affordeth matter, albeit he himself striketh not, is in no manner guiltless.”

“I hope,” said the minister, “you have thought carefully about what you’ve done, so you don’t create conflict, because I have to say that anyone who stirs up trouble, even if they don’t hit anyone themselves, is not innocent in any way.”

“Never fash your beard, Mr. Bide-the-Bent,” replied Girder; “ane canna get their breath out here between wives and ministers. I ken best how to turn my ain cake. Jean, serve up the dinner, and nae mair about it.”

“Don’t worry about it, Mr. Bide-the-Bent,” Girder replied; “you can’t catch your breath out here with all the wives and ministers around. I know how to handle my own affairs. Jean, serve up the dinner, and that’s all there is to it.”

Nor did he again allude to the deficiency in the course of the evening.

Nor did he mention the lack again throughout the evening.

Meantime, the foreman, mounted on his master’s steed, and charged with his special orders, pricked swiftly forth in pursuit of the marauder Caleb. That personage, it may be imagined, did not linger by the way. He intermitted even his dearly-beloved chatter, for the purpose of making more haste, only assuring Mr. Lockhard that he had made the purveyor’s wife give the wild-fowl a few turns before the fire, in case that Mysie, who had been so much alarmed by the thunder, should not have her kitchen-grate in full splendour. Meanwhile, alleging the necessity of being at Wolf’s Crag as soon as possible, he pushed on so fast that his companions could scarce keep up with him. He began already to think he was safe from pursuit, having gained the summit of the swelling eminence which divides Wolf’s Crag from the village, when he heard the distant tread of a horse, and a voice which shouted at intervals, “Mr. Caleb—Mr. Balderstone—Mr. Caleb Balderstone—hollo—bide a wee!”

In the meantime, the foreman, riding his master’s horse and given special orders, quickly set off in chase of the thief Caleb. Caleb, as you can imagine, didn’t waste any time. He even paused his favorite chatter to hurry things along, just making sure to tell Mr. Lockhard that he had the purveyor’s wife roast the wild fowl a bit before the fire, in case Mysie, who had been so scared by the thunder, didn’t have her kitchen fire going strong. Meanwhile, insisting he needed to reach Wolf’s Crag as soon as possible, he pushed on so quickly that his friends could barely keep up. He was starting to think he was safe from being chased, having reached the top of the hill that separates Wolf’s Crag from the village, when he heard the distant sound of a horse approaching, and a voice calling out at intervals, “Mr. Caleb—Mr. Balderstone—Mr. Caleb Balderstone—hey—wait a sec!”

Caleb, it may be well believed, was in no hurry to acknowledge the summons. First, he would not heart it, and faced his companions down, that it was the echo of the wind; then he said it was not worth stopping for; and, at length, halting reluctantly, as the figure of the horseman appeared through the shades of the evening, he bent up his whole soul to the task of defending his prey, threw himself into an attitude of dignity, advanced the spit, which in his grasp might with its burden seem both spear and shield, and firmly resolved to die rather than surrender it.

Caleb, it’s safe to say, wasn’t in a rush to answer the call. First, he ignored it, convincing his friends it was just the wind. Then he claimed it wasn’t worth stopping for. Finally, hesitatingly, as the figure of the rider emerged from the evening shadows, he focused all his energy on protecting his prize, assumed a posture of dignity, held up the spit—which in his hands appeared to be both spear and shield—and firmly decided he would rather die than give it up.

What was his astonishment, when the cooper’s foreman, riding up and addressing him with respect, told him: “His master was very sorry he was absent when he came to his dwelling, and grieved that he could not tarry the christening dinner; and that he had taen the freedom to send a sma’ runlet of sack, and ane anker of brandy, as he understood there were guests at the castle, and that they were short of preparation.”

What was his surprise when the cooper’s foreman rode up and spoke to him respectfully, saying, “His master was really sorry he wasn’t home when you came by, and he regretted that he couldn’t stay for the christening dinner. He took the liberty of sending a small barrel of sack and a cask of brandy since he heard there were guests at the castle and that you were short on supplies.”

I have heard somewhere a story of an elderly gentleman who was pursued by a bear that had gotten loose from its muzzle, until completely exhausted. In a fit of desperation, he faced round upon Bruin and lifted his cane; at the sight of which the instinct of discipline prevailed, and the animal, instead of tearing him to pieces, rose up upon his hind-legs and instantly began to shuffle a saraband. Not less than the joyful surprise of the senior, who had supposed himself in the extremity of peril from which he was thus unexpectedly relieved, was that of our excellent friend Caleb, when he found the pursuer intended to add to his prize, instead of bereaving him of it. He recovered his latitude, however, instantly, so soon as the foreman, stooping from his nag, where he sate perched betwixt the two barrels, whispered in his ear: “If ony thing about Peter Puncheon’s place could be airted their way, John [Gibbie] Girder wad mak it better to the Master of Ravenswood than a pair of new gloves; and that he wad be blythe to speak wi’ Maister Balderstone on that head, and he wad find him as pliant as a hoop-willow in a’ that he could wish of him.”

I once heard a story about an old man who was chased by a bear that had escaped from its muzzle, until he was completely worn out. In a moment of desperation, he turned to face the bear and raised his cane; at the sight of this, the bear's instinct for discipline kicked in, and instead of attacking him, it stood up on its hind legs and started to shuffle a dance. Not only was the old man's joyful surprise great, as he had thought he was in serious danger, but our good friend Caleb was also surprised when he realized the pursuer wanted to join him rather than take something away. However, he quickly regained his composure as soon as the foreman, leaning down from his horse, where he was perched between two barrels, whispered in his ear: “If anything about Peter Puncheon’s place could be arranged that way, John [Gibbie] Girder would make it better for the Master of Ravenswood than a new pair of gloves; and he would be happy to talk to Master Balderstone about it, and he would find him as flexible as a willow in everything he could want from him.”

Caleb heard all this without rendering any answer, except that of all great men from Louis XIV. downwards, namely, “We will see about it”; and then added aloud, for the edification of Mr. Lockhard: “Your master has acted with becoming civility and attention in forwarding the liquors, and I will not fail to represent it properly to my Lord Ravenswood. And, my lad,” he said, “you may ride on to the castle, and if none of the servants are returned, whilk is to be dreaded, as they make day and night of it when they are out of sight, ye may put them into the porter’s lodge, whilk is on the right hand of the great entry; the porter has got leave to go to see his friends, sae ye will meet no ane to steer ye.”

Caleb listened to all this without giving any response, except for the standard reply of all great leaders from Louis XIV onward, which was, “We’ll see about it.” Then he added aloud, for Mr. Lockhard's benefit: “Your boss has behaved with the appropriate courtesy and attentiveness in sending the drinks, and I will make sure to mention it to my Lord Ravenswood. And, my friend,” he said, “you can head over to the castle, and if none of the servants have returned—which we fear, as they can turn day into night when they’re out of sight—you can place them in the porter’s lodge, which is to the right of the main entrance; the porter has been given time off to visit his friends, so you won’t run into anyone to guide you.”

The foreman, having received his orders, rode on; and having deposited the casks in the deserted and ruinous porter’s lodge, he returned unquestioned by any one. Having thus executed his master’s commission, and doffed his bonnet to Caleb and his company as he repassed them in his way to the village, he returned to have his share of the christening festivity.

The foreman, after getting his instructions, rode off; and after dropping off the barrels in the abandoned and rundown porter’s lodge, he returned without anyone questioning him. Having completed his boss's task, he tipped his hat to Caleb and his group as he passed them on his way to the village, then he went back to join in the christening celebration.

CHAPTER XIV.

As, to the Autumn breeze’s bugle sound,
Various and vague the dry leaves dance their round;
Or, from the garner-door, on ether borne,
The chaff flies devious from the winnow’d corn;
So vague, so devious, at the breath of heaven,
From their fix’d aim are mortal counsels driv’n.

ANONYMOUS.

As the autumn breeze plays its trumpet,
The dry leaves dance around in all directions;
Or, from the storehouse door, carried by the air,
The chaff drifts aimlessly from the threshed corn;
So aimless, so wandering, at the breath of the sky,
Mortal plans are driven away from their fixed goals.

ANONYMOUS.

We left Caleb Balderstone in the extremity of triumph at the success of his various achievements for the honour of the house of Ravenswood. When he had mustered and marshalled his dishes of divers kinds, a more royal provision had not been seen in Wolf’s Crag since the funeral feast of its deceased lord. Great was the glory of the serving-man, as he decored the old oaken table with a clean cloth, and arranged upon it carbonaded venison and roasted wild-fowl, with a glance, every now and then, as if to upbraid the incredulity of his master and his guests; and with many a story, more or less true, was Lockhard that evening regaled concerning the ancient grandeur of Wolf’s Crag, and the sway of its barons over the country in their neighbourhood.

We left Caleb Balderstone in a state of triumph over his many accomplishments for the honor of the house of Ravenswood. When he had gathered and arranged his assortment of dishes, a more impressive spread hadn’t been seen at Wolf’s Crag since the funeral feast of its late lord. The serving-man basked in glory as he dressed the old oak table with a clean cloth and set out carbonaded venison and roasted game birds, glancing occasionally as if to challenge the disbelief of his master and the guests. That evening, Lockhard was entertained with numerous stories, some more accurate than others, about the former glory of Wolf’s Crag and the power its barons held over the surrounding area.

“A vassal scarce held a calf or a lamb his ain, till he had first asked if the Lord of Ravenswood was pleased to accept it; and they were obliged to ask the lord’s consent before they married in these days, and mony a merry tale they tell about that right as weel as others. And although,” said Caleb, “these times are not like the gude auld times, when authority had its right, yet true it is, Mr. Lockhard, and you yoursell may partly have remarked, that we of the house of Ravenswood do our endeavour in keeping up, by all just and lawful exertion of our baronial authority, that due and fitting connexion betwixt superior and vassal, whilk is in some danger of falling into desuetude, owing to the general license and misrule of these present unhappy times.”

“A vassal barely held a calf or a lamb of his own until he first asked if the Lord of Ravenswood would accept it; and they had to get the lord's permission before they married back then, and there are many funny stories told about that custom as well as others. And although,” said Caleb, “these times aren’t like the good old times when authority meant something, it’s true, Mr. Lockhard, and you may have noticed too, that we of the house of Ravenswood try our best to uphold, through all just and lawful use of our baronial power, that proper and fitting connection between lord and vassal, which is in some danger of fading away because of the general chaos and misrule of these unfortunate times.”

“Umph!” said Mr. Lockhard; “and if I may inquire, Mr. Balderstone, pray do you find your people at the village yonder amenable? for I must needs say, that at Ravenswood Castle, now pertaining to my master the Lord Keeper, ye have not left behind ye the most compliant set of tenantry.”

“Umph!” said Mr. Lockhard; “and if I may ask, Mr. Balderstone, do you find your people in the village over there cooperative? Because I have to say, that at Ravenswood Castle, which now belongs to my master the Lord Keeper, you haven't left behind the most agreeable group of tenants.”

“Ah! but Mr. Lockhard,” replied Caleb, “ye must consider there has been a change of hands, and the auld lord might expect twa turns frae them, when the new-comer canna get ane. A dour and fractious set they were, thae tenants of Ravenswood, and ill to live wi’ when they dinna ken their master; and if your master put them mad ance, the whole country will not put them down.”

“Ah! But Mr. Lockhard,” replied Caleb, “you have to consider that there’s been a change in leadership, and the old lord might expect two things from them when the newcomer can’t get even one. They were a stubborn and difficult bunch, those tenants of Ravenswood, and hard to deal with when they don’t know their master; and if your master annoyed them once, the entire country won’t be able to calm them down.”

“Troth,” said Mr. Lockhard, “an such be the case, I think the wisest thing for us a’ wad be to hammer up a match between your young lord and our winsome young leddy up-bye there; and Sir William might just stitch your auld barony to her gown-sleeve, and he wad sune cuitle another out o’ somebody else, sic a lang head as he has.”

“Honestly,” said Mr. Lockhard, “if that’s the case, I think the best thing for all of us would be to arrange a match between your young lord and our lovely young lady over there; and Sir William could easily tie your old estate to her dress, and he would soon secure another match for himself, given how clever he is.”

Caleb shook his head. “I wish,” he said—“I wish that may answer, Mr. Lockhard. There are auld prophecies about this house I wad like ill to see fulfilled wi’ my auld een, that has seen evil eneugh already.”

Caleb shook his head. “I wish,” he said, “I wish that may answer, Mr. Lockhard. There are old prophecies about this house I would really dislike to see fulfilled with my old eyes, which have seen enough evil already.”

“Pshaw! never mind freits,” said his brother butler; “if the young folk liked ane anither, they wad make a winsome couple. But, to say truth, there is a leddy sits in our hall-neuk, maun have her hand in that as weel as in every other job. But there’s no harm in drinking to their healths, and I will fill Mrs. Mysie a cup of Mr. Girder’s canary.”

“Pshaw! Don’t worry about it,” said his brother butler; “if the young people liked each other, they’d make a great couple. But to be honest, there’s a lady sitting in our corner who must have a hand in that as well as in everything else. But there’s no harm in drinking to their health, so I’ll pour Mrs. Mysie a cup of Mr. Girder’s canary.”

While they thus enjoyed themselves in the kitchen, the company in the hall were not less pleasantly engaged. So soon as Ravenswood had determined upon giving the Lord Keeper such hospitality as he had to offer, he deemed it incumbent on him to assume the open and courteous brow of a well-pleased host. It has been often remarked, that when a man commences by acting a character, he frequently ends by adopting it in good earnest. In the course of an hour or two, Ravenswood, to his own surprise, found himself in the situation of one who frankly does his best to entertain welcome and honoured guests. How much of this change in his disposition was to be ascribed to the beauty and simplicity of Miss Ashton, to the readiness with which she accommodated herself to the inconveniences of her situation; how much to the smooth and plausible conversation of the Lord Keeper, remarkably gifted with those words which win the ear, must be left to the reader’s ingenuity to conjecture. But Ravenswood was insensible to neither.

While they enjoyed themselves in the kitchen, the group in the hall was equally engaged in pleasant activities. Once Ravenswood decided to offer the Lord Keeper whatever hospitality he could, he felt it was necessary to adopt the cheerful and polite demeanor of a happy host. It’s often noted that when someone starts acting a certain way, they tend to fully embrace that role. After an hour or two, Ravenswood, to his own surprise, found himself genuinely trying to entertain his esteemed guests. How much of this shift in his mood was due to the beauty and kindness of Miss Ashton, who effortlessly adapted to her situation; and how much was inspired by the smooth and charming conversation of the Lord Keeper, who had a talent for captivating speech, is something the reader can only guess. But Ravenswood was affected by both.

The Lord Keeper was a veteran statesman, well acquainted with courts and cabinets, and intimate with all the various turns of public affairs during the last eventful years of the 17th century. He could talk, from his own knowledge, of men and events, in a way which failed not to win attention, and had the peculiar art, while he never said a word which committed himself, at the same time to persuade the hearer that he was speaking without the least shadow of scrupulous caution or reserve. Ravenswood, in spite of his prejudices and real grounds of resentment, felt himself at once amused and instructed in listening to him, while the statesman, whose inward feelings had at first so much impeded his efforts to make himself known, had now regained all the ease and fluency of a silver-tongued lawyer of the very highest order.

The Lord Keeper was an experienced politician, familiar with courts and government, and well-versed in the many twists and turns of public affairs during the tumultuous years of the 17th century. He could speak, based on his own experience, about people and events in a way that always captured attention, and he had a unique talent for making the listener feel he was sharing insights without a hint of hesitation or caution. Ravenswood, despite his biases and legitimate reasons for resentment, found himself both entertained and informed as he listened to him, while the statesman, whose personal feelings had initially hindered his ability to connect, had now regained the confidence and smoothness of a top-tier lawyer.

His daughter did not speak much, but she smiled; and what she did say argued a submissive gentleness, and a desire to give pleasure, which, to a proud man like Ravenswood, was more fascinating than the most brilliant wit. Above all, he could not be observe that, whether from gratitude or from some other motive, he himself, in his deserted and unprovided hall, was as much the object of respectful attention to his guests as he would have been when surrounded by all the appliances and means of hospitality proper to his high birth. All deficiencies passed unobserved, or, if they did not escape notice, it was to praise the substitutes which Caleb had contrived to supply the want of the usual accommodations. Where a smile was unavoidable, it was a very good-humoured one, and often coupled with some well-turned compliment, to show how much the guests esteemed the merits of their noble host, how little they thought of the inconveniences with which they were surrounded. I am not sure whether the pride of being found to outbalance, in virtue of his own personal merit, all the disadvantages of fortune, did not make as favourable an impression upon the haughty heart of the Master of Ravenswood as the conversation of the father and the beauty of Lucy Ashton.

His daughter didn’t say much, but she smiled; and when she did speak, it reflected a gentle submission and a desire to please, which, to a proud man like Ravenswood, was more captivating than the sharpest wit. Above all, he couldn’t help but notice that, whether out of gratitude or some other reason, he himself, in his empty and unprepared hall, was just as much the focus of respectful attention from his guests as he would’ve been if surrounded by all the proper amenities and trappings of hospitality suitable for his nobility. Any shortcomings went unnoticed, or if they were noticed, it was only to praise the alternatives that Caleb had cleverly created to cover the usual comforts. Where smiles were unavoidable, they were genuinely good-natured and often accompanied by well-crafted compliments, showing how much the guests appreciated their noble host while caring little about the inconveniences around them. I’m not sure if the pride of being found worthy enough to outweigh, due to his own merit, all the misfortunes of his circumstances, didn’t leave just as favorable an impression on the proud heart of the Master of Ravenswood as the conversation with his father and the beauty of Lucy Ashton.

The hour of repose arrived. The Keeper and his daughter retired to their apartments, which were “decored” more properly than could have been anticipated. In making the necessary arrangements, Mysie had indeed enjoyed the assistance of a gossip who had arrived from the village upon an exploratory expedition, but had been arrested by Caleb, and impressed into the domestic drudgery of the evening; so that, instead of returning home to describe the dress and person of the grand young lady, she found herself compelled to be active in the domestic economy of Wolf’s Crag.

The time to relax came. The Keeper and his daughter went to their rooms, which were decorated better than expected. While making the necessary arrangements, Mysie had really benefited from the help of a local gossip who had come from the village on a scouting trip but had been stopped by Caleb and pressed into helping with the evening chores. So, instead of going back home to talk about the appearance and outfit of the grand young lady, she had to pitch in with the household tasks at Wolf’s Crag.

According to the custom of the time, the Master of Ravenswood attended the Lord Keeper to his apartment, followed by Caleb, who placed on the table, with all the ceremonials due to torches of wax, two rudely-framed tallow-candles, such as in those days were only used by the peasantry, hooped in paltry clasps of wire, which served for candlesticks. He then disappeared, and presently entered with two earthen flagons (the china, he said, had been little used since my lady’s time), one filled with canary wine, the other with brandy. The canary sack, unheeding all probabilities of detection, he declared had been twenty years in the cellars of Wolf’s Crag, “though it was not for him to speak before their honours; the brandy—it was weel-kenn’d liquor, as mild as mead and as strong as Sampson; it had been in the house ever since the memorable revel, in which auld Micklestob had been slain at the head of the stair by Jamie of Jenklebrae, on account of the honour of the worshipful Lady Muirend, wha was in some sort an ally of the family; natheless——”

According to the custom of the time, the Master of Ravenswood escorted the Lord Keeper to his room, followed by Caleb, who placed on the table, with all the proper rituals for wax candles, two poorly-made tallow candles, which were only used by peasants back then, held in cheap wire clasps serving as candlesticks. He then left the room and soon returned with two earthen flagons (the china, he mentioned, hadn't been used much since my lady's time), one filled with canary wine and the other with brandy. He boldly stated that the canary sack had been in the cellars of Wolf’s Crag for twenty years, “though it wasn't his place to talk in front of their honors; the brandy—it was well-known liquor, as mild as honey and as strong as Samson; it had been in the house since the memorable party where old Micklestob was killed at the top of the stairs by Jamie of Jenklebrae, over the honor of the esteemed Lady Muirend, who was somewhat of a relative to the family; nonetheless——”

“But to cut that matter short, Mr. Caleb,” said the Keeper, “perhaps you will favour me with a ewer of water.”

“But to get to the point, Mr. Caleb,” said the Keeper, “could you please pass me a pitcher of water?”

“God forbid your lordship should drink water in this family,” replied Caleb, “to the disgrace of so honourable an house!”

“God forbid you drink water in this family,” Caleb replied, “that would be a disgrace to such an honorable household!”

“Nevertheless, if his lordship have a fancy,” said the Master, smiling, “I think you might indulge him; for, if I mistake not, there has been water drank here at no distant date, and with good relish too.”

“Still, if he’s got a preference,” said the Master, smiling, “I think you should indulge him; because, if I’m not mistaken, people have enjoyed drinks here not too long ago, and quite happily.”

“To be sure, if his lordship has a fancy,” said Caleb; and re-entering with a jug of pure element—“He will scarce find such water onywhere as is drawn frae the well at Wolf’s Crag; nevertheless——”

“To be sure, if his lordship has a preference,” said Caleb; and re-entering with a jug of clear water—“He won’t find water anywhere like what’s drawn from the well at Wolf’s Crag; nevertheless——”

“Nevertheless, we must leave the Lord Keeper to his repose in this poor chamber of ours,” said the Master of Ravenswood, interrupting his talkative domestic, who immediately turning to the doorway, with a profound reverence, prepared to usher his master from the secret chamber.

“Still, we need to let the Lord Keeper rest in this humble room of ours,” said the Master of Ravenswood, cutting off his chatty servant, who then turned to the doorway and, with a deep bow, got ready to lead his master out of the secret chamber.

But the Lord Keeper prevented his host’s departure.—“I have but one word to say to the Master of Ravenswood, Mr. Caleb, and I fancy he will excuse your waiting.”

But the Lord Keeper stopped his guests from leaving. “I have just one thing to say to the Master of Ravenswood, Mr. Caleb, and I think he’ll understand if you wait.”

With a second reverence, lower than the former, Caleb withdrew; and his master stood motionless, expecting, with considerable embarrassment, what was to close the events of a day fraught with unexpected incidents.

With a second bow, lower than the first, Caleb stepped back; and his master stood still, waiting with a good amount of embarrassment for what would conclude a day full of surprising events.

“Master of Ravenswood,” said Sir William Ashton, with some embarrassment, “I hope you understand the Christian law too well to suffer the sun to set upon your anger.”

“Master of Ravenswood,” said Sir William Ashton, a bit awkwardly, “I hope you know the Christian principles well enough not to let the sun go down while you’re still angry.”

The Master blushed and replied, “He had no occasion that evening to exercise the duty enjoined upon him by his Christian faith.”

The Master blushed and said, “He had no reason that evening to practice the duty required of him by his Christian faith.”

“I should have thought otherwise,” said his guest, “considering the various subjects of dispute and litigation which have unhappily occurred more frequently than was desirable or necessary betwixt the late honourable lord, your father, and myself.”

“I should have thought differently,” said his guest, “given the various disputes and legal issues that have unfortunately happened more often than was desirable or necessary between the late honorable lord, your father, and me.”

“I could wish, my lord,” said Ravenswood, agitated by suppressed emotion, “that reference to these circumstances should be made anywhere rather than under my father’s roof.”

“I wish, my lord,” said Ravenswood, clearly upset, “that we could talk about this situation anywhere but under my father's roof.”

“I should have felt the delicacy of this appeal at another time,” said Sir William Ashton, “but now I must proceed with what I mean to say. I have suffered too much in my own mind, from the false delicacy which prevented my soliciting with earnestness, what indeed I frequently requested, a personal communing with your father: much distress of mind to him and to me might have been prevented.”

“I should have recognized the sensitivity of this request at another time,” said Sir William Ashton, “but now I need to get on with what I want to say. I’ve struggled too much in my own mind because of the false sensitivity that stopped me from genuinely asking for what I really wanted, a personal conversation with your father: a lot of heartache for both him and me could have been avoided.”

“It is true,” said Ravenswood, after a moment’s reflection, “I have heard my father say your lordship had proposed a personal interview.”

“It’s true,” said Ravenswood, after a moment of reflection, “I’ve heard my father mention that you suggested a personal meeting.”

“Proposed, my dear Master? I did indeed propose it; but I ought to have begged, entreated, beseeched it. I ought to have torn away the veil, which interested persons had stretched betwixt us, and shown myself as I was, willing to sacrifice a considerable part even of my legal rights, in order to conciliate feelings so natural as his must be allowed to have been. Let me say for myself, my young friend, for so I will call you, that had your father and I spent the same time together which my good fortune has allowed me to-day to pass in your company, it is possible the land might yet have enjoyed one of the most respectable of its ancient nobility, and I should have been spared the pain of parting in enmity from a person whose general character I so much admired and honoured.”

“Proposed, my dear Master? I really did propose it; but I should have begged, pleaded, and insisted on it. I should have removed the barrier that others put between us and shown myself as I truly am, willing to give up a significant part of my legal rights to ease feelings that must have been completely natural for him. Let me say this for myself, my young friend, which is how I’ll refer to you, that if your father and I had spent as much time together as I have been fortunate enough to spend with you today, it’s possible that the land could still have had one of its most respected noble families, and I would have been spared the pain of parting in conflict with someone whose overall character I so greatly admired and respected.”

He put his handkerchief to his eyes. Ravenswood also was moved, but awaited in silence the progress of this extraordinary communication.

He pressed his handkerchief to his eyes. Ravenswood was also affected, but he remained silent, waiting for this unusual conversation to unfold.

“It is necessary,” continued the Lord Keeper, “and proper that you should understand, that there have been many points betwixt us, in which, although I judged it proper that there should be an exact ascertainment of my legal rights by the decree of a court of justice, yet it was never my intention to press them beyond the verge of equity.”

“It’s important,” the Lord Keeper continued, “and right that you understand there have been many issues between us. Although I believed it was necessary to have a clear determination of my legal rights through a court ruling, it was never my intention to pursue them beyond what is fair.”

“My lord,” said the Master of Ravenswood, “it is unnecessary to pursue this topic farther. What the law will give you, or has given you, you enjoy—or you shall enjoy; neither my father nor I myself would have received anything on the footing of favour.”

“My lord,” said the Master of Ravenswood, “there’s no need to go further with this topic. What the law provides for you, or has already provided, you either enjoy or will enjoy; neither my father nor I would have accepted anything based on favor.”

“Favour! No, you misunderstand me,” resumed the Keeper; “or rather you are no lawyer. A right may be good in law, and ascertained to be so, which yet a man of honour may not in every case care to avail himself of.”

“Favor! No, you’ve got me wrong,” the Keeper continued; “or rather, you’re not a lawyer. A right may be lawful and confirmed, yet a man of honor may not always choose to take advantage of it.”

“I am sorry for it, my lord,” said the Master.

“I’m sorry about that, my lord,” said the Master.

“Nay, nay,” retorted his guest, “you speak like a young counsellor; your spirit goes before your wit. There are many things still open for decision betwixt us. Can you blame me, an old man desirous of peace, and in the castle of a young nobleman who has saved my daughter’s life and my own, that I am desirous, anxiously desirous, that these should be settled on the most liberal principles?” The old man kept fast hold of the Master’s passive hand as he spoke, and made it impossible for him, be his predetermination what it would, to return any other than an acquiescent reply; and wishing his guest goodnight, he postponed farther conference until the next morning.

“Nah, nah,” replied his guest, “you sound like a young advisor; your enthusiasm outruns your judgment. There are still many issues to decide between us. Can you really blame me, an old man wanting peace, in the home of a young nobleman who has saved both my daughter and my life, for wanting these matters to be resolved on the most generous terms?” The old man held onto the Master’s unresisting hand as he spoke, making it impossible for him, whatever his intentions might be, to give any response other than one of agreement; and after wishing his guest goodnight, he postponed further discussion until the next morning.

Ravenswood hurried into the hall, where he was to spend the night, and for a time traversed its pavement with a disordered and rapid pace. His mortal foe was under his roof, yet his sentiments towards him were neither those of a feudal enemy nor of a true Christian. He felt as if he could neither forgive him in the one character, nor follow forth his vengeance in the other, but that he was making a base and dishonourable composition betwixt his resentment against the father and his affection for his daughter. He cursed himself, as he hurried to and fro in the pale moonlight, and more ruddy gleams of the expiring wood-fire. He threw open and shut the latticed windows with violence, as if alike impatient of the admission and exclusion of free air. At length, however, the torrent of passion foamed off its madness, and he flung himself into the chair which he proposed as his place of repose for the night.

Ravenswood rushed into the hall where he was going to spend the night and walked back and forth on its floor at a quick, chaotic pace. His mortal enemy was under his roof, yet he didn’t feel like a loyal enemy or a true Christian towards him. He felt stuck, unable to either forgive him for one reason or seek revenge for another, and it seemed like he was making a shameful compromise between his anger toward the father and his feelings for the daughter. He cursed himself as he paced in the pale moonlight and the more red glows of the dying fire. He violently opened and shut the window shutters, frustrated by both letting in and keeping out the fresh air. Eventually, though, the intense wave of emotion subsided, and he collapsed into the chair he had chosen as his spot to rest for the night.

“If, in reality,” such were the calmer thoughts that followed the first tempest of his passion—“if, in reality, this man desires no more than the law allows him—if he is willing to adjust even his acknowledged rights upon an equitable footing, what could be my father’s cause of complaint?—what is mine? Those from who we won our ancient possessions fell under the sword of my ancestors, and left lands and livings to the conquerors; we sink under the force of the law, now too powerful for the Scottish cavalry. Let us parley with the victors of the day, as if we had been besieged in our fortress, and without hope of relief. This man may be other than I have thought him; and his daughter—but I have resolved not to think of her.”

“If, in reality,” these were the calmer thoughts that followed the first storm of his anger—“if, in reality, this man wants no more than the law permits him—if he’s ready to settle even his recognized rights on fair terms, what could my father possibly complain about?—what is my issue? Those from whom we gained our ancestral lands fell by the sword of my ancestors, leaving their properties to the victors; we are now overwhelmed by the force of the law, which is too strong for the Scottish cavalry. Let’s negotiate with the winners of the day, as if we had been surrounded in our fortress, with no hope of rescue. This man might be different from what I’ve thought; and his daughter—but I’ve decided not to think about her.”

He wrapt his cloak around him, fell asleep, and dreamed of Lucy Ashton till daylight gleamed through the lattices.

He wrapped his cloak around himself, fell asleep, and dreamed of Lucy Ashton until daylight peeked through the windows.

CHAPTER XV.

We worldly men, when we see friends and kinsmen
Past hope sunk in their fortunes, lend no hand
To lift them up, but rather set our feet
Upon their heads to press them to the bottom,
As I must yield with you I practised it;
But now I see you in a way to rise,
I can and will assist you.

New Way to Pay Old Debts.

We, the worldly folks, when we see our friends and family
Hopelessly down on their luck, don’t offer a helping hand
To lift them up; instead, we step on their backs
To push them further down,
As I must admit I used to do;
But now that I see you have a chance to rise,
I can and will help you.

New Way to Pay Old Debts.

The Lord Keeper carried with him, to a couch harder than he was accustomed to stretch himself upon, the same ambitious thoughts and political perplexities which drive sleep from the softest down that ever spread a bed of state. He had sailed long enough amid the contending tides and currents of the time to be sensible of their peril, and of the necessity of trimming his vessel to the prevailing wind, if he would have her escape shipwreck in the storm. The nature of his talents, and the timorousness of disposition connected with them, had made him assume the pliability of the versatile old Earl of Northampton, who explained the art by which he kept his ground during all the changes of state, from the reign of Henry VIII. to that of Elizabeth, by the frank avowal, that he was born of the willow, not of the oak. It had accordingly been Sir William Ashton’s policy, on all occasions, to watch the changes in the political horizon, and, ere yet the conflict was decided, to negotiate some interest for himself with the party most likely to prove victorious. His time-serving disposition was well-known, and excited the contempt of the more daring leaders of both factions in the state. But his talents were of a useful and practical kind, and his legal knowledge held in high estimation; and they so far counterbalanced other deficiencies that those in power were glad to use and to reward, though without absolutely trusting or greatly respecting, him.

The Lord Keeper took with him, to a couch harder than he was used to sleeping on, the same ambitious thoughts and political worries that could keep anyone awake, no matter how luxurious the bed. He had been navigating the competing forces of the time long enough to recognize their dangers and the need to adjust his approach to align with the prevailing trends, if he wanted to avoid disaster in the storm. His natural talents, along with his cautious personality, led him to adopt the flexibility of the old Earl of Northampton, who explained how he managed to maintain his position through all the political changes from the reign of Henry VIII to Elizabeth's, by openly admitting that he was more like a willow than an oak. Therefore, it had been Sir William Ashton's strategy, at all times, to keep an eye on the shifting political landscape and, before the outcome was clear, to align himself with whichever party looked likely to win. His opportunistic nature was well-known and earned him the disdain of the bolder leaders from both sides. However, his skills were practical and valuable, and his legal expertise was highly regarded; these qualities compensated enough for his other shortcomings that those in power were willing to utilize and reward him, even if they didn't fully trust or respect him.

The Marquis of A—— had used his utmost influence to effect a change in the Scottish cabinet, and his schemes had been of late so well laid and so ably supported, that there appeared a very great chance of his proving ultimately successful. He did not, however, feel so strong or so confident as to neglect any means of drawing recruits to his standard. The acquisition of the Lord Keeper was deemed of some importance, and a friend, perfectly acquainted with his circumstances and character, became responsible for his political conversion.

The Marquis of A—— had used all his influence to change the Scottish cabinet, and his plans had recently been so well thought out and effectively backed that it seemed very likely he would ultimately succeed. However, he didn’t feel so strong or so confident that he could overlook any way to gain support for his cause. Securing the Lord Keeper was considered quite important, and a friend who knew his situation and character well took on the responsibility for his political conversion.

When this gentleman arrived at Ravenswood Castle upon a visit, the real purpose of which was disguised under general courtesy, he found the prevailing fear which at present beset the Lord Keeper was that of danger to his own person from the Master of Ravenswood. The language which the blind sibyl, Old Alice, had used; the sudden appearance of the Master, armed, and within his precincts, immediately after he had been warned against danger from him; the cold and haughty return received in exchange for the acknowledgments with which he loaded him for his timely protection, had all made a strong impression on his imagination.

When this man arrived at Ravenswood Castle for a visit, which was really just a cover for something else, he found that the main worry for the Lord Keeper was the threat to his own safety from the Master of Ravenswood. The words of the blind seer, Old Alice; the sudden appearance of the Master, armed and within his territory, right after he had been warned about him; and the cold, arrogant response he received after thanking the Master for his timely protection—all of this had a strong impact on his mind.

So soon as the Marquis’s political agent found how the wind sate, he began to insinuate fears and doubts of another kind, scarce less calculated to affect the Lord Keeper. He inquired with seeming interest, whether the proceedings in Sir William’s complicated litigation with the Ravenswood family were out of court, and settled without the possibility of appeal. The Lord Keeper answered in the affirmative; but his interrogator was too well informed to be imposed upon. He pointed out to him, by unanswerable arguments, that some of the most important points which had been decided in his favour against the house of Ravenswood were liable, under the Treaty of Union, to be reviewed by the British House of Peers, a court of equity of which the Lord Keeper felt an instinctive dread. This course came instead of an appeal to the old Scottish Parliament, or, as it was technically termed, “a protestation for remeid in law.”

As soon as the Marquis’s political agent sensed the mood, he started to plant fears and doubts of a different kind, which were almost as effective in influencing the Lord Keeper. He asked with feigned interest whether the proceedings in Sir William’s complicated legal battle with the Ravenswood family were settled out of court and without any chance of appeal. The Lord Keeper replied that they were, but his questioner was too well-informed to be fooled. He convincingly pointed out that some of the most important decisions made in the Lord Keeper's favor against the Ravenswood family could be reviewed by the British House of Peers under the Treaty of Union, a court of equity that the Lord Keeper instinctively feared. This situation was a replacement for an appeal to the old Scottish Parliament, or what was technically called “a protestation for remeid in law.”

The Lord Keeper, after he had for some time disputed the legality of such a proceeding, was compelled, at length, to comfort himself with the improbability of the young Master of Ravenswood’s finding friends in parliament capable of stirring in so weighty an affair.

The Lord Keeper, after arguing for a while about the legality of this action, finally had to console himself with the unlikely chance that the young Master of Ravenswood would find allies in parliament who could intervene in such a significant matter.

“Do not comfort yourself with that false hope,” said his wily friend; “it is possible that, in the next session of Parliament, young Ravenswood may find more friends and favour even than your lordship.”

“Don’t delude yourself with that false hope,” said his clever friend; “it’s possible that in the next session of Parliament, young Ravenswood might gain even more allies and favor than you, my lord.”

“That would be a sight worth seeing,” said the Keeper, scornfully.

"That would be something to see," the Keeper said, mocking.

“And yet,” said his friend, “such things have been seen ere now, and in our own time. There are many at the head of affairs even now that a few years ago were under hiding for their lives; and many a man now dines on plate of silver that was fain to eat his crowdy without a bicker; and many a high head has been brought full low among us in as short a space. Scott of Scotsarvet’s Staggering State of Scots Statesmen, of which curious memoir you showed me a manuscript, has been outstaggered in our time.”

“And yet,” said his friend, “these things have happened before, even in our time. There are many leaders today who just a few years ago were hiding for their lives; and many a man now eats off silver plates who once had to settle for porridge without a fuss; and many a once-powerful person has been brought low among us in a very short time. Scott of Scotsarvet’s Staggering State of Scots Statesmen, that interesting memoir you showed me a manuscript of, has been surpassed in our time.”

The Lord Keeper answered with a deep sigh, “That these mutations were no new sights in Scotland, and had been witnessed long before the time of the satirical author he had quoted. It was many a long year,” he said, “since Fordun had quoted as an ancient proverb, ‘Neque dives, neque fortis, sed nec sapiens Scotus, prædominante invidia, diu durabit in terra.’”

The Lord Keeper sighed deeply and replied, “These changes aren't new in Scotland; they've been seen long before the time of the satirical writer I mentioned. It’s been many years,” he said, “since Fordun used an old saying, ‘Neither rich, nor strong, nor wise will a Scot last long on this earth if envy prevails.’”

“And be assured, my esteemed friend,” was the answer, “that even your long services to the state, or deep legal knowledge, will not save you, or render your estate stable, if the Marquis of A—— comes in with a party in the British Parliament. You know that the deceased Lord Ravenswood was his near ally, his lady being fifth in descent from the Knight of Tillibardine; and I am well assured that he will take young Ravenswood by the hand, and be his very good lord and kinsman. Why should he not? The Master is an active and stirring young fellow, able to help himself with tongue and hands; and it is such as he that finds friends among their kindred, and not those unarmed and unable Mephibosheths that are sure to be a burden to every one that takes them up. And so, if these Ravenswood cases be called over the coals in the House of Peers, you will find that the Marquis will have a crow to pluck with you.”

“And rest assured, my valued friend,” was the reply, “that even your long service to the government or your extensive legal knowledge won’t save you or make your situation secure if the Marquis of A—— comes in with a group in the British Parliament. You know that the late Lord Ravenswood was his close ally, with his lady being five generations removed from the Knight of Tillibardine; and I’m quite sure he will take young Ravenswood under his wing and be a loyal lord and relative to him. Why wouldn’t he? The Master is a dynamic and ambitious young man, capable of standing up for himself verbally and physically; and it’s people like him who make friends among their relatives, not those defenseless and unable Mephibosheths who end up being a burden to anyone who takes them in. So, if these Ravenswood matters are discussed in the House of Peers, you’ll find that the Marquis has a bone to pick with you.”

“That would be an evil requital,” said the Lord Keeper, “for my long services to the state, and the ancient respect in which I have held his lordship’s honourable family and person.”

“Now that would be a cruel payback,” said the Lord Keeper, “for my many years of service to the state, and the deep respect I have always had for his lordship’s honorable family and himself.”

“Ay, but,” rejoined the agent of the Marquis, “it is in vain to look back on past service and auld respect, my lord; it will be present service and immediate proofs of regard which, in these sliddery times, will be expected by a man like the Marquis.”

“Ay, but,” replied the agent of the Marquis, “it's pointless to dwell on past service and old respect, my lord; what will be expected of a man like the Marquis in these uncertain times is current service and immediate signs of loyalty.”

The Lord Keeper now saw the full drift of his friend’s argument, but he was too cautious to return any positive answer.

The Lord Keeper now understood the main point of his friend’s argument, but he was too careful to give a definite response.

“He knew not,” he said, “the service which the Lord Marquis could expect from one of his limited abilities, that had not always stood at his command, still saving and reserving his duty to his king and country.”

“He didn’t know,” he said, “the service that the Lord Marquis could expect from someone with his limited abilities, which hadn’t always been at his disposal, still prioritizing his duty to his king and country.”

Having thus said nothing, while he seemed to say everything, for the exception was calculated to cover whatever he might afterwards think proper to bring under it, Sir William Ashton changed the conversation, nor did he again permit the same topic to be introduced. His guest departed, without having brought the wily old statesman the length of committing himself, or of pledging himself to any future line of conduct, but with the certainty that he had alarmed his fears in a most sensible point, and laid a foundation for future and farther treaty.

Having said nothing while appearing to say everything, since the exception was designed to encompass whatever he might later decide to mention, Sir William Ashton changed the subject and did not allow the same topic to come up again. His guest left without ever forcing the crafty old politician to commit or promise anything about future actions, but with the clear understanding that he had raised some significant concerns and set the stage for further discussions.

When he rendered an account of his negotiation to the Marquis, they both agreed that the Keeper ought not to be permitted to relapse into security, and that he should be plied with new subjects of alarm, especially during the absence of his lady. They were well aware that her proud, vindictive, and predominating spirit would be likely to supply him with the courage in which he was deficient; that she was immovably attached to the party now in power, with whom she maintained a close correspondence and alliance; and that she hated, without fearing, the Ravenswood family (whose more ancient dignity threw discredit on the newly acquired grandeur of her husband) to such a degree that she would have perilled the interest of her own house to have the prospect of altogether crushing that of her enemy.

When he reported on his negotiation to the Marquis, they both agreed that the Keeper shouldn’t be allowed to feel secure again, and that he should be faced with new matters of concern, especially while his lady was away. They knew that her proud, vengeful, and dominating spirit would likely give him the courage he lacked; that she was firmly loyal to the party currently in power, with whom she kept a close connection; and that she despised the Ravenswood family (whose older status undermined her husband's newly gained position) to such an extent that she would risk her own family's interests just for the chance to completely destroy her enemy.

But Lady Ashton was now absent. The business which had long detained her in Edinburgh had afterwards induced her to travel to London, not without the hope that she might contribute her share to disconcert the intrigues of the Marquis at court; for she stood high in favour with the celebrated Sarah, Duchess of Marlborough, to whom, in point of character, she bore considerable resemblance. It was necessary to press her husband hard before her return; and, as a preparatory step, the Marquis wrote to the Master of Ravenswood the letter which we rehearsed in a former chapter. It was cautiously worded, so as to leave it in the power of the writer hereafter to take as deep or as slight an interest in the fortunes of his kinsmen as the progress of his own schemes might require. But however unwilling, as a statesman, the Marquis might be to commit himself, or assume the character of a patron, while he had nothing to give away, it must be said to his honour that he felt a strong inclination effectually to befriend the Master of Ravenswood, as well as to use his name as a means of alarming the terrors of the Lord Keeper.

But Lady Ashton was now away. Her business, which had kept her in Edinburgh for a long time, eventually led her to travel to London, hoping that she could help disrupt the Marquis's schemes at court. She was well-liked by the famous Sarah, Duchess of Marlborough, with whom she shared a lot in terms of character. It was crucial to pressure her husband before her return; as a first step, the Marquis wrote to the Master of Ravenswood the letter we discussed in a previous chapter. It was carefully phrased, allowing the writer to later take as much or as little interest in his relatives' fortunes as his own plans required. However, no matter how reluctant the Marquis was to fully commit himself as a patron while he had nothing to offer, he genuinely felt a strong desire to help the Master of Ravenswood and to use his name to instill fear in the Lord Keeper.

As the messenger who carried this letter was to pass near the house of the Lord Keeper, he had it in direction that, in the village adjoining to the park-gate of the castle, his horse should lose a shoe, and that, while it was replaced by the smith of the place, he should express the utmost regret for the necessary loss of time, and in the vehemence of his impatience give it to be understood that he was bearing a message from the Marquis of A—— to the Master of Ravenswood upon a matter of life and death.

As the messenger delivering this letter was about to pass near the Lord Keeper's house, he was instructed to have his horse lose a shoe in the village next to the castle's park gate. While the local blacksmith replaced the shoe, he was to express his deep regret for the time lost and, in his frustration, hint that he was carrying an urgent message from the Marquis of A—— to the Master of Ravenswood about a life-or-death issue.

This news, with exaggerations, was speedily carried from various quarters to the ears of the Lord Keeper, and each reporter dwelt upon the extreme impatience of the courier, and the surprising short time in which he had executed his journey. The anxious statesman heard in silence; but in private Lockhard received orders to watch the courier on his return, to waylay him in the village, to ply him with liquor, if possible, and to use all means, fair or foul, to learn the contents of the letter of which he was the bearer. But as this plot had been foreseen, the messenger returned by a different and distant road, and thus escaped the snare that was laid for him.

This news, with some exaggerations, quickly spread from various sources to the Lord Keeper's attention, and each informant highlighted the courier's extreme impatience and the surprisingly short time it took him to complete his journey. The worried statesman listened silently; however, in private, Lockhard was given instructions to keep an eye on the courier upon his return, to intercept him in the village, to try and get him drunk if possible, and to use any means, fair or foul, to find out the contents of the letter he was carrying. But since this plan had been anticipated, the messenger took a different, longer route back and managed to evade the trap set for him.

After he had been in vain expected for some time, Mr. Dingwall had orders to made especial inquiry among his clients of Wolf’s Hope, whether such a domestic belonging to the Marquis of A——had actually arrived at the neighbouring castle. This was easily ascertained; for Caleb had been in the village one morning by five o’clock, to borrow “twa chappins of ale and a kipper” for the messenger’s refreshment, and the poor fellow had been ill for twenty-four hours at Luckie Sma’trash’s, in consequence of dining upon “saut saumon and sour drink.” So that the existence of a correspondence betwixt the Marquis and his distressed kinsman, which Sir William Ashton had sometimes treated as a bugbear, was proved beyond the possibility of further doubt.

After waiting in vain for some time, Mr. Dingwall was instructed to specifically ask his clients at Wolf’s Hope whether a certain person related to the Marquis of A—— had actually arrived at the nearby castle. This was easily confirmed; Caleb had been in the village one morning by five o’clock to borrow “two pints of ale and a kipper” for the messenger’s refreshment, and the poor guy had been ill for twenty-four hours at Luckie Sma’trash’s, after eating “salt salmon and sour drink.” This proved without a doubt that there was a correspondence between the Marquis and his distressed relative, which Sir William Ashton had sometimes dismissed as just a scare tactic.

The alarm of the Lord Keeper became very serious; since the Claim of Right, the power of appealing from the decisions of the civil court to the Estates of Parliament, which had formerly been held incompetent, had in many instances been claimed, and in some allowed, and he had no small reason to apprehend the issue, if the English House of Lords should be disposed to act upon an appeal from the Master of Ravenswood “for remeid in law.” It would resolve into an equitable claim, and be decided, perhaps, upon the broad principles of justice, which were not quite so favourable to the Lord Keeper as those of strict law. Besides, judging, though most inaccurately, from courts which he had himself known in the unhappy times preceding the Scottish Union, the Keeper might have too much right to think that, in the House to which his lawsuits were to be transferred, the old maxim might prevail which was too well recognised in Scotland in former times: “Show me the man, and I’ll show you the law.” The high and unbiased character of English judicial proceedings was then little known in Scotland, and the extension of them to that country was one of the most valuable advantages which it gained by the Union. But this was a blessing which the Lord Keeper, who had lived under another system, could not have the means of foreseeing. In the loss of his political consequence, he anticipated the loss of his lawsuit. Meanwhile, every report which reached him served to render the success of the Marquis’s intrigues the more probable, and the Lord Keeper began to think it indispensable that he should look round for some kind of protection against the coming storm. The timidity of his temper induced him to adopt measures of compromise and conciliation. The affair of the wild bull, properly managed, might, he thought, be made to facilitate a personal communication and reconciliation betwixt the Master and himself. He would then learn, if possible, what his own ideas were of the extent of his rights, and the means of enforcing them; and perhaps matters might be brought to a compromise, where one party was wealthy and the other so very poor. A reconciliation with Ravenswood was likely to give him an opportunity to play his own game with the Marquis of A——. “And besides,” said he to himself, “it will be an act of generosity to raise up the heir of this distressed family; and if he is to be warmly and effectually befriended by the new government, who knows but my virtue may prove its own reward?”

The Lord Keeper's alarm became very serious; since the Claim of Right, the power to appeal decisions from the civil court to the Estates of Parliament, which had previously been considered invalid, had in many cases been claimed and, in some, granted. He had good reason to worry about the outcome if the English House of Lords decided to act on an appeal from the Master of Ravenswood "for remedy in law." It could turn into an equitable claim and be decided, perhaps, on broader principles of justice, which were not as favorable to the Lord Keeper as strict legal rules. Furthermore, based on the courts he remembered from the troubled times before the Scottish Union, the Keeper might have just cause to suspect that, in the House where his lawsuits would be moved, the old saying might apply: "Show me the man, and I’ll show you the law." The high and impartial nature of English judicial proceedings was not well known in Scotland, and their introduction to that country was one of the significant benefits it gained from the Union. However, this was a blessing the Lord Keeper, who had lived under a different system, could not foresee. In losing his political influence, he feared losing his lawsuit as well. Meanwhile, every report he received made the success of the Marquis's schemes seem more likely, and the Lord Keeper began to think it was essential to find some kind of protection against the impending storm. His timid nature led him to pursue compromise and conciliation. He thought the incident with the wild bull could be managed to help facilitate a personal meeting and reconciliation between the Master and himself. He wanted to find out what the Master thought about the extent of his rights and how he could enforce them; and perhaps a compromise could be reached, especially since one party was wealthy and the other very poor. Reconciling with Ravenswood could give him a chance to further his own interests with the Marquis of A——. "And besides," he told himself, "it will be a generous act to help the heir of this troubled family; and if he is to be genuinely and effectively supported by the new government, who knows if my good deeds might be rewarded?"

Thus thought Sir William Ashton, covering with no unusual self-delusion his interested views with a hue of virtue; and having attained this point, his fancy strayed still farther. He began to bethink himself, “That if Ravenswood was to have a distinguished place of power and trust, and if such a union would sopite the heavier part of his unadjusted claims, there might be worse matches for his daughter Lucy: the Master might be reponed against the attainder. Lord Ravenswood was an ancient title, and the alliance would, in some measure, legitimate his own possession of the greater part of the Master’s spoils, and make the surrender of the rest a subject of less bitter regret.”

Thus thought Sir William Ashton, wrapping his self-serving views in a facade of virtue; and having reached this conclusion, his thoughts wandered even further. He began to consider, “If Ravenswood were to hold a prominent position of power and trust, and if such a union could take care of the bulk of his unresolved claims, there might be worse matches for his daughter Lucy: the Master could be reinstated against the attainder. Lord Ravenswood was an old title, and the alliance would, to some extent, legitimize his own claim to most of the Master’s wealth, making the loss of the rest a bit easier to bear.”

With these mingled and multifarious plans occupying his head, the Lord Keeper availed himself of my Lord Bittlebrains’s repeated invitation to his residence, and thus came within a very few miles of Wolf’s Crag. Here he found the lord of the mansion absent, but was courteously received by the lady, who expected her husband’s immediate return. She expressed her particular delight at seeing Miss Ashton, and appointed the hounds to be taken out for the Lord Keeper’s special amusement. He readily entered into the proposal, as giving him an opportunity to reconnoitre Wolf’s Crag, and perhaps to make some acquaintance with the owner, if he should be tempted from his desolate mansion by the chase. Lockhard had his orders to endeavour on his part to make some acquaintance with the inmates of the castle, and we have seen how he played his part.

With all these mixed and various plans occupying his mind, the Lord Keeper took advantage of Lord Bittlebrains’s repeated invitation to his home and came within just a few miles of Wolf’s Crag. There, he found the lord of the mansion was out, but was warmly welcomed by the lady, who was expecting her husband to return soon. She expressed her particular happiness at seeing Miss Ashton and arranged for the hounds to be taken out for the Lord Keeper’s enjoyment. He eagerly accepted the offer, as it gave him a chance to scout out Wolf’s Crag and maybe meet the owner if he was tempted to leave his lonely home for the hunt. Lockhard had his instructions to try to get to know the castle's residents, and we saw how he went about it.

The accidental storm did more to further the Lord Keeper’s plan of forming a personal acquaintance with young Ravenswood than his most sanguine expectations could have anticipated. His fear of the young nobleman’s personal resentment had greatly decreased since he considered him as formidable from his legal claims and the means he might have of enforcing them. But although he thought, not unreasonably, that only desperate circumstances drove men on desperate measures, it was not without a secret terror, which shook his heart within him, that he first felt himself inclosed within the desolate Tower of Wolf’s Crag; a place so well fitted, from solitude and strength, to be a scene of violence and vengeance. The stern reception at first given to them by the Master of Ravenswood, and the difficulty he felt in explaining to that injured nobleman what guests were under the shelter of his roof, did not soothe these alarms; so that when Sir William Ashton heard the door of the courtyard shut behind him with violence, the words of Alice rung in his ears, “That he had drawn on matters too hardly with so fierce a race as those of Ravenswood, and that they would bide their time to be avenged.”

The unexpected storm did more to advance the Lord Keeper’s plan to get to know young Ravenswood personally than he could have ever hoped. His fear of the young nobleman’s personal anger had lessened significantly since he regarded him as a strong opponent because of his legal claims and the resources he might have to back them up. However, even though he believed, not unreasonably, that only desperate situations push people to take extreme actions, he felt a hidden fear that gripped his heart when he found himself enclosed within the lonely Tower of Wolf’s Crag; a place so suitable, due to its isolation and strength, to become a backdrop for violence and revenge. The stern greeting they initially received from the Master of Ravenswood, coupled with the difficulty he had in explaining to that wronged nobleman who his guests were, didn't ease his worries. So, when Sir William Ashton heard the courtyard door slam shut behind him, Alice’s words echoed in his mind, "That he had pushed things too far with such a fierce family as the Ravenswoods, and that they would wait for their opportunity to get back at him."

The subsequent frankness of the Master’s hospitality, as their acquaintance increased, abated the apprehensions these recollections were calculated to excite; and it did not escape Sir William Ashton, that it was to Lucy’s grace and beauty he owed the change in their host’s behavior.

The growing openness of the Master’s hospitality, as they got to know each other better, eased the worries these memories might have stirred up; and Sir William Ashton noticed that he owed the shift in their host’s attitude to Lucy’s charm and beauty.

All these thoughts thronged upon him when he took possession of the secret chamber. The iron lamp, the unfurnished apartment, more resembling a prison than a place of ordinary repose, the hoarse and ceaseless sound of the waves rushing against the base of the rock on which the castle was founded, saddened and perplexed his mind. To his own successful machinations, the ruin of the family had been in a great measure owing, but his disposition was crafty, and not cruel; so that actually to witness the desolation and distress he had himself occasioned was as painful to him as it would be to the humane mistress of a family to superintend in person the execution of the lambs and poultry which are killed by her own directions. At the same time, when he thought of the alternative of restoring to Ravenswood a large proportion of his spoils, or of adopting, as an ally and member of his own family, the heir of this impoverished house, he felt as the spider may be supposed to do when his whole web, the intricacies of which had been planned with so much art, is destroyed by the chance sweep of a broom. And then, if he should commit himself too far in this matter, it gave rise to a perilous question, which many a good husband, when under temptation to act as a free agent, has asked himself without being able to return a satisfactory answer: “What will my wife—what will Lady Ashton say?” On the whole, he came at length to the resolution in which minds of a weaker cast so often take refuge. He resolved to watch events, to take advantage of circumstances as they occurred, and regulate his conduct accordingly. In this spirit of temporising policy, he at length composed his mind to rest.

All these thoughts flooded his mind when he entered the secret chamber. The iron lamp, the bare room that felt more like a prison than a regular place to relax, and the harsh, constant sound of the waves crashing against the base of the rock where the castle stood made him feel sad and confused. He realized that his own schemes had largely contributed to the family's downfall, but he was crafty rather than cruel; witnessing the ruin and suffering he had caused was as painful for him as it would be for a caring household manager to oversee the slaughter of the lambs and chickens she had ordered. At the same time, when he considered whether to return a significant portion of his gains to Ravenswood or to take the heir of this struggling house as an ally and member of his own family, he felt like a spider whose intricately woven web has been swept away by a careless broom. And then, if he became too involved in this matter, it raised a risky question that many good husbands ask themselves when tempted to act on their own: “What will my wife—what will Lady Ashton say?” Ultimately, he decided to adopt the same approach that weaker-minded people often rely on. He resolved to observe events, seize opportunities as they arose, and adjust his actions accordingly. With this attitude of cautious strategy, he finally managed to calm his mind and rest.

CHAPTER XVI.

A slight note I have about me for you, for the delivery of which you must excuse me. It is an offer that friendship calls upon me to do, and no way offensive to you, since I desire nothing but right upon both sides.

King and no King.

A small note I have for you, and I hope you'll forgive me for sending it. It's something that friendship urges me to share, and it's in no way meant to offend you, as I want only fairness for both of us.

King and no King.

When Ravenswood and his guest met in the morning, the gloom of the Master’s spirit had in part returned. He, also, had passed a night rather of reflection than of slumber; and the feelings which he could not but entertain towards Lucy Ashton had to support a severe conflict against those which he had so long nourished against her father. To clasp in friendship the hand of the enemy of his house, to entertain him under his roof, to exchange with him the courtesies and the kindness of domestic familiarity, was a degradation which his proud spirit could not be bent to without a struggle.

When Ravenswood and his guest met in the morning, the heaviness of the Master’s mood had partially returned. He, too, had spent the night more in thought than in rest; and the feelings he couldn’t help but have for Lucy Ashton were in a tough battle with the resentment he had long held against her father. Shaking hands in friendship with the enemy of his family, hosting him in his home, and sharing the niceties and kindnesses of everyday life was a humiliation his proud spirit couldn’t accept without a fight.

But the ice being once broken, the Lord Keeper was resolved it should not have time again to freeze. It had been part of his plan to stun and confuse Ravenswood’s ideas, by a complicated and technical statement of the matters which had been in debate betwixt their families, justly thinking that it would be difficult for a youth of his age to follow the expositions of a practical lawyer, concerning actions of compt and reckoning, and of multiplepoindings, and adjudications and wadsets, proper and improper, and poindings of the ground, and declarations of the expiry of the legal. “Thus,” thought Sir William, “I shall have all the grace of appearing perfectly communicative, while my party will derive very little advantage from anything I may tell him.” He therefore took Ravenswood aside into the deep recess of a window in the hall, and resuming the discourse of the proceeding evening, expressed a hope that his young friend would assume some patience, in order to hear him enter in a minute and explanatory detail of those unfortunate circumstances in which his late honourable father had stood at variance with the Lord Keeper. The Master of Ravenswood coloured highly, but was silent; and the Lord Keeper, though not greatly approving the sudden heightening of his auditor’s complexion, commenced the history of a bond for twenty thousand marks, advanced by his father to the father of Allan Lord Ravenswood, and was proceeding to detail the executorial proceedings by which this large sum had been rendered a debitum fundi, when he was interrupted by the Master.

But now that the ice had been broken, the Lord Keeper was determined not to let it freeze over again. He had intentionally planned to stun and confuse Ravenswood with a complicated and technical explanation of the issues that had been debated between their families, thinking it would be hard for someone his age to follow the detailed talks of a practical lawyer about financial accounts, various legal claims, and judgments, both valid and invalid, as well as property seizures and legal deadlines. “This way,” Sir William thought, “I’ll seem very open and informative, while he won’t gain much from what I tell him.” So, he took Ravenswood to a quiet corner by a window in the hall and picked up their conversation from the previous night, hoping his young friend would have the patience to listen as he explained in detail the unfortunate circumstances that had led to his late father’s conflict with the Lord Keeper. The Master of Ravenswood blushed deeply but remained silent; and although the Lord Keeper wasn’t thrilled about the sudden change in his listener’s expression, he began recounting the history of a bond for twenty thousand marks, paid by his father to Allan Lord Ravenswood’s father, and was about to explain the legal actions that had turned this large sum into a debitum fundi when he was interrupted by the Master.

“It is not in this place,” he said, “that I can hear Sir William Ashton’s explanation of the matters in question between us. It is not here, where my father died of a broken heart, that I can with decency or temper investigate the cause of his distress. I might remember that I was a son, and forget the duties of a host. A time, however, there must come, when these things shall be discussed, in a place and in a presence where both of us will have equal freedom to speak and to hear.”

“It’s not here,” he said, “where I can listen to Sir William Ashton’s explanation about the issues between us. It’s not in this place, where my father died of a broken heart, that I can properly or calmly look into the reason for his pain. I might remember that I’m a son and forget my responsibilities as a host. But there will come a time when we need to talk about these things, in a setting and with someone present where we can both speak and listen freely.”

“Any time,” the Lord Keeper said, “any place, was alike to those who sought nothing but justice. Yet it would seem he was, in fairness, entitled to some premonition respecting the grounds upon which the Master proposed to impugn the whole train of legal proceedings, which had been so well and ripely advised in the only courts competent.”

“Any time,” the Lord Keeper said, “any place was the same for those who wanted nothing but justice. Still, it seems he was, in fairness, entitled to some warning about the reasons the Master planned to challenge the entire series of legal proceedings, which had been so thoroughly and carefully considered in the only courts with the authority to decide.”

“Sir William Ashton,” answered the Master, with warmth, “the lands which you now occupy were granted to my remote ancestor for services done with his sword against the English invaders. How they have glided from us by a train of proceedings that seem to be neither sale, nor mortgage, nor adjudication for debt, but a nondescript and entangled mixture of all these rights; how annual rent has been accumulated upon principal, and no nook or coign of legal advantage left unoccupied, until our interest in our hereditary property seems to have melted away like an icicle in thaw—all this you understand better than I do. I am willing, however, to suppose, from the frankness of your conduct towards me, that I may in a great measure have mistaken your personal character, and that things may have appeared right and fitting to you, a skilful and practised lawyer, which to my ignorant understanding seem very little short of injustice and gross oppression.”

“Sir William Ashton,” replied the Master warmly, “the land you currently occupy was granted to my distant ancestor for his military service against the English invaders. How it has slipped away from us through a series of processes that seem to be neither a sale, nor a mortgage, nor a judgment for debt, but a confusing mix of all these rights; how annual rent has piled up on the principal, and no corner or angle of legal advantage has been left unclaimed, until our interest in our family property seems to have disappeared like an icicle in the sun—all this you understand better than I do. However, I’m willing to consider, based on your straightforward approach toward me, that I may have greatly misjudged your character, and that things may have seemed appropriate and justified to you, a skilled and seasoned lawyer, which to my uninformed perspective seem very close to injustice and severe oppression.”

“And you, my dear Master,” answered Sir William—“you, permit me to say, have been equally misrepresented to me. I was taught to believe you a fierce, imperious, hot-headed youth, ready, at the slightest provocation, to throw your sword into the scales of justice, and to appeal to those rude and forcible measures from which civil polity has long protected the people of Scotland. Then, since we were mutually mistaken in each other, why should not the young nobleman be willing to listen to the old lawyer, while, at least, he explains the points of difference betwixt them?”

“And you, my dear Master,” replied Sir William, “you’ve also been misrepresented to me. I was led to believe you were a fierce, authoritative, hot-headed young man, ready to grab your sword at the slightest provocation and resort to those rough and forceful tactics that civil society has long protected the people of Scotland from. So, since we’ve both misunderstood each other, why shouldn’t the young nobleman be open to hearing the old lawyer out, at least while he explains the differences between us?”

“No, my lord,” answered Ravenswood; “it is in the House of British Peers, whose honour must be equal to their rank—it is in the court of last resort that we must parley together. The belted lords of Britain, her ancient peers, must decide, if it is their will that a house, not the least noble of their members, shall be stripped of their possessions, the reward of the patriotism of generations, as the pawn of a wretched mechanic becomes forfeit to the usurer the instant the hour of redemption has passed away. If they yield to the grasping severity of the creditor, and to the gnawing usury that eats into our lands as moths into a raiment, it will be of more evil consequence to them and their posterity than to Edgar Ravenswood. I shall still have my sword and my cloak, and can follow the profession of arms wherever a trumpet shall sound.”

“No, my lord,” answered Ravenswood; “it is in the House of British Peers, whose honor must match their rank—it is in the highest court that we must talk together. The noble lords of Britain, her ancient peers, must decide if it is their will that a house, not the least noble of their members, will be stripped of their possessions, the reward of generations of patriotism, just as the pawn of a pitiful mechanic becomes forfeit to the moneylender the moment the time for redemption has passed. If they give in to the greedy demands of the creditor, and to the relentless usury that eats away at our lands like moths into clothing, it will bring more harm to them and their descendants than to Edgar Ravenswood. I will still have my sword and my cloak, and I can pursue a career in arms wherever a trumpet sounds.”

As he pronounced these words, in a firm yet melancholy tone, he raised his eyes, and suddenly encountered those of Lucy Ashton, who had stolen unawares on their interview, and observed her looks fastened on them with an expression of enthusiastic interest and admiration, which had wrapt her for the moment beyond the fear of discovery. The noble form and fine features of Ravenswood, fired with the pride of birth and sense of internal dignity, the mellow and expressive tones of his voice, the desolate state of his fortunes, and the indifference with which he seemed to endure and to dare the worst that might befall, rendered him a dangerous object of contemplation for a maiden already too much disposed to dwell upon recollections connected with him. When their eyes encountered each other, both blushed deeply, conscious of some strong internal emotion, and shunned again to meet each other’s looks.

As he said these words in a strong yet sad tone, he lifted his gaze and unexpectedly locked eyes with Lucy Ashton, who had quietly entered their meeting. He noticed her looking at him with an expression of eager interest and admiration, momentarily lost in thought and free from the fear of being caught. Ravenswood’s noble stature and handsome features, filled with pride and a sense of inner strength, along with the rich and expressive quality of his voice, his unfortunate circumstances, and his apparent bravery in the face of whatever might happen made him a compelling figure for a young woman already inclined to reflect on memories of him. When their eyes met, they both blushed deeply, aware of a strong internal feeling, and quickly avoided looking at each other again.

Sir William Ashton had, of course, closely watched the expression of their countenances. “I need fear,” said he internally, “neither Parliament nor protestation; I have an effectual mode of reconciling myself with this hot-tempered young fellow, in case he shall become formidable. The present object is, at all events, to avoid committing ourselves. The hook is fixed; we will not strain the line too soon: it is as well to reserve the privilege of slipping it loose, if we do not find the fish worth landing.”

Sir William Ashton had, of course, closely observed the look on their faces. “I don’t have to worry,” he thought to himself, “about Parliament or protests; I have a solid plan for dealing with this hot-headed young guy if he becomes a threat. Right now, our main goal is to avoid getting too involved. The hook is set; we won’t tug on the line just yet: it’s better to keep the option of letting it go if we don’t think the catch is worth it.”

In this selfish and cruel calculation upon the supposed attachment of Ravenswood to Lucy, he was so far from considering the pain he might give to the former, by thus dallying with his affections, that he even did not think upon the risk of involving his own daughter in the perils of an unfortunate passion; as if her predilection, which could not escape his attention, were like the flame of a taper which might be lighted or extinguished at pleasure. But Providence had prepared a dreadful requital for this keen observer of human passions, who had spent his life in securing advantages to himself by artfully working upon the passions of others.

In this selfish and cruel calculation about Ravenswood's supposed feelings for Lucy, he was completely oblivious to the pain he might cause her by playing with his affections. He didn't even consider the risk of dragging his own daughter into the troubles of an unwise love; as if her feelings, which he couldn't help but notice, were like a candle that could be lit or snuffed out at will. But fate had set up a terrible payback for this sharp observer of human emotions, who had spent his life gaining advantages for himself by cleverly manipulating the feelings of others.

Caleb Balderstone now came to announce that breakfast was prepared; for in those days of substantial feeding, the relics of the supper simply furnished forth the morning meal. Neither did he forget to present to the Lord Keeper, with great reverence, a morning draught in a large pewter cup, garnished with leaves of parsley and scurvy-grass. He craved pardon, of course, for having omitted to serve it in the great silver standing cup as behoved, being that it was at present in a silversmith’s in Edinburgh, for the purpose of being overlaid with gilt.

Caleb Balderstone came to announce that breakfast was ready; back then, hearty meals meant that the leftovers from dinner were often used for the morning meal. He also made sure to present to the Lord Keeper, with great respect, a morning drink in a large pewter cup, decorated with parsley and scurvy-grass. He apologized for not serving it in the grand silver cup as was customary, since it was currently with a silversmith in Edinburgh to be gilded.

“In Edinburgh like enough,” said Ravenswood; “but in what place, or for what purpose, I am afraid neither you nor I know.”

“In Edinburgh, probably,” said Ravenswood; “but in what location, or for what reason, I’m afraid neither you nor I can say.”

“Aweel!” said Caleb, peevishly, “there’s a man standing at the gate already this morning—that’s ae thing that I ken. Does your honour ken whether ye will speak wi’ him or no?”

“Awell!” said Caleb, irritably, “there’s a guy standing at the gate already this morning—that’s one thing I know. Do you know if you’ll talk to him or not?”

“Does he wish to speak with me, Caleb?”

“Does he want to talk to me, Caleb?”

“Less will no serve him,” said Caleb; “but ye had best take a visie of him through the wicket before opening the gate; it’s no every ane we suld let into this castle.”

“Less will not serve him,” said Caleb; “but you'd better take a look at him through the gate before opening it; it's not everyone we should let into this castle.”

“What! do you suppose him to be a messenger come to arrest me for debt?” said Ravenswood.

“What! Do you think he's a messenger here to arrest me for debt?” said Ravenswood.

“A messenger arrest your honour for debt, and in your Castle of Wolf’s Crag! Your honour is jesting wi’ auld Caleb this morning.” However, he whispered in his ear, as he followed him out, “I would be loth to do ony decent man a prejudice in your honour’s gude opinion; but I would tak twa looks o’ that chield before I let him within these walls.”

“A messenger has come to arrest you for debt, and in your Castle of Wolf’s Crag! You must be joking with old Caleb this morning.” However, he whispered in his ear as he followed him out, “I wouldn’t want to harm any decent man in your good opinion; but I would take a couple of looks at that guy before I let him inside these walls.”

He was not an officer of the law, however; being no less a person than Captain Craigengelt, with his nose as red as a comfortable cup of brandy could make it, his laced cocked hat set a little aside upon the top of his black riding periwig, a sword by his side and pistols at his holsters, and his person arrayed in a riding suit, laid over with tarnished lace—the very moral of one who would say, “Stand to a true man.”

He wasn’t a law officer, though; he was none other than Captain Craigengelt, with a nose as red as a cozy cup of brandy could make it, his fancy hat tilted slightly atop his black riding wig, a sword at his side, and pistols in their holsters, all while dressed in a riding suit embellished with tarnished lace—the very image of someone who would say, “Stand by a true man.”

When the Master had recognised him, he ordered the gates to be opened. “I suppose,” he said, “Captain Craigengelt, there are no such weighty matters betwixt you and me, but may be discussed in this place. I have company in the castle at present, and the terms upon which we last parted must excuse my asking you to make part of them.”

When the Master recognized him, he ordered the gates to be opened. “I assume,” he said, “Captain Craigengelt, that there aren't any significant issues between us that can't be discussed here. I have guests in the castle right now, and the conditions of our last meeting mean I have to ask you to join us.”

Craigengelt, although possessing the very perfection of impudence, was somewhat abashed by this unfavourable reception. “He had no intention,” he said, “to force himself upon the Master of Ravenswood’s hospitality; he was in the honourable service of bearing a message to him from a friend, otherwise the Master of Ravenswood should not have had reason to complain of this intrusion.”

Craigengelt, despite having the ultimate confidence, felt a bit embarrassed by this unwelcoming reception. “I didn’t mean,” he said, “to impose on the Master of Ravenswood’s hospitality; I’m here on the honorable job of delivering a message from a friend. Otherwise, the Master of Ravenswood wouldn’t have any reason to complain about my intrusion.”

“Let it be short, sir,” said the Master, “for that will be the best apology. Who is the gentleman who is so fortunate as to have your services as a messenger?”

“Make it brief, sir,” said the Master, “because that will be the best apology. Who is the lucky gentleman to have you as a messenger?”

“My friend, Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw,” answered Craigengelt, with conscious importance, and that confidence which the acknowledged courage of his principal inspired, “who conceives himself to have been treated by you with something much short of the respect which he had reason to demand, and, therefore is resolved to exact satisfaction. I bring with me,” said he, taking a piece of paper out of his pocket, “the precise length of his sword; and he requests you will meet him, accompanied by a friend, and equally armed, at any place within a mile of the castle, when I shall give attendance as umpire, or second, on his behoof.”

“My friend, Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw,” replied Craigengelt, with a sense of importance and the confidence that came from knowing his principal's bravery, “feels that you have not treated him with the respect he deserves and is therefore determined to seek satisfaction. I have here,” he said, pulling out a piece of paper from his pocket, “the exact length of his sword; he requests that you meet him, with a friend and equally armed, at any location within a mile of the castle, where I will serve as the umpire or second for him.”

“Satisfaction! and equal arms!” repeated Ravenswood, who, the reader will recollect, had no reason to suppose he had given the slightest offence to his late intimate; “upon my word, Captain Craigengelt, either you have invented the most improbable falsehood that ever came into the mind of such a person, or your morning draught has been somewhat of the strongest. What could persuade Bucklaw to send me such a message?”

“Satisfaction! And equal terms!” repeated Ravenswood, who, as you might remember, had no reason to think he had offended his former friend; “I swear, Captain Craigengelt, either you've come up with the most unbelievable lie I've ever heard, or you’ve had a pretty strong drink this morning. What could possibly convince Bucklaw to send me such a message?”

“For that, sir,” replied Craigengelt, “I am desired to refer you to what, in duty to my friend, I am to term your inhospitality in excluding him from your house, without reasons assigned.”

“For that, sir,” replied Craigengelt, “I’m asked to point out what, out of loyalty to my friend, I must call your unwelcoming behavior in keeping him out of your house without giving any reasons.”

“It is impossible,” replied the Master; “he cannot be such a fool as to interpret actual necessity as an insult. Nor do I believe that, knowing my opinion of you, Captain, he would have employed the services of so slight and inconsiderable a person as yourself upon such an errand, as I certainly could expect no man of honour to act with you in the office of umpire.”

“It’s impossible,” replied the Master. “He can’t be such a fool as to see actual necessity as an insult. I also don’t think that, knowing my opinion of you, Captain, he would have chosen someone as insignificant as you for such a task. I certainly wouldn’t expect any man of honor to work with you as the umpire.”

“I slight and inconsiderable?” said Craigengelt, raising his voice, and laying his hand on his cutlass; “if it were not that the quarrel of my friend craves the precedence, and is in dependence before my own, I would give you to understand——”

“I’m slight and insignificant?” Craigengelt said, raising his voice and resting his hand on his cutlass. “If it weren’t for the fact that my friend’s quarrel takes priority and is the main issue before mine, I would make it clear to you——”

“I can understand nothing upon your explanation, Captain Craigengelt. Be satisfied of that, and oblige me with your departure.”

"I don’t understand anything from your explanation, Captain Craigengelt. Just know that, and please leave."

“D——n!” muttered the bully; “and is this the answer which I am to carry back to an honourable message?”

“Damn!” muttered the bully; “is this the response I'm supposed to take back to an honorable message?”

“Tell the Laird of Bucklaw,” answered Ravenswood, “if you are really sent by him, that, when he sends me his cause of grievance by a person fitting to carry such an errand betwixt him and me, I will either explain it or maintain it.”

“Tell the Laird of Bucklaw,” Ravenswood replied, “if you are genuinely sent by him, that when he sends me his reason for complaint through someone suitable to deliver such a message between us, I will either clarify it or defend it.”

“Then, Master, you will at least cause to be returned to Hayston, by my hands, his property which is remaining in your possession.”

“Then, Master, at the very least you will have me return Hayston's property that's still in your possession.”

“Whatever property Bucklaw may have left behind him, sir,” replied the Master, “shall be returned to him by my servant, as you do not show me any credentials from him which entitle you to receive it.”

“Whatever property Bucklaw may have left behind, sir,” replied the Master, “will be returned to him by my servant, as you haven’t shown me any credentials from him that authorize you to receive it.”

“Well, Master,” said Captain Craigengelt, with malice which even his fear of the consequences could not suppress, “you have this morning done me an egregious wrong and dishonour, but far more to yourself. A castle indeed!” he continued, looking around him; “why, this is worse than a coupe-gorge house, where they receive travellers to plunder them of their property.”

“Well, Master,” said Captain Craigengelt, with a spitefulness that even his fear of the repercussions couldn't hold back, “you’ve done me a terrible wrong and dishonor this morning, but even more to yourself. A castle indeed!” he continued, glancing around; “this is worse than a coupe-gorge house, where they welcome travelers just to rob them of their belongings.”

“You insolent rascal,” said the Master, raising his cane, and making a grasp at the Captain’s bridle, “if you do not depart without uttering another syllable, I will batoon you to death!”

“You cheeky brat,” said the Master, raising his cane and reaching for the Captain’s bridle, “if you don’t leave without saying another word, I’ll beat you to death!”

At the motion of the Master towards him, the bully turned so rapidly round, that with some difficulty he escaped throwing down his horse, whose hoofs struck fire from the rocky pavement in every direction. Recovering him, however, with the bridle, he pushed for the gate, and rode sharply back again in the direction of the village.

At the Master's gesture towards him, the bully spun around so quickly that he barely managed to avoid knocking over his horse, whose hooves sparked against the rocky pavement in every direction. Regaining control with the bridle, he headed for the gate and rode back sharply toward the village.

As Ravenswood turned round to leave the courtyard after this dialogue, he found that the Lord Keeper had descended from the hall, and witnessed, though at the distance prescribed by politeness, his interview with Craigengelt.

As Ravenswood turned to leave the courtyard after their conversation, he noticed that the Lord Keeper had come down from the hall and was observing, though from a polite distance, his meeting with Craigengelt.

“I have seen,” said the Lord Keeper, “that gentleman’s face, and at no great distance of time; his name is Craig—Craig—something, is it not?”

“I have seen,” said the Lord Keeper, “that guy’s face, and it wasn’t too long ago; his name is Craig—Craig—something, right?”

“Craigengelt is the fellow’s name,” said the Master, “at least that by which he passes at present.”

“Craigengelt is the guy’s name,” said the Master, “at least that’s what he goes by right now.”

“Craig-in-guilt,” said Caleb, punning upon the word craig, which in Scotch signifies throat; “if he is Craig-in-guilt just now, he is as likely to be Craig-in-peril as ony chield I ever saw; the loon has woodie written on his very visnomy, and I wad wager twa and a plack that hemp plaits his cravat yet.”

“Craig-in-guilt,” Caleb said, playing with the word craig, which means throat in Scots; “if he's Craig-in-guilt right now, he’s just as likely to be Craig-in-peril as any guy I’ve ever seen; the fool has trouble written all over his face, and I'd bet two shillings and a penny that rope is what he wears around his neck still.”

“You understand physiognomy, good Mr. Caleb,” said the Keeper, smiling; “I assure you the gentleman has been near such a consummation before now; for I most distinctly recollect that, upon occasion of a journey which I made about a fortnight ago to Edinburgh, I saw Mr. Craigengelt, or whatever is his name, undergo a severe examination before the privy council.”

“You understand people's faces well, good Mr. Caleb,” said the Keeper with a smile; “I assure you the gentleman has been close to such a conclusion before; because I clearly remember that about two weeks ago, during a trip I took to Edinburgh, I saw Mr. Craigengelt, or whatever his name is, go through a tough questioning by the privy council.”

“Upon what account?” said the Master of Ravenswood, with some interest.

“Why is that?” asked the Master of Ravenswood, with some curiosity.

The question led immediately to a tale which the Lord Keeper had been very anxious to introduce, when he could find a graceful and fitting opportunity. He took hold of the Master’s arm, and led him back towards the hall. “The answer to your question,” he said, “though it is a ridiculous business, is only fit for your own ear.”

The question quickly led to a story that the Lord Keeper had been eager to share, waiting for the right moment. He grabbed the Master’s arm and guided him back toward the hall. “The answer to your question,” he said, “even though it’s a silly matter, is meant just for you.”

As they entered the hall, he again took the Master apart into one of the recesses of the window, where it will be easily believed that Miss Ashton did not venture again to intrude upon their conference.

As they entered the hall, he once again pulled the Master aside into one of the window alcoves, where it’s easy to believe that Miss Ashton didn't dare to interrupt their conversation.

CHAPTER XVII.

Here is a father now,
Will truck his daughter for a foreign venture,
Make her the stop-gap to some canker’d feud,
Or fling her o’er, like Jonah, to the fishes,
To appease the sea at highest.

ANONYMOUS.

Here is a father now,
Who will trade his daughter for a foreign deal,
Make her the fallback in some bitter conflict,
Or throw her away, like Jonah, to the fish,
To calm the sea in its fury.

ANONYMOUS.

The Lord Keeper opened his discourse with an appearance of unconcern, marking, however, very carefully, the effect of his communication upon young Ravenswood.

The Lord Keeper started his talk with an air of indifference, but he was paying close attention to how his words impacted young Ravenswood.

“You are aware,” he said, “my young friend, that suspicion is the natural vice of our unsettled times, and exposes the best and wisest of us to the imposition of artful rascals. If I had been disposed to listen to such the other day, or even if I had been the wily politicians which you have been taught to believe me, you, Master of Ravenswood, instead of being at freedom, and with fully liberty to solicit and act against me as you please, in defence of what you suppose to be your rights, would have been in the Castle of Edinburgh, or some other state prison; or, if you had escaped that destiny, it must have been by flight to a foreign country, and at the risk of a sentence of fugitation.”

"You know," he said, "my young friend, that suspicion is the typical flaw of our uncertain times and puts even the best and smartest among us at the mercy of clever con artists. If I had been inclined to listen to such nonsense the other day, or even if I had been the crafty politician you’ve been led to believe I am, you, Master of Ravenswood, instead of being free and having every right to oppose me as you wish in defense of what you think are your rights, would have been locked up in the Castle of Edinburgh or some other state prison. Or, if you had avoided that fate, it would have been by fleeing to another country, risking a sentence of exile."

“My Lord Keeper,” said the Master, “I think you would not jest on such a subject; yet it seems impossible you can be in earnest.”

“My Lord Keeper,” said the Master, “I believe you wouldn't joke about something like this; still, it seems unbelievable that you could be serious.”

“Innocence,” said the Lord Keeper, “is also confident, and sometimes, though very excusably, presumptuously so.”

“Innocence,” said the Lord Keeper, “is also confident, and sometimes, although very understandably, a bit presumptuous.”

“I do not understand,” said Ravenswood, “how a consciousness of innocence can be, in any case, accounted presumptuous.”

“I don’t understand,” said Ravenswood, “how being aware of your innocence can ever be seen as arrogant.”

“Imprudent, at least, it may be called,” said Sir William Ashton, “since it is apt to lead us into the mistake of supposing that sufficiently evident to others of which, in fact, we are only conscious ourselves. I have known a rogue, for this very reason, make a better defence than an innocent man could have done in the same circumstances of suspicion. Having no consciousness of innocence to support him, such a fellow applies himself to all the advantages which the law will afford him, and sometimes—if his counsel be men of talent—succeeds in compelling his judges to receive him as innocent. I remember the celebrated case of Sir Coolie Condiddle of Condiddle, who was tried for theft under trust, of which all the world knew him guilty, and yet was not only acquitted, but lived to sit in judgment on honester folk.”

“Careless, at the very least, it can be called,” said Sir William Ashton, “since it tends to lead us into the error of thinking that something is clear to others when, in reality, we are the only ones aware of it. I've seen a scoundrel, for this exact reason, put together a better defense than an innocent person could have managed in the same situation of suspicion. Lacking any sense of innocence to back him up, this kind of person takes full advantage of all the legal loopholes available, and sometimes—if his lawyers are skilled—he manages to convince his judges to accept him as innocent. I recall the famous case of Sir Coolie Condiddle of Condiddle, who was tried for embezzlement, of which everyone was aware he was guilty, yet he was not only acquitted but went on to judge more honest people.”

“Allow me to beg you will return to the point,” said the Master; “you seemed to say that I had suffered under some suspicion.”

“Please, can you get back to the point?” said the Master; “you seemed to suggest that I was under some suspicion.”

“Suspicion, Master! Ay, truly, and I can show you the proofs of it; if I happen only to have them with me. Here, Lockhard.” His attendant came. “Fetch me the little private mail with the padlocks, that I recommended to your particular charge, d’ye hear?”

“Suspicion, Master! Yes, really, and I can show you the evidence of it; if I just happen to have it with me. Here, Lockhard.” His assistant came over. “Get me the small private mail with the padlocks that I suggested you keep safe, do you understand?”

“Yes, my lord.” Lockhard vanished; and the Keeper continued, as if half speaking to himself.

“Yes, my lord.” Lockhard disappeared, and the Keeper went on, almost as if he were talking to himself.

“I think the papers are with me—I think so, for, as I was to be in this country, it was natural for me to bring them with me. I have them, however, at Ravenswood Castle, that I am sure; so perhaps you might condescend——”

“I believe I have the documents with me—I think so, since it made sense for me to bring them when I came to this country. However, I'm sure that I have them at Ravenswood Castle, so maybe you could consider——”

Here Lockhard entered, and put the leathern scrutoire, or mail-box, into his hands. The Keeper produced one or two papers, respecting the information laid before the privy council concerning the riot, as it was termed, at the funeral of Allan Lord Ravenswood, and the active share he had himself taken in quashing the proceedings against the Master. These documents had been selected with care, so as to irritate the natural curiosity of Ravenswood upon such a subject, without gratifying it, yet to show that Sir William Ashton had acted upon that trying occasion the part of an advocate and peacemaker betwixt him and the jealous authorities of the day. Having furnished his host with such subjects for examination, the Lord Keeper went to the breakfast-table, and entered into light conversation, addressed partly to old Caleb, whose resentment against the usurper of the Castle of Ravenswood began to be softened by his familiarity, and partly to his daughter.

Here Lockhard walked in and handed him the leather briefcase. The Keeper pulled out a couple of papers that dealt with the information presented to the privy council about the so-called riot at Allan Lord Ravenswood's funeral, as well as the active role he had played in stopping the proceedings against the Master. These documents were carefully chosen to pique Ravenswood's natural curiosity on the matter without fully satisfying it, while also demonstrating that Sir William Ashton had acted as an advocate and peacemaker between him and the envious authorities of the time. After providing his host with these topics for review, the Lord Keeper went to the breakfast table and engaged in light conversation, directed partly at old Caleb, whose anger towards the usurper of Ravenswood Castle was beginning to fade due to their familiarity, and partly at his daughter.

After perusing these papers, the Master of Ravenswood remained for a minute or two with his hand pressed against his brow, in deep and profound meditation. He then again ran his eye hastily over the papers, as if desirous of discovering in them some deep purpose, or some mark of fabrication, which had escaped him at first perusal. Apparently the second reading confirmed the opinion which had pressed upon him at the first, for he started from the stone bench on which he was sitting, and, going to the Lord Keeper, took his hand, and, strongly pressing it, asked his pardon repeatedly for the injustice he had done him, when it appeared he was experiencing, at his hands, the benefit of protection to his person and vindication to his character.

After looking over these documents, the Master of Ravenswood stayed for a minute or two with his hand against his forehead, deep in thought. He then quickly skimmed through the papers again, as if trying to uncover some hidden intention or sign of deceit that he had missed the first time. It seemed that the second reading reinforced the conclusion he had reached initially, as he jumped up from the stone bench where he had been sitting, approached the Lord Keeper, took his hand, and, firmly squeezing it, repeatedly apologized for the wrong he had done him, when it turned out he was receiving both protection for his safety and validation for his character.

The statesman received these acknowledgments at first with well-feigned surprise, and then with an affectation of frank cordiality. The tears began already to start from Lucy’s blue eyes at viewing this unexpected and moving scene. To see the Master, late so haughty and reserved, and whom she had always supposed the injured person, supplicating her father for forgiveness, was a change at once surprising, flattering, and affecting.

The statesman initially responded to the acknowledgments with a show of surprise, then put on an act of genuine friendliness. Tears began to well up in Lucy's blue eyes as she watched this unexpected and emotional scene. Seeing the Master, who had recently been so proud and distant, and whom she had always thought of as the victim, begging her father for forgiveness was a change that was surprising, flattering, and deeply moving all at once.

“Dry your eyes, Lucy,” said her father; “why should you weep, because your father, though a lawyer, is discovered to be a fair and honourable man? What have you to thank me for, my dear Master,” he continued, addressing Ravenswood, “that you would not have done in my case? ‘Suum cuique tribuito,’ was the Roman justice, and I learned it when I studied Justinian. Besides, have you not overpaid me a thousand times, in saving the life of this dear child?”

“Dry your eyes, Lucy,” her father said. “Why are you crying just because your father, even though he’s a lawyer, is found to be an honest and honorable man? What do you owe me, my dear Master,” he continued, addressing Ravenswood, “that you wouldn’t have done for me? ‘Suum cuique tribuito,’ was the Roman principle of justice, and I learned it when I studied Justinian. Besides, haven't you repaid me a thousand times by saving the life of this dear child?”

“Yes,” answered the Master, in all the remorse of self-accusation; “but the little service I did was an act of mere brutal instinct; your defence of my cause, when you knew how ill I thought of you, and how much I was disposed to be your enemy, was an act of generous, manly, and considerate wisdom.”

“Yes,” replied the Master, filled with regret and self-blame; “but the small thing I did was just a basic instinct; your defense of my cause, even when you knew how lowly I thought of you and how much I wanted to be your enemy, was a truly generous, mature, and thoughtful act.”

“Pshaw!” said the Lord Keeper, “each of us acted in his own way; you as a gallant soldier, I as an upright judge and privy-councillor. We could not, perhaps, have changed parts; at least I should have made a very sorry Tauridor, and you, my good Master, though your cause is so excellent, might have pleaded it perhaps worse yourself than I who acted for you before the council.”

“Pshaw!” said the Lord Keeper, “we each acted in our own way; you as a brave soldier, I as a fair judge and advisor. We probably couldn’t have swapped roles; at least I would have been a pretty terrible Tauridor, and you, my good Master, even though your case is so strong, might have argued it worse yourself than I did when I represented you before the council.”

“My generous friend!” said Ravenswood; and with that brief word, which the Keeper had often lavished upon him, but which he himself now pronounced for the first time, he gave to his feudal enemy the full confidence of an haughty but honourable heart. The Master had been remarked among his contemporaries for sense and acuteness, as well as for his reserved, pertinacious, and irascible character. His prepossessions accordingly, however obstinate, were of a nature to give way before love and gratitude; and the real charms of the daughter, joined to the supposed services of the father, cancelled in his memory the vows of vengeance which he had taken so deeply on the eve of his father’s funeral. But they had been heard and registered in the book of fate.

“My generous friend!” said Ravenswood; and with that simple phrase, which the Keeper had often used for him, but which he himself was now saying for the first time, he extended to his feudal enemy the full trust of a proud yet honorable heart. The Master had been known among his peers for his sense and sharpness, as well as for his reserved, stubborn, and irritable nature. His preconceptions, however stubborn, were able to give way in the face of love and gratitude; and the genuine charms of the daughter, combined with the supposed merits of the father, erased from his mind the vows of revenge he had taken so seriously the night before his father’s funeral. But they had been heard and recorded in the book of fate.

Caleb was present at this extraordinary scene, and he could conceive no other reason for a proceeding so extraordinary than an alliance betwixt the houses, and Ravenswood Castle assigned for the young lady’s dowry. As for Lucy, when Ravenswood uttered the most passionate excuses for his ungrateful negligence, she could but smile through her tears, and, as she abandoned her hand to him, assure him, in broken accents, of the delight with which she beheld the complete reconciliation between her father and her deliverer. Even the statesman was moved and affected by the fiery, unreserved, and generous self-abandonment with which the Master of Ravenswood renounced his feudal enmity, and threw himself without hesitation upon his forgiveness. His eyes glistened as he looked upon a couple who were obviously becoming attached, and who seemed made for each other. He thought how high the proud and chivalrous character of Ravenswood might rise under many circumstances in which he found himself “overcrowed,” to use a phrase of Spenser, and kept under, by his brief pedigree, and timidity of disposition. Then his daughter—his favorite child—his constant playmate—seemed formed to live happy in a union with such a commanding spirit as Ravenswood; and even the fine, delicate, fragile form of Lucy Ashton seemed to require the support of the Master’s muscular strength and masculine character. And it was not merely during a few minutes that Sir William Ashton looked upon their marriage as a probable and even desirable event, for a full hour intervened ere his imagination was crossed by recollection of the Master’s poverty, and the sure displeasure of Lady Ashton. It is certain, that the very unusual flow of kindly feeling with which the Lord Keeper had been thus surprised, was one of the circumstances which gave much tacit encouragement to the attachment between the Master and his daughter, and led both the lovers distinctly to believe that it was a connexion which would be most agreeable to him. He himself was supposed to have admitted this in effect, when, long after the catastrophe of their love, he used to warn his hearers against permitting their feelings to obtain an ascendency over their judgment, and affirm, that the greatest misfortune of his life was owing to a very temporary predominance of sensibility over self-interest. It must be owned, if such was the case, he was long and severely punished for an offence of very brief duration.

Caleb was there at this remarkable scene, and he could think of no other explanation for such an extraordinary event than a union between the families, with Ravenswood Castle offered as the young lady's dowry. As for Lucy, when Ravenswood expressed heartfelt apologies for his ungrateful neglect, she could only smile through her tears and, as she let her hand rest in his, tell him, in choked words, how happy she was to see her father and her savior reconciled. Even the statesman was touched and moved by the fiery, open, and generous way the Master of Ravenswood set aside his feudal rivalry and threw himself, without hesitation, upon the grace of forgiveness. His eyes sparkled as he watched a couple undeniably falling for each other, seeming made for one another. He thought about how high the proud and noble character of Ravenswood could rise in many situations where he felt "overcrowded," to use a phrase from Spenser, and held back by his short lineage and timid nature. Then his daughter—his beloved child—his constant companion—appeared meant to be happy in a union with such a commanding presence as Ravenswood; and the delicate, fragile form of Lucy Ashton seemed to need the strength and masculine nature of the Master. It wasn’t just for a few minutes that Sir William Ashton considered their marriage a likely and even desirable outcome; a full hour passed before the reminder of the Master’s poverty and the certain disapproval of Lady Ashton crossed his mind. It's clear that the unusual warmth of feeling that had surprised the Lord Keeper was one of the factors that quietly encouraged the bond between the Master and his daughter, leading both lovers to believe it was a connection that would please him. He was thought to have acknowledged this in private when, long after the downfall of their love, he would caution his listeners against letting their emotions overpower their judgment, stating that the greatest misfortune of his life was due to a temporary triumph of feelings over self-interest. It must be said, if that was the case, he was long and harshly punished for a mistake that lasted only a moment.

After some pause, the Lord Keeper resumed the conversation.—

After a brief pause, the Lord Keeper continued the conversation.—

“In your surprise at finding me an honester man than you expected, you have lost your curiosity about this Craigengelt, my good Master; and yet your name was brought in, in the course of that matter too.”

“In your surprise at discovering I'm a more honest man than you thought, you've lost your interest in this Craigengelt, my good Master; and still, your name came up during that situation as well.”

“The scoundrel!” said Ravenswood. “My connexion with him was of the most temporary nature possible; and yet I was very foolish to hold any communication with him at all. What did he say of me?”

“The scoundrel!” Ravenswood exclaimed. “My connection with him was the most temporary thing ever; and still, I was really foolish to even communicate with him at all. What did he say about me?”

“Enough,” said the Keeper, “to excite the very loyal terrors of some of our sages, who are for proceeding against men on the mere grounds of suspicion or mercenary information. Some nonsense about your proposing to enter into the service of France, or of the Pretender, I don’t recollect which, but which the Marquis of A——, one of your best friends, and another person, whom some call one of your worst and most interested enemies, could not, somehow, be brought to listen to.”

“Enough,” said the Keeper, “to stir the deep fears of some of our wise ones, who want to take action against people based solely on suspicion or self-serving intel. There’s some talk about your intending to join the service of France, or the Pretender, I can't quite remember which, but the Marquis of A——, one of your good friends, and another person, whom some see as your worst and most self-interested enemy, couldn’t, for some reason, be persuaded to pay any attention to it.”

“I am obliged to my honourable friend; and yet,” shaking the Lord Keeper’s hand—“and yet I am still more obliged to my honourable enemy.”

“I am grateful to my honorable friend; and yet,” shaking the Lord Keeper’s hand—“and yet I am even more grateful to my honorable enemy.”

Inimicus amicissimus,” said the Lord Keeper, returning the pressure; “but this gentleman—this Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw—I am afraid the poor young man—I heard the fellow mention his name—is under very bad guidance.”

Inimicus amicissimus,” said the Lord Keeper, applying the same pressure; “but this gentleman—this Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw—I’m afraid the poor young man—I heard him mention his name—is under very bad guidance.”

“He is old enough to govern himself,” answered the Master.

“He's old enough to take care of himself,” replied the Master.

“Old enough, perhaps, but scarce wise enough, if he has chosen this fellow for his fidus Achates. Why, he lodged an information against him—that is, such a consequence might have ensued from his examination, had we not looked rather at the character of the witness than the tenor of his evidence.”

“Old enough, maybe, but hardly wise enough if he's chosen this guy as his fidus Achates. I mean, he filed a report against him—that is, something like that could have followed from his questioning, if we hadn't focused more on the witness's character than on the actual content of his testimony.”

“Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw,” said the master, “is, I believe, a most honourable man, and capable of nothing that is mean or disgraceful.”

“Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw,” said the master, “is, I believe, a very honorable man, and is capable of nothing that is petty or shameful.”

“Capable of much that is unreasonable, though; that you must needs allow, master. Death will soon put him in possession of a fair estate, if he hath it not already; old Lady Girnington—an excellent person, excepting that her inveterate ill-nature rendered her intolerable to the whole world—is probably dead by this time. Six heirs portioners have successively died to make her wealthy. I know the estates well; they march with my own—a noble property.”

“Capable of a lot that seems outrageous, you have to agree, master. Death will soon give him a nice inheritance if he doesn’t have it already; old Lady Girnington— a great person, except her constant bad temper made her unbearable to everyone—is probably dead by now. Six heirs have died one after another to make her rich. I know the estates well; they border my own— a magnificent property.”

“I am glad of it,” said Ravenswood, “and should be more so, were I confident that Bucklaw would change his company and habits with his fortunes. This appearance of Craigengelt, acting in the capacity of his friend, is a most vile augury for his future respectability.”

“I’m glad to hear that,” said Ravenswood, “and I’d be even happier if I was sure that Bucklaw would change his friends and habits with his luck. The presence of Craigengelt, pretending to be his friend, is a really bad sign for his future respectability.”

“He is a bird of evil omen, to be sure,” said the Keeper, “and croaks of jail and gallows-tree. But I see Mr. Caleb grows impatient for our return to breakfast.”

“He's definitely a bird of bad luck,” said the Keeper, “and he keeps talking about jail and the gallows. But I can tell Mr. Caleb is getting impatient for us to get back to breakfast.”

CHAPTER XVIII.

Sir, stay at home and take an old man’s counsel;
Seek not to bask you by a stranger’s hearth;
Our own blue smoke is warmer than their fire.
Domestic food is wholesome, though ’tis homely,
And foreign dainties poisonous, though tasteful.

The French Courtezan.

Sir, stay home and listen to the advice of an old man;
Don't seek warmth by a stranger’s fireplace;
Our own blue smoke is cozier than their fire.
Homemade food is good for you, even if it’s simple,
And foreign delicacies can be harmful, even if they seem appealing.

The French Courtezan.

The Master of Ravenswood took an opportunity to leave his guests to prepare for their departure, while he himself made the brief arrangements necessary previous to his absence from Wolf’s Crag for a day or two. It was necessary to communicate with Caleb on this occasion, and he found that faithful servitor in his sooty and ruinous den, greatly delighted with the departure of their visitors, and computing how long, with good management, the provisions which had been unexpended might furnish the Master’s table. “He’s nae belly god, that’s ae blessing; and Bucklaw’s gane, that could have eaten a horse behind the saddle. Cresses or water-purpie, and a bit ait-cake, can serve the Master for breakfast as weel as Caleb. Then for dinner—there’s no muckle left on the spule-bane; it will brander, though—it will brander very weel.”

The Master of Ravenswood took the chance to step away from his guests to get ready for their departure while he handled a few quick tasks he needed to do before leaving Wolf’s Crag for a day or two. He had to get in touch with Caleb this time, and he found the loyal servant in his dark and rundown place, very pleased about their guests leaving, and figuring out how long the leftover supplies could stretch for the Master’s meals. “He’s not a big eater, that’s one good thing; and Bucklaw’s gone, who could have eaten enough for two. Some watercress or water buttercup, and a bit of oat cake, will serve the Master for breakfast just as well as for Caleb. Then for dinner—there’s not much left on the spoon bone; it will roast, though—it will roast just fine.”

His triumphant calculations were interrupted by the Master, who communicated to him, not without some hesitation, his purpose to ride with the Lord Keeper as far as Ravenswood Castle, and to remain there for a day or two.

His triumphant calculations were interrupted by the Master, who conveyed to him, not without some hesitation, his plan to ride with the Lord Keeper as far as Ravenswood Castle and to stay there for a day or two.

“The mercy of Heaven forbid!” said the old serving-man, turning as pal as the table-cloth which he was folding up.

“God forbid!” said the old servant, turning as pale as the tablecloth he was folding.

“And why, Caleb?” said his master—“why should the mercy of Heaven forbid my returning the Lord Keeper’s visit?”

“And why, Caleb?” said his master—“why should the mercy of Heaven stop me from returning the Lord Keeper’s visit?”

“Oh, sir!” replied Caleb—“oh, Mr. Edgar! I am your servant, and it ill becomes me to speak; but I am an auld servant—have served baith your father and gudesire, and mind to have seen Lord Randal, your great-grandfather, but that was when I was a bairn.”

“Oh, sir!” replied Caleb—“oh, Mr. Edgar! I am your servant, and it’s not my place to speak; but I’ve been a servant for a long time—I've served both your father and your grandfather, and I remember seeing Lord Randal, your great-grandfather, but that was when I was just a child.”

“And what of all this, Balderstone?” said the Master; “what can it possibly have to do with my paying some ordinary civility to a neighbour.”

“And what about all this, Balderstone?” said the Master; “what could it possibly have to do with me being polite to a neighbor?”

“Oh, Mr. Edgar,—that is, my lord!” answered the butler, “your ain conscience tells you it isna for your father’s son to be neighbouring wi’ the like o’ him; it isna for the credit of the family. An he were ance come to terms, and to gie ye back your ain, e’en though ye suld honour his house wi’ your alliance, I suldna say na; for the young leddy is a winsome sweet creature. But keep your ain state wi’ them—I ken the race o’ them weel—they will think the mair o’ ye.”

“Oh, Mr. Edgar—uh, I mean, my lord!” the butler replied, “your own conscience tells you it’s not appropriate for your father's son to associate with someone like him; it’s not good for the family's reputation. If he ever came to terms and gave you back what is yours, even if you were to elevate his house with your connection, I wouldn't say no; because the young lady is a lovely, sweet person. But maintain your status with them—I know their kind well—they will respect you more for it.”

“Why, now, you go father than I do, Caleb,” said the Master, drowning a certain degree of consciousness in a forced laugh; “you are for marrying me into a family that you will not allow me to visit, how this? and you look as pale as death besides.”

“Why, now, you go further than I do, Caleb,” said the Master, suppressing a bit of awareness with a forced laugh; “you want to marry me into a family that you won’t let me visit, how does that work? And you look as pale as a ghost besides.”

“Oh, sir,” repeated Caleb again, “you would but laugh if I tauld it; but Thomas the Rhymer, whose tongue couldna be fause, spoke the word of your house that will e’en prove ower true if you go to Ravenswood this day. Oh, that it should e’er have been fulfilled in my time!”

“Oh, sir,” Caleb said again, “you would just laugh if I told you; but Thomas the Rhymer, whose words can’t be false, spoke of your house, and it will be all too true if you go to Ravenswood today. Oh, that it should have happened in my time!”

“And what is it, Caleb?” said Ravenswood, wishing to soothe the fears of his old servant.

“And what’s the matter, Caleb?” Ravenswood asked, trying to calm the worries of his longtime servant.

Caleb replied: “He had never repeated the lines to living mortal; they were told to him by an auld priest that had been confessor to Lord Allan’s father when the family were Catholic. But mony a time,” he said, “I hae soughed thae dark words ower to myself, and, well-a-day! little did I think of their coming round this day.”

Caleb replied, “He had never shared those lines with anyone; they were given to him by an old priest who was the confessor to Lord Allan’s father when the family was Catholic. But many times,” he said, “I have whispered those dark words to myself, and, wow! I never thought they would come back around today.”

“Truce with your nonsense, and let me hear the doggerel which has put it into your head,” said the Master, impatiently.

“Enough with your nonsense, and let me hear the silly verse that got you thinking like this,” said the Master, impatiently.

With a quivering voice, and a cheek pale with apprehension, Caleb faltered out the following lines:

With a shaky voice and a pale face filled with worry, Caleb hesitated and said the following lines:

“When the last Laird of Ravenswood to Ravenswood shall ride,
And woo a dead maiden to be his bride,
He shall stable his steed in the Kelpie’s flow,
And his name shall be lost for evermoe!”

“When the last Laird of Ravenswood rides to Ravenswood,
And courts a dead maiden to be his bride,
He will put his horse in the Kelpie’s flow,
And his name will be lost forevermore!”

“I know the Kelpie’s flow well enough,” said the Master; “I suppose, at least, you mean the quicksand betwixt this tower and Wolf’s Hope; but why any man in his senses should stable a steed there——”

“I know the Kelpie’s flow well enough,” said the Master; “I suppose you’re talking about the quicksand between this tower and Wolf’s Hope; but why anyone in their right mind would stable a horse there——”

“Oh, ever speer ony thing about that, sir—God forbid we should ken what the prophecy means—but just bide you at hame, and let the strangers ride to Ravenswood by themselves. We have done eneugh for them; and to do mair would be mair against the credit of the family than in its favour.”

“Oh, if you ever ask about that, sir—God forbid we should understand what the prophecy means—but just stay home, and let the strangers ride to Ravenswood by themselves. We’ve done enough for them; doing more would hurt the family's reputation more than it would help.”

“Well, Caleb,” said the Master, “I give you the best possible credit for your good advice on this occasion; but as I do not go to Ravenswood to seek a bride, dead or alive, I hope I shall choose a better stable for my horse than the Kelpie’s quicksand, and especially as I have always had a particular dread of it since the patrol of dragoons were lost there ten years since. My father and I saw them from the tower struggling against the advancing tide, and they were lost long before any help could reach them.”

“Well, Caleb,” said the Master, “I truly appreciate your good advice this time; but since I'm not heading to Ravenswood to find a bride, whether dead or alive, I hope to pick a better stable for my horse than the Kelpie’s quicksand, especially considering I've always had a strong fear of it ever since the patrol of dragoons got lost there ten years ago. My father and I watched from the tower as they struggled against the rising tide, and they were gone long before anyone could get to them.”

“And they deserved it weel, the southern loons!” said Caleb; “what had they ado capering on our sands, and hindering a wheen honest folk frae bringing on shore a drap brandy? I hae seen them that busy, that I wad hae fired the auld culverin or the demi-saker that’s on the south bartizan at them, only I was feared they might burst in the ganging aff.”

“And they really deserved it, those Southern fools!” said Caleb; “what were they doing prancing around on our shores, getting in the way of a few honest folks trying to bring some brandy ashore? I’ve seen them so busy that I would have fired the old cannon or the demi-cannon that's on the south battlement at them, only I was afraid it might backfire.”

Caleb’s brain was now fully engaged with abuse of the English soldiery and excisemen, so that his master found no great difficulty in escaping from him and rejoining his guests. All was now ready for their departure; and one of the Lord Keeper’s grooms having saddled the Master’s steed, they mounted in the courtyard.

Caleb was completely focused on badmouthing the English soldiers and tax collectors, which made it easy for his master to slip away and reunite with his guests. Everything was set for their departure, and one of the Lord Keeper’s grooms had saddled the Master’s horse, so they got on in the courtyard.

Caleb had, with much toil, opened the double doors of the outward gate, and thereat stationed himself, endeavouring, by the reverential, and at the same time consequential, air which he assumed, to supply, by his own gaunt, wasted, and thin person, the absence of a whole baronial establishment of porters, warders, and liveried menials.

Caleb had, after a lot of effort, opened the double doors of the outer gate, and there he stood, trying to fill the absence of an entire baronial staff of porters, guards, and dressed servants with his own gaunt, worn, and slim figure, adopting a respectful yet important demeanor.

The Keeper returned his deep reverence with a cordial farewell, stooping at the same time from his horse, and sliding into the butler’s hand the remuneration which in those days was always given by a departing guest to the domestics of the family where he had been entertained. Lucy smiled on the old man with her usual sweetness, bade him adieu, and deposited her guerdon with a grace of action and a gentleness of accent which could not have failed to have won the faithful retainer’s heart, but for Thomas the Rhymer, and the successful lawsuit against his master. As it was, he might have adopted the language of the Duke in “As You Like It”:

The Keeper returned his deep respect with a warm goodbye, bending down from his horse and slipping payment into the butler’s hand, which was traditionally given by a leaving guest to the household staff where they had stayed. Lucy smiled at the old man with her usual kindness, said farewell, and placed her gift with a graceful motion and a gentle voice that surely would have captured the loyal servant’s heart, if it weren't for Thomas the Rhymer and the successful lawsuit against his master. As it stood, he might have used the words of the Duke in “As You Like It”:

Thou wouldst have better pleased me with this deed,
If thou hadst told me of another father.

You would have pleased me more with this action,
If you had mentioned a different father.

Ravenswood was at the lady’s bridle-rein, encouraging her timidity, and guiding her horse carefully down the rocky path which led to the moor, when one of the servants announced from the rear that Caleb was calling loudly after them, desiring to speak with his master. Ravenswood felt it would look singular to neglect this summons, although inwardly cursing Caleb for his impertinent officiousness; therefore he was compelled to relinquish to Mr. Lockhard the agreeable duty in which he was engaged, and to ride back to the gate of the courtyard. Here he was beginning, somewhat peevishly, to ask Caleb the cause of his clamour, when the good old man exclaimed: “Whisht, sir!—whisht, and let me speak just ae word that I couldna say afore folk; there (putting into his lord’s hand the money he had just received)—there’s three gowd pieces; and ye’ll want siller up-bye yonder. But stay, whisht, now!” for the Master was beginning to exclaim against this transference, “never say a word, but just see to get them changed in the first town ye ride through, for they are bran new frae the mint, and ken-speckle a wee bit.”

Ravenswood was beside the lady’s horse, encouraging her shyness and carefully guiding her horse down the rocky path leading to the moor, when one of the servants called out from behind that Caleb was loudly asking for them and wanted to speak to his master. Ravenswood thought it would be unusual to ignore this request, even though he was inwardly cursing Caleb for his annoying eagerness; so he had to hand over to Mr. Lockhard the enjoyable task he was engaged in and ride back to the courtyard gate. As he started to ask Caleb somewhat irritably why he was making such a fuss, the good old man said: “Quiet, sir!—quiet, and let me say just one thing that I couldn’t say in front of others; here (handing his lordship the money he had just received)—here’s three gold pieces; and you’ll need cash up there. But wait, quiet now!” for the Master was beginning to protest against this transfer, “don’t say a word, just make sure to get them exchanged in the first town you pass through, because they are brand new from the mint and a little bit flashy.”

“You forget, Caleb,” said his master, striving to force back the money on his servant, and extricate the bridle from his hold—“you forget that I have some gold pieces left of my own. Keep these to yourself, my old friend; and, once more, good day to you. I assure you, I have plenty. You know you have managed that our living should cost us little or nothing.”

“You're forgetting, Caleb,” said his master, trying to push the money back onto his servant and get the bridle out of his grip—“you forget that I still have some gold pieces of my own. Keep this for yourself, my old friend; and once again, have a great day. I promise you, I have more than enough. You know you’ve made it so our living costs us very little or nothing at all.”

“Aweel,” said Caleb, “these will serve for you another time; but see ye hae eneugh, for, doubtless, for the credit of the family, there maun be some civility to the servants, and ye maun hae something to mak a show with when they say, ‘Master, will you bet a broad piece?’ Then ye maun tak out your purse, and say, ‘I carena if I do’; and tak care no to agree on the articles of the wager, and just put up your purse again, and——”

“Awell,” said Caleb, “these will be useful for you another time; but make sure you have enough, because, for the sake of the family’s reputation, you need to show some courtesy to the servants, and you need to have something to show when they ask, ‘Master, will you bet a broad piece?’ Then you should pull out your wallet and say, ‘I don’t care if I do’; and make sure not to agree on the terms of the bet, and just put your wallet away again, and——”

“This is intolerable, Caleb; I really must be gone.”

“This is unacceptable, Caleb; I really have to leave.”

“And you will go, then?” said Caleb, loosening his hold upon the Master’s cloak, and changing his didactics into a pathetic and mournful tone—“and you will go, for a’ I have told you about the prophecy, and the dead bride, and the Kelpie’s quicksand? Aweel! a wilful man maun hae his way: he that will to Cupar maun to Cupar. But pity of your life, sir, if ye be fowling or shooting in the Park, beware of drinking at the Mermaiden’s Well—He’s gane! he’s down the path arrow-flight after her! The head is as clean taen aff the Ravenswood family this day as I wad chap the head aff a sybo!”

“And you’re really going to leave?” said Caleb, loosening his grip on the Master’s cloak and shifting from a serious tone to a sad and mournful one. “And you really will go, despite everything I've told you about the prophecy, the dead bride, and the Kelpie’s quicksand? Well! A stubborn person will have their way: he who wants to go to Cupar will go to Cupar. But take care of your life, sir; if you’re hunting or shooting in the Park, watch out for drinking from the Mermaiden’s Well—He’s gone! He’s off down the path after her! The head of the Ravenswood family has been cleanly taken off today, just like I would chop the head off a spring onion!”

The old butler looked long after his master, often clearing away the dew as it rose to his eyes, that he might, as long as possible, distinguish his stately form from those of the other horsemen. “Close to her bridle-rein—ay, close to her bridle-rein! Wisely saith the holy man, ‘By this also you may know that woman hath dominion over all men’; and without this lass would not our ruin have been a’thegither fulfilled.”

The elderly butler watched his master for a long time, frequently wiping away the dew from his eyes so he could keep his master's figure distinct from the other riders for as long as possible. “Right by her bridle-rein—yes, right by her bridle-rein! The wise man says, ‘By this, you can also know that a woman has power over all men’; and without this girl, our destruction would have been completely inevitable.”

With a heart fraught with such sad auguries did Caleb return to his necessary duties at Wolf’s Crag, as soon as he could no longer distinguish the object of his anxiety among the group of riders, which diminished in the distance.

With a heavy heart filled with such sad omens, Caleb returned to his essential duties at Wolf’s Crag, as soon as he could no longer make out the source of his worries among the group of riders, which faded into the distance.

In the mean time the party pursued their route joyfully. Having once taken his resolution, the Master of Ravenswood was not of a character to hesitate or pause upon it. He abandoned himself to the pleasure he felt in Miss Ashton’s company, and displayed an assiduous gallantry which approached as nearly to gaiety as the temper of his mind and state of his family permitted. The Lord Keeper was much struck with his depth of observation, and the unusual improvement which he had derived from his studies. Of these accomplishments Sir William Ashton’s profession and habits of society rendered him an excellent judge; and he well knew how to appreciate a quality to which he himself was a total stranger—the brief and decided dauntlessness of the Master of Ravenswood’s fear. In his heart the Lord Keeper rejoiced at having conciliated an adversary so formidable, while, with a mixture of pleasure and anxiety, he anticipated the great things his young companion might achieve, were the breath of court-favour to fill his sails.

In the meantime, the group happily continued on their journey. Once he made his decision, the Master of Ravenswood was not the type to hesitate or second-guess himself. He let himself enjoy the time spent with Miss Ashton and showed a dedicated charm that came close to being cheerful, considering his mindset and his family's situation. The Lord Keeper was impressed by his keen insights and the unique knowledge he had gained from his studies. Given Sir William Ashton's profession and social circle, he was a great judge of such skills; he understood the value of something he himself lacked—the brief and unwavering courage of the Master of Ravenswood. Deep down, the Lord Keeper was glad to have won over such a formidable opponent while, with a mix of joy and concern, he looked forward to the great things his young companion could accomplish if he had the support of the court.

“What could she desire,” he thought, his mind always conjuring up opposition in the person of Lady Ashton to his new prevailing wish—“what could a woman desire in a match more than the sopiting of a very dangerous claim, and the alliance of a son-in-law, noble, brave, well-gifted, and highly connected; sure to float whenever the tide sets his way; strong, exactly where we are weak, in pedigree and in the temper of a swordsman? Sure, no reasonable woman would hesitate. But alas——!” Here his argument was stopped by the consciousness that Lady Ashton was not always reasonable, in his sense of the word. “To prefer some clownish Merse laird to the gallant young nobleman, and to the secure possession of Ravenswood upon terms of easy compromise—it would be the act of a madwoman!”

“What could she want?” he thought, his mind always imagining Lady Ashton opposing his new desire—“what could a woman possibly want in a match more than the ending of a serious claim, and the chance to marry a son-in-law who is noble, brave, talented, and well-connected; certain to succeed whenever circumstances favor him; strong exactly where we are weak, in lineage and in the fighting spirit? Surely, any reasonable woman wouldn’t hesitate. But alas——!” Here his argument was interrupted by the realization that Lady Ashton wasn’t always rational, at least not in his view. “To choose some simple Merse landowner over the charming young nobleman, and to secure Ravenswood with terms that are easy to negotiate—it would be the action of a madwoman!”

Thus pondered the veteran politician, until they reached Bittlebrains House, where it had been previously settled they were to dine and repose themselves, and prosecute their journey in the afternoon.

Thus thought the seasoned politician, until they arrived at Bittlebrains House, where it had already been decided they would have dinner and rest, and continue their journey in the afternoon.

They were received with an excess of hospitality; and the most marked attention was offered to the Master of Ravenswood, in particular, by their noble entertainers. The truth was, that Lord Bittlebrains had obtained his peerage by a good deal of plausibility, an art of building up a character for wisdom upon a very trite style of commonplace eloquence, a steady observation of the changes of the times, and the power of rendering certain political services to those who could best reward them. His lady and he, not feeling quite easy under their new honours, to which use had not adapted their feelings, were very desirous to procure the fraternal countenance of those who were born denizens of the regions into which they had been exalted from a lower sphere. The extreme attention which they paid to the Master of Ravenswood had its usual effect in exalting his importance in the eyes of the Lord Keeper, who, although he had a reasonable degree of contempt for Lord Bittlebrains’s general parts, entertained a high opinion of the acuteness of his judgment in all matters of self-interest.

They were welcomed with overwhelming hospitality, and the most noticeable attention was given to the Master of Ravenswood, especially by their noble hosts. The reality was that Lord Bittlebrains had gained his title through a good amount of charm, a skill for crafting a reputation for wisdom based on very ordinary rhetoric, a keen awareness of societal shifts, and the ability to provide certain political favors to those who could offer the best rewards. He and his wife, not quite comfortable with their new status, which didn’t match their feelings, were eager to gain the brotherly support of those who were naturally part of the elite circles they had recently entered. The extreme attention they showed to the Master of Ravenswood had the typical effect of boosting his importance in the eyes of the Lord Keeper, who, despite having a fair amount of disdain for Lord Bittlebrains's overall abilities, held a high regard for his sharp judgment in matters of personal gain.

“I wish Lady Ashton had seen this,” was his internal reflection; “no man knows so well as Bittlebrains on which side his bread is buttered; and he fawns on the Master like a beggar’s messan on a cook. And my lady, too, bringing forward her beetle-browed misses to skirl and play upon the virginals, as if she said, ‘Pick and choose.’ They are no more comparable to Lucy than an owl is to a cygnet, and so they may carry their black brows to a farther market.”

“I wish Lady Ashton had seen this,” he thought to himself; “no one knows better than Bittlebrains which way his bread is buttered, and he flatters the Master like a beggar’s dog on a cook. And my lady, too, showing off her scowling girls to screech and play on the harpsichord, as if she’s saying, ‘Pick and choose.’ They’re not even in the same league as Lucy—comparable to an owl and a swan—and they can take their dark brows elsewhere.”

The entertainment being ended, our travellers, who had still to measure the longest part of their journey, resumed their horses; and after the Lord Keeper, the Master, and the domestics had drunk doch-an-dorroch, or the stirrup-cup, in the liquors adapted to their various ranks, the cavalcade resumed its progress.

The entertainment over, our travelers, who still had to cover the longest part of their journey, got back on their horses. After the Lord Keeper, the Master, and the staff had enjoyed the doch-an-dorroch, or the stirrup cup, with drinks suited to their different ranks, the group continued on their way.

It was dark by the time they entered the avenue of Ravenswood Castle, a long straight line leading directly to the front of the house, flanked with huge elm-trees, which sighed to the night-wind, as if they compassionated the heir of their ancient proprietors, who now returned to their shades in the society, and almost in the retinue, of their new master. Some feelings of the same kind oppressed the mind of the Master himself. He gradually became silent, and dropped a little behind the lady, at whose bridle-rein he had hitherto waited with such devotion. He well recollected the period when, at the same hour in the evening, he had accompanied his father, as that nobleman left, never again to return to it, the mansion from which he derived his name and title. The extensive front of the old castle, on which he remembered having often looked back, was then “as black as mourning weed.” The same front now glanced with many lights, some throwing far forward into the night a fixed and stationary blaze, and others hurrying from one window to another, intimating the bustle and busy preparation preceding their arrival, which had been intimated by an avant-courier. The contrast pressed so strongly upon the Master’s heart as to awaken some of the sterner feelings with which he had been accustomed to regard the new lord of his paternal domain, and to impress his countenance with an air of severe gravity, when, alighted from his horse, he stood in the hall no longer his own, surrounded by the numerous menials of its present owner.

It was dark by the time they entered the avenue of Ravenswood Castle, a long, straight path leading directly to the front of the house, lined with huge elm trees that sighed in the night breeze, as if they sympathized with the heir of their ancient owners, who was now returning to their shadows, almost in the company of their new master. The Master himself felt a similar heaviness in his mind. He gradually fell silent and lagged a little behind the lady, at whose reins he had previously waited with such dedication. He clearly remembered the time when, at the same hour one evening, he had accompanied his father, as that nobleman left, never to return, the mansion from which he derived his name and title. The expansive front of the old castle, which he often looked back at, was then “as black as mourning cloth.” The same front now sparkled with numerous lights, some casting a steady glow into the night, and others darting from one window to another, indicating the hustle and bustle of the preparations for their arrival, which had been announced by a messenger. This contrast weighed heavily on the Master’s heart, stirring some of the harsher feelings he had harbored toward the new lord of his family estate and giving his face an expression of stern seriousness as he dismounted from his horse, standing in the hall no longer his own, surrounded by the many servants of its current owner.

The Lord Keeper, when about to welcome him with the cordiality which their late intercourse seemed to render proper, became aware of the change, refrained from his purpose, and only intimated the ceremony of reception by a deep reverence to his guest, seeming thus delicately to share the feelings which predominated on his brow.

The Lord Keeper, when he was about to greet him with the warmth that their recent interactions seemed to warrant, noticed the change, held back from his intention, and merely signaled the welcoming ceremony with a deep bow to his guest, subtly acknowledging the emotions that were evident on his face.

Two upper domestics, bearing each a huge pair of silver candlesticks, now marshalled the company into a large saloon, or withdrawing-room, where new alterations impressed upon Ravenswood the superior wealth of the present inhabitants of the castle. The mouldering tapestry, which, in his father’s time, had half covered the walls of this stately apartment, and half streamed from them in tatters, had given place to a complete finishing of wainscot, the cornice of which, as well as the frames of the various compartments, were ornamented with festoons of flowers and with birds, which, though carved in oak, seemed, such was the art of the chisel, actually to swell their throats and flutter their wings. Several old family portraits of armed heroes of the house of Ravenswood, together with a suit or two of old armour and some military weapons, had given place to those of King William and Queen Mary, or Sir Thomas Hope and Lord Stair, two distinguished Scottish lawyers. The pictures of the Lord Keeper’s father and mother were also to be seen; the latter, sour, shrewish, and solemn, in her black hood and close pinners, with a book of devotion in her hand; the former, exhibiting beneath a black silk Geneva cowl, or skull-cap, which sate as close to the head as if it had been shaven, a pinched, peevish, Puritanical set of features, terminating in a hungry, reddish, peaked beard, forming on the whole a countenance in the expression of which the hypocrite seemed to contend with the miser and the knave. “And it is to make room for such scarecrows as these,” thought Ravenswood, “that my ancestors have been torn down from the walls which they erected!” he looked at them again, and, as he looked, the recollection of Lucy Ashton, for she had not entered the apartment with them, seemed less lively in his imagination. There were also two or three Dutch drolleries, as the pictures of Ostade and Teniers were then termed, with one good painting of the Italian school. There was, besides, a noble full-length of the Lord Keeper in his robes of office, placed beside his lady in silk and ermine, a haughty beauty, bearing in her looks all the pride of the house of Douglas, from which she was descended. The painter, notwithstanding his skill, overcome by the reality, or, perhaps, from a suppressed sense of humour, had not been able to give the husband on the canvas that air of awful rule and right supremacy which indicates the full possession of domestic authority. It was obvious at the first glance that, despite mace and gold frogs, the Lord Keeper was somewhat henpecked. The floor of this fine saloon was laid with rich carpets, huge fires blazed in the double chimneys, and ten silver sconces, reflecting with their bright plates the lights which they supported, made the whole seem as brilliant as day.

Two servants, each carrying a large pair of silver candlesticks, led the group into a big drawing room, where the recent changes made Ravenswood acutely aware of the greater wealth of the castle's current residents. The decaying tapestry that had partially covered the walls in his father's time was gone, replaced with smooth wood paneling. The cornice and the frames of different sections were decorated with floral garlands and birds, which, despite being carved from oak, looked so lifelike that it seemed as if they were about to sing and take flight. The old family portraits of the Ravenswood military ancestors, along with a few suits of armor and some weapons, were swapped out for those of King William and Queen Mary, or Sir Thomas Hope and Lord Stair, two prominent Scottish lawyers. The pictures of the Lord Keeper’s parents were also visible; the mother appeared stern and crabby in her black hood and tight headdress, holding a book of prayers, while the father had a pinched, irritable Puritan face that peeked out from under a close-fitting black silk cap, topped off with a thin, reddish beard. His expression seemed to pittingly display a struggle between being a hypocrite, a miser, and a scoundrel. “And it’s to make room for such scarecrows as these,” Ravenswood thought, “that my ancestors have been taken down from the walls they built!” He looked at them again, and, as he did, the memory of Lucy Ashton, who hadn't come into the room with them, faded from his mind. There were also a few playful Dutch paintings by Ostade and Teniers, along with one impressive piece from the Italian school. Additionally, a magnificent full-length portrait of the Lord Keeper in his robes stood beside his wife, dressed in silk and ermine, who carried an air of pride associated with the house of Douglas, from which she came. Despite the artist's skills, he had failed to capture the Lord Keeper’s commanding presence that suggested he had full control of the household. At first glance, it was clear that, despite his mace and gold tassels, the Lord Keeper was somewhat dominated by his wife. The floor of this elegant drawing room was covered with rich carpets, large fires blazed in the double chimneys, and ten silver sconces reflected the light from their shiny surfaces, making the entire room feel as bright as day.

“Would you choose any refreshment, Master?” said Sir William Ashton, not unwilling to break the awkward silence.

“Would you like something to drink, Master?” Sir William Ashton asked, eager to break the uncomfortable silence.


He received no answer, the Master being so busily engaged in marking the various changes which had taken place in the apartment, that he hardly heard the Lord Keeper address him. A repetition of the offer of refreshment, with the addition, that the family meal would be presently ready, compelled his attention, and reminded him that he acted a weak, perhaps even a ridiculous, part in suffering himself to be overcome by the circumstances in which he found himself. He compelled himself, therefore, to enter into conversation with Sir William Ashton, with as much appearance of indifference as he could well command.

He got no response, as the Master was so focused on noting the different changes that had occurred in the room that he barely heard the Lord Keeper speaking to him. When the offer of refreshments was repeated, along with a mention that the family meal would be ready soon, it caught his attention and made him realize that he was acting weak, maybe even foolish, by letting himself be overwhelmed by his situation. So, he forced himself to engage in conversation with Sir William Ashton, trying to appear as indifferent as possible.

“You will not be surprised, Sir William, that I am interested in the changes you have made for the better in this apartment. In my father’s time, after our misfortunes compelled him to live in retirement, it was little used, except by me as a play-room, when the weather would not permit me to go abroad. In that recess was my little workshop, where I treasured the few carpenters’ tools which old Caleb procured for me, and taught me how to use; there, in yonder corner, under that handsome silver sconce, I kept my fishing-rods and hunting poles, bows and arrows.”

“You probably won’t be surprised, Sir William, that I’m interested in the improvements you’ve made to this apartment. Back in my father’s day, after our misfortunes forced him into retirement, this space wasn’t used much, except by me as a playroom when the weather kept me indoors. In that nook was my little workshop, where I cherished the few carpenter’s tools that old Caleb got for me and taught me how to use; over there, in that corner, under that beautiful silver sconce, I stored my fishing rods, hunting poles, bows, and arrows.”

“I have a young birkie,” said the Lord Keeper, willing to change the tone of the conversation, “of much the same turn. He is never happy save when he is in the field. I wonder he is not here. Here, Lockhard; send William Shaw for Mr. Henry. I suppose he is, as usual, tied to Lucy’s apron-string; that foolish girl, Master, draws the whole family after her at her pleasure.”

“I have a young guy,” said the Lord Keeper, looking to change the subject, “who's pretty much the same way. He’s only happy when he’s outdoors. I’m surprised he isn’t here. Here, Lockhard; send William Shaw to get Mr. Henry. I guess he’s, as usual, stuck to Lucy’s side; that silly girl, Master, has the whole family wrapped around her finger whenever she wants.”

Even this allusion to his daughter, though artfully thrown out, did not recall Ravenswood from his own topic. “We were obliged to leave,” he said, “some armour and portraits in this apartment; may I ask where they have been removed to?”

Even this reference to his daughter, although skillfully mentioned, didn’t distract Ravenswood from what he was saying. “We had to leave,” he said, “some armor and portraits in this room; can you tell me where they’ve been moved to?”

“Why,” answered the Keeper, with some hesitation, “the room was fitted up in our absence, and cedant arma togæ is the maxim of lawyers, you know: I am afraid it has been here somewhat too literally complied with. I hope—I believe they are safe, I am sure I gave orders; may I hope that when they are recovered, and put in proper order, you will do me the honour to accept them at my hand, as an atonement for their accidental derangement?”

“Why,” said the Keeper, hesitantly, “the room was set up while we were away, and cedant arma togæ is the principle among lawyers, you know: I’m afraid it’s been taken a bit too literally here. I hope—I believe they’re safe; I’m sure I gave orders. Can I hope that when they are found and put back in order, you will do me the honor of accepting them from me as an apology for their unintentional mix-up?”

The Master of Ravenswood bowed stiffly, and, with folded arms, again resumed his survey of the room.

The Master of Ravenswood bowed rigidly and, with his arms crossed, continued to examine the room.

Henry, a spoilt boy of fifteen, burst into the room, and ran up to his father. “Think of Lucy, papa; she has come home so cross and so fractious, that she will not go down to the stable to see my new pony, that Bob Wilson brought from the Mull of Galloway.”

Henry, a spoiled fifteen-year-old, burst into the room and ran over to his dad. “Think about Lucy, Dad; she came home so grumpy and irritable that she won’t go down to the stable to see my new pony that Bob Wilson brought from the Mull of Galloway.”

“I think you were very unreasonable to ask her,” said the Keeper.

“I think it was really unfair to ask her,” said the Keeper.

“Then you are as cross as she is,” answered the boy; “but when mamma comes home, she’ll claw up both your mittens.”

“Then you’re as angry as she is,” replied the boy; “but when mom gets home, she’ll mess up both your mittens.”

“Hush your impertinence, you little forward imp!” said his father; “where is your tutor?”

“Hush your rudeness, you little bold imp!” said his father; “where's your tutor?”

“Gone to a wedding at Dunbar; I hope he’ll get a haggis to his dinner”; and he began to sing the old Scottish song:

“Gone to a wedding at Dunbar; I hope he gets haggis for his dinner”; and he started to sing the old Scottish song:

“There was a haggis in Dunbar,
Fal de ral, &c.
Mony better and few waur,
Fal de ral,” &c.

“There was a haggis in Dunbar,
Fal de ral, &c.
Many better and few worse,
Fal de ral,” &c.

“I am much obliged to Mr. Cordery for his attentions,” said the Lord Keeper; “and pray who has had the charge of you while I was away, Mr. Henry?”

“I really appreciate Mr. Cordery for his help,” said the Lord Keeper; “and may I ask who has been taking care of you while I was gone, Mr. Henry?”

“Norman and Bob Wilson, forbye my own self.”

“Norman and Bob Wilson, along with me.”

“A groom and a gamekeeper, and your own silly self—proper guardians for a young advocate! Why, you will never know any statutes but those against shooting red-deer, killing salmon, and——”

“A groom and a gamekeeper, and your own silly self—ideal guardians for a young lawyer! Honestly, you'll never learn any laws except those against shooting red deer, killing salmon, and——”

“And speaking of red-game,” said the young scapegrace, interrupting his father without scruple or hesitation, “Norman has shot a buck, and I showed the branches to Lucy, and she says they have but eight tynes; and she says that you killed a deer with Lord Bittlebrains’s hounds, when you were west away, and, do you know, she says it had ten tynes; is it true?”

“And speaking of red-game,” said the young troublemaker, interrupting his father without a second thought, “Norman shot a buck, and I showed the antlers to Lucy, and she said they only have eight points; she also mentioned that you killed a deer with Lord Bittlebrains’s hounds when you were out west, and guess what, she said it had ten points; is that true?”

“It may have had twenty, Henry, for what I know; but if you go to that gentleman, he can tell you all about it. Go speak to him, Henry; it is the Master of Ravenswood.”

“It might have had twenty, Henry, for all I know; but if you ask that gentleman, he can tell you everything about it. Go talk to him, Henry; it’s the Master of Ravenswood.”

While they conversed thus, the father and son were standing by the fire; and the Master, having walked towards the upper end of the apartment, stood with his back towards them, apparently engaged in examining one of the paintings. The boy ran up to him, and pulled him by the skirt of the coat with the freedom of a spoilt child, saying, “I say, sir, if you please to tell me——” but when the Master turned round, and Henry saw his face, he became suddenly and totally disconcerted; walked two or three steps backward, and still gazed on Ravenswood with an air of fear and wonder, which had totally banished from his features their usual expression of pert vivacity.

While they chatted, the father and son stood by the fire. The Master walked to the far end of the room, facing away from them, seemingly focused on examining one of the paintings. The boy ran over to him and tugged at the back of his coat like a spoiled child, saying, “Excuse me, sir, could you please tell me——” but when the Master turned around and Henry saw his face, he instantly became completely flustered. He took a couple of steps back and continued to stare at Ravenswood with a mix of fear and awe, completely losing the usual confident spark in his expression.

“Come to me, young gentleman,” said the Master, “and I will tell you all I know about the hunt.”

“Come here, young man,” said the Master, “and I’ll share everything I know about the hunt.”

“Go to the gentleman, Henry,” said his father; “you are not used to be so shy.”

“Go talk to the guy, Henry,” said his father; “you’re not usually this shy.”

But neither invitation nor exhortation had any effect on the boy. On the contrary, he turned round as soon as he had completed his survey of the Master, and walking as cautiously as if he had been treading upon eggs, he glided back to his father, and pressed as close to him as possible. Ravenswood, to avoid hearing the dispute betwixt the father and the overindulged boy, thought it most polite to turn his face once more towards the pictures, and pay no attention to what they said.

But neither the invitation nor the urging had any effect on the boy. Instead, he turned around as soon as he finished looking at the Master, and walked as carefully as if he were stepping on eggs. He quietly made his way back to his father and pressed as close to him as he could. Ravenswood, wanting to avoid hearing the argument between the father and the spoiled boy, thought it would be polite to turn his face back toward the pictures and ignore what they were saying.

“Why do you not speak to the Master, you little fool?” said the Lord Keeper.

“Why don’t you talk to the Master, you little fool?” said the Lord Keeper.

“I am afraid,” said Henry, in a very low tone of voice.

“I’m afraid,” Henry said, in a very quiet voice.

“Afraid, you goose!” said his father, giving him a slight shake by the collar. “What makes you afraid?”

“Scared, you goof!” said his father, giving him a gentle shake by the collar. “What are you scared of?”

“What makes him to like the picture of Sir Malise Ravenswood then?” said the boy, whispering.

“What makes him like the picture of Sir Malise Ravenswood then?” said the boy, whispering.

“What picture, you natural?” said his father. “I used to think you only a scapegrace, but I believe you will turn out a born idiot.”

“What picture, you fool?” said his father. “I used to think you were just a troublemaker, but I believe you're going to turn out to be a complete idiot.”

“I tell you, it is the picture of old Malise of Ravenswood, and he is as like it as if he had loupen out of the canvas; and it is up in the old baron’s hall that the maids launder the clothes in; and it has armour, and not a coat like the gentleman; and he has not a beard and whiskers like the picture; and it has another kind of thing about the throat, and no band-strings as he has; and——”

“I tell you, it’s the portrait of old Malise of Ravenswood, and he looks exactly like he just stepped out of the canvas; it’s hanging in the old baron’s hall where the maids wash the clothes; and he’s wearing armor, not a coat like the gentleman; he doesn’t have a beard and whiskers like the painting; and there’s a different style around the throat, without the ties that he has; and——”

“And why should not the gentleman be like his ancestor, you silly boy?” said the Lord Keeper.

“And why shouldn’t the gentleman be like his ancestor, you silly boy?” said the Lord Keeper.

“Ay; but if he is come to chase us all out of the castle,” said the boy, “and has twenty men at his back in disguise; and is come to say, with a hollow voice, I bide my time; and is to kill you on the hearth as Malise did the other man, and whose blood is still to be seen!”

“Yeah, but if he’s come to chase us all out of the castle,” said the boy, “and has twenty guys disguised as him; and is here to say, with a spooky voice, I bide my time; and is going to kill you by the fire like Malise did the other guy, and whose blood is still visible!”

“Hush! nonsense!” said the Lord Keeper, not himself much pleased to hear these disagreeable coincidences forced on his notice. “Master, here comes Lockhard to say supper is served.”

“Hush! Nonsense!” said the Lord Keeper, not very happy to have these unpleasant coincidences brought to his attention. “Master, here comes Lockhard to announce that supper is ready.”

And, at the same instant, Lucy entered at another door, having changed her dress since her return. The exquisite feminine beauty of her countenance, now shaded only by a profusion of sunny tresses; the sylph-like form, disencumbered of her heavy riding-skirt and mantled in azure silk; the grace of her manner and of her smile, cleared, with a celerity which surprised the Master himself, all the gloomy and unfavourable thoughts which had for some time overclouded his fancy. In those features, so simply sweet, he could trace no alliance with the pinched visage of the peak-bearded, black-capped Puritan, or his starched, withered spouse, with the craft expressed in the Lord Keeper’s countenance, or the haughtiness which predominated in that of his lady; and, while he gazed on Lucy Ashton, she seemed to be an angel descended on earth, unallied to the coarser mortals among whom she deigned to dwell for a season. Such is the power of beauty over a youthful and enthusiastic fancy.

And, at that very moment, Lucy walked in through another door, having changed her outfit since getting back. The stunning beauty of her face, now framed by a cascade of sun-kissed hair; her graceful figure, free from her heavy riding skirt and wrapped in blue silk; the elegance of her demeanor and her smile quickly wiped away all the dark and negative thoughts that had worried the Master for a while. In her soft features, he couldn’t see any connection to the tight-faced, beard-wearing Puritan with his black cap, or his stiff, withered wife, with the cunning shown in the Lord Keeper’s expression, or the arrogance that marked his lady’s face; and, as he looked at Lucy Ashton, she seemed like an angel who had come down to earth, unconnected to the rougher people among whom she chose to spend some time. Such is the power of beauty over a young and eager imagination.

CHAPTER XIX.

I do too ill in this,
And must not think but that a parent’s plaint
Will move the heavens to pour forth misery
Upon the head of disobediency.
Yet reason tells us, parents are o’erseen,
When with too strict a rein they do hold in
Their child’s affection, and control that love,
Which the high powers divine inspire them with.

The Hog hath lost his Pearl.

I struggle with this too,
And can’t help but believe that a parent’s cries
Will make the heavens unleash suffering
On the head of disobedience.
Yet reason shows us that parents can be blind,
When they hold back
Their child’s love too tightly and try to control
The affection that divine powers inspire.

The Hog has lost his Pearl.

The feast of Ravenswood Castle was as remarkable for its profusion as that of Wolf’s Crag had been for its ill-veiled penury. The Lord Keeper might feel internal pride at the contrast, but he had too much tact to suffer it to appear. On the contrary, he seemed to remember with pleasure what he called Mr. Balderstone’s bachelor’s meal, and to be rather disgusted than pleased with the display upon his own groaning board.

The feast at Ravenswood Castle was just as impressive for its abundance as the one at Wolf’s Crag had been for its obvious lack. The Lord Keeper might take pride in the difference, but he was too diplomatic to show it. Instead, he appeared to fondly recall what he referred to as Mr. Balderstone’s bachelor meal, and he seemed more annoyed than pleased by the lavish spread on his own overflowing table.

“We do these things,” he said, “because others do them; but I was bred a plain man at my father’s frugal table, and I should like well would my wife and family permit me to return to my sowens and my poor-man-of-mutton.”

“We do these things,” he said, “because others do them; but I was raised a simple man at my father's modest table, and I would really like it if my wife and family would let me return to my porridge and my mutton stew.”

This was a little overstretched. The Master only answered, “That different ranks—I mean,” said he, correcting himself, “different degrees of wealth require a different style of housekeeping.”

This was a bit much. The Master simply replied, “Different social classes—I mean,” he quickly corrected himself, “different levels of wealth need a different way of managing a home.”

This dry remark put a stop to further conversation on the subject, nor is it necessary to record that which was substituted in its place. The evening was spent with freedom, and even cordiality; and Henry had so far overcome his first apprehensions, that he had settled a party for coursing a stag with the representative and living resemblance of grim Sir Malise of Ravenswood, called the Revenger. The next morning was the appointed time. It rose upon active sportsmen and successful sport. The banquet came in course; and a pressing invitation to tarry yet another day was given and accepted. This Ravenswood had resolved should be the last of his stay; but he recollected he had not yet visited the ancient and devoted servant of his house, Old Alice, and it was but kind to dedicate one morning to the gratification of so ancient an adherent.

This dry comment ended any further discussion on the topic, and it’s not necessary to note what was talked about instead. The evening was enjoyable and even friendly; Henry had managed to get over his initial worries enough to organize a party to hunt a stag with the representative and living likeness of grim Sir Malise of Ravenswood, known as the Revenger. The next morning was the scheduled time. It began with active sportsmen and successful hunting. The feast followed; and a strong invitation to stay another day was extended and accepted. This Ravenswood had decided it would be his last day, but he remembered he hadn’t yet visited the old and loyal servant of his family, Old Alice, and it seemed kind to set aside one morning to honor such a devoted supporter.

To visit Alice, therefore, a day was devoted, and Lucy was the Master’s guide upon the way. Henry, it is true, accompanied them, and took from their walk the air of a tête-à-tête, while, in reality, it was little else, considering the variety of circumstances which occurred to prevent the boy from giving the least attention to what passed between his companions. Now a rook settled on a branch within shot; anon a hare crossed their path, and Henry and his greyhound went astray in pursuit of it; then he had to hold a long conversation with the forester, which detained him a while behind his companions; and again he went to examine the earth of a badger, which carried him on a good way before them.

To visit Alice, a day was set aside, and Lucy was the Master's guide along the way. Henry, it’s true, joined them and made it feel like a private conversation, but really, it was hardly that, given all the things that happened to keep him from paying any attention to what his companions were saying. First, a rook landed on a branch within reach; then a hare crossed their path, and Henry and his greyhound got distracted chasing after it; afterward, he had to have a lengthy chat with the forester, which held him back from his companions for a bit; and again, he went off to check out a badger's den, which took him quite a distance ahead of them.

The conversation betwixt the Master and his sister, meanwhile, took an interesting, and almost a confidential, turn. She could not help mentioning her sense of the pain he must feel in visiting scenes so well known to him, bearing now an aspect so different; and so gently was her sympathy expressed, that Ravenswood felt it for a moment as a full requital of all his misfortunes. Some such sentiment escaped him, which Lucy heard with more of confusion than displeasure; and she may be forgiven the imprudence of listening to such language, considering that the situation in which she was placed by her father seemed to authorise Ravenswood to use it. Yet she made an effort to turn the conversation, and she succeeded; for the Master also had advanced farther than he intended, and his conscience had instantly checked him when he found himself on the verge of speaking of love to the daughter of Sir William Ashton.

The conversation between the Master and his sister, meanwhile, took an interesting and almost personal turn. She couldn’t help but mention how much pain he must feel visiting places so familiar to him, now looking so different; and her sympathy was expressed so gently that Ravenswood felt it for a moment as a complete acknowledgment of all his troubles. Some sentiment like that slipped out of him, which Lucy heard with more confusion than annoyance; and she could be forgiven for the imprudence of listening to such words, considering that the situation her father put her in seemed to allow Ravenswood to say it. Still, she made an effort to change the subject, and she succeeded; for the Master had also gone further than he intended, and his conscience immediately held him back when he realized he was about to speak of love to the daughter of Sir William Ashton.

They now approached the hut of Old Alice, which had of late been rendered more comfortable, and presented an appearance less picturesque, perhaps, but far neater than before. The old woman was on her accustomed seat beneath the weeping birch, basking, with the listless enjoyment of age and infirmity, in the beams of the autumn sun. At the arrival of her visitors she turned her head towards them. “I hear your step, Miss Ashton,” she said, “but the gentleman who attends you is not my lord, your father.”

They made their way to Old Alice's cabin, which had recently become more comfortable, looking less charming maybe, but much neater than before. The old woman was sitting in her usual spot under the weeping birch, enjoying the autumn sun with a relaxed appreciation that comes with age and frailty. When her visitors arrived, she turned her head toward them. “I hear your footsteps, Miss Ashton,” she said, “but the gentleman with you isn’t my lord, your father.”

“And why should you think so, Alice?” said Lucy; “or how is it possible for you to judge so accurately by the sound of a step, on this firm earth, and in the open air?”

“And why do you think that, Alice?” said Lucy; “or how can you judge so accurately just by the sound of footsteps on this solid ground and in the fresh air?”

“My hearing, my child, has been sharpened by my blindness, and I can now draw conclusions from the slightest sounds, which formerly reached my ears as unheeded as they now approach yours. Necessity is a stern but an excellent schoolmistress, and she that has lost her sight must collect her information from other sources.”

“My hearing, my child, has become sharper because of my blindness, and I can now draw conclusions from the faintest sounds, which used to go unnoticed by me just like they do with you now. Necessity is a tough but great teacher, and someone who has lost their sight must gather information from other sources.”

“Well, you hear a man’s step, I grant it,” said Lucy; “but why, Alice, may it not be my father’s?”

“Well, you can hear a man walking, I admit,” said Lucy; “but why, Alice, couldn’t it be my dad’s?”

“The pace of age, my love, is timid and cautious: the foot takes leave of the earth slowly, and is planted down upon it with hesitation; it is the hasty and determined step of youth that I now hear, and—could I give credit to so strange a thought—I should say is was the step of a Ravenswood.”

“The pace of age, my love, is slow and careful: the foot leaves the ground gently and is placed back down with uncertainty; it is the quick and assertive step of youth that I now hear, and—if I could believe such a strange thought—I would say it was the step of a Ravenswood.”

“This is indeed,” said Ravenswood, “an acuteness of organ which I could not have credited had I not witnessed it. I am indeed the Master of Ravenswood, Alice,—the son of your old master.”

“This is really,” said Ravenswood, “a sharpness of perception that I couldn’t have believed if I hadn’t seen it myself. I am indeed the Master of Ravenswood, Alice—the son of your former master.”

“You!” said the old woman, with almost a scream of surprise—“you the Master of Ravenswood—here—in this place, and thus accompanied! I cannot believe it. Let me pass my old hand over your face, that my touch may bear witness to my ears.”

“You!” said the old woman, almost screaming in surprise—“you’re the Master of Ravenswood—here—in this place, and with these people! I can’t believe it. Let me pass my old hand over your face, so my touch can confirm what my ears heard.”

The Master sate down beside her on the earthen bank, and permitted her to touch his features with her trembling hand.

The Master sat down next to her on the dirt bank and allowed her to touch his face with her shaking hand.

“It is indeed!” she said—“it is the features as well as the voice of Ravenswood—the high lines of pride, as well as the bold and haughty tone. But what do you here, Master of Ravenswood?—what do you in your enemy’s domain, and in company with his child?” As Old Alice spoke, her face kindled, as probably that of an ancient feudal vassal might have done in whose presence his youthful liege-lord had showed some symptom of degenerating from the spirit of his ancestors.

“It really is!” she said. “It’s the looks as well as the voice of Ravenswood—the strong lines of pride, as well as the bold and arrogant tone. But what are you doing here, Master of Ravenswood? What brings you to your enemy’s territory, and in the company of his child?” As Old Alice spoke, her face lit up, probably like that of an old feudal vassal witnessing his young lord showing signs of straying from the spirit of his ancestors.

“The Master of Ravenswood,” said Lucy, who liked not the tone of this expostulation, and was desirous to abridge it, “is upon a visit to my father.”

“The Master of Ravenswood,” said Lucy, who didn’t like the tone of this complaint and wanted to cut it short, “is visiting my father.”

“Indeed!” said the old blind woman, in an accent of surprise.

“Really!” said the old blind woman, sounding surprised.

“I knew,” continued Lucy, “I should do him a pleasure by conducting him to your cottage.”

“I knew,” continued Lucy, “I would be doing him a favor by taking him to your cottage.”

“Where, to say the truth, Alice,” said Ravenswood, “I expected a more cordial reception.”

“Honestly, Alice,” said Ravenswood, “I was hoping for a warmer welcome.”

“It is most wonderful!” said the old woman, muttering to herself; “but the ways of Heaven are not like our ways, and its judgments are brought about by means far beyond our fathoming. Hearken, young man,” she said; “your fathers were implacable, but they were honourable, foes; they sought not to ruin their enemies under the mask of hospitality. What have you to do with Lucy Ashton? why should your steps move in the same footpath with hers? why should your voice sound in the same chord and time with those of Sir William Ashton’s daughter? Young man, he who aims at revenge by dishonourable means——”

“It’s truly amazing!” said the old woman, muttering to herself; “but the ways of Heaven aren’t like ours, and its judgments come about through means that are beyond our understanding. Listen, young man,” she said; “your fathers were relentless, but they were honorable enemies; they didn’t try to destroy their opponents under the guise of friendliness. What do you have to do with Lucy Ashton? Why should you walk the same path as her? Why should your voice resonate in the same tune and timing as that of Sir William Ashton’s daughter? Young man, those who seek revenge through dishonorable means——”

“Be silent, woman!” said Ravenswood, sternly; “is it the devil that prompts your voice? Know that this young lady has not on earth a friend who would venture farther to save her from injury or from insult.”

“Be quiet, woman!” Ravenswood said firmly. “Is it the devil that’s making you speak? Know that this young lady has no friend on this earth who would go further to protect her from harm or disrespect.”

“And is it even so?” said the old woman, in an altered but melancholy tone, “then God help you both!”

“And is that really the case?” said the old woman, in a changed but sad tone, “then God help you both!”

“Amen! Alice,” said Lucy, who had not comprehended the import of what the blind woman had hinted, “and send you your senses, Alice, and your good humour. If you hold this mysterious language, instead of welcoming your friends, they will think of you as other people do.”

“Amen! Alice,” said Lucy, who hadn’t understood what the blind woman had hinted at, “and may your senses and good humor come back, Alice. If you use this mysterious language instead of welcoming your friends, they’ll think of you like everyone else does.”

“And how do other people think?” said Ravenswood, for he also began to believe the old woman spoke with incoherence.

“And how do other people think?” said Ravenswood, as he started to think the old woman was talking nonsense.

“They think,” said Henry Ashton, who came up at that moment, and whispered into Ravenswood’s ear, “that she is a witch, that should have been burned with them that suffered at Haddington.”

“They think,” said Henry Ashton, who arrived at that moment and whispered into Ravenswood’s ear, “that she’s a witch who should have been burned along with those who suffered at Haddington.”

“What is it you say?” said Alice, turning towards the boy, her sightless visage inflamed with passion; “that I am a witch, and ought to have suffered with the helpless old wretches who were murdered at Haddington?”

“What did you say?” Alice asked, turning to the boy, her blind face burning with anger. “That I’m a witch and should have suffered alongside the helpless old people who were killed at Haddington?”

“Hear to that now,” again whispered Henry, “and me whispering lower than a wren cheeps!”

“Hear that now,” Henry whispered again, “and I'm whispering softer than a wren chirps!”

“If the usurer, and the oppressor, and the grinder of the poor man’s face, and the remover of ancient landmarks, and the subverter of ancient houses, were at the same stake with me, I could say, ‘Light the fire, in God’s name!’”

“If the moneylender, the oppressor, the one who grinds the faces of the poor, the one who moves ancient boundaries, and the one who destroys old homes, were facing the same fate as me, I could say, ‘Light the fire, in God’s name!’”

“This is dreadful,” said Lucy; “I have never seen the poor deserted woman in this state of mind; but age and poverty can ill bear reproach. Come, Henry, we will leave her for the present; she wishes to speak with the Master alone. We will walk homeward, and rest us,” she added, looking at Ravenswood, “by the Mermaiden’s Well.”

“This is awful,” said Lucy; “I’ve never seen the poor abandoned woman like this; but age and poverty can’t handle blame very well. Come on, Henry, let’s leave her for now; she wants to talk to the Master alone. We’ll walk home and take a break,” she said, looking at Ravenswood, “by the Mermaiden’s Well.”

“And Alice,” said the boy, “if you know of any hare that comes through among the deer, and makes them drop their calves out of season, you may tell her, with my compliments to command, that if Norman has not got a silver bullet ready for her, I’ll lend him one of my doublet-buttons on purpose.”

“And Alice,” said the boy, “if you know of any hare that comes through among the deer and makes them drop their calves out of season, you can tell her, with my compliments, that if Norman doesn’t have a silver bullet ready for her, I’ll lend him one of my doublet-buttons for that.”

Alice made no answer till she was aware that the sister and brother were out of hearing. She then said to Ravenswood: “And you, too, are angry with me for my love? It is just that strangers should be offended, but you, too, are angry!”

Alice didn't respond until she realized that the sister and brother were out of earshot. She then said to Ravenswood, "And you’re angry with me for my love as well? It's understandable that strangers would be offended, but you are upset too!"

“I am not angry, Alice,” said the Master, “only surprised that you, whose good sense I have heard so often praised, should give way to offensive and unfounded suspicions.”

“I’m not angry, Alice,” said the Master, “just surprised that you, whose good judgment I’ve heard praised so often, would give in to offensive and baseless doubts.”

“Offensive!” said Alice. “Ay, trust is ever offensive; but, surely, not unfounded.”

“Offensive!” said Alice. “Yeah, trust can be offensive, but it’s definitely not without reason.”

“I tell you, dame, most groundless,” replied Ravenswood.

“I’m telling you, lady, that’s completely unfounded,” replied Ravenswood.

“Then the world has changed its wont, and the Ravenswoods their hereditary temper, and the eyes of Old Alice’s understanding are yet more blind than those of her countenance. When did a Ravenswood seek the house of his enemy but with the purpose of revenge? and hither are you come, Edgar Ravenswood, either in fatal anger or in still more fatal love.”

“Then the world has changed, and the Ravenswoods have changed their usual ways, and Old Alice’s understanding is even more blind than her sight. When has a Ravenswood gone to his enemy’s house except to seek revenge? And here you are, Edgar Ravenswood, either in deadly anger or in an even more deadly love.”

“In neither,” said Ravenswood, “I give you mine honour—I mean, I assure you.”

“In neither,” said Ravenswood, “I swear to you—I mean, I promise you.”

Alice could not see his blushing cheek, but she noticed his hesitation, and that he retracted the pledge which he seemed at first disposed to attach to his denial.

Alice couldn't see his blushing cheek, but she noticed his hesitation and that he withdrew the promise he initially seemed willing to connect to his denial.

“It is so, then,” she said, “and therefore she is to tarry by the Mermaiden’s Well! Often has it been called a place fatal to the race of Ravenswood—often has it proved so; but never was it likely to verify old sayings as much as on this day.”

“It is true, then,” she said, “and that's why she has to wait by the Mermaiden’s Well! It has often been called a place that brings doom to the Ravenswood family—it's often proven to be so; but never has it seemed more likely to confirm old legends than it does today.”

“You drive me to madness, Alice,” said Ravenswood; “you are more silly and more superstitious than old Balderstone. Are you such a wretched Christian as to suppose I would in the present day levy war against the Ashton family, as was the sanguinary custom in elder times? or do you suppose me so foolish, that I cannot walk by a young lady’s side without plunging headlong in love with her?”

“You're driving me crazy, Alice,” Ravenswood said. “You're even sillier and more superstitious than old Balderstone. Are you really such a terrible Christian that you think I would wage war against the Ashton family today, like they did back in the day? Or do you really think I'm so foolish that I can't walk next to a young lady without falling madly in love with her?”

“My thoughts,” replied Alice, “are my own; and if my mortal sight is closed to objects present with me, it may be I can look with more steadiness into future events. Are you prepared to sit lowest at the board which was once your father’s own, unwillingly, as a connexion and ally of his proud successor? Are you ready to live on his bounty; to follow him in the bye-paths of intrigue and chicane, which none can better point out to you; to gnaw the bones of his prey when he has devoured the substance? Can you say as Sir William Ashton says, think as he thinks, vote as he votes, and call your father’s murderer your worshipful father-in-law and revered patron? Master of Ravenswood, I am the eldest servant of your house, and I would rather see you shrouded and coffined!”

“My thoughts,” replied Alice, “are my own; and if I can’t see the things around me, maybe I can focus more clearly on what’s to come. Are you ready to sit at the lowest position at the table that used to belong to your father, reluctantly, as a connection and ally of his arrogant successor? Are you prepared to live off his generosity, to follow him down the shady paths of intrigue and deceit that he knows better than anyone else; to pick at the leftovers of his conquests once he’s taken the main prize? Can you echo what Sir William Ashton says, think as he thinks, vote as he votes, and refer to your father’s murderer as your honorable father-in-law and respected benefactor? Master of Ravenswood, I am the oldest servant of your family, and I would rather see you buried!”

The tumult in Ravenswood’s mind was uncommonly great; she struck upon and awakened a chord which he had for some time successfully silenced. He strode backwards and forwards through the little garden with a hasty pace; and at length checking himself, and stopping right opposite to Alice, he exclaimed: “Woman! on the verge of the grave, dare you urge the son of your master to blood and to revenge?”

The chaos in Ravenswood's mind was unusually intense; he stumbled upon and stirred up a feeling he had been able to suppress for quite a while. He paced back and forth in the small garden quickly; and finally, stopping himself and standing right in front of Alice, he shouted: “Woman! On the brink of death, do you dare urge your master's son to violence and vengeance?”

“God forbid!” said Alice, solemnly; “and therefore I would have you depart these fatal bounds, where your love, as well as your hatred, threatens sure mischief, or at least disgrace, both to yourself and others. I would shield, were it in the power of this withered hand, the Ashtons from you, and you from them, and both from their own passions. You can have nothing—ought to have nothing, in common with them. Begone from among them; and if God has destined vengeance on the oppressor’s house, do not you be the instrument.”

“God forbid!” Alice said seriously. “That’s why I want you to leave this dangerous place, where your love and hatred could cause real harm, or at least shame, to yourself and others. If I could, I would protect the Ashtons from you, you from them, and both from their own desires. You shouldn’t have anything—shouldn’t share anything—with them. Leave them behind; and if God has planned to punish the oppressor’s house, don’t let it be through you.”

“I will think on what you have said, Alice,” said Ravenswood, more composedly. “I believe you mean truly and faithfully by me, but you urge the freedom of an ancient domestic somewhat too far. But farewell; and if Heaven afford me better means, I will not fail to contribute to your comfort.”

“I'll consider what you've said, Alice,” Ravenswood replied calmly. “I know you mean well and sincerely care about me, but you push the idea of letting an old housekeeper have too much freedom. But goodbye for now; and if I find better ways to help, I won’t hesitate to support your comfort.”

He attempted to put a piece of gold into her hand, which she refused to receive; and, in the slight struggle attending his wish to force it upon her, it dropped to the earth.

He tried to place a piece of gold in her hand, but she refused to take it. In the brief struggle that followed his attempt to press it on her, it fell to the ground.

“Let it remain an instant on the ground,” said Alice, as the Master stooped to raise it; “and believe me, that piece of gold is an emblem of her whom you love; she is as precious, I grant, but you must stoop even to abasement before you can win her. For me, I have as little to do with gold as with earthly passions; and the best news that the world has in store for me is, that Edgar Ravenswood is an hundred miles distant from the seat of his ancestors, with the determination never again to behold it.”

“Let it stay on the ground for a moment,” Alice said as the Master bent down to pick it up. “And trust me, that piece of gold represents the one you love; she is just as valuable, I admit, but you’ll have to lower yourself even to humiliation before you can win her. As for me, I have nothing to do with gold or earthly desires; the best news the world has for me is that Edgar Ravenswood is a hundred miles away from his family home, and he’s decided never to see it again.”

“Alice,” said the Master, who began to think this earnestness had some more secret cause than arose from anything that the blind woman could have gathered from this casual visit, “I have heard you praised by my mother for your sense, acuteness, and fidelity; you are no fool to start at shadows, or to dread old superstitious saws, like Caleb Balderstone; tell me distinctly where my danger lies, if you are aware of any which is tending towards me. If I know myself, I am free from all such views respecting Miss Ashton as you impute to me. I have necessary business to settle with Sir William; that arranged, I shall depart, and with as little wish, as you may easily believe, to return to a place full of melancholy subjects of reflection, as you have to see me here.” Alice bent her sightless eyes on the ground, and was for some time plunged in deep meditation. “I will speak the truth,” she said at length, raising up her head—“I will tell you the source of my apprehensions, whether my candour be for good or for evil. Lucy Ashton loves you, Lord of Ravenswood!”

“Alice,” said the Master, who started to think this seriousness might have a deeper reason than anything the blind woman could have picked up from this casual visit, “I’ve heard my mother praise you for your sense, sharpness, and loyalty; you’re not someone who gets scared of shadows or worries about old superstitions like Caleb Balderstone; so tell me clearly where my danger lies, if you know of any coming my way. If I know myself, I have no such feelings about Miss Ashton that you’re suggesting I have. I need to wrap up some business with Sir William; once that’s settled, I’ll leave, with as little desire, as you can easily imagine, to come back to a place filled with sad memories as you have to see me here.” Alice fixed her sightless eyes on the ground, lost in deep thought for a while. “I will tell the truth,” she finally said, lifting her head—“I will reveal the source of my worries, whether my honesty brings good or bad. Lucy Ashton loves you, Lord of Ravenswood!”

“It is impossible,” said the Master.

"It’s impossible," said the Master.

“A thousand circumstances have proved it to me,” replied the blind woman. “Her thoughts have turned on no one else since you saved her from death, and that my experienced judgment has won from her own conversation. Having told you this—if you are indeed a gentleman and your father’s son—you will make it a motive for flying from her presence. Her passion will die like a lamp for want of that the flame should feed upon; but, if you remain here, her destruction, or yours, or that of both, will be the inevitable consequence of her misplaced attachment. I tell you this secret unwillingly, but it could not have been hid long from your own observation, and it is better you learn it from mine. Depart, Master of Ravenswood; you have my secret. If you remain an hour under Sir William Ashton’s roof without the resolution to marry his daughter, you are a villain; if with the purpose of allying yourself with kin, you are an infatuated and predestined fool.”

“A thousand situations have shown me this,” the blind woman replied. “Her thoughts have been focused on no one else since you saved her from dying, and that's what I've gathered from her own words. Now that I've told you this—if you truly are a gentleman and your father’s son—you should take it as a reason to stay away from her. Her feelings will fade like a candle without anything to burn; but if you stay here, the outcome will be her ruin, your ruin, or both. I really didn't want to share this secret, but it wouldn't have stayed hidden from you for long, and it’s better you hear it from me. Leave, Master of Ravenswood; you know my secret now. If you spend even an hour under Sir William Ashton’s roof without the intention of marrying his daughter, you are a villain; but if you stay with the idea of linking yourself to her family, you are a lovesick and doomed fool.”

So saying, the old blind woman arose, assumed her staff, and, tottering to her hut, entered it and closed the door, leaving Ravenswood to his own reflections.

So saying, the old blind woman got up, took her staff, and, swaying as she walked, went to her hut, entered it, and shut the door, leaving Ravenswood to his own thoughts.

CHAPTER XX.

Lovelier in her own retired abode
....than Naiad by the side
Of Grecian brook—or Lady of the Mere
Lone sitting by the shores of old romance.

WORDSWORTH.

Lovelier in her own private home
....than a water nymph by the side
Of a Greek stream—or the Lady of the Lake
Sitting alone by the shores of ancient stories.

WORDSWORTH.

The meditations of Ravenswood were of a very mixed complexion. He saw himself at once in the very dilemma which he had for some time felt apprehensive he might be placed in. The pleasure he felt in Lucy’s company had indeed approached to fascination, yet it had never altogether surmounted his internal reluctance to wed with the daughter of his father’s foe; and even in forgiving Sir William Ashton the injuries which his family had received, and giving him credit for the kind intentions he professed to entertain, he could not bring himself to contemplate as possible an alliance betwixt their houses. Still, he felt that Alice spoke truth, and that his honour now required he should take an instant leave of Ravenswood Castle, or become a suitor of Lucy Ashton. The possibility of being rejected, too, should he make advances to her wealthy and powerful father—to sue for the hand of an Ashton and be refused—this were a consummation too disgraceful. “I wish her well,” he said to himself, “and for her sake I forgive the injuries her father has done to my house; but I will never—no, never see her more!”

The thoughts racing through Ravenswood's mind were really mixed. He found himself in the exact situation he had been worried about for a while. The joy he felt being with Lucy was almost mesmerizing, but he still couldn't shake off his hesitation about marrying the daughter of his father's enemy. Even when he tried to forgive Sir William Ashton for the wrongs his family had suffered and acknowledged the good intentions Sir William claimed to have, he couldn't picture a possible alliance between their families. Still, he knew Alice was right, and his honor now demanded that he either leave Ravenswood Castle immediately or pursue Lucy Ashton. The idea of being turned down by her wealthy and influential father—petitioning for the hand of an Ashton and being rejected—was something too humiliating to accept. “I wish her well,” he told himself, “and for her sake, I forgive the wrongs her father has done to my family; but I will never—no, never see her again!”

With one bitter pang he adopted this resolution, just as he came to where two paths parted: the one to the Mermaiden’s Fountain, where he knew Lucy waited him, the other leading to the castle by another and more circuitous road. He paused an instant when about to take the latter path, thinking what apology he should make for conduct which must needs seem extraordinary, and had just muttered to himself, “Sudden news from Edinburgh—any pretext will serve; only let me dally no longer here,” when young Henry came flying up to him, half out of breath: “Master, Master you must give Lucy your arm back to the castle, for I cannot give her mine; for Norman is waiting for me, and I am to go with him to make his ring-walk, and I would not stay away for a gold Jacobus; and Lucy is afraid to walk home alone, though all the wild nowt have been shot, and so you must come away directly.”

With a sharp pang, he made this decision just as he reached a point where two paths diverged: one leading to the Mermaid's Fountain, where he knew Lucy was waiting for him, and the other going to the castle via a longer route. He hesitated for a moment when about to take the second path, wondering what excuse he should make for behavior that would surely seem unusual. He had just mumbled to himself, “Sudden news from Edinburgh—any excuse will do; just let me not linger here any longer,” when young Henry came running up to him, out of breath: “Master, you have to walk Lucy back to the castle because I can’t take her myself; Norman is waiting for me, and I’m supposed to go with him to do the ring-walk, and I wouldn’t miss it for a gold Jacobus; plus, Lucy is scared to walk home alone, even though all the wild cattle have been shot, so you need to come with us right away.”

Betwixt two scales equally loaded, a feather’s weight will turn the scale. “It is impossible for me to leave the young lady in the wood alone,” said Ravenswood; “to see her once more can be of little consequence, after the frequent meetings we have had. I ought, too, in courtesy, to apprise her of my intention to quit the castle.”

Between two equally weighted scales, a feather's weight will tip them. “I can't just leave the young lady alone in the woods,” said Ravenswood; “seeing her again isn't really a big deal, considering how many times we've met. I should also, out of courtesy, let her know I'm planning to leave the castle.”

And having thus satisfied himself that he was taking not only a wise, but an absolutely necessary, step, he took the path to the fatal fountain. Henry no sooner saw him on the way to join his sister than he was off like lightning in another direction, to enjoy the society of the forester in their congenial pursuits. Ravenswood, not allowing himself to give a second thought to the propriety of his own conduct, walked with a quick step towards the stream, where he found Lucy seated alone by the ruin.

And after ensuring that he was making not just a smart but also an essential choice, he headed toward the doomed fountain. As soon as Henry saw him going to meet his sister, he darted off in the opposite direction to spend time with the forester doing what they both enjoyed. Ravenswood, not bothering to reconsider his own actions, strode quickly toward the stream, where he found Lucy sitting alone by the ruins.

She sate upon one of the disjointed stones of the ancient fountain, and seemed to watch the progress of its current, as it bubbled forth to daylight, in gay and sparkling profusion, from under the shadow of the ribbed and darksome vault, with which veneration, or perhaps remorse, had canopied its source. To a superstitious eye, Lucy Ashton, folded in her plaided mantle, with her long hair, escaping partly from the snood and falling upon her silver neck, might have suggested the idea of the murdered Nymph of the fountain. But Ravenswood only saw a female exquisitely beautiful, and rendered yet more so in his eyes—how could it be otherwise?—by the consciousness that she had placed her affections on him. As he gazed on her, he felt his fixed resolution melting like wax in the sun, and hastened, therefore, from his concealment in the neighbouring thicket. She saluted him, but did not arise from the stone on which she was seated.

She sat on one of the broken stones of the old fountain, seemingly watching the flow of its water as it bubbled up to the surface, sparkling and bright, from beneath the shadow of the dark, ribbed arch that had covered its source out of reverence or maybe guilt. To someone superstitious, Lucy Ashton, wrapped in her patterned cloak, with her long hair partially escaping from her headband and falling over her silver neck, might have reminded them of the murdered Nymph of the fountain. But to Ravenswood, she was simply an incredibly beautiful woman, made even more beautiful in his eyes—how could it be any different?—because he knew she had feelings for him. As he looked at her, he felt his firm resolve melting away like wax in the sun, so he hurried out from his hiding place in the nearby thicket. She greeted him but didn’t get up from the stone where she was sitting.

“My madcap brother,” she said, “has left me, but I expect him back in a few minutes; for, fortunately, as anything pleases him for a minute, nothing has charms for him much longer.”

“My wild brother,” she said, “has left me, but I expect him back in a few minutes; because, luckily, while anything entertains him for a moment, nothing holds his interest for very long.”

Ravenswood did not feel the power of informing Lucy that her brother meditated a distant excursion, and would not return in haste. He sate himself down on the grass, at some little distance from Miss Ashton, and both were silent for a short space.

Ravenswood didn't have the heart to tell Lucy that her brother was planning a trip far away and wouldn't be back quickly. He sat down on the grass a short distance from Miss Ashton, and they were both quiet for a moment.

“I like this spot,” said Lucy at length, as if she found the silence embarrassing; “the bubbling murmur of the clear fountain, the waving of the trees, the profusion of grass and wild-flowers that rise among the ruins, make it like a scene in romance. I think, too, I have heard it is a spot connected with the legendary lore which I love so well.”

“I really like this place,” Lucy finally said, as if the silence was awkward; “the soft sound of the clear fountain, the movement of the trees, and the abundance of grass and wildflowers growing among the ruins make it feel like something out of a romantic story. I’ve also heard that it’s linked to the legends I adore so much.”

“It has been thought,” answered Ravenswood, “a fatal spot to my family; and I have some reason to term it so, for it was here I first saw Miss Ashton; and it is here I must take my leave of her for ever.”

“It has been considered,” answered Ravenswood, “a cursed place for my family; and I have some reason to say that, because it was here I first met Miss Ashton; and it is here I must say goodbye to her forever.”

The blood, which the first part of this speech called into Lucy’s cheeks, was speedily expelled by its conclusion.

The blood that had rushed into Lucy’s cheeks from the beginning of this speech quickly faded by the time it ended.

“To take leave of us, Master!” she exclaimed; “what can have happened to hurry you away? I know Alice hates—I mean dislikes my father; and I hardly understood her humour to-day, it was so mysterious. But I am certain my father is sincerely grateful for the high service you rendered us. Let me hope that, having won your friendship hardly, we shall not lose it lightly.”

“To say goodbye to us, Master!” she exclaimed; “what could have happened to make you leave so quickly? I know Alice hates—I mean dislikes my father; and I barely understood her mood today, it was so strange. But I’m sure my father is genuinely thankful for the important service you provided us. Let me hope that, having earned your friendship with difficulty, we won’t lose it easily.”

“Lose it, Miss Ashton!” said the Master of Ravenswood. “No; wherever my fortune calls me—whatever she inflicts upon me—it is your friend—your sincere friend, who acts or suffers. But there is a fate on me, and I must go, or I shall add the ruin of others to my own.”

“Forget it, Miss Ashton!” said the Master of Ravenswood. “No; wherever my fate takes me—whatever it brings upon me—it’s your friend—your true friend, who acts or endures. But I have a destiny to fulfill, and I must leave, or I’ll drag others down with me.”

“Yet do not go from us, Master,” said Lucy; and she laid her hand, in all simplicity and kindness, upon the skirt of his cloak, as if to detain him. “You shall not part from us. My father is powerful, he has friends that are more so than himself; do not go till you see what his gratitude will do for you. Believe me, he is already labouring in your behalf with the council.”

“Please don’t leave us, Master,” Lucy said, gently placing her hand on the hem of his cloak as if to hold him back. “You can’t leave us. My father is influential, and he has friends who are even more powerful; don’t go until you see what his gratitude can do for you. Trust me, he’s already working on your behalf with the council.”

“It may be so,” said the Master, proudly; “yet it is not to your father, Miss Ashton, but to my own exertions, that I ought to owe success in the career on which I am about to enter. My preparations are already made—a sword and a cloak, and a bold heart and a determined hand.”

“It might be true,” said the Master, proudly; “but it’s not your father, Miss Ashton, that I should thank for my success in the journey I'm about to begin. I've already made my preparations—a sword and a cloak, along with a brave heart and a steady hand.”

Lucy covered her face her hands, and the tears, in spite of her, forced their way between her fingers.

Lucy covered her face with her hands, and the tears, despite her efforts, slipped through her fingers.

“Forgive me,” said Ravenswood, taking her right hand, which, after slight resistance, she yielded to him, still continuing to shade her face with the left—“I am too rude—too rough—too intractable to deal with any being so soft and gentle as you are. Forget that so stern a vision has crossed your path of life; and let me pursue mine, sure that I can meet with no worse misfortune after the moment it divides me from your side.”

“Please forgive me,” said Ravenswood, taking her right hand, which she reluctantly gave him after a moment's hesitation, still using her left hand to shield her face—“I'm just too rude—too rough—too difficult to handle someone as soft and gentle as you. Forget that such a harsh figure has crossed your life; let me continue on my way, knowing that I won’t face anything worse once I’m separated from you.”

Lucy wept on, but her tears were less bitter. Each attempt which the Master made to explain his purpose of departure only proved a new evidence of his desire to stay; until, at length, instead of bidding her farewell, he gave his faith to her for ever, and received her troth in return. The whole passed so suddenly, and arose so much out of the immediate impulse of the moment, that ere the Master of Ravenswood could reflect upon the consequences of the step which he had taken, their lips, as well as their hands, had pledged the sincerity of their affection.

Lucy continued to cry, but her tears were less painful. Every time the Master tried to explain why he had to leave, it only showed how much he wanted to stay. Finally, instead of saying goodbye, he promised his love to her forever, and she gave him her promise in return. The whole event happened so quickly and was driven by the moment's emotions that before the Master of Ravenswood could think about what his decision meant, their lips and hands had already committed to the truth of their feelings.

“And now,” he said, after a moment’s consideration, “it is fit I should speak to Sir William Ashton; he must know of our engagement. Ravenswood must not seem to dwell under his roof to solicit clandestinely the affections of his daughter.”

“And now,” he said, after a moment’s thought, “I should talk to Sir William Ashton; he needs to know about our engagement. Ravenswood can’t stay under his roof and secretly pursue his daughter’s affections.”

“You would not speak to my father on the subject?” said Lucy, doubtingly; and then added more warmly: “Oh do not—do not! Let your lot in life be determined—your station and purpose ascertained, before you address my father. I am sure he loves you—I think he will consent; but then my mother——!”

“You wouldn’t talk to my dad about this?” Lucy said uncertainly, then added more passionately, “Oh please—don’t! Figure out your place in life—know your role and purpose—before you talk to my dad. I’m sure he loves you—I think he’ll agree; but then my mom——!”

She paused, ashamed to express the doubt she felt how far her father dared to form any positive resolution on this most important subject without the consent of his lady.

She paused, embarrassed to voice her doubt about how far her father would go to make any definite decision on this important issue without his wife's approval.

“Your mother, my Lucy!” replied Ravenswood. “She is of the house of Douglas, a house that has intermarried with mine even when its glory and power were at the highest; what could your mother object to my alliance?”

“Your mother, my Lucy!” replied Ravenswood. “She’s from the house of Douglas, a family that has married into mine even when it was at the height of its glory and power; what could your mother possibly have against my alliance?”

“I did not say object,” said Lucy; “but she is jealous of her rights, and may claim a mother’s title to be consulted in the first instance.”

“I didn’t say object,” Lucy said; “but she’s protective of her rights and might insist on a mother’s right to be consulted first.”

“Be it so,” replied Ravenswood. “London is distant, but a letter will reach it and receive an answer within a fortnight; I will not press on the Lord Keeper for an instant reply to my proposal.”

“Fair enough,” replied Ravenswood. “London is far away, but a letter will get there and I'll have a response within two weeks; I won’t push the Lord Keeper for an immediate answer to my proposal.”

“But,” hesitated Lucy, “were it not better to wait—to wait a few weeks? Were my mother to see you—to know you, I am sure she would approve; but you are unacquainted personally, and the ancient feud between the families——”

“But,” Lucy hesitated, “wouldn’t it be better to wait—just a few weeks? If my mother were to see you—to get to know you, I’m sure she would approve; but you don’t know each other personally, and the old feud between the families——”

Ravenswood fixed upon her his keen dark eyes, as if he was desirous of penetrating into her very soul.

Ravenswood focused his sharp, dark eyes on her, as if he wanted to look deep into her soul.

“Lucy,” he said, “I have sacrificed to you projects of vengeance long nursed, and sworn to with ceremonies little better than heathen—I sacrificed them to your image, ere I knew the worth which it represented. In the evening which succeeded my poor father’s funeral, I cut a lock from my hair, and, as it consumed in the fire, I swore that my rage and revenge should pursue his enemies, until they shrivelled before me like that scorched-up symbol of annihilation.”

“Lucy,” he said, “I have given up plans for revenge that I had been holding onto for a long time and vowed to with rituals barely better than pagan ones—I sacrificed them to your image before I understood the value it truly represented. On the evening after my poor father’s funeral, I cut off a lock of my hair, and as it burned in the fire, I swore that my anger and desire for revenge would chase his enemies until they withered away like that burnt symbol of destruction.”

“It was a deadly sin,” said Lucy, turning pale, “to make a vow so fatal.”

“It was a deadly sin,” said Lucy, turning pale, “to make a vow so fatal.”

“I acknowledge it,” said Ravenswood, “and it had been a worse crime to keep it. It was for your sake that I abjured these purposes of vengeance, though I scarce knew that such was the argument by which I was conquered, until I saw you once more, and became conscious of the influence you possessed over me.”

“I admit it,” said Ravenswood, “and it would have been a bigger crime to hold onto it. It was for you that I gave up these thoughts of revenge, even though I hardly realized that was the reason I was swayed until I saw you again and became aware of the power you have over me.”

“And why do you now,” said Lucy, “recall sentiments so terrible—sentiments so inconsistent with those you profess for me—with those your importunity has prevailed on me to acknowledge?”

“And why do you now,” said Lucy, “bring up feelings so awful—feelings so different from what you claim to feel about me—feelings that your persistent pressure has pushed me to admit?”

“Because,” said her lover, “I would impress on you the price at which I have bought your love—the right I have to expect your constancy. I say not that I have bartered for it the honour of my house, its last remaining possession; but though I say it not, and think it not, I cannot conceal from myself that the world may do both.”

“Because,” said her lover, “I need you to understand the price I’ve paid for your love—the expectation I have for your loyalty. I’m not saying I’ve traded my family’s honor, its last remaining asset, for it; but even though I don’t say it or think it, I can’t ignore the fact that the world might see it that way.”

“If such are your sentiments,” said Lucy, “you have played a cruel game with me. But it is not too late to give it over: take back the faith and troth which you could not plight to me without suffering abatement of honour—let what is passed be as if it had not been—forget me; I will endeavour to forget myself.”

“If that's how you really feel,” said Lucy, “you've played a cruel game with me. But it's not too late to stop: take back the promises you couldn't make to me without losing your honor—let what happened be like it never did—forget me; I'll try to forget myself.”

“You do me injustice,” said the Master of Ravenswood—“by all I hold true and honourable, you do me the extremity of injustice; if I mentioned the price at which I have bought your love, it is only to show how much I prize it, to bind our engagement by a still firmer tie, and to show, by what I have done to attain this station in your regard, how much I must suffer should you ever break your faith.”

“You're doing me wrong,” said the Master of Ravenswood. “By everything I hold dear and honorable, you are treating me unfairly. If I mentioned the price I paid for your love, it was only to express how much I value it, to strengthen our commitment even further, and to demonstrate—through what I’ve done to earn this position in your life—how much I would suffer if you ever broke your promise.”

“And why, Ravenswood,” answered Lucy, “should you think that possible? Why should you urge me with even the mention of infidelity? Is it because I ask you to delay applying to my father for a little space of time? Bind me by what vows you please; if vows are unnecessary to secure constancy, they may yet prevent suspicion.” Ravenswood pleaded, apologised, and even kneeled, to appease her displeasure; and Lucy, as placable as she was single-hearted, readily forgave the offence which his doubts had implied. The dispute thus agitated, however, ended by the lovers going through an emblematic ceremony of their troth-plight, of which the vulgar still preserve some traces. They broke betwixt them the thin broad-piece of gold which Alice had refused to receive from Ravenswood.

“And why, Ravenswood,” Lucy replied, “do you think that's even possible? Why would you bring up the idea of infidelity? Is it because I’ve asked you to hold off on talking to my father for a little while? You can swear any vows you want; if those vows aren’t needed to ensure your loyalty, they might help prevent doubt.” Ravenswood pleaded, apologized, and even got down on his knees to calm her anger; and Lucy, as forgiving as she was genuine, quickly let go of the offense that his doubts had suggested. However, the disagreement led the lovers to engage in a symbolic ceremony to pledge their commitment, which has left some traces in popular culture. They broke the thin gold piece that Alice had refused to accept from Ravenswood.

“And never shall this leave my bosom,” said Lucy, as she hung the piece of gold round her neck, and concealed it with her handkerchief, “until you, Edgar Ravenswood, ask me to resign it to you; and, while I wear it, never shall that heart acknowledge another love than yours.”

“And I will never let this go,” Lucy said, as she hung the gold piece around her neck and covered it with her handkerchief, “until you, Edgar Ravenswood, ask me to give it back to you; and while I wear it, my heart will never recognize any love but yours.”

With like protestations, Ravenswood placed his portion of the coin opposite to his heart. And now, at length, it struck them that time had hurried fast on during this interview, and their absence at the castle would be subject of remark, if not of alarm. As they arose to leave the fountain which had been witness of their mutual engagement, an arrow whistled through the air, and struck a raven perched on the sere branch of an old oak, near to where they had been seated. The bird fluttered a few yards and dropped at the feet of Lucy, whose dress was stained with some spots of its blood.

With similar protests, Ravenswood placed his share of the coins over his heart. Finally, it dawned on them that time had passed quickly during their conversation, and their absence at the castle would raise eyebrows, if not cause concern. As they stood to leave the fountain that had witnessed their engagement, an arrow whistled through the air and hit a raven perched on a dried branch of an old oak, close to where they had been sitting. The bird fluttered a few yards and fell at Lucy's feet, leaving her dress marked with some spots of its blood.

Miss Ashton was much alarmed, and Ravenswood, surprised and angry, looked everywhere for the marksman, who had given them a proof of his skill as little expected as desired. He was not long of discovering himself, being no other than Henry Ashton, who came running up with a crossbow in his hand.

Miss Ashton was really shocked, and Ravenswood, feeling both surprised and angry, searched everywhere for the shooter, who had shown them a level of skill that was neither anticipated nor welcome. It didn't take long for him to reveal himself, as it was none other than Henry Ashton, who came sprinting up with a crossbow in his hand.

“I knew I should startle you,” he said; “and do you know, you looked so busy that I hoped it would have fallen souse on your heads before you were aware of it. What was the Master saying to you, Lucy?”

“I knew I should surprise you,” he said; “and you know, you looked so busy that I hoped it would have caught you off guard before you realized it. What was the Master saying to you, Lucy?”

“I was telling your sister what an idle lad you were, keeping us waiting here for you so long,” said Ravenswood, to save Lucy’s confusion.

“I was telling your sister what a lazy guy you were, making us wait here for you for so long,” said Ravenswood, trying to help Lucy out of her awkwardness.

“Waiting for me! Why, I told you to see Lucy home, and that I was to go to make the ring-walk with old Norman in the Hayberry thicket, and you may be sure that would take a good hour, and we have all the deer’s marks and furnishes got, while you were sitting here with Lucy, like a lazy loon.”

“Waiting for me! I told you to walk Lucy home and that I was going to check in on old Norman in the Hayberry thicket, and you can bet that would take a good hour. We got all the deer’s marks and supplies ready while you were just sitting here with Lucy, like a lazy fool.”

“Well, well, Mr. Henry,” said Ravenswood; “but let us see how you will answer to me for killing the raven. Do you know, the ravens are all under the protection of the Lords of Ravenswood, and to kill one in their presence is such bad luck that it deserves the stab?”

“Well, well, Mr. Henry,” said Ravenswood; “but let’s see how you’ll explain killing the raven. Do you know that all the ravens are protected by the Lords of Ravenswood, and to kill one in their presence is such bad luck that it deserves the stab?”

“And that’s what Norman said,” replied the boy; “he came as far with me as within a flight-shot of you, and he said he never saw a raven sit still so near living folk, and he wished it might be for good luck, for the raven is one of the wildest birds that flies, unless it be a tame one; and so I crept on and on, till I was within threescore yards of him, and then whiz went the bolt, and there he lies, faith! Was it not well shot? and, I dare say, I have not shot in a crossbow!—not ten times, maybe.”

“And that’s what Norman said,” replied the boy; “he came as far with me as within a flight shot of you, and he said he never saw a raven sit still so close to people, and he hoped it was for good luck, because the raven is one of the wildest birds that flies, unless it’s a tame one; and so I crept on and on, until I was within sixty yards of him, and then whiz went the bolt, and there he lies, I swear! Was it not a good shot? And, I bet, I have not shot with a crossbow!—not more than ten times, maybe.”

“Admirably shot, indeed,” said Ravenswood; “and you will be a fine marksman if you practise hard.”

“That was really well shot,” said Ravenswood; “you’ll be a great marksman if you practice hard.”

“And that’s what Norman says,” answered the boy; “but I am sure it is not my fault if I do not practise enough; for, of free will, I would do little else, only my father and tutor are angry sometimes, and only Miss Lucy there gives herself airs about my being busy, for all she can sit idle by a well-side the whole day, when she has a handsome young gentleman to prate with. I have known her do so twenty times, if you will believe me.”

“And that’s what Norman says,” the boy replied, “but I’m sure it’s not my fault if I don’t practice enough; I would happily do nothing else on my own, but my father and tutor get angry sometimes, and only Miss Lucy acts all superior about me being busy, even though she can sit around by the well all day when she has a handsome young guy to chat with. I’ve seen her do it twenty times, if you can believe me.”

The boy looked at his sister as he spoke, and, in the midst of his mischievous chatter, had the sense to see that he was really inflicting pain upon her, though without being able to comprehend the cause or the amount.

The boy looked at his sister while he talked, and in the middle of his playful chatter, he realized he was actually hurting her, even though he couldn't understand why or how much.

“Come now, Lucy,” he said, “don’t greet; and if I have said anything beside the mark, I’ll deny it again; and what does the Master of Ravenswood care if you had a hundred sweethearts? so ne’er put finger in your eye about it.”

“Come on, Lucy,” he said, “don’t be upset; and if I said anything out of line, I’ll take it back; and what does the Master of Ravenswood care if you had a hundred admirers? So don’t get worked up about it.”

The Master of Ravenswood was, for the moment, scarce satisfied with what he heard; yet his good sense naturally regarded it as the chatter of a spoilt boy, who strove to mortify his sister in the point which seemed most accessible for the time. But, although of a temper equally slow in receiving impressions and obstinate in retaining them, the prattle of Henry served to nourish in his mind some vague suspicion that his present engagement might only end in his being exposed, like a conquered enemy in a Roman triumph, a captive attendant on the car of a victor who meditated only the satiating his pride at the expense of the vanquished. There was, we repeat it, no real ground whatever for such an apprehension, nor could he be said seriously to entertain such for a moment. Indeed, it was impossible to look at the clear blue eye of Lucy Ashton, and entertain the slightest permanent doubt concerning the sincerity of her disposition. Still, however, conscious pride and conscious poverty combined to render a mind suspicious which in more fortunate circumstances would have been a stranger to that as well as to every other meanness.

The Master of Ravenswood was, for the moment, barely satisfied with what he heard; yet his good sense viewed it as the whining of a spoiled boy, who tried to upset his sister in the way that seemed easiest at the time. But, even though he was slow to take in things and stubborn about holding onto them, Henry's chatter sparked a vague suspicion in his mind that his current involvement might only lead to him being exposed, like a defeated enemy in a Roman triumph, a captive servant on the chariot of a victor who only planned to boost his own pride at the expense of the vanquished. There was, we reiterate, no real reason for such a fear, nor could he be said to seriously entertain it for even a moment. In fact, it was impossible to look into the clear blue eyes of Lucy Ashton and have the slightest lasting doubt about her sincerity. Still, the combination of pride and conscious poverty made him suspicious, which, under better circumstances, would have been completely foreign to him, as well as to any other pettiness.

They reached the castle, where Sir William Ashton, who had been alarmed by the length of their stay, met them in the hall.

They arrived at the castle, where Sir William Ashton, who had grown concerned about how long they had been gone, met them in the hall.

“Had Lucy,” he said, “been in any other company than that of one who had shown he had so complete power of protecting her, he confessed he should have been very uneasy, and would have despatched persons in quest of them. But, in the company of the Master of Ravenswood, he knew his daughter had nothing to dread.” Lucy commenced some apology for their long delay, but, conscience-struck, becames confused as she proceeded; and when Ravenswood, coming to her assistance, endeavoured to render the explanation complete and satisfactory, he only involved himself in the same disorder, like one who, endeavouring to extricate his companion from a slough, entangles himself in the same tenacious swamp. It cannot be supposed that the confusion of the two youthful lovers escaped the observation of the subtle lawyer, accustomed, by habit and profession, to trace human nature through all her windings. But it was not his present policy to take any notice of what he observed. He desired to hold the Master of Ravenswood bound, but wished that he himself should remain free; and it did not occur to him that his plan might be defeated by Lucy’s returning the passion which he hoped she might inspire. If she should adopt some romantic feelings towards Ravenswood, in which circumstances, or the positive and absolute opposition of Lady Ashton, might render it unadvisable to indulge her, the Lord Keeper conceived they might be easily superseded and annulled by a journey to Edinburgh, or even to London, a new set of Brussels lace, and the soft whispers of half a dozen lovers, anxious to replace him whom it was convenient she should renounce. This was his provision for the worst view of the case. But, according to its more probable issue, any passing favours she might entertain for the Master of Ravenswood might require encouragement rather than repression.

“Had Lucy,” he said, “been with anyone else other than someone who had shown he could completely protect her, I admit I would have been very worried and would have sent people to look for them. But with the Master of Ravenswood, I knew my daughter had nothing to fear.” Lucy started to apologize for their long delay, but feeling guilty, she became flustered as she continued; and when Ravenswood came to help her, trying to make the explanation clearer and more satisfactory, he only ended up getting confused as well, like someone trying to pull a friend out of a swamp and getting stuck themselves. It’s hard to believe that the confusion of the two young lovers didn’t go unnoticed by the clever lawyer, who was used to understanding human nature in all its complexities. But it wasn’t in his current strategy to acknowledge what he saw. He wanted to keep the Master of Ravenswood in check while wanting to remain free himself; and he didn’t realize that his plan could be disrupted if Lucy returned the feelings he hoped to inspire in her. If she developed romantic feelings for Ravenswood, which could be complicated by the outright opposition from Lady Ashton, the Lord Keeper thought these feelings could easily be set aside with a trip to Edinburgh or even London, a new set of Brussels lace, and the sweet nothings of a few other suitors eager to take his place. This was his backup plan for the worst-case scenario. However, looking at the more likely outcome, any fleeting feelings she might have for the Master of Ravenswood might need encouragement instead of suppression.

This seemed the more likely, as he had that very morning, since their departure from the castle, received a letter, the contents of which he hastened to communicate to Ravenswood. A foot-post had arrived with a packet to the Lord Keeper from that friend whom we have already mentioned, who was labouring hard underhand to consolidate a band of patriots, at the head of whom stood Sir William’s greatest terror, the active and ambitious Marquis of A——. The success of this convenient friend had been such, that he had obtained from Sir William, not indeed a directly favourable answer, but certainly a most patient hearing. This he had reported to his principal, who had replied by the ancient French adage, “Château qui parle, et femme qui écoute, l’un et l’autre va se rendre.” A statesman who hears you propose a change of measures without reply was, according to the Marquis’s opinion, in the situation of the fortress which parleys and the lady who listens, and he resolved to press the siege of the Lord Keeper.

This seemed more likely since that very morning, after leaving the castle, he had received a letter that he quickly shared with Ravenswood. A courier had arrived with a packet for the Lord Keeper from that friend we’ve mentioned before, who was working hard behind the scenes to unite a group of patriots led by Sir William’s greatest nightmare, the ambitious and active Marquis of A——. This helpful friend had been successful enough that he received from Sir William not exactly a supportive answer, but definitely a very patient hearing. He reported this back to his boss, who responded with the old French saying, “Château qui parle, et femme qui écoute, l’un et l’autre va se rendre.” According to the Marquis, a statesman who listens to a proposal for a change in plans without responding is like a fortress negotiating and a woman listening, and he decided to intensify the pressure on the Lord Keeper.

The packet, therefore, contained a letter from his friend and ally, and another from himself, to the Lord Keeper, frankly offering an unceremonious visit. They were crossing the country to go to the southward; the roads were indifferent; the accommodation of the inns as execrable as possible; the Lord Keeper had been long acquainted intimately with one of his correspondents, and, though more slightly known to the Marquis, had yet enough of his lordship’s acquaintance to render the visit sufficiently natural, and to shut the mouths of those who might be disposed to impute it to a political intrigue. He instantly accepted the offered visit, determined, however, that he would not pledge himself an inch farther for the furtherance of their views than reason (by which he meant his own self-interest) should plainly point out to him as proper.

The packet included a letter from his friend and ally, as well as another from him to the Lord Keeper, straightforwardly proposing a casual visit. They were making their way across the country to the south; the roads were in poor condition, and the inns offered the worst possible accommodations. The Lord Keeper had been closely acquainted with one of his correspondents for a long time, and although he was only somewhat familiar with the Marquis, their relationship was enough to make the visit seem completely normal and to quiet anyone who might suspect it was part of a political scheme. He quickly accepted the invitation, though he was determined not to commit to anything beyond what his own self-interest—what he referred to as reason—clearly indicated as appropriate.

Two circumstances particularly delighted him—the presence of Ravenswood, and the absence of his own lady. By having the former under his roof, he conceived he might be able to quash all such hazardous and hostile proceedings as he might otherwise have been engaged in, under the patronage of the Marquis; and Lucy, he foresaw, would make, for his immediate purpose of delay and procrastination, a much better mistress of his family than her mother, who would, he was sure, in some shape or other, contrive to disconcert his political schemes by her proud and implacable temper.

Two things made him particularly happy—the presence of Ravenswood and the absence of his own lady. With Ravenswood under his roof, he thought he could put a stop to any dangerous and hostile actions he might have been involved in, with the Marquis's backing; and Lucy, he predicted, would serve his immediate goal of delaying and stalling much better than her mother, who he was sure would somehow disrupt his political plans with her proud and unforgiving attitude.

His anxious solicitations that the Master would stay to receive his kinsman, were, of course, readily complied with, since the éclaircissement which had taken place at the Mermaiden’s Fountain had removed all wish for sudden departure. Lucy and Lockhard, had, therefore, orders to provide all things necessary in their different departments, for receiving the expected guests with a pomp and display of luxury very uncommon in Scotland at that remote period.

His nervous requests for the Master to stay and welcome his relative were quickly agreed to, since the clarification that occurred at the Mermaiden’s Fountain had eliminated any desire for a hasty exit. Lucy and Lockhard were given instructions to prepare everything needed in their respective areas to receive the expected guests with an extravagant show of luxury that was quite rare in Scotland at that time.

CHAPTER XXI.

Marall: Sir, the man of honour’s come,
Newly alighted——
Overreach: In without reply,
And do as I command....
Is the loud music I gave order for
Ready to receive him?

New Way to Pay Old Debts.

Marall: Sir, the honorable man has arrived,
Just got here——
Overreach: Came in without saying anything,
And do what I say....
Is the loud music I ordered
Ready to welcome him?

New Way to Pay Old Debts.

Sir William Ashton, although a man of sense, legal information, and great practical knowledge of the world, had yet some points of character which corresponded better with the timidity of his disposition and the supple arts by which he had risen in the world, than to the degree of eminence which he had attained; as they tended to show an original mediocrity of understanding, however highly it had been cultivated, and a native meanness of disposition, however carefully veiled. He loved the ostentatious display of his wealth, less as a man to whom habit has made it necessary, than as one to whom it is still delightful from its novelty. The most trivial details did not escape him; and Lucy soon learned to watch the flush of scorn which crossed Ravenswood’s cheek, when he heard her father gravely arguing with Lockhard, nay, even with the old housekeeper, upon circumstances which, in families of rank, are left uncared for, because it is supposed impossible they can be neglected.

Sir William Ashton, though he was sensible, knowledgeable about the law, and had a lot of practical experience in the world, still had some aspects of his character that were more in line with his timid nature and the cunning strategies he used to climb the social ladder, rather than the level of success he achieved. These traits revealed a fundamental average intelligence, no matter how refined it had become, and a natural smallness of spirit, no matter how well-hidden. He enjoyed showing off his wealth, not out of necessity like someone used to it, but because it still thrilled him with its freshness. He didn’t miss even the smallest details; Lucy quickly picked up on the scornful flush that crossed Ravenswood's face when he saw her father seriously debating with Lockhard, and even with the old housekeeper, about matters that in noble families are usually overlooked because people assume they can’t possibly be neglected.

“I could pardon Sir William,” said Ravenswood, one evening after he had left the room, “some general anxiety upon this occasion, for the Marquis’s visit is an honour, and should be received as such; but I am worn out by these miserable minutiae of the buttery, and the larder, and the very hencoop—they drive me beyond my patience; I would rather endure the poverty of Wolf’s Crag than be pestered with the wealth of Ravenswood Castle.”

“I could forgive Sir William,” said Ravenswood one evening after he had left the room, “for being a bit anxious this time since the Marquis’s visit is an honor and should be treated that way; but I’m exhausted by all these trivial details of the pantry, the supplies, and even the chicken coop—they push me beyond my limit. I’d rather deal with the poverty of Wolf’s Crag than be bothered by the wealth of Ravenswood Castle.”

“And yet,” said Lucy, “it was by attention to these minutiae that my father acquired the property——”

“And yet,” Lucy said, “it was by paying attention to these details that my father acquired the property——”

“Which my ancestors sold for lack of it,” replied Ravenswood. “Be it so; a porter still bears but a burden, though the burden be of gold.”

“Which my ancestors sold for lack of it,” replied Ravenswood. “That’s fair; a porter still carries a load, even if the load is gold.”

Lucy sighed; she perceived too plainly that her lover held in scorn the manners and habits of a father to whom she had long looked up as her best and most partial friend, whose fondness had often consoled her for her mother’s contemptuous harshness.

Lucy sighed; she could clearly see that her lover looked down on the ways and behavior of her father, whom she had always admired as her closest and most supportive friend, whose affection had often comforted her during her mother’s dismissive harshness.

The lovers soon discovered that they differed upon other and no less important topics. Religion, the mother of peace, was, in those days of discord, so much misconstrued and mistaken, that her rules and forms were the subject of the most opposite opinions and the most hostile animosities. The Lord Keeper, being a Whig, was, of course, a Presbyterian, and had found it convenient, at different periods, to express greater zeal for the kirk than perhaps he really felt. His family, equally of course, were trained under the same institution. Ravenswood, as we know, was a High Churchman, or Episcopalian, and frequently objected to Lucy the fanaticism of some of her own communion, while she intimated, rather than expressed, horror at the latitudinarian principles which she had been taught to think connected with the prelatical form of church government.

The lovers quickly realized they had different views on other important topics. Religion, supposed to be a source of peace, was so misinterpreted and misunderstood during those times of conflict that its rules and practices sparked completely opposing opinions and deep animosities. The Lord Keeper, a Whig, was naturally a Presbyterian and found it beneficial at times to show more enthusiasm for the church than he might genuinely feel. His family, of course, was raised in the same tradition. Ravenswood, as we know, was a High Churchman, or Episcopalian, and often criticized Lucy for the fanaticism of some people in her own community, while she subtly indicated her horror at the more flexible views she had been taught to associate with the episcopal style of church leadership.

Thus, although their mutual affection seemed to increase rather than to be diminished as their characters opened more fully on each other, the feelings of each were mingled with some less agreeable ingredients. Lucy felt a secret awe, amid all her affection for Ravenswood. His soul was of an higher, prouder character than those with whom she had hitherto mixed in intercourse; his ideas were more fierce and free; and he contemned many of the opinions which had been inculcated upon her as chiefly demanding her veneration. On the other hand, Ravenswood saw in Lucy a soft and flexible character, which, in his eyes at least, seemed too susceptible of being moulded to any form by those with whom she lived. He felt that his own temper required a partner of a more independent spirit, who could set sail with him on his course of life, resolved as himself to dare indifferently the storm and the favouring breeze. But Lucy was so beautiful, so devoutly attached to him, of a temper so exquisitely soft and kind, that, while he could have wished it were possible to inspire her with a greater degree of firmness and resolution, and while he sometimes became impatient of the extreme fear which she expressed of their attachment being prematurely discovered, he felt that the softness of a mind, amounting almost to feebleness, rendered her even dearer to him, as a being who had voluntarily clung to him for protection, and made him the arbiter of her fate for weal or woe. His feelings towards her at such moments were those which have been since so beautifully expressed by our immortal Joanna Baillie:

Thus, even though their mutual affection seemed to grow rather than shrink as they revealed more of themselves to one another, both of their feelings were mixed with some less pleasant elements. Lucy felt a hidden awe, despite her affection for Ravenswood. His soul was of a higher, prouder nature than those she had previously interacted with; his ideas were more intense and free-spirited, and he dismissed many of the values she had been taught to hold in high regard. On the other hand, Ravenswood saw in Lucy a gentle and adaptable character, which, at least to him, seemed too easily shaped by those around her. He felt that his own temperament required a partner with a more independent spirit, someone who could journey with him through life, equally willing to face both storms and calm seas. But Lucy was so beautiful, so deeply attached to him, and had such a delicate and kind nature that, while he wished it were possible to instill in her a greater sense of strength and resolve, and while he sometimes grew impatient with her extreme fear of their attachment being found out too soon, he found that her softness—a quality bordering on fragility—made her even more precious to him, as someone who had willingly turned to him for protection and made him the master of her destiny, for better or worse. His feelings towards her during those moments reflected what has since been beautifully expressed by our immortal Joanna Baillie:

Thou sweetest thing,
That e’er did fix its lightly-fibred sprays
To the rude rock, ah! wouldst thou cling to me?
Rough and storm-worn I am; yet love me as
Thou truly dost, I will love thee again
With true and honest heart, though all unmeet
To be the mate of such sweet gentleness.

You sweetest thing,
That ever attached its delicate sprays
To the rough rock, oh! would you cling to me?
I am rough and weathered; yet love me as
You truly do, and I will love you back
With a sincere and honest heart, even though I'm
Not worthy to be the partner of such sweet gentleness.

Thus the very points in which they differed seemed, in some measure, to ensure the continuance of their mutual affection. If, indeed, they had so fully appreciated each other’s character before the burst of passion in which they hastily pledged their faith to each other, Lucy might have feared Ravenswood too much ever to have loved him, and he might have construed her softness and docile temper as imbecility, rendering her unworthy of his regard. But they stood pledged to each other; and Lucy only feared that her lover’s pride might one day teach him to regret his attachment; Ravenswood, that a mind so ductile as Lucy’s might, in absence or difficulties, be induced, by the entreaties or influence of those around her, to renounce the engagement she had formed.

Thus, the very things they disagreed on seemed to actually help their relationship last. If they had really understood each other’s personalities before the rush of love that made them quickly commit to one another, Lucy might have been too intimidated by Ravenswood to ever love him, and he might have seen her gentleness and willingness to please as weakness, making her seem unworthy of his attention. But they were committed to each other; Lucy only worried that her lover’s pride might one day make him regret being with her; Ravenswood worried that Lucy's flexible nature might, in times of absence or hardship, be swayed by the pleas or influence of those around her, leading her to break off their engagement.

“Do not fear it,” said Lucy, when upon one occasion a hint of such suspicion escaped her lover; “the mirrors which receive the reflection of all successive objects are framed of hard materials like glass or steel; the softer substances, when they receive an impression, retain it undefaced.”

“Don’t be afraid of it,” said Lucy, when one time a hint of that kind of suspicion came from her boyfriend; “the mirrors that reflect everything are made of hard materials like glass or steel; softer materials, when they get an impression, keep it unchanged.”

“This is poetry, Lucy,” said Ravenswood; “and in poetry there is always fallacy, and sometimes fiction.”

“This is poetry, Lucy,” said Ravenswood; “and in poetry, there’s always a bit of deception, and sometimes fiction.”

“Believe me, then, once more, in honest prose,” said Lucy, “that, though I will never wed man without the consent of my parents, yet neither force nor persuasion shall dispose of my hand till you renounce the right I have given you to it.”

“Trust me again, in plain words,” said Lucy, “that although I will never marry without my parents' approval, neither force nor persuasion will make me give my hand to anyone until you give up the right I have granted you to it.”

The lovers had ample time for such explanations. Henry was now more seldom their companion, being either a most unwilling attendant upon the lessons of his tutor, or a forward volunteer under the instructions of the foresters or grooms. As for the Keeper, his mornings were spent in his study, maintaining correspondences of all kinds, and balancing in his anxious mind the various intelligence which he collected from every quarter concerning the expected change of Scottish politics, and the probable strength of the parties who were about to struggle for power. At other times he busied himself about arranging, and countermanding, and then again arranging, the preparations which he judged necessary for the reception of the Marquis of A——, whose arrival had been twice delayed by some necessary cause of detention.

The lovers had plenty of time for such discussions. Henry was now less frequently with them, either reluctantly attending his tutor's lessons or eagerly participating in the training sessions led by the foresters or grooms. As for the Keeper, his mornings were spent in his study, handling various correspondences and weighing in his anxious mind the information he gathered from all sources about the expected shift in Scottish politics and the potential strength of the factions that were about to compete for power. At other times, he occupied himself with organizing, canceling, and then reorganizing the plans he thought necessary for welcoming the Marquis of A——, whose arrival had been delayed twice due to unavoidable circumstances.

In the midst of all these various avocations, political and domestic, he seemed not to observe how much his daughter and his guest were thrown into each other’s society, and was censured by many of his neighbours, according to the fashion of neighbours in all countries, for suffering such an intimate connexion to take place betwixt two young persons. The only natural explanation was, that he designed them for each other; while, in truth, his only motive was to temporise and procrastinate until he should discover the real extent of the interest which the Marquis took in Ravenswood’s affairs, and the power which he was likely to possess of advancing them. Until these points should be made both clear and manifest, the Lord Keeper resolved that he would do nothing to commit himself, either in one shape or other; and, like many cunning persons, he overreached himself deplorably.

In the middle of all his various political and domestic activities, he didn’t seem to notice how much his daughter and his guest were spending time together. Many of his neighbors criticized him, as they often do in every country, for allowing such a close relationship to develop between two young people. The most obvious explanation was that he intended for them to end up together; however, his true motive was to buy time and delay until he could figure out the real extent of the Marquis’s interest in Ravenswood’s situation and the influence he might have in improving it. Until those points were clear, the Lord Keeper decided he wouldn’t do anything to put himself in a difficult position, and, like many clever people, he ended up making a serious mistake.

Amongst those who had been disposed to censure, with the greatest severity, the conduct of Sir William Ashton, in permitting the prolonged residence of Ravenswood under his roof, and his constant attendance on Miss Ashton, was the new Laird of Girnington, and his faithful squire and bottleholder, personages formerly well known to us by the names of Hayston and Bucklaw, and his companion Captain Craigengelt. The former had at length succeeded to the extensive property of his long-lived grand-aunt, and to considerable wealth besides, which he had employed in redeeming his paternal acres (by the title appertaining to which he still chose to be designated), notwithstanding Captain Craigengelt had proposed to him a most advantageous mode of vesting the money in Law’s scheme, which was just then broached, and offered his services to travel express to Paris for the purpose. But Bucklaw had so far derived wisdom from adversity, that he would listen to no proposal which Craigengelt could invent, which had the slightest tendency to risk his newly-acquired independence. He that had once eat pease-bannocks, drank sour wine, and slept in the secret chamber at Wolf’s Crag, would, he said, prize good cheer and a soft bed as long as he lived, and take special care never to need such hospitality again.

Among those who were most critical of Sir William Ashton's decision to allow Ravenswood to stay under his roof and spend so much time with Miss Ashton were the new Laird of Girnington, along with his loyal squire and bottle holder, known to us as Hayston and Bucklaw, and his friend Captain Craigengelt. Bucklaw had finally inherited the large estate of his long-lived grand-aunt, along with significant wealth, which he used to reclaim his family land (by the title he still preferred), even though Captain Craigengelt had suggested a highly profitable way to invest the money in Law’s recently introduced scheme and even offered to travel to Paris to arrange it. However, Bucklaw had gained enough wisdom from his struggles that he would entertain no proposal from Craigengelt that might jeopardize his hard-won independence. He believed that since he had once lived on pease-bannocks, drunk sour wine, and slept in the secret chamber at Wolf's Crag, he would value good food and a comfortable bed for the rest of his life and would make sure never to rely on such hospitality again.

Craigengelt, therefore, found himself disappointed in the first hopes he had entertained of making a good hand of the Laird of Bucklaw. Still, however, he reaped many advantages from his friend’s good fortune. Bucklaw, who had never been at all scrupulous in choosing his companions, was accustomed to, and entertained by, a fellow whom he could either laugh with or laugh at as he had a mind, who would take, according to Scottish phrase, “the bit and the buffet,” understood all sports, whether within or without doors, and, when the laird had a mind for a bottle of wine (no infrequent circumstance), was always ready to save him from the scandal of getting drunk by himself. Upon these terms, Craigengelt was the frequent, almost the constant, inmate of the house of Girnington.

Craigengelt was feeling let down by his initial hopes of getting in good with the Laird of Bucklaw. However, he still benefited from his friend's good luck. Bucklaw, who was never very picky about his friends, enjoyed having someone around who he could either share a laugh with or poke fun at whenever he wanted. This companion was up for anything—he could handle the highs and lows of life, understood all kinds of sports, and was always ready to join in for a drink when the laird felt like it (which happened quite often), helping to prevent him from facing the embarrassment of drinking alone. Because of this, Craigengelt was a regular visitor, almost a permanent guest, at the house of Girnington.

In no time, and under no possibility of circumstances, could good have been derived from such an intimacy, however its bad consequences might be qualified by the thorough knowledge which Bucklaw possessed of his dependant’s character, and the high contempt in which he held it. But, as circumstances stood, this evil communication was particularly liable to corrupt what good principles nature had implanted in the patron.

In no time, and under no circumstances, could anything good come from such a close relationship, no matter how much Bucklaw understood the character of his dependant and how much he looked down on it. However, given the situation, this negative influence was especially likely to corrupt any good values that nature had instilled in the patron.

Craigengelt had never forgiven the scorn with which Ravenswood had torn the mask of courage and honesty from his countenance; and to exasperate Bucklaw’s resentment against him was the safest mode of revenge which occurred to his cowardly, yet cunning and malignant, disposition.

Craigengelt had never forgiven the way Ravenswood had stripped away the facade of courage and honesty from his face; and making Bucklaw resent him more was the safest way of getting back at him that his cowardly, yet sly and spiteful nature could come up with.

He brought up on all occasions the story of the challenge which Ravenswood had declined to accept, and endeavoured, by every possible insinuation, to make his patron believe that his honour was concerned in bringing that matter to an issue by a present discussion with Ravenswood. But respecting this subject Bucklaw imposed on him, at length, a peremptory command of silence.

He constantly brought up the story of the challenge that Ravenswood had refused to accept and tried, through every possible hint, to get his patron to think that his honor was involved in resolving that issue through a direct discussion with Ravenswood. However, regarding this topic, Bucklaw eventually enforced a strict order for him to remain silent.

“I think,” he said, “the Master has treated me unlike a gentleman, and I see no right he had to send me back a cavalier answer when I demanded the satisfaction of one. But he gave me my life once; and, in looking the matter over at present, I put myself but on equal terms with him. Should he cross me again, I shall consider the old accompt as balanced, and his Mastership will do well to look to himself.”

“I think,” he said, “the Master has treated me poorly, and I see no reason he had to send me a rude reply when I asked for satisfaction. But he did spare my life once; and, thinking about it now, I view myself as his equal. If he wrongs me again, I will consider our past issues resolved, and he should be careful.”

“That he should,” re-echoed Craigengelt; “for when you are in practice, Bucklaw, I would bet a magnum you are through him before the third pass.”

"That he should," echoed Craigengelt; "because when you're in practice, Bucklaw, I'd bet a magnum you'll get past him before the third pass."

“Then you know nothing of the matter,” said Bucklaw, “and you never saw him fence.”

“Then you know nothing about it,” said Bucklaw, “and you’ve never seen him fence.”

“And I know nothing of the matter?” said the dependant—“a good jest, I promise you! And though I never saw Ravenswood fence, have I not been at Monsieur Sagoon’s school, who was the first maître d’armes at Paris; and have I not been at Signor Poco’s at Florence, and Meinheer Durchstossen’s at Vienna, and have I not seen all their play?”

“And I know nothing about it?” said the follower—“that's a good joke, I tell you! And even though I never saw Ravenswood fence, I did attend Monsieur Sagoon’s school, who was the first maître d’armes in Paris; and I’ve studied with Signor Poco in Florence, and Meinheer Durchstossen in Vienna, and I’ve seen all their techniques?”

“I don’t know whether you have or not,” said Bucklaw; “but what about it, though you had?”

“I don’t know if you have or not,” Bucklaw said; “but what if you did?”

“Only that I will be d—d if ever I saw French, Italian, or High-Dutchman ever make foot, hand, and eye keep time half so well as you, Bucklaw.”

“Only that I’ll be damned if I ever saw a Frenchman, Italian, or Dutchman keep time with their feet, hands, and eyes as well as you do, Bucklaw.”

“I believe you lie, Craigie,” said Bucklaw; “however, I can hold my own, both with single rapier, backsword, sword and dagger, broadsword, or case of falchions—and that’s as much as any gentleman need know of the matter.”

“I think you’re lying, Craigie,” said Bucklaw; “but I can hold my own with a single rapier, backsword, sword and dagger, broadsword, or a pair of falchions—and that’s all a gentleman really needs to know about it.”

“And the double of what ninety-nine out of a hundred know,” said Craigengelt; “they learn to change a few thrusts with the small sword, and then, forsooth, they understand the noble art of defence! Now, when I was at Rouen in the year 1695, there was a Chevalier de Chapon and I went to the opera, where we found three bits of English birkies——”

“And the double of what ninety-nine out of a hundred know,” said Craigengelt; “they learn to change a few thrusts with the small sword, and then, for real, they understand the noble art of defense! Now, when I was in Rouen in 1695, there was a Chevalier de Chapon, and I went to the opera, where we found three bits of English punks——”

“Is it a long story you are going to tell?” said Bucklaw, interrupting him without ceremony.

“Are you going to tell a long story?” Bucklaw said, interrupting him bluntly.

“Just as you like,” answered the parasite, “for we made short work of it.”

“Whatever you prefer,” replied the parasite, “because we got it done quickly.”

“Then I like it short,” said Bucklaw. “Is it serious or merry?”

“Then I like it short,” said Bucklaw. “Is it serious or fun?”

“Devilish serious, I assure you, and so they found it; for the Chevalier and I——”

“Seriously devilish, I promise you, and that's what they thought; because the Chevalier and I——”

“Then I don’t like it at all,” said Bucklaw; “so fill a brimmer of my auld auntie’s claret, rest her heart! And, as the Hielandman says, Skioch doch na skiaill.”

“Then I don’t like it at all,” said Bucklaw; “so fill a cup of my old aunt’s claret, bless her heart! And, as the Highland man says, Skioch doch na skiaill.”

“That was what tough old Sir Even Dhu used to say to me when I was out with the metall’d lads in 1689. ‘Craigengelt,’ he used to say, ‘you are as pretty a fellow as ever held steel in his grip, but you have one fault.’”

“That was what tough old Sir Even Dhu used to say to me when I was out with the metal guys in 1689. ‘Craigengelt,’ he would say, ‘you are as handsome a guy as ever held steel in his hand, but you have one flaw.’”

“If he had known you as long as I have done,” said Bucklaw, “he would have found out some twenty more; but hang long stories, give us your toast, man.”

“If he had known you as long as I have,” said Bucklaw, “he would have discovered a lot more about you; but forget about long stories, just give us your toast, man.”

Craigengelt rose, went a-tiptoe to the door, peeped out, shut it carefully, came back again, clapped his tarnished gold-laced hat on one side of his head, took his glass in one hand, and touching the hilt of his hanger with the other, named, “The King over the water.”

Craigengelt stood up, tiptoed to the door, peeked outside, carefully closed it, returned, tilted his worn gold-laced hat to the side, took his glass in one hand, and with the other hand resting on the hilt of his sword, said, “The King over the water.”

“I tell you what it is, Captain Craigengelt,” said Bucklaw; “I shall keep my mind to myself on these subjects, having too much respect for the memory of my venerable Aunt Girnington to put her lands and tenements in the way of committing treason against established authority. Bring me King James to Edinburgh, Captain, with thirty thousand men at his back, and I’ll tell you what I think about his title; but as for running my neck into a noose, and my good broad lands into the statutory penalties, ‘in that case made and provided,’ rely upon it, you will find me no such fool. So, when you mean to vapour with your hanger and your dram-cup in support of treasonable toasts, you must find your liquor and company elsewhere.”

“I’ll tell you straight, Captain Craigengelt,” Bucklaw said; “I’m keeping my opinions to myself on these matters. I have too much respect for the memory of my esteemed Aunt Girnington to risk her lands and properties being involved in rebellion against established authority. If you bring King James to Edinburgh with thirty thousand men backing him, then I’ll share my thoughts on his claim to the throne; but as for putting my neck on the line and jeopardizing my valuable lands with legal penalties, you can count on me not to be that naïve. So, if you plan to flaunt your sword and your drink while promoting treasonous toasts, you’ll need to find your own liquor and companions.”

“Well, then,” said Craigengelt, “name the toast yourself, and be it what it like, I’ll pledge you, were it a mile to the bottom.”

“Alright then,” said Craigengelt, “you choose the toast, and no matter what it is, I’ll drink to it, even if it means going a mile deep.”

“And I’ll give you a toast that deserves it, my boy,” said Bucklaw; “what say you to Miss Lucy Ashton?”

“And I’ll give you a toast that’s well-deserved, my boy,” said Bucklaw; “what do you think about Miss Lucy Ashton?”

“Up with it,” said the Captain, as he tossed off his brimmer, “the bonniest lass in Lothian! What a pity the old sneckdrawing Whigamore, her father, is about to throw her away upon that rag of pride and beggary, the Master of Ravenswood!”

“Come on,” said the Captain, as he downed his drink, “the prettiest girl in Lothian! What a shame her father, the old Whigamore, is about to waste her on that worthless piece of arrogance and poverty, the Master of Ravenswood!”

“That’s not quite so clear,” said Bucklaw, in a tone which, though it seemed indifferent, excited his companion’s eager curiosity; and not that only, but also his hope of working himself into some sort of confidence, which might make him necessary to his patron, being by no means satisfied to rest on mere sufferance, if he could form by art or industry a more permanent title to his favour.

“That’s not really clear,” said Bucklaw, in a tone that, while seemingly indifferent, sparked his companion’s eager curiosity; and not just that, but also his hope of gaining some level of confidence, which might make him essential to his patron, as he was by no means content to rely on mere tolerance if he could create a more lasting claim to his favor through skill or effort.

“I thought,” said he, after a moment’s pause, “that was a settled matter; they are continually together, and nothing else is spoken of betwixt Lammer Law and Traprain.”

“I thought,” he said, after a brief pause, “that was already decided; they’re always together, and nothing else is mentioned between Lammer Law and Traprain.”

“They may say what they please,” replied his patron, “but I know better; and I’ll give you Miss Lucy Ashton’s health again, my boy.”

“They can say whatever they want,” replied his patron, “but I know the truth; and I’ll toast to Miss Lucy Ashton’s health again, my boy.”

“And I would drink it on my knee,” said Craigengelt, “if I thought the girl had the spirit to jilt that d—d son of a Spaniard.”

“And I would drink it on my knee,” said Craigengelt, “if I thought the girl had the guts to break up with that damn son of a Spaniard.”

“I am to request you will not use the word ‘jilt’ and Miss Ashton’s name together,” said Bucklaw, gravely.

“I must ask you not to use the word ‘jilt’ alongside Miss Ashton’s name,” said Bucklaw seriously.

“Jilt, did I say? Discard, my lad of acres—by Jove, I meant to discard,” replied Craigengelt; “and I hope she’ll discard him like a small card at piquet, and take in the king of hearts, my boy! But yet——”

“Jilt, did I say? Discard, my landowning friend—by Jove, I meant to discard,” replied Craigengelt; “and I hope she'll toss him aside like a low card in a game of piquet, and pick up the king of hearts, my boy! But still——”

“But what?” said his patron.

"But what?" said his supporter.

“But yet I know for certain they are hours together alone, and in the woods and the fields.”

“But I know for sure they spend hours together alone, in the woods and in the fields.”

“That’s her foolish father’s dotage; that will be soon put out of the lass’s head, if it ever gets into it,” answered Bucklaw. “And now fill your glass again, Captain; I am going to make you happy; I am going to let you into a secret—a plot—a noosing plot—only the noose is but typical.”

"That's her silly father's old age; that'll be out of the girl's head soon enough, if it ever gets in there," Bucklaw replied. "Now, fill your glass again, Captain; I’m about to make you happy; I’m going to share a secret with you—a scheme—a tricky scheme—only the trick is just a metaphor."

“A marrying matter?” said Craigengelt, and his jaw fell as he asked the question, for he suspected that matrimony would render his situation at Girnington much more precarious than during the jolly days of his patron’s bachelorhood.

“A marrying matter?” said Craigengelt, and his jaw dropped as he asked the question, because he suspected that marriage would make his situation at Girnington much more unstable than it had been during the fun times of his patron’s bachelor days.

“Ay, a marriage, man,” said Bucklaw; “but wherefore droops thy mighty spirit, and why grow the rubies on thy cheek so pale? The board will have a corner, and the corner will have a trencher, and the trencher will have a glass beside it; and the board-end shall be filled, and the trencher and the glass shall be replenished for thee, if all the petticoats in Lothian had sworn the contrary. What, man! I am not the boy to put myself into leading-strings.”

“Yeah, a marriage, man,” said Bucklaw; “but why does your spirit seem so low, and why are the color on your cheeks fading? The table will have a spot, and that spot will have a plate, and the plate will have a glass next to it; and that end of the table will be full, and the plate and the glass will be refilled for you, even if all the ladies in Lothian said otherwise. What are you talking about, man! I’m not the kind of guy to let myself be controlled.”

“So says many an honest fellow,” said Craigengelt, “and some of my special friends; but, curse me if I know the reason, the women could never bear me, and always contrived to trundle me out of favour before the honeymoon was over.”

“So says many a good guy,” said Craigengelt, “and some of my close friends; but, damn if I know why, the women could never stand me, and always managed to push me out of their good graces before the honeymoon was over.”

“If you could have kept your ground till that was over, you might have made a good year’s pension,” said Bucklaw.

“If you could have held your position until that was done, you might have earned a decent year's pension,” said Bucklaw.

“But I never could,” answered the dejected parasite. “There was my Lord Castle-Cuddy—we were hand and glove: I rode his horses, borrowed money both for him and from him, trained his hawks, and taught him how to lay his bets; and when he took a fancy of marrying, I married him to Katie Glegg, whom I thought myself as sure of as man could be of woman. Egad, she had me out of the house, as if I had run on wheels, within the first fortnight!”

“But I never could,” replied the downcast parasite. “There was my Lord Castle-Cuddy—we were inseparable: I rode his horses, borrowed money for him and from him, trained his hawks, and showed him how to place his bets; and when he decided to get married, I married him to Katie Glegg, whom I thought I could depend on as much as any man could rely on a woman. Honestly, she had me out of the house in less than two weeks, as if I were on wheels!”

“Well!” replied Bucklaw, “I think I have nothing of Castle-Cuddy about me, or Lucy of Katie Glegg. But you see the thing will go on whether you like it or no; the only question is, will you be useful?”

“Well!” replied Bucklaw, “I don’t think I have anything of Castle-Cuddy in me, or Lucy from Katie Glegg. But you see, this will keep happening whether you like it or not; the only question is, will you be helpful?”

“Useful!” exclaimed the Captain, “and to thee, my lad of lands, my darling boy, whom I would tramp barefooted through the world for! Name time, place, mode, and circumstances, and see if I will not be useful in all uses that can be devised.”

“Useful!” the Captain exclaimed, “and to you, my land-loving boy, my dear son, for whom I would walk barefoot all over the world! Just tell me the time, place, method, and situation, and see if I won’t be helpful in every way possible.”

“Why, then, you must ride two hundred miles for me,” said the patron.

“Then you have to ride two hundred miles for me,” said the patron.

“A thousand, and call them a flea’s leap,” answered the dependant; “I’ll cause saddle my horse directly.”

“A thousand, and consider it a quick jump,” replied the assistant; “I’ll get my horse saddled right away.”

“Better stay till you know where you are to go, and what you are to do,” quoth Bucklaw. “You know I have a kinswoman in Northumberland, Lady Blenkensop by name, whose old acquaintance I had the misfortune to lose in the period of my poverty, but the light of whose countenance shone forth upon me when the sun of my prosperity began to arise.”

“It's better to stick around until you figure out where you're headed and what you need to do,” Bucklaw said. “You know I have a relative in Northumberland named Lady Blenkensop, and I was unfortunate enough to lose touch with her during my tough times, but her kindness came back to me when things started looking up again.”

“D—n all such double-faced jades!” exclaimed Craigengelt, heroically; “this I will say for John Craigengelt, that he is his friend’s friend through good report and bad report, poverty and riches; and you know something of that yourself, Bucklaw.”

“Damn all these two-faced people!” exclaimed Craigengelt, boldly; “I’ll say this for John Craigengelt, he is a true friend in good times and bad, whether in poverty or wealth; and you know a bit about that too, Bucklaw.”

“I have not forgot your merits,” said his patron; “I do remember that, in my extremities, you had a mind to crimp me for the service of the French king, or of the Pretender; and, moreover, that you afterwards lent me a score of pieces, when, as I firmly believe, you had heard the news that old Lady Girnington had a touch of the dead palsy. But don’t be downcast, John; I believe, after all, you like me very well in your way, and it is my misfortune to have no better counsellor at present. To return to this Lady Blenkensop, you must know, she is a close confederate of Duchess Sarah.”

“I haven't forgotten what you've done for me,” said his patron. “I remember that, in my moment of need, you were looking to recruit me for the service of the French king or the Pretender; and, on top of that, you later lent me some money when I genuinely think you found out that old Lady Girnington had a mild stroke. But don't be discouraged, John; I believe, in your own way, you actually like me quite a bit, and unfortunately, I don’t have a better advisor right now. Now, about this Lady Blenkensop, you should know she’s a close ally of Duchess Sarah.”

“What! of Sall Jennings?” exclaimed Craigengelt; “then she must be a good one.”

“What! Sall Jennings?” exclaimed Craigengelt; “then she must be a good one.”

“Hold your tongue, and keep your Tory rants to yourself, if it be possible,” said Bucklaw. “I tell you, that through the Duchess of Marlborough has this Northumbrian cousin of mine become a crony of Lady Ashton, the Keeper’s wife, or, I may say, the Lord Keeper’s Lady Keeper, and she has favoured Lady Blenkensop with a visit on her return from London, and is just now at her old mansion-house on the banks of the Wansbeck. Now, sir, as it has been the use and wont of these ladies to consider their husbands as of no importance in the management of their own families, it has been their present pleasure, without consulting Sir William Ashton, to put on the tapis a matrimonial alliance, to be concluded between Lucy Ashton and my own right honourable self, Lady Ashton acting as self-constituted plenipotentiary on the part of her daughter and husband, and Mother Blenkensop, equally unaccredited, doing me the honour to be my representative. You may suppose I was a little astonished when I found that a treaty, in which I was so considerably interested, had advanced a good way before I was even consulted.”

“Keep quiet and save your Tory rants for later, if you can,” said Bucklaw. “I’m telling you, thanks to the Duchess of Marlborough, my cousin from Northumberland has become friends with Lady Ashton, the Keeper’s wife, or, as I might put it, the Lord Keeper’s Lady Keeper. She has just visited Lady Blenkensop on her way back from London and is currently at her old mansion by the Wansbeck. Now, since these ladies usually see their husbands as irrelevant when managing their families, they’ve decided, without checking with Sir William Ashton, to propose a marriage alliance between Lucy Ashton and myself, with Lady Ashton taking it upon herself to negotiate for her daughter and husband, and Mother Blenkensop, also unapproved, graciously representing me. You can imagine my surprise when I learned that a treaty I was so deeply involved in had progressed quite a bit before I was even consulted.”

“Capot me! if I think that was according to the rules of the game,” said his confidant; “and pray, what answer did you return?”

“Catch me! If I think that was following the rules of the game,” said his friend. “And please, what was your response?”

“Why, my first thought was to send the treaty to the devil, and the negotiators along with it, for a couple of meddling old women; my next was to laugh very heartily; and my third and last was a settled opinion that the thing was reasonable, and would suit me well enough.”

“Honestly, my first reaction was to toss the treaty in the trash along with the negotiators, who I thought were just a couple of nosy old women; then I wanted to laugh out loud; and finally, I concluded that the whole thing actually made sense and would work just fine for me.”

“Why, I thought you had never seen the wench but once, and then she had her riding-mask on; I am sure you told me so.”

“Why, I thought you had only seen her once, and then she was wearing her riding mask; I’m sure you told me that.”

“Ay, but I liked her very well then. And Ravenswood’s dirty usage of me—shutting me out of doors to dine with the lackeys, because he had the Lord Keeper, forsooth, and his daughter, to be guests in his beggarly castle of starvation,—d—n me, Craigengelt, if I ever forgive him till I play him as good a trick!”

“Ay, but I really liked her back then. And Ravenswood’s terrible treatment of me—shutting me out to have dinner with the servants, just because he had the Lord Keeper and his daughter as guests in his miserable castle of starvation—damn me, Craigengelt, if I ever forgive him until I get my revenge!”

“No more you should, if you are a lad of mettle,” said Craigengelt, the matter now taking a turn in which he could sympathise; “and if you carry this wench from him, it will break his heart.”

“No more you should, if you're a guy with courage,” said Craigengelt, now relating to the situation; “and if you take this girl away from him, it will break his heart.”

“That it will not,” said Bucklaw; “his heart is all steeled over with reason and philosophy, things that you, Craigie, know nothing about more than myself, God help me. But it will break his pride, though, and that’s what I’m driving at.”

"That it won't," said Bucklaw; "his heart is completely hardened by reason and philosophy, things you, Craigie, know no more about than I do, God help me. But it will hurt his pride, though, and that's what I'm getting at."

“Distance me!” said Craigengelt, “but I know the reason now of his unmannerly behaviour at his old tumble-down tower yonder. Ashamed of your company?—no, no! Gad, he was afraid you would cut in and carry off the girl.”

“Stay away from me!” said Craigengelt, “but now I understand why he acted so rudely at his old run-down tower over there. Ashamed of being with you?—no, no! Honestly, he was worried you would swoop in and take the girl.”

“Eh! Craigengelt?” said Bucklaw, “do you really think so? but no, no! he is a devilish deal prettier man than I am.”

“Hey! Craigengelt?” said Bucklaw, “do you really think so? But no, no! He's a hell of a lot better looking than I am.”

“Who—he?” exclaimed the parasite. “He’s as black as the crook; and for his size—he’s a tall fellow, to be sure, but give me a light, stout, middle-sized——”

“Who—he?” exclaimed the parasite. “He’s as black as the crook; and for his size—he’s a tall guy, for sure, but give me a light, sturdy, average-sized——”

“Plague on thee!” said Bucklaw, interrupting him, “and on me for listening to you! You would say as much if I were hunch-backed. But as to Ravenswood—he has kept no terms with me, I’ll keep none with him; if I can win this girl from him, I will win her.”

“Damn you!” said Bucklaw, interrupting him, “and damn me for listening to you! You'd say the same if I were a hunchback. But as for Ravenswood—he hasn’t made any deals with me, so I won’t make any with him; if I can win this girl from him, I will win her.”

“Win her! ’sblood, you shall win her, point, quint, and quatorze, my king of trumps; you shall pique, repique, and capot him.”

“Win her! Damn it, you will win her, point, quint, and fourteen, my ace in the hole; you will pique, repique, and cap him.”

“Prithee, stop thy gambling cant for one instant,” said Bucklaw. “Things have come thus far, that I have entertained the proposal of my kinswoman, agreed to the terms of jointure, amount of fortune, and so forth, and that the affair is to go forward when Lady Ashton comes down, for she takes her daughter and her son in her own hand. Now they want me to send up a confidential person with some writings.”

“Please, stop your nonsense about gambling for a moment,” said Bucklaw. “Things have gotten to the point where I’ve considered my cousin’s proposal, agreed to the jointure terms, the amount of fortune, and so on, and the plan is set to move forward when Lady Ashton arrives, as she will handle her daughter and son herself. Now they want me to send a trusted person with some documents.”

“By this good win, I’ll ride to the end of the world—the very gates of Jericho, and the judgment-seat of Prester John, for thee!” ejaculated the Captain.

“By this good win, I’ll ride to the ends of the earth—the very gates of Jericho, and the judgment seat of Prester John, for you!” exclaimed the Captain.

“Why, I believe you would do something for me, and a great deal for yourself. Now, any one could carry the writings; but you will have a little more to do. You must contrive to drop out before my Lady Ashton, just as if it were a matter of little consequence, the residence of Ravenswood at her husband’s house, and his close intercourse with Miss Ashton; and you may tell her that all the country talks of a visit from the Marquis of A——, as it is supposed, to make up the match betwixt Ravenswood and her daughter. I should like to hear what she says to all this; for, rat me! if I have any idea of starting for the plate at all if Ravenswood is to win the race, and he has odds against me already.”

“Look, I think you could do something for me, and it would be really beneficial for you too. Anyone could carry the messages, but you’ve got a bit more to handle. You need to manage to casually mention to Lady Ashton, like it’s no big deal, that Ravenswood is staying at her husband's place, and that he’s been spending a lot of time with Miss Ashton. You can also let her know that everyone is talking about a visit from the Marquis of A——, which people think is to help set up the marriage between Ravenswood and her daughter. I’m really curious to see how she reacts to all this; honestly, I have no intention of getting involved in the competition if Ravenswood is going to come out on top, and he’s already got the odds stacked in his favor.”

“Never a bit; the wench has too much sense, and in that belief I drink her health a third time; and, were time and place fitting, I would drink it on bended knees, and he that would not pledge me, I would make his guts garter his stockings.”

“Not at all; the girl is too sensible for that, and with that thought, I raise a toast to her health a third time; and if the time and place were right, I would do it on my knees, and anyone who wouldn’t join me, I’d make sure they regretted it.”

“Hark ye, Craigengelt; as you are going into the society of women of rank,” said Bucklaw, “I’ll thank you to forget your strange blackguard oaths and ‘damme’s.’ I’ll write to them, though, that you are a blunt, untaught fellow.”

“Hey, Craigengelt; as you're about to join the company of well-bred women,” said Bucklaw, “I'd appreciate it if you could keep your wild, rough language to yourself. I'll let them know, though, that you’re a straightforward, unsophisticated guy.”

“Ay, ay,” replied Craigengelt—“a plain, blunt, honest, downright soldier.”

“Ay, ay,” replied Craigengelt—“a straightforward, honest, no-nonsense soldier.”

“Not too honest, not too much of the soldier neither; but such as thou art, it is my luck to need thee, for I must have spurs put to Lady Ashton’s motions.”

“Not too honest, not too much of a soldier either; but just as you are, it’s my luck to need you, because I must get spurs added to Lady Ashton’s movements.”

“I’ll dash them up to the rowel-heads,” said Craigengelt; “she shall come here at the gallop, like a cow chased by a whole nest of hornets, and her tail over her rump like a corkscrew.”

“I’ll send them up to the rowel-heads,” said Craigengelt; “she’ll come here at full speed, like a cow being chased by a whole swarm of hornets, her tail sticking up like a corkscrew.”

“And hear ye, Craigie,” said Bucklaw; “your boots and doublet are good enough to drink in, as the man says in the play, but they are somewhat too greasy for tea-table service; prithee, get thyself a little better rigged out, and here is to pay all charges.”

“And listen here, Craigie,” said Bucklaw; “your boots and jacket are nice enough for a drink, as the saying goes, but they’re a bit too greasy for a tea party; please, get yourself dressed a bit better, and here’s to cover all the costs.”

“Nay, Bucklaw; on my soul, man, you use me ill. However,” added Craigengelt, pocketing the money, “if you will have me so far indebted to you, I must be conforming.”

“Nah, Bucklaw; I swear, man, you treat me poorly. But,” Craigengelt said, putting the money in his pocket, “if you want me to owe you this much, I guess I’ll have to go along with it.”

“Well, horse and away!” said the patron, “so soon as you have got your riding livery in trim. You may ride the black crop-ear; and, hark ye, I’ll make you a present of him to boot.”

“Well, get on your horse and go!” said the patron, “as soon as you have your riding gear ready. You can ride the black crop-ear; and, by the way, I’ll give him to you as a gift.”

“I drink to the good luck of my mission,” answered the ambassador, “in a half-pint bumper.”

“I drink to the success of my mission,” replied the ambassador, “in a half-pint toast.”

“I thank ye, Craigie, and pledge you; I see nothing against it but the father or the girl taking a tantrum, and I am told the mother can wind them both round her little finger. Take care not to affront her with any of your Jacobite jargon.”

“I thank you, Craigie, and promise you this; I see nothing wrong with it except if the father or the girl throws a fit, and I’ve heard the mother can easily handle them both. Just be careful not to irritate her with any of your Jacobite nonsense.”

“Oh, ay, true—she is a Whig, and a friend of old Sall of Marlborough; thank my stars, I can hoist any colours at a pinch! I have fought as hard under John Churchill as ever I did under Dundee or the Duke of Berwick.”

“Oh, yeah, that’s true—she’s a Whig and a friend of old Sall from Marlborough; thank my lucky stars, I can raise any flag if I need to! I’ve fought just as hard under John Churchill as I ever did under Dundee or the Duke of Berwick.”

“I verily believe you, Craigie,” said the lord of the mansion; “but, Craigie, do you, pray, step down to the cellar, and fetch us up a bottle of the Burgundy, 1678; it is in the fourth bin from the right-hand turn. And I say, Craigie, you may fetch up half a dozen whilst you are about it. Egad, we’ll make a night on’t!”

“I truly believe you, Craigie,” said the lord of the mansion; “but, Craigie, could you please head down to the cellar and get us a bottle of the Burgundy, 1678? It’s in the fourth bin from the right. And while you’re at it, you might as well bring up half a dozen. By golly, we’re going to have a night of it!”

CHAPTER XXII.

And soon they spied the merry-men green,
And eke the coach and four.

Duke upon Duke.

And soon they spotted the merry men in green,
And also the coach and four.

Duke upon Duke.

Craigengelt set forth on his mission so soon as his equipage was complete, prosecuted his journey with all diligence, and accomplished his commission with all the dexterity for which bucklaw had given him credit. As he arrived with credentials from Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw, he was extremely welcome to both ladies; and those who are prejudiced in favour of a new acquaintance can, for a time at least, discover excellencies in his very faults and perfections in his deficiencies. Although both ladies were accustomed to good society, yet, being pre-determined to find out an agreeable and well-behaved gentleman in Mr. Hayston’s friend, they succeeded wonderfully in imposing on themselves. It is true that Craigengelt was now handsomely dressed, and that was a point of no small consequence. But, independent of outward show, his blackguard impudence of address was construed into honourable bluntness becoming his supposed military profession; his hectoring passed for courage, and his sauciness for wit. Lest, however, any one should think this a violation of probability, we must add, in fairness to the two ladies, that their discernment was greatly blinded, and their favour propitiated, by the opportune arrival of Captain Craigengelt in the moment when they were longing for a third hand to make a party at tredrille, in which, as in all games, whether of chance or skill, that worthy person was a great proficient.

Craigengelt set off on his mission as soon as his ride was ready, traveled with great determination, and completed his task with all the skill that Bucklaw had credited him with. When he arrived with credentials from Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw, both ladies welcomed him warmly; and those who are inclined to favor a new acquaintance can, at least for a while, find virtues in his flaws and strengths in his weaknesses. Although both ladies were used to good company, their resolve to see Mr. Hayston’s friend as an agreeable and well-mannered gentleman led them to successfully deceive themselves. It's true that Craigengelt was now nicely dressed, which mattered a lot. But, beyond appearances, his obnoxious boldness was mistaken for honorable straightforwardness befitting his supposed military background; his brashness was seen as bravery, and his cheekiness was interpreted as wit. However, to ensure no one thinks this strains credibility, we must acknowledge that the two ladies' judgment was significantly clouded, and their favor was won, by Captain Craigengelt's timely arrival just when they were wishing for a third player to join their game of tredrille, which, like all games of chance or skill, he was quite adept at.

When he found himself established in favour, his next point was how best to use it for the furtherance of his patron’s views. He found Lady Ashton prepossessed strongly in favour of the motion which Lady Blenkensop, partly from regard to her kinswoman, partly from the spirit of match-making, had not hesitated to propose to her; so that his task was an easy one. Bucklaw, reformed from his prodigality, was just the sort of husband which she desired to have for her Shepherdess of Lammermoor; and while the marriage gave her an easy fortune, and a respectable country gentleman for her husband, Lady Ashton was of opinion that her destinies would be fully and most favourably accomplished. It so chanced, also, that Bucklaw, among his new acquisitions, had gained the management of a little political interest in a neighbouring county where the Douglas family originally held large possessions. It was one of the bosom-hopes of Lady Ashton that her eldest son, Sholto, should represent this county in the British Parliament, and she saw this alliance with Bucklaw as a circumstance which might be highly favourable to her wishes.

When he found himself in a good position, his next focus was on how to best use it to further his patron's goals. He discovered that Lady Ashton was strongly in favor of the proposal that Lady Blenkensop had casually put forward, partly out of loyalty to her relative and partly due to her matchmaking spirit; thus, his job was relatively easy. Bucklaw, having reformed from his previous excesses, was just the kind of husband she wanted for her Shepherdess of Lammermoor; and while the marriage would provide her with a comfortable fortune and a respectable country gentleman as a husband, Lady Ashton believed that her daughter's future would be secured and very promising. It also happened that Bucklaw, among his new advantages, had gained control over a small political interest in a neighboring county where the Douglas family once had significant holdings. One of Lady Ashton's main hopes was that her eldest son, Sholto, would represent this county in the British Parliament, and she viewed the connection with Bucklaw as a potentially beneficial situation for her ambitions.

Craigengelt, who, in his way, by no means wanted sagacity, no sooner discovered in what quarter the wind of Lady Ashton’s wishes sate, than he trimmed his course accordingly. “There was little to prevent Bucklaw himself from sitting for the county; he must carry the heat—must walk the course. Two cousins-german, six more distant kinsmen, his factor and his chamberlain, were all hollow votes; and the Girnington interest had always carried, betwixt love and fear, about as many more. But Bucklaw cared no more about riding the first horse, and that sort of thing, than he, Craigengelt, did about a game at birkie: it was a pity his interest was not in good guidance.”

Craigengelt, who was no fool in his own way, quickly figured out where Lady Ashton’s interests lay and adjusted his approach accordingly. “There wasn't much stopping Bucklaw from running for the county; he had to take the lead—had to make the rounds. Two close cousins, six more distant relatives, his factor, and his chamberlain were all just empty votes; and the Girnington influence had always managed to pull in about as many more through a mix of love and fear. But Bucklaw cared just as little about being the front-runner and all that as Craigengelt cared about a game of birkie: it's a shame his connections weren't better managed.”

All this Lady Ashton drank in with willing and attentive ears, resolving internally to be herself the person who should take the management of the political influence of her destined son-in-law, for the benefit of her eldest-born, Sholto, and all other parties concerned.

All of this Lady Ashton listened to with eager and attentive ears, making a personal decision to manage the political influence of her future son-in-law for the benefit of her eldest son, Sholto, and everyone else involved.

When he found her ladyship thus favourably disposed, the Captain proceeded, to use his employer’s phrase, to set spurs to her resolution, by hinting at the situation of matters at Ravenswood Castle, the long residence which the heir of that family had made with the Lord Keeper, and the reports which—though he would be d—d ere he gave credit to any of them—had been idly circulated in the neighbourhood. It was not the Captain’s cue to appear himself to be uneasy on the subject of these rumours; but he easily saw from Lady Ashton’s flushed cheek, hesitating voice, and flashing eye, that she had caught the alarm which he intended to communicate. She had not heard from her husband so often or so regularly as she thought him bound in duty to have written, and of this very interesting intelligence concerning his visit to the Tower of Wolf’s Crag, and the guest whom, with such cordiality, he had received at Ravenswood Castle, he had suffered his lady to remain altogether ignorant, until she now learned it by the chance information of a stranger. Such concealment approached, in her apprehension, to a misprision, at last, of treason, if not to actual rebellion against her matrimonial authority; and in her inward soul she did vow to take vengeance on the Lord Keeper, as on a subject detected in meditating revolt. Her indignation burned the more fiercely as she found herself obliged to suppress it in presence of Lady Blenkensop, the kinswoman, and of Craigengelt, the confidential friend, of Bucklaw, of whose alliance she now became trebly desirous, since it occurred to her alarmed imagination that her husband might, in his policy or timidity, prefer that of Ravenswood.

When he saw that Lady Ashton was in a good mood, the Captain decided to push her a little, using his employer's phrase, by hinting at the situation at Ravenswood Castle, the long stay that the heir of that family had with the Lord Keeper, and the rumors that—though he’d be damned before he believed any of them—had been spread around the neighborhood. It wasn't the Captain's role to appear worried about these rumors, but he could easily tell from Lady Ashton’s flushed cheeks, hesitant voice, and intense gaze that she had picked up on the concern he intended to share. She hadn’t heard from her husband as often or as regularly as she thought he should have written, and he had kept her completely in the dark about his visit to the Tower of Wolf’s Crag and the guest he had welcomed so warmly at Ravenswood Castle, until she learned it now from a random stranger. To her, such secrecy felt close to being a serious offense, if not outright rebellion against her authority as his wife; inside, she vowed to take revenge on the Lord Keeper, seeing him as someone plotting against her. Her anger only grew as she had to suppress it in front of Lady Blenkensop, her relative, and Craigengelt, the close friend of Bucklaw, whose alliance she now desired even more, as it occurred to her worried mind that her husband might, in his cautiousness or fear, favor that of Ravenswood.

The Captain was engineer enough to discover that the train was fired; and therefore heard, in the course of the same day, without the least surprise, that Lady Ashton had resolved to abridge her visit to Lady Blenkensop, and set forth with the peep of morning on her return to Scotland, using all the despatch which the state of the roads and the mode of travelling would possibly permit.

The Captain was savvy enough to realize that the train was ready to go; and so, on the same day, he heard without any surprise that Lady Ashton had decided to cut her visit short with Lady Blenkensop and set off at dawn to return to Scotland, making the best of the road conditions and the way of traveling available to her.

Unhappy Lord Keeper! little was he aware what a storm was travelling towards him in all the speed with which an old-fashioned coach and six could possibly achieve its journey. He, like Don Gayferos, “forgot his lady fair and true,” and was only anxious about the expected visit of the Marquis of A——. Soothfast tidings had assured him that this nobleman was at length, and without fail, to honour his castle at one in the afternoon, being a late dinner-hour; and much was the bustle in consequence of the annunciation. The Lord Keeper traversed the chambers, held consultation with the butler in the cellars, and even ventured, at the risk of a démêlé with a cook of a spirit lofty enough to scorn the admonitions of Lady Ashton herself, to peep into the kitchen. Satisfied, at length, that everything was in as active a train of preparation as was possible, he summoned Ravenswood and his daughter to walk upon the terrace, for the purpose of watching, from that commanding position, the earliest symptoms of his lordship’s approach. For this purpose, with slow and idle step, he paraded the terrace, which, flanked with a heavy stone battlement, stretched in front of the castle upon a level with the first story; while visitors found access to the court by a projecting gateway, the bartizan or flat-leaded roof of which was accessible from the terrace by an easy flight of low and broad steps. The whole bore a resemblance partly to a castle, partly to a nobleman’s seat; and though calculated, in some respects, for defence, evinced that it had been constructed under a sense of the power and security of the ancient Lords of Ravenswood.

Unhappy Lord Keeper! He had no idea that a storm was speeding toward him as quickly as an old-fashioned coach and six horses could manage. Like Don Gayferos, he “forgot his fair and loyal lady” and was only focused on the anticipated visit from the Marquis of A——. Reliable news had confirmed that this nobleman was finally going to honor his castle at one in the afternoon, which was a late dinner hour; and there was quite a commotion because of the announcement. The Lord Keeper moved through the rooms, consulted with the butler in the cellars, and even dared to peek into the kitchen, risking a confrontation with a cook who had a spirit too proud to heed Lady Ashton’s warnings. Eventually satisfied that everything was being prepared as best as possible, he called Ravenswood and his daughter to walk on the terrace to look out for the first signs of his lordship’s arrival. With slow and leisurely steps, he paced the terrace, which, bordered by a heavy stone wall, extended in front of the castle at the level of the first floor; visitors entered the courtyard through a projecting gateway, the flat-roofed bartizan of which was accessed from the terrace by a short flight of low, wide steps. The entire structure resembled both a castle and a nobleman’s residence; and while it was designed in part for defense, it also showed that it had been built under the security and power of the ancient Lords of Ravenswood.

This pleasant walk commanded a beautiful and extensive view. But what was most to our present purpose, there were seen from the terrace two roads, one leading from the east, and one from the westward, which, crossing a ridge opposed to the eminence on which the castle stood, at different angles, gradually approached each other, until they joined not far from the gate of the avenue. It was to the westward approach that the Lord Keeper, from a sort of fidgeting anxiety, his daughter, from complaisance to him, and Ravenswood, though feeling some symptoms of internal impatience, out of complaisance to his daughter, directed their eyes to see the precursors of the Marquis’s approach.

This nice walk offered a beautiful and wide view. But what was most relevant to us at the moment was that from the terrace, you could see two roads, one coming from the east and one from the west. These roads crossed a ridge opposite the hill where the castle stood at different angles and gradually moved closer together until they met not far from the entrance of the avenue. It was towards the westward road that the Lord Keeper, feeling a bit anxious, his daughter, wanting to please him, and Ravenswood, though feeling somewhat impatient inside, out of respect for his daughter, all focused their attention to see the first signs of the Marquis’s arrival.

These were not long of presenting themselves. Two running footmen, dressed in white, with black jockey-caps, and long staffs in their hands, headed the train; and such was their agility, that they found no difficulty in keeping the necessary advance, which the etiquette of their station required, before the carriage and horsemen. Onward they came at a long swinging trot, arguing unwearied speed in their long-breathed calling. Such running footmen are often alluded to in old plays (I would particularly instance Middleton’s Mad World, my Masters), and perhaps may be still remembered by some old persons in Scotland, as part of the retinue of the ancient nobility when travelling in full ceremony. Behind these glancing meteors, who footed it as if the Avenger of Blood had been behind them, came a cloud of dust, raised by riders who preceded, attended, or followed the state-carriage of the Marquis.

These didn’t take long to show up. Two footmen in white uniforms, wearing black jockey caps and holding long staffs, led the way. They were so agile that they easily maintained the necessary distance required by their role in front of the carriage and horsemen. They came forward at a steady trot, demonstrating their impressive endurance. These footmen are often mentioned in old plays (I’d especially highlight Middleton’s *Mad World, my Masters*), and some older people in Scotland might still remember them as part of the entourage of the ancient nobility when traveling in full ceremony. Behind these quick footmen, who moved as if the Avenger of Blood were chasing them, a cloud of dust was stirred up by riders who were ahead of, alongside, or trailing the state carriage of the Marquis.

The privilege of nobility, in those days, had something in it impressive on the imagination. The dresses and liveries and number of their attendants, their style of travelling, the imposing, and almost warlike, air of the armed men who surrounded them, place them far above the laird, who travelled with his brace of footmen; and as to rivalry from the mercantile part of the community, these would as soon have thought of imitating the state equipage of the Sovereign. At present it is different; and I myself, Peter Pattieson, in a late journey to Edinburgh, had the honour, in the mail-coach phrase to “change a leg” with a peer of the realm. It was not so in the days of which I write; and the Marquis’s approach, so long expected in vain, now took place in the full pomp of ancient aristocracy. Sir William Ashton was so much interested in what he beheld, and in considering the ceremonial of reception, in case any circumstance had been omitted, that he scarce heard his son Henry exclaim: “There is another coach and six coming down the east road, papa; can they both belong to the Marquis of A——?”

The privilege of nobility back then had a certain impressive quality that sparked the imagination. Their extravagant outfits, their servants, the way they traveled, and the grand, almost military presence of the armed men around them set them far above the local laird, who had just a couple of footmen. As for any competition from the merchant class, they wouldn't have dared to mimic the royal style of travel. Nowadays, that's different; I, Peter Pattieson, recently had the honor of “changing a leg” with a noble during a trip to Edinburgh. It wasn't like that in the times I'm describing; the Marquis’s arrival, long anticipated, now happened with all the grandeur of ancient aristocracy. Sir William Ashton was so engrossed in what he saw and in thinking about the details of the reception, in case something was overlooked, that he barely heard his son Henry shout: “There’s another coach and six coming down the east road, dad; could they both belong to the Marquis of A——?”

At length, when the youngster had fairly compelled his attention by pulling his sleeve,

At last, when the kid had really grabbed his attention by tugging on his sleeve,

He turned his eyes, and, as he turned, survey’d
An awful vision.

He turned his gaze, and as he did, he looked out at
a terrifying sight.

Sure enough, another coach and six, with four servants or outriders in attendance, was descending the hill from the eastward, at such a pace as made it doubtful which of the carriages thus approaching from different quarters would first reach the gate at the extremity of the avenue. The one coach was green, the other blue; and not the green and blue chariots in the circus of Rome or Constantinople excited more turmoil among the citizens than the double apparition occasioned in the mind of the Lord Keeper.

Sure enough, another coach and six with four servants or outriders was coming down the hill from the east at such a speed that it was unclear which of the carriages approaching from different directions would reach the gate at the end of the avenue first. One coach was green, the other was blue; and the sight of these two carriages stirred up more excitement in the mind of the Lord Keeper than the green and blue chariots in the circus of Rome or Constantinople did among the citizens.

We all remember the terrible exclamation of the dying profligate, when a friend, to destroy what he supposed the hypochondriac idea of a spectre appearing in a certain shape at a given hour, placed before him a person dressed up in the manner he described. “Mon Dieu!” said the expiring sinner, who, it seems, saw both the real and polygraphic apparition, “il y en a deux!

We all remember the dreadful cry of the dying spender when a friend, trying to eliminate what he thought was a hypochondriacal fear of a ghost appearing in a certain form at a specific time, set before him someone dressed as he described. “My God!” said the dying sinner, who, it seems, saw both the real and the fake apparition, “there are two!

The surprise of the Lord Keeper was scarcely less unpleasing at the duplication of the expected arrival; his mind misgave him strangely. There was no neighbour who would have approached so unceremoniously, at a time when ceremony was held in such respect. It must be Lady Ashton, said his conscience, and followed up the hint with an anxious anticipation of the purpose of her sudden and unannounced return. He felt that he was caught “in the manner.” That the company in which she had so unluckily surprised him was likely to be highly distasteful to her, there was no question; and the only hope which remained for him was her high sense of dignified propriety, which, he trusted, might prevent a public explosion. But so active were his doubts and fears as altogether to derange his purposed ceremonial for the reception of the Marquis.

The Lord Keeper was nearly as displeased by the unexpected arrival as he was surprised; something didn’t feel right to him. There was no neighbor who would come over so casually when decorum was highly valued. It must be Lady Ashton, his conscience suggested, and he followed that thought with a worried anticipation about the reason for her sudden and unannounced return. He realized he had been caught “in the act.” There was no doubt that the company he had so unfortunate stumbled into would be very distasteful to her, and his only hope was her strong sense of dignity, which he hoped would prevent any public scene. But his doubts and fears were so overwhelming that they completely disrupted his planned formal welcome for the Marquis.

These feelings of apprehension were not confined to Sir William Ashton. “It is my mother—it is my mother!” said Lucy, turning as pale as ashes, and clasping her hands together as she looked at Ravenswood.

These feelings of anxiety weren't limited to Sir William Ashton. “It’s my mom—it’s my mom!” said Lucy, going as pale as a ghost and clasping her hands together as she looked at Ravenswood.

“And if it be Lady Ashton,” said her lover to her in a low tone, “what can be the occasion of such alarm? Surely the return of a lady to the family from which she has been so long absent should excite other sensations than those of fear and dismay.”

“And if it is Lady Ashton,” her lover said to her quietly, “what could be causing such alarm? Surely the return of a lady to the family she has been absent from for so long should bring other feelings besides fear and distress.”

“You do not know my mother,” said Miss Ashton, in a tone almost breathless with terror; “what will she say when she sees you in this place!”

“You don’t know my mom,” said Miss Ashton, in a voice nearly trembling with fear; “what will she say when she sees you here?”

“My stay has been too long,” said Ravenswood, somewhat haughtily, “if her displeasure at my presence is likely to be so formidable. My dear Lucy,” he resumed, in a tone of soothing encouragement, “you are too childishly afraid of Lady Ashton; she is a woman of family—a lady of fashion—a person who must know the world, and what is due to her husband and her husband’s guests.” Lucy shook her head; and, as if her mother, still at the distance of half a mile, could have seen and scrutinised her deportment, she withdrew herself from beside Ravenswood, and, taking her brother Henry’s arm, led him to a different part of the terrace. The Keeper also shuffled down towards the portal of the great gate, without inviting Ravenswood to accompany him; and thus he remained standing alone on the terrace, deserted and shunned, as it were, by the inhabitants of the mansion. This suited not the mood of one who was proud in proportion to his poverty, and who thought that, in sacrificing his deep-rooted resentments so far as to become Sir William Ashton’s guest, he conferred a favour, and received none. “I can forgive Lucy,” he said to himself; “she is young, timid, and conscious of an important engagement assumed without her mother’s sanction; yet she should remember with whom it has been assumed, and leave me no reason to suspect that she is ashamed of her choice. For the Keeper, sense, spirit, and expression seem to have left his face and manner since he had the first glimpse of Lady Ashton’s carriage. I must watch how this is to end; and, if they give me reason to think myself an unwelcome guest, my visit is soon abridged.”

“My stay has been too long,” Ravenswood said, somewhat arrogantly, “if her anger at my presence is going to be this overwhelming. My dear Lucy,” he continued in a comforting tone, “you’re being too childishly afraid of Lady Ashton; she is an upper-class woman— a fashionable lady—someone who must know the world and what is expected of her and her husband’s guests.” Lucy shook her head, and as if her mother, who was still half a mile away, could see and evaluate her behavior, she stepped away from Ravenswood and took her brother Henry’s arm, leading him to another part of the terrace. The Keeper also shuffled down towards the entrance of the great gate without inviting Ravenswood to join him; thus, he stayed alone on the terrace, feeling abandoned and avoided by the residents of the mansion. This did not suit someone proud in relation to his poverty, who felt that by putting aside his long-held resentments to become Sir William Ashton’s guest, he was doing them a favor, not the other way around. “I can forgive Lucy,” he told himself; “she’s young, timid, and aware of a significant commitment made without her mother’s approval; yet she should remember who she has chosen and not give me any reason to think she’s ashamed of her choice. As for the Keeper, it seems like all sense, spirit, and expression have left his face and demeanor since he caught a glimpse of Lady Ashton’s carriage. I need to see how this plays out; and if they give me any reason to feel like an unwelcome guest, my visit will be cut short.”

With these suspicions floating on his mind, he left the terrace, and walking towards the stables of the castle, gave directions that his horse should be kept in readiness, in case he should have occasion to ride abroad.

With these suspicions in his mind, he left the terrace and walked toward the castle stables, asking that his horse be made ready in case he needed to ride out.

In the mean while, the drivers of the two carriages, the approach of which had occasioned so much dismay at the castle, had become aware of each other’s presence, as they approached upon different lines to the head of the avenue, as a common centre. Lady Ashton’s driver and postilions instantly received orders to get foremost, if possible, her ladyship being desirous of despatching her first interview with her husband before the arrival of these guests, whoever they might happen to be. On the other hand, the coachman of the Marquis, conscious of his own dignity and that of his master, and observing the rival charioteer was mending his pace, resolved, like a true brother of the whip, whether ancient or modern, to vindicate his right of precedence. So that, to increase the confusion of the Lord Keeper’s understanding, he saw the short time which remained for consideration abridged by the haste of the contending coachmen, who, fixing their eyes sternly on each other, and applying the lash smartly to their horses, began to thunder down the descent with emulous rapidity, while the horsemen who attended them were forced to put on to a hand-gallop.

Meanwhile, the drivers of the two carriages, whose arrival had caused such alarm at the castle, became aware of each other as they approached the head of the avenue from different directions. Lady Ashton’s driver and postilions immediately received orders to take the lead, as her ladyship wanted to have her first meeting with her husband before these guests arrived, whoever they might be. On the other hand, the coachman of the Marquis, aware of his own dignity and that of his master, noticed the rival driver speeding up and decided, like a true professional, to insist on his right of way. As a result, to add to the confusion in the Lord Keeper’s mind, he saw the little time he had to consider the situation being further shortened by the urgency of the competing coachmen, who, glaring at each other and urging their horses on with the whip, began to race down the slope at a rapid pace, while the horsemen escorting them had to gallop alongside.

Sir William’s only chance now remaining was the possibility of an overturn, and that his lady or visitor might break their necks. I am not aware that he formed any distinct wish on the subject, but I have no reason to think that his grief in either case would have been altogether inconsolable. This chance, however, also disappeared; for Lady Ashton, though insensible to fear, began to see the ridicule of running a race with a visitor of distinction, the goal being the portal of her own castle, and commanded her coachman, as they approached the avenue, to slacken his pace, and allow precedence to the stranger’s equipage; a command which he gladly obeyed, as coming in time to save his honour, the horses of the Marquis’s carriage being better, or, at least, fresher than his own. He restrained his pace, therefore, and suffered the green coach to enter the avenue, with all its retinue, which pass it occupied with the speed of a whirlwind. The Marquis’s laced charioteer no sooner found the pas d’avance was granted to him than he resumed a more deliberate pace, at which he advanced under the embowering shade of the lofty elms, surrounded by all the attendants; while the carriage of Lady Ashton followed, still more slowly, at some distance.

Sir William’s only remaining hope was the chance of an accident where his lady or guest might get hurt. I’m not sure he had a specific wish about it, but I don’t think he would have been completely inconsolable in either case. Unfortunately, this chance also vanished; Lady Ashton, though fearless, started to realize how silly it would be to race against a distinguished guest to the entrance of her own castle. So, as they neared the avenue, she ordered her coachman to slow down and let the visitor go first, a command he was eager to follow, since it would save his pride; the Marquis’s horses were better, or at least livelier, than his own. He reduced his speed and let the green coach and its entourage enter the avenue, which moved like a whirlwind. As soon as the Marquis’s well-dressed driver saw he had been given the right of way, he picked up a more relaxed pace, advancing under the shade of the tall elms with all his attendants, while Lady Ashton’s carriage followed at an even slower pace, further back.

In the front of the castle, and beneath the portal which admitted guests into the inner court, stood Sir William Ashton, much perplexed in mind, his younger son and daughter beside him, and in their rear a train of attendants of various ranks, in and out of livery. The nobility and gentry of Scotland, at this period, were remarkable even to extravagance for the number of their servants, whose services were easily purchased in a country where men were numerous beyond proportion to the means of employing them.

In front of the castle, under the entrance that allowed guests into the inner courtyard, stood Sir William Ashton, deeply puzzled, with his younger son and daughter beside him, and behind them a group of attendants of various ranks, some in uniforms and some not. At this time, the nobility and gentry of Scotland were known for having an extravagant number of servants, as their services were easily obtained in a country where there were more men than jobs available.

The manners of a man trained like Sir William Ashton are too much at his command to remain long disconcerted with the most adverse concurrence of circumstances. He received the Marquis, as he alighted from his equipage, with the usual compliments of welcome; and, as he ushered him into the great hall, expressed his hope that his journey had been pleasant. The Marquis was a tall, well-made man, with a thoughtful and intelligent countenance, and an eye in which the fire of ambition had for some years replaced the vivacity of youth; a bold, proud expression of countenance, yet chastened by habitual caution, and the desire which, as the head of a party, he necessarily entertained of acquiring popularity. He answered with courtesy the courteous inquiries of the Lord Keeper, and was formally presented to Miss Ashton, in the course of which ceremony the Lord Keeper gave the first symptom of what was chiefly occupying his mind, by introducing his daughter as “his wife, Lady Ashton.”

The manners of a man trained like Sir William Ashton are too well developed to stay upset for long, even with the most challenging circumstances. He welcomed the Marquis as he stepped down from his carriage with the usual polite greetings and, as he guided him into the grand hall, hoped that the Marquis's journey had been enjoyable. The Marquis was a tall, well-built man with a thoughtful and intelligent face, and his eyes, where the fire of ambition had replaced the youthful spark, conveyed a bold, proud look tempered by habitual caution and the desire to gain popularity as the leader of a party. He courteously responded to the Lord Keeper's friendly inquiries and was formally introduced to Miss Ashton. During this introduction, the Lord Keeper revealed what was mainly on his mind by referring to his daughter as “his wife, Lady Ashton.”

Lucy blushed; the Marquis looked surprised at the extremely juvenile appearance of his hostess, and the Lord Keeper with difficulty rallied himself so far as to explain. “I should have said my daughter, my lord; but the truth is, that I saw Lady Ashton’s carriage enter the avenue shortly after your lordship’s, and——”

Lucy blushed; the Marquis looked surprised by the very young appearance of his hostess, and the Lord Keeper struggled to compose himself enough to explain. “I meant to say my daughter, my lord; but the truth is, I saw Lady Ashton’s carriage drive into the avenue shortly after yours, and——”

“Make no apology, my lord,” replied his noble guest; “let me entreat you will wait on your lady, and leave me to cultivate Miss Ashton’s acquaintance. I am shocked my people should have taken precedence of our hostess at her own gate; but your lordship is aware that I supposed Lady Ashton was still in the south. Permit me to beseech you will waive ceremony, and hasten to welcome her.”

“Don’t apologize, my lord,” replied his noble guest; “please let me ask you to attend to your lady, and allow me to get to know Miss Ashton. I’m surprised my people took priority over our hostess at her own entrance; but you know I thought Lady Ashton was still in the south. Please let me urge you to skip the formalities and go welcome her.”

This was precisely what the Lord Keeper longed to do; and he instantly profited by his lordship’s obliging permission. To see Lady Ashton, and encounter the first burst of her displeasure in private, might prepare her, in some degree, to receive her unwelcome guests with due decorum. As her carriage, therefore, stopped, the arm of the attentive husband was ready to assist Lady Ashton in dismounting. Looking as if she saw him not, she put his arm aside, and requested that of Captain Craigengelt, who stood by the coach with his laced hat under his arm, having acted as cavaliere servente, or squire in attendance, during the journey. Taking hold of this respectable person’s arm as if to support her, Lady Ashton traversed the court, uttering a word or two by way of direction to the servants, but not one to Sir William, who in vain endeavoured to attract her attention, as he rather followed than accompanied her into the hall, in which they found the Marquis in close conversation with the Master of Ravenswood. Lucy had taken the first opportunity of escaping. There was embarrassment on every countenance except that of the Marquis of A——; for even Craigengelt’s impudence was hardly able to veil his fear of Ravenswood, and the rest felt the awkwardness of the position in which they were thus unexpectedly placed.

This was exactly what the Lord Keeper wanted to do, and he quickly took advantage of his lordship’s generous permission. Seeing Lady Ashton and facing her initial displeasure in private might help her get ready to greet her uninvited guests with some decorum. So, as her carriage came to a stop, her attentive husband was there to help Lady Ashton get down. Acting as if she didn’t see him, she brushed his arm aside and asked Captain Craigengelt, who stood by the coach with his laced hat under his arm, for assistance. Taking hold of this respectable man's arm as if needing support, Lady Ashton walked through the courtyard, saying a few words to direct the servants but not saying a single word to Sir William, who tried in vain to get her attention while following her into the hall. There, they found the Marquis deep in conversation with the Master of Ravenswood. Lucy had taken the first chance to slip away. There was embarrassment on everyone's face except for the Marquis of A——; even Craigengelt’s boldness couldn’t hide his fear of Ravenswood, and the others felt the awkwardness of the unexpected situation they were in.

After waiting a moment to be presented by Sir William Ashton, the Marquis resolved to introduce himself. “The Lord Keeper,” he said, bowing to Lady Ashton, “has just introduced to me his daughter as his wife; he might very easily present Lady Ashton as his daughter, so little does she differ from what I remember her some years since. Will she permit an old acquaintance the privilege of a guest?”

After waiting a moment to be introduced by Sir William Ashton, the Marquis decided to introduce himself. “The Lord Keeper,” he said, bowing to Lady Ashton, “just introduced his daughter to me as his wife; he could easily present Lady Ashton as his daughter, since she looks so much like I remember her from a few years ago. Will she allow an old acquaintance the honor of being a guest?”


He saluted the lady with too good a grace to apprehend a repulse, and then proceeded: “This, Lady Ashton, is a peacemaking visit, and therefore I presume to introduce my cousin, the young Master of Ravenswood, to your favourable notice.”

He greeted the lady with such charm that he didn’t expect a rejection, and then continued: “This, Lady Ashton, is a visit in the spirit of peace, so I’d like to introduce my cousin, the young Master of Ravenswood, to your kind attention.”

Lady Ashton could not choose but courtesy; but there was in her obeisance an air of haughtiness approaching to contemptuous repulse. Ravenswood could not choose but bow; but his manner returned the scorn with which he had been greeted.

Lady Ashton couldn't help but be polite; however, there was a hint of arrogance in her gesture that nearly conveyed contempt. Ravenswood had no choice but to bow; yet his demeanor mirrored the disdain with which she had addressed him.

“Allow me,” she said, “to present to your lordship my friend.” Craigengelt, with the forward impudence which men of his cast mistake for ease, made a sliding bow to the Marquis, which he graced by a flourish of his gold-laced hat. The lady turned to her husband. “You and I, Sir William,” she said, and these were the first words she had addressed to him, “have acquired new acquaintances since we parted; let me introduce the acquisition I have made to mine—Captain Craigengelt.”

“Allow me,” she said, “to introduce to you, my friend.” Craigengelt, with the overconfident boldness that men like him often mistake for charm, gave a slight bow to the Marquis, which he embellished with a flourish of his gold-laced hat. The lady turned to her husband. “You and I, Sir William,” she said, and these were the first words she had spoken to him, “have made new acquaintances since we separated; let me introduce the new person I’ve met—Captain Craigengelt.”

Another bow, and another flourish of the gold-laced hat, which was returned by the Lord Keeper without intimation of former recognition, and with that sort of anxious readiness which intimated his wish that peace and amnesty should take place betwixt the contending parties, including the auxiliaries on both sides. “Let me introduce you to the Master of Ravenswood,” said he to Captain Craigengelt, following up the same amicable system.

Another bow and a flourish of the gold-laced hat, which was returned by the Lord Keeper without any sign of previous recognition, and with a kind of anxious eagerness that suggested he wanted peace and forgiveness between the opposing sides, including the supporters on both ends. “Let me introduce you to the Master of Ravenswood,” he said to Captain Craigengelt, continuing with the same friendly approach.

But the Master drew up his tall form to the full extent of his height, and without so much as looking towards the person thus introduced to him, he said, in a marked tone: “Captain Craigengelt and I are already perfectly well acquainted with each other.”

But the Master stood up straight, and without even looking at the person introduced to him, he said in a clear tone: “Captain Craigengelt and I already know each other very well.”

“Perfectly—perfectly,” replied the Captain, in a mumbling tone, like that of a double echo, and with a flourish of his hat, the circumference of which was greatly abridged, compared with those which had so cordially graced his introduction to the Marquis and the Lord Keeper.

“Perfectly—perfectly,” replied the Captain, in a mumbling tone, like that of a double echo, and with a flourish of his hat, the circumference of which was much smaller than those which had so warmly accompanied his introduction to the Marquis and the Lord Keeper.

Lockhard, followed by three menials, now entered with wine and refreshments, which it was the fashion to offer as a whet before dinner; and when they were placed before the guests, Lady Ashton made an apology for withdrawing her husband from them for some minutes upon business of special import. The Marquis, of course, requested her ladyship would lay herself under no restraint; and Craigengelt, bolting with speed a second glass of racy canary, hastened to leave the room, feeling no great pleasure in the prospect of being left alone with the Marquis of A—— and the Master of Ravenswood; the presence of the former holding him in awe, and that of the latter in bodily terror.

Lockhard, followed by three attendants, entered with wine and snacks, which was the custom to serve as a pre-dinner appetizer. After they were set before the guests, Lady Ashton apologized for taking her husband away for a few minutes on some important business. The Marquis, of course, insisted that she shouldn't feel constrained. Meanwhile, Craigengelt quickly downed a second glass of strong canary wine and rushed to leave the room, not thrilled about the idea of being left alone with the Marquis of A—— and the Master of Ravenswood; he felt intimidated by the former and scared of the latter.

Some arrangements about his horse and baggage formed the pretext for his sudden retreat, in which he persevered, although Lady Ashton gave Lockhard orders to be careful most particularly to accommodate Captain Craigengelt with all the attendance which he could possibly require. The Marquis and the Master of Ravenswood were thus left to communicate to each other their remarks upon the reception which they had met with, while Lady Ashton led the way, and her lord followed somewhat like a condemned criminal, to her ladyship’s dressing-room.

Some plans regarding his horse and luggage served as the excuse for his sudden departure, which he stuck to, even though Lady Ashton instructed Lockhard to be especially attentive to Captain Craigengelt and provide him with all the assistance he might need. The Marquis and the Master of Ravenswood were left to discuss their thoughts on the reception they had received, while Lady Ashton took the lead, with her husband trailing behind like a condemned man, to her ladyship’s dressing room.

So soon as the spouses had both entered, her ladyship gave way to that fierce audacity of temper which she had with difficulty suppressed, out of respect to appearances. She shut the door behind the alarmed Lord Keeper, took the key out of the spring-lock, and with a countenance which years had not bereft of its haughty charms, and eyes which spoke at once resolution and resentment, she addressed her astounded husband in these words: “My lord, I am not greatly surprised at the connexions you have been pleased to form during my absence, they are entirely in conformity with your birth and breeding; and if I did expect anything else, I heartily own my error, and that I merit, by having done so, the disappointment you had prepared for me.”

As soon as they both walked in, she let loose that fierce boldness she had struggled to contain out of respect for appearances. She closed the door behind the startled Lord Keeper, took the key out of the lock, and with a face that still had its proud charm and eyes that radiated both determination and anger, she addressed her stunned husband: “My lord, I’m not really surprised by the connections you’ve made while I was away; they totally match your background and upbringing. If I expected anything different, I admit I was wrong, and I deserve the disappointment you had ready for me.”

“My dear Lady Ashton—my dear Eleanor [Margaret],” said the Lord Keeper, “listen to reason for a moment, and I will convince you I have acted with all the regard due to the dignity, as well as the interest, of my family.”

“My dear Lady Ashton—my dear Eleanor [Margaret],” said the Lord Keeper, “please hear me out for a moment, and I will show you that I have acted with all the respect deserved by the dignity, as well as the interests, of my family.”

“To the interest of your family I conceive you perfectly capable of attending,” returned the indignant lady, “and even to the dignity of your own family also, as far as it requires any looking after. But as mine happens to be inextricably involved with it, you will excuse me if I choose to give my own attention so far as that is concerned.”

“To protect your family’s interests, I believe you are more than capable of handling this,” the upset lady replied, “and even upholding the dignity of your own family, as far as it needs managing. But since my family is tangled up in this too, I hope you understand if I decide to take charge of that aspect myself.”

“What would you have, Lady Ashton?” said the husband. “What is it that displeases you? Why is it that, on your return after so long an absence, I am arraigned in this manner?”

“What do you want, Lady Ashton?” said her husband. “What’s bothering you? Why is it that, upon your return after such a long time away, I’m being treated this way?”

“Ask your own conscience, Sir William, what has prompted you to become a renegade to your political party and opinions, and led you, for what I know, to be on the point of marrying your only daughter to a beggarly Jacobite bankrupt, the inveterate enemy of your family to the boot.”

“Ask yourself, Sir William, what made you turn your back on your political party and beliefs, and what has driven you, as far as I know, to be on the verge of marrying your only daughter to a broke Jacobite, who is the sworn enemy of your family on top of that.”

“Why, what, in the name of common sense and common civility, would you have me do, madam?” answered her husband. “Is it possible for me, with ordinary decency, to turn a young gentleman out of my house, who saved my daughter’s life and my own, but the other morning, as it were?”

“Why, what, in the name of common sense and basic decency, do you want me to do, ma'am?” her husband replied. “Is it reasonable for me, with any sense of decency, to kick out a young man from my house who saved both my daughter’s life and mine just the other morning?”

“Saved your life! I have heard of that story,” said the lady. “The Lord Keeper was scared by a dun cow, and he takes the young fellow who killed her for Guy of Warwick: any butcher from Haddington may soon have an equal claim on your hospitality.”

“Saved your life! I've heard that story,” said the lady. “The Lord Keeper was frightened by a wild cow, and he mistook the young guy who killed her for Guy of Warwick: any butcher from Haddington could soon have the same claim on your hospitality.”

“Lady Ashton,” stammered the Keeper, “this is intolerable; and when I am desirous, too, to make you easy by any sacrifice, if you would but tell me what you would be at.”

“Lady Ashton,” stammered the Keeper, “this is unacceptable; and I really want to make things easier for you by any means; if you would just let me know what you need.”

“Go down to your guests,” said the imperious dame, “and make your apology to Ravenswood, that the arrival of Captain Craigengelt and some other friends renders it impossible for you to offer him lodgings at the castle. I expect young Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw.”

“Go down to your guests,” said the commanding lady, “and apologize to Ravenswood, because the arrival of Captain Craigengelt and some other friends makes it impossible for you to offer him a place to stay at the castle. I’m expecting young Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw.”

“Good heavens, madam!” ejaculated her husband. “Ravenswood to give place to Craigengelt, a common gambler and an informer! It was all I could do to forbear desiring the fellow to get out of my house, and I was much surprised to see him in your ladyship’s train.”

“Goodness, ma'am!” her husband exclaimed. “Ravenswood making way for Craigengelt, a common gambler and a snitch! I could barely stop myself from telling the guy to leave my house, and I was really surprised to see him in your company.”

“Since you saw him there, you might be well assured,” answered this meek helpmate, “that he was proper society. As to this Ravenswood, he only meets with the treatment which, to my certain knowledge, he gave to a much-valued friend of mine, who had the misfortune to be his guest some time since. But take your resolution; for, if Ravenswood does not quit the house, I will.”

“Since you saw him there, you can be sure,” replied this humble companion, “that he was with the right company. As for Ravenswood, he’s only getting the same treatment he gave to a dear friend of mine, who unfortunately had to be his guest a while ago. But make your decision; if Ravenswood doesn’t leave the house, I will.”

Sir William Ashton paced up and down the apartment in the most distressing agitation; fear, and shame, and anger contending against the habitual deference he was in the use of rendering to his lady. At length it ended, as is usual with timid minds placed in such circumstances, in his adopting a mezzo termine, a middle measure.

Sir William Ashton walked back and forth in the room, feeling extremely troubled; fear, shame, and anger battled against the usual respect he had for his lady. Eventually, as often happens with anxious minds in such situations, he settled on a compromise, a middle ground.

“I tell you frankly, madam, I neither can nor will be guilty of the incivility you propose to the Master of Ravenswood; he has not deserved it at my hand. If you will be so unreasonable as to insult a man of quality under your own roof, I cannot prevent you; but I will not at least be the agent in such a preposterous proceeding.”

“I'll be honest with you, ma'am, I can't and won't be rude to the Master of Ravenswood; he doesn't deserve it from me. If you want to insult a man of his stature in your own home, I can’t stop you, but I refuse to be the one to carry out such a ridiculous act.”

“You will not?” asked the lady.

“You won't?” asked the woman.

“No, by heavens, madam!” her husband replied; “ask me anything congruent with common decency, as to drop his acquaintance by degrees, or the like; but to bid him leave my house is what I will not and cannot consent to.”

“No, for heaven's sake, ma'am!” her husband replied; “ask me anything reasonable that aligns with common decency, like gradually ending his friendship, or something similar; but telling him to leave my house is something I will not and cannot agree to.”

“Then the task of supporting the honour of the family will fall on me, as it has often done before,” said the lady.

“Then it will be my job to uphold the family's honor, just like it has been many times before,” said the lady.

She sat down, and hastily wrote a few lines. The Lord Keeper made another effort to prevent her taking a step so decisive, just as she opened the door to call her female attendant from the ante-room. “Think what you are doing, Lady Ashton: you are making a mortal enemy of a young man who is like to have the means of harming us——”

She sat down and quickly wrote a few lines. The Lord Keeper made another attempt to stop her from taking such a decisive step, just as she opened the door to call her maid from the next room. “Think about what you’re doing, Lady Ashton: you’re creating a lifelong enemy out of a young man who might have the power to hurt us——”

“Did you ever know a Douglas who feared an enemy?” answered the lady, contemptuously.

“Did you ever know a Douglas who was afraid of an enemy?” the lady replied, with disdain.

“Ay, but he is as proud and vindictive as an hundred Douglasses, and an hundred devils to boot. Think of it for a night only.”

“Yeah, but he’s as proud and vengeful as a hundred Douglasses and a hundred devils on top of that. Just think about it for one night.”

“Not for another moment,” answered the lady. “Here, Mrs. Patullo, give this billet to young Ravenswood.”

“Not for a second longer,” replied the lady. “Here, Mrs. Patullo, give this note to young Ravenswood.”

“To the Master, madam?” said Mrs. Patullo.

“To the Master, ma'am?” said Mrs. Patullo.

“Ay, to the Master, if you call him so.”

“Aye, to the Master, if that's what you want to call him.”

“I wash my hands of it entirely,” said the Keeper; “and I shall go down into the garden, and see that Jardine gathers the winter fruit for the dessert.”

“I’m completely done with it,” said the Keeper; “and I’ll head down to the garden to make sure Jardine collects the winter fruit for dessert.”

“Do so,” said the lady, looking after him with glances of infinite contempt; “and thank God that you leave one behind you as fit to protect the honour of the family as you are to look after pippins and pears.”

“Go ahead,” said the woman, watching him with looks of complete disdain; “and thank God you're leaving someone behind who is as capable of protecting the family's honor as you are of managing apples and pears.”

The Lord Keeper remained long enough in the garden to give her ladyship’s mind time to explode, and to let, as he thought, at least the first violence of Ravenswood’s displeasure blow over. When he entered the hall, he found the Marquis of A—— giving orders to some of his attendants. He seemed in high displeasure, and interrupted an apology which Sir William had commenced for having left his lordship alone.

The Lord Keeper stayed in the garden long enough for her ladyship to really lose her cool and to allow, as he believed, at least the initial intensity of Ravenswood’s anger to subside. When he walked into the hall, he saw the Marquis of A—— giving instructions to some of his staff. He looked very displeased and cut off an apology that Sir William had started for leaving his lordship by himself.

“I presume, Sir William, you are no stranger to this singular billet with which my kinsman of Ravenswood (an emphasis on the word ‘my’) has been favoured by your lady; and, of course, that you are prepared to receive my adieus. My kinsman is already gone, having thought it unnecessary to offer any on his part, since all former civilities had been cancelled by this singular insult.”

“I assume, Sir William, that you’re familiar with this unique situation that my relative from Ravenswood (emphasizing ‘my’) has been granted by your lady; and, of course, that you’re ready to accept my goodbyes. My relative has already left, thinking it unnecessary to say anything himself since all previous courtesies have been wiped out by this unusual insult.”

“I protest, my lord,” said Sir William, holding the billet in his hand, “I am not privy to the contents of this letter. I know Lady Ashton is a warm-tempered and prejudiced woman, and I am sincerely sorry for any offence that has been given or taken; but I hope your lordship will consider that a lady——”

“I protest, my lord,” said Sir William, holding the letter in his hand, “I am not aware of what this letter says. I know Lady Ashton is a hot-headed and biased woman, and I truly regret any offense that has been given or taken; but I hope your lordship will understand that a lady——”

“Should bear herself towards persons of a certain rank with the breeding of one,” said the Marquis, completing the half-uttered sentence.

“Should carry herself with the proper etiquette around people of a certain rank,” said the Marquis, finishing the incomplete sentence.

“True, my lord,” said the unfortunate Keeper; “but Lady Ashton is still a woman——”

“That's true, my lord,” said the unfortunate Keeper; “but Lady Ashton is still a woman——”

“And, as such, methinks,” said the Marquis, again interrupting him, “should be taught the duties which correspond to her station. But here she comes, and I will learn from her own mouth the reason of this extraordinary and unexpected affront offered to my near relation, while both he and I were her ladyship’s guests.”

“And, as such, I think,” said the Marquis, interrupting him again, “that she should be taught the responsibilities that come with her position. But here she comes, and I’ll find out from her directly why this unusual and surprising insult was directed at my close relative while both he and I were her ladyship’s guests.”

Lady Ashton accordingly entered the apartment at this moment. Her dispute with Sir William, and a subsequent interview with her daughter, had not prevented her from attending to the duties of her toilette. She appeared in full dress; and, from the character of her countenance and manner, well became the splendour with which ladies of quality then appeared on such occasions.

Lady Ashton entered the room at that moment. Her argument with Sir William and a follow-up conversation with her daughter hadn’t stopped her from focusing on her appearance. She was fully dressed, and based on her expression and demeanor, she fit perfectly with the elegance that noblewomen displayed on such occasions.

The Marquis of A—— bowed haughtily, and she returned the salute with equal pride and distance of demeanour. He then took from the passive hand of Sir William Ashton the billet he had given him the moment before he approached the lady, and was about to speak, when she interrupted him. “I perceive, my lord, you are about to enter upon an unpleasant subject. I am sorry any such should have occurred at this time, to interrupt in the slightest degree the respectful reception due to your lordship; but so it is. Mr. Edgar Ravenswood, for whom I have addressed the billet in your lordship’s hand, has abused the hospitality of this family, and Sir William Ashton’s softness of temper, in order to seduce a young person into engagements without her parents’ consent, and of which they never can approve.”

The Marquis of A—— bowing with disdain, and she returned the gesture with just as much pride and distance. He then took from Sir William Ashton’s passive hand the note he had given him just before he approached her, and was about to speak when she interrupted him. “I see, my lord, that you’re about to bring up an unpleasant topic. I regret that any such matter should occur right now, to disrupt in the slightest the respectful reception that your lordship deserves; but that’s how it is. Mr. Edgar Ravenswood, the one for whom I wrote the note in your lordship’s hand, has misused this family’s hospitality and Sir William Ashton’s kind nature to lead a young woman into commitments without her parents’ consent, which they can never accept.”

Both gentlemen answered at once. “My kinsman is incapable——” said the Lord Marquis.

Both gentlemen replied simultaneously. “My relative is unable——” said the Lord Marquis.

“I am confident that my daughter Lucy is still more incapable——” said the Lord Keeper.

“I am confident that my daughter Lucy is still more incapable——” said the Lord Keeper.

Lady Ashton at once interrupted and replied to them both: “My Lord Marquis, your kinsman, if Mr. Ravenswood has the honour to be so, has made the attempt privately to secure the affections of this young and inexperienced girl. Sir William Ashton, your daughter has been simple enough to give more encouragement than she ought to have done to so very improper a suitor.”

Lady Ashton immediately interrupted and responded to them both: “My Lord Marquis, your relative, if Mr. Ravenswood is indeed that, has tried to secretly win the affections of this young and naive girl. Sir William Ashton, your daughter has been naive enough to give more encouragement than she should have to such an inappropriate suitor.”

“And I think, madam,” said the Lord Keeper, losing his accustomed temper and patience, “that if you had nothing better to tell us, you had better have kept this family secret to yourself also.”

“And I think, ma’am,” said the Lord Keeper, losing his usual temper and patience, “that if you had nothing better to share, you should have kept this family secret to yourself too.”

“You will pardon me, Sir William,” said the lady, calmly; “the noble Marquis has a right to know the cause of the treatment I have found it necessary to use to a gentleman whom he calls his blood-relation.”

“You will excuse me, Sir William,” said the lady, calmly; “the noble Marquis has a right to know why I’ve felt it necessary to treat a gentleman he refers to as his blood relative.”

“It is a cause,” muttered the Lord Keeper, “which has emerged since the effect has taken place; for, if it exists at all, I am sure she knew nothing of it when her letter to Ravenswood was written.”

“It’s a situation,” muttered the Lord Keeper, “that has come up after the fact; because if it exists at all, I’m certain she was unaware of it when she wrote her letter to Ravenswood.”

“It is the first time that I have heard of this,” said the Marquis; “but, since your ladyship has tabled a subject so delicate, permit me to say, that my kinsman’s birth and connexions entitled him to a patient hearing, and at least a civil refusal, even in case of his being so ambitious as to raise his eyes to the daughter of Sir William Ashton.”

“It’s the first time I’ve heard about this,” said the Marquis; “but since you've brought up such a sensitive topic, let me say that my relative’s background and connections deserve a respectful listening and at least a polite decline, even if he’s ambitious enough to consider pursuing the daughter of Sir William Ashton.”

“You will recollect, my lord, of what blood Miss Lucy Ashton is come by the mother’s side,” said the lady.

"You remember, my lord, what lineage Miss Lucy Ashton has from her mother’s side,” the lady said.

“I do remember your descent—from a younger branch of the house of Angus,” said the Marquis; “and your ladyship—forgive me, lady—ought not to forget that the Ravenswoods have thrice intermarried with the main stem. Come, madam, I know how matters stand—old and long-fostered prejudices are difficult to get over, I make every allowance for them; I ought not, and I would not, otherwise have suffered my kinsman to depart alone, expelled, in a manner, from this house, but I had hopes of being a mediator. I am still unwilling to leave you in anger, and shall not set forward till after noon, as I rejoin the Master of Ravenswood upon the road a few miles from hence. Let us talk over this matter more coolly.”

“I remember your background—from a younger branch of the Angus family,” said the Marquis; “and you, my lady—forgive me for saying this—shouldn’t forget that the Ravenswoods have intermarried with the main branch three times. Come, madam, I understand the situation—old biases are hard to overcome, and I completely understand that. I wouldn’t have let my relative leave alone, practically thrown out of this house, if I didn’t think I could help as a mediator. I still don’t want to leave on bad terms and I won’t leave until after noon, as I’m meeting the Master of Ravenswood on the road a few miles from here. Let’s discuss this matter calmly.”

“It is what I anxiously desire, my lord,” said Sir William Ashton, eagerly. “Lady Ashton, we will not permit my Lord of A—— to leave us in displeasure. We must compel him to tarry dinner at the castle.”

“It is what I really want, my lord,” said Sir William Ashton, eagerly. “Lady Ashton, we won’t let my Lord of A—— leave us unhappy. We need to make him stay for dinner at the castle.”

“The castle,” said the lady, “and all that it contains, are at the command of the Marquis, so long as he chooses to honour it with his residence; but touching the farther discussion of this disagreeable topic——”

“The castle,” said the lady, “and everything in it, is at the Marquis’s disposal as long as he chooses to stay here; but regarding the further discussion of this uncomfortable topic——”

“Pardon me, good madam,” said the Marquis; “but I cannot allow you to express any hasty resolution on a subject so important. I see that more company is arriving; and, since I have the good fortune to renew my former acquaintance with Lady Ashton, I hope she will give me leave to avoid perilling what I prize so highly upon any disagreeable subject of discussion—at least till we have talked over more pleasant topics.”

“Excuse me, ma'am,” said the Marquis; “but I can't let you make any rush decisions about such an important matter. I notice more guests are arriving, and since I’m fortunate enough to reconnect with Lady Ashton, I hope she’ll allow me to steer clear of risking what I value so much by discussing anything unpleasant—at least until we’ve had a chance to chat about nicer topics.”

The lady smiled, courtesied, and gave her hand to the Marquis, by whom, with all the formal gallantry of the time, which did not permit the guest to tuck the lady of the house under the arm, as a rustic does his sweetheart at a wake, she was ushered to the eating-room.

The lady smiled, curtsied, and offered her hand to the Marquis, who, with all the formal charm of the time, which didn't allow the guest to place his arm around the hostess like a country fellow might with his sweetheart at a celebration, escorted her to the dining room.

Here they were joined by Bucklaw, Craigengelt, and other neighbours, whom the Lord Keeper had previously invited to meet the Marquis of A——. An apology, founded upon a slight indisposition, was alleged as an excuse for the absence of Miss Ashton, whose seat appeared unoccupied. The entertainment was splendid to profusion, and was protracted till a late hour.

Here they were joined by Bucklaw, Craigengelt, and other neighbors, whom the Lord Keeper had previously invited to meet the Marquis of A——. An excuse based on a minor illness was given for Miss Ashton's absence, as her seat was noticeably empty. The entertainment was lavish and continued into the late hours.

CHAPTER XXIII.

Such was our fallen father’s fate,
    Yet better than mine own;
He shared his exile with his mate,
    I’m banish’d forth alone.

WALLER

Such was our fallen father’s fate,
    Yet better than my own;
He shared his exile with his partner,
    I’m banished out alone.

WALLER

I will not attempt to describe the mixture of indignation and regret with which Ravenswood left the seat which had belonged to his ancestors. The terms in which Lady Ashton’s billet was couched rendered it impossible for him, without being deficient in that spirit of which he perhaps had too much, to remain an instant longer within its walls. The Marquis, who had his share in the affront, was, nevertheless, still willing to make some efforts at conciliation. He therefore suffered his kinsman to depart alone, making him promise, however, that he would wait for him at the small inn called the Tod’s Hole, situated, as our readers may be pleased to recollect, half-way betwixt Ravenswood Castle and Wolf’s Crag, and about five Scottish miles distant from each. Here the Marquis proposed to join the Master of Ravenswood, either that night or the next morning. His own feelings would have induced him to have left the castle directly, but he was loth to forfeit, without at least one effort, the advantages which he had proposed from his visit to the Lord Keeper; and the Master of Ravenswood was, even in the very heat of his resentment, unwilling to foreclose any chance of reconciliation which might arise out of the partiality which Sir William Ashton had shown towards him, as well as the intercessory arguments of his noble kinsman. He himself departed without a moment’s delay, farther than was necessary to make this arrangement.

I won't try to express the mix of anger and sadness Ravenswood felt as he left the estate that had belonged to his family for generations. Lady Ashton’s note made it impossible for him, without betraying his pride—something he might have too much of—to stay there for even a moment longer. The Marquis, who was also offended, still wanted to try to make amends. So, he let his cousin leave alone but made him promise to wait for him at a small inn called Tod’s Hole, located, as our readers may remember, halfway between Ravenswood Castle and Wolf's Crag, about five Scottish miles from each. The Marquis planned to meet up with the Master of Ravenswood either that night or the next morning. Although his feelings urged him to leave the castle immediately, he didn’t want to miss out on at least trying to get some benefits from his visit to the Lord Keeper; and the Master of Ravenswood, even in the heat of his anger, didn’t want to close the door on any chance of reconciliation that might come from the favor Sir William Ashton had shown him and the persuasive arguments of his noble cousin. He left without any delay, aside from what was needed to make this arrangement.

At first he spurred his horse at a quick pace through an avenue of the park, as if, by rapidity of motion, he could stupify the confusion of feelings with which he was assailed. But as the road grew wilder and more sequestered, and when the trees had hidden the turrets of the castle, he gradually slackened his pace, as if to indulge the painful reflections which he had in vain endeavoured to repress. The path in which he found himself led him to the Mermaiden’s Fountain, and to the cottage of Alice; and the fatal influence which superstitious belief attached to the former spot, as well as the admonitions which had been in vain offered to him by the inhabitant of the latter, forced themselves upon his memory. “Old saws speak truth,” he said to himself, “and the Mermaiden’s Well has indeed witnessed the last act of rashness of the heir of Ravenswood. Alice spoke well,” he continued, “and I am in the situation which she foretold; or rather, I am more deeply dishonoured—not the dependant and ally of the destroyer of my father’s house, as the old sibyl presaged, but the degraded wretch who has aspired to hold that subordinate character, and has been rejected with disdain.”

At first, he urged his horse to move quickly through a path in the park, as if the speed could dull the turmoil of emotions overwhelming him. But as the road became rougher and more isolated, and the trees obscured the castle towers, he gradually slowed down, allowing himself to confront the painful thoughts he had tried to suppress in vain. The path he was on took him to the Mermaiden’s Fountain and Alice's cottage; the heavy burden of superstitions tied to that place, as well as the warnings he had ignored from Alice, flooded back to him. “Old sayings hold truth,” he told himself, “and the Mermaiden’s Well has truly witnessed the final rash act of the Ravenswood heir. Alice was right,” he went on, “and I’m in the situation she warned me about; or rather, I’m even more dishonored—not just the dependent and ally of my father’s house's destroyer, as the old seer predicted, but the despised fool who aspired to take on that minor role and has been turned away with contempt.”

We are bound to tell the tale as we have received it; and, considering the distance of the time, and propensity of those through whose mouths it has passed to the marvellous, this could not be called a Scottish story unless it manifested a tinge of Scottish superstition. As Ravenswood approached the solitary fountain, he is said to have met with the following singular adventure: His horse, which was moving slowly forward, suddenly interrupted its steady and composed pace, snorted, reared, and, though urged by the spur, refused to proceed, as if some object of terror had suddenly presented itself. On looking to the fountain, Ravenswood discerned a female figure, dressed in a white, or rather greyish, mantle, placed on the very spot on which Lucy Ashton had reclined while listening to the fatal tale of love. His immediate impression was that she had conjectured by which path he would traverse the park on his departure, and placed herself at this well-known and sequestered place of rendezvous, to indulge her own sorrow and his parting interview. In this belief he jumped from his horse, and, making its bridle fast to a tree, walked hastily towards the fountain, pronouncing eagerly, yet under his breath, the words, “Miss Ashton!—Lucy!”

We have to share the story as we received it; and given how much time has passed and the tendency of those who’ve told it to embellish, this can’t be considered a Scottish tale unless it shows a hint of Scottish superstition. As Ravenswood approached the lonely fountain, he experienced a strange event: His horse, which had been moving slowly, suddenly stopped its steady pace, snorted, reared up, and, despite being urged on, refused to go forward, almost as if some frightening sight had appeared. Looking toward the fountain, Ravenswood saw a woman in a white, or more accurately, grayish cloak, standing right at the spot where Lucy Ashton had been reclining while listening to that fateful love story. His first thought was that she had guessed which path he would take to leave the park and had come to this familiar and quiet meeting place, either to mourn or to share a final moment with him. Believing this, he jumped off his horse, tied its reins to a tree, and hurried toward the fountain, eagerly whispering, “Miss Ashton!—Lucy!”

The figure turned as he addressed it, and displayed to his wondering eyes the features, not of Lucy Ashton, but of old blind Alice. The singularity of her dress, which rather resembled a shroud than the garment of a living woman; the appearance of her person, larger, as it struck him, than it usually seemed to be; above all, the strange circumstance of a blind, infirm, and decrepit person being found alone and at a distance from her habitation (considerable, if her infirmities be taken into account), combined to impress him with a feeling of wonder approaching to fear. As he approached, she arose slowly from her seat, held her shrivelled hand up as if to prevent his coming more near, and her withered lips moved fast, although no sound issued from them. Ravenswood stopped; and as, after a moment’s pause, he again advanced towards her, Alice, or her apparition, moved or glided backwards towards the thicket, still keeping her face turned towards him. The trees soon hid the form from his sight; and, yielding to the strong and terrific impression that the being which he had seen was not of this world, the Master of Ravenswood remained rooted to the ground whereon he had stood when he caught his last view of her. At length, summoning up his courage, he advanced to the spot on which the figure had seemed to be seated; but neither was there pressure of the grass nor any other circumstance to induce him to believe that what he had seen was real and substantial.

The figure turned as he spoke to it, revealing not the features of Lucy Ashton, but those of old blind Alice. The oddity of her dress, which looked more like a shroud than the clothing of a living person; the way her figure appeared larger than usual; and especially the strange situation of a blind, frail, and elderly woman being alone and far from her home (considering her disabilities) all combined to fill him with a sense of wonder that bordered on fear. As he got closer, she slowly rose from her seat, raised her withered hand as if to stop him from coming any closer, and her dry lips moved quickly, though no sound came from them. Ravenswood halted, and after a moment's hesitation, when he moved towards her again, Alice, or her apparition, glided backward into the thicket, still facing him. The trees soon concealed her from his view, and, overcome by the intense and frightening impression that the being he had seen was not of this world, the Master of Ravenswood remained frozen at the spot where he had last seen her. Finally, gathering his courage, he went to the place where the figure seemed to have been sitting; but there was no impression on the grass or anything else to make him think that what he had seen was real and solid.

Full of those strange thoughts and confused apprehensions which awake in the bosom of one who conceives he has witnessed some preternatural appearance, the Master of Ravenswood walked back towards his horse, frequently, however, looking behind him, not without apprehension, as if expecting that the vision would reappear. But the apparition, whether it was real or whether it was the creation of a heated and agitated imagination, returned not again; and he found his horse sweating and terrified, as if experiencing that agony of fear with which the presence of a supernatural being is supposed to agitate the brute creation. The Master mounted, and rode slowly forward, soothing his steed from time to time, while the animal seemed internally to shrink and shudder, as if expecting some new object of fear at the opening of every glade. The rider, after a moment’s consideration, resolved to investigate the matter further. “Can my eyes have deceived me,” he said, “and deceived me for such a space of time? Or are this woman’s infirmities but feigned, in order to excite compassion? And even then, her motion resembled not that of a living and existing person. Must I adopt the popular creed, and think that the unhappy being has formed a league with the powers of darkness? I am determined to be resolved; I will not brook imposition even from my own eyes.”

Full of strange thoughts and confusing worries that come over someone who thinks they've seen something supernatural, the Master of Ravenswood walked back toward his horse, frequently looking back with unease, as if he expected the vision to show up again. But the apparition, whether it was real or just a product of a heated and disturbed imagination, didn’t return; his horse was sweating and terrified, as if feeling the sheer terror that the presence of a supernatural being supposedly brings to animals. The Master got on his horse and rode slowly forward, calming his steed every now and then, while the animal seemed to shrink and shudder inside, as if bracing for another frightening sight at the edge of every clearing. After a moment's thought, the rider decided to dig deeper into the situation. “Could my eyes have deceived me,” he said, “and for such a long time? Or are this woman's weaknesses just a ruse to gain sympathy? Even then, her movements didn’t look like those of a living person. Should I accept the common belief and think that this unfortunate soul has made a pact with dark forces? I’m determined to find out; I won’t let my own eyes trick me.”

In this uncertainty he rode up to the little wicket of Alice’s garden. Her seat beneath the birch-tree was vacant, though the day was pleasant and the sun was high. He approached the hut, and heard from within the sobs and wailing of a female. No answer was returned when he knocked, so that, after a moment’s pause, he lifted the latch and entered. It was indeed a house of solitude and sorrow. Stretched upon her miserable pallet lay the corpse of the last retainer of the house of Ravenswood who still abode on their paternal domains! Life had but shortly departed; and the little girl by whom she had been attended in her last moments was wringing her hands and sobbing, betwixt childish fear and sorrow, over the body of her mistress.

In this uncertainty, he rode up to the small gate of Alice’s garden. Her spot under the birch tree was empty, even though it was a nice day and the sun was shining high. He approached the hut and heard sobs and cries from inside. No one answered when he knocked, so after a brief pause, he lifted the latch and went in. It was truly a place of loneliness and grief. Lying on her miserable bed was the corpse of the last servant of the Ravenswood family who still lived on their ancestral land! Life had only just slipped away; the little girl who had been with her in her final moments was wringing her hands and sobbing, caught between childish fear and sorrow, over her mistress's body.

The Master of Ravenswood had some difficulty to compose the terrors of the poor child, whom his unexpected appearance had at first rather appalled than comforted; and when he succeeded, the first expression which the girl used intimated that “he had come too late.” Upon inquiring the meaning of this expression, he learned that the deceased, upon the first attack of the mortal agony, had sent a peasant to the castle to beseech an interview of the Master of Ravenswood, and had expressed the utmost impatience for his return. But the messengers of the poor are tardy and negligent: the fellow had not reached the castle, as was afterwards learned, until Ravenswood had left it, and had then found too much amusement among the retinue of the strangers to return in any haste to the cottage of Alice. Meantime her anxiety of mind seemed to increase with the agony of her body; and, to use the phrase of Babie, her only attendant, “she prayed powerfully that she might see her master’s son once more, and renew her warning.” She died just as the clock in the distant village tolled one; and Ravenswood remembered, with internal shuddering, that he had heard the chime sound through the wood just before he had seen what he was now much disposed to consider as the spectre of the deceased.

The Master of Ravenswood had some trouble calming the fears of the poor girl, whose shock at his sudden appearance had initially terrified her instead of reassuring her. Once he managed to soothe her, the first thing she said suggested that “he had come too late.” When he asked what she meant, he learned that the deceased had sent a peasant to the castle during her last moments to request a meeting with the Master of Ravenswood and had been extremely anxious for his return. However, messengers from the poor are often slow and careless: it turned out that the man hadn’t reached the castle until after Ravenswood had already left, and he had found too much entertainment among the strangers’ group to hurry back to Alice’s cottage. Meanwhile, her anxiety seemed to grow alongside her physical pain, and, as her only companion Babie put it, “she prayed intensely to see her master’s son one more time and renew her warning.” She died just as the clock in the nearby village chimed one, and Ravenswood remembered with a shiver that he had heard the bell tolling through the woods just before he encountered what he now felt was the ghost of the deceased.

It was necessary, as well from his respect to the departed as in common humanity to her terrified attendant, that he should take some measures to relieve the girl from her distressing situation. The deceased, he understood, had expressed a desire to be buried in a solitary churchyard, near the little inn of the Tod’s Hole, called the Hermitage, or more commonly Armitage, in which lay interred some of the Ravenswood family, and many of their followers. Ravenswood conceived it his duty to gratify this predilection, commonly found to exist among the Scottish peasantry, and despatched Babie to the neighbouring village to procure the assistance of some females, assuring her that, in the mean while, he would himself remain with the dead body, which, as in Thessaly of old, it is accounted highly unfit to leave without a watch.

It was important, both out of respect for the deceased and basic human compassion for her terrified attendant, that he should take steps to relieve the girl from her distressing situation. He understood that the deceased had wished to be buried in a quiet churchyard near the little inn of Tod's Hole, known as the Hermitage or more commonly Armitage, where some members of the Ravenswood family and many of their followers were buried. Ravenswood felt it was his duty to honor this wish, a sentiment often found among Scottish peasants, and sent Babie to the nearby village to get help from some women, assuring her that in the meantime, he would stay with the body, which, as in ancient Thessaly, is considered highly inappropriate to leave unwatched.

Thus, in the course of a quarter of an hour or little more, he found himself sitting a solitary guard over the inanimate corpse of her whose dismissed spirit, unless his eyes had strangely deceived him, had so recently manifested itself before him. Notwithstanding his natural courage, the Master was considerably affected by a concurrence of circumstances so extraordinary. “She died expressing her eager desire to see me. Can it be, then,” was his natural course of reflection—“can strong and earnest wishes, formed during the last agony of nature, survive its catastrophe, surmount the awful bounds of the spiritual world, and place before us its inhabitants in the hues and colouring of life? And why was that manifested to the eye which could not unfold its tale to the ear? and wherefore should a breach be made in the laws of nature, yet its purpose remain unknown? Vain questions, which only death, when it shall make me like the pale and withered form before me, can ever resolve.”

Thus, in about fifteen minutes or so, he found himself sitting alone, guarding the lifeless body of her whose spirit, unless his eyes had deceived him, had just recently shown itself to him. Despite his natural bravery, the Master was quite affected by such an extraordinary set of circumstances. “She died wanting to see me. Could it be,” he wondered—“can strong and genuine desires, formed in the last moments of life, survive death, cross the terrifying boundary of the spiritual world, and present its inhabitants to us in the colors of life? And why was this shown to the eyes that could not share its story with the ears? And why should there be a break in the laws of nature while its purpose remains a mystery? These are empty questions, which only death, when it turns me into the pale and fragile being before me, can ever answer.”

He laid a cloth, as he spoke, over the lifeless face, upon whose features he felt unwilling any longer to dwell. He then took his place in an old carved oaken chair, ornamented with his own armorial bearings, which Alice had contrived to appropriate to her own use in the pillage which took place among creditors, officers, domestics, and messengers of the law when his father left Ravenswood Castle for the last time. Thus seated, he banished, as much as he could, the superstitious feelings which the late incident naturally inspired. His own were sad enough, without the exaggeration of supernatural terror, since he found himself transferred from the situation of a successful lover of Lucy Ashton, and an honoured and respected friend of her father, into the melancholy and solitary guardian of the abandoned and forsaken corpse of a common pauper.

He covered the lifeless face with a cloth, not wanting to dwell on its features any longer. Then he settled into an old carved oak chair, marked with his family crest, which Alice had managed to claim during the chaos that ensued among creditors, officials, servants, and law enforcement when his father left Ravenswood Castle for the last time. As he sat there, he tried to push away the superstitious feelings that the recent event naturally stirred up. His own feelings were already bleak enough without adding any supernatural fears, as he realized he had gone from being a successful lover of Lucy Ashton and a respected friend of her father's to the sorrowful and lonely keeper of the abandoned corpse of a common beggar.

He was relieved, however, from his sad office sooner that he could reasonably have expected, considering the distance betwixt the hut of the deceased and the village, and the age and infirmities of three old women who came from thence, in military phrase, to relieve guard upon the body of the defunct. On any other occasion the speed of these reverend sibyls would have been much more moderate, for the first was eighty years of age and upwards, the second was paralytic, and the third lame of a leg from some accident. But the burial duties rendered to the deceased are, to the Scottish peasant of either sex, a labour of love. I know not whether it is from the temper of the people, grave and enthusiastic as it certainly is, or from the recollection of the ancient Catholic opinions, when the funeral rites were always considered as a period of festival to the living; but feasting, good cheer, and even inebriety, were, and are, the frequent accompaniments of a Scottish old-fashioned burial. What the funeral feast, or dirgie, as it is called, was to the men, the gloomy preparations of the dead body for the coffin were to the women. To straight the contorted limbs upon a board used for that melancholy purpose, to array the corpse in clean linen, and over that in its woollen shroad, were operations committed always to the old matrons of the village, and in which they found a singular and gloomy delight.

He was relieved from his sad task sooner than he could have reasonably expected, considering the distance between the deceased's hut and the village, as well as the age and health issues of the three elderly women who came, in military terms, to take over the watch by the body. On any other occasion, these respected women would have moved much slower; the first was over eighty, the second was paralyzed, and the third had a leg injury from an accident. But the burial duties for the deceased are, for the Scottish peasant of either gender, a labor of love. I'm not sure if it comes from the people's serious yet passionate nature, or from the memories of ancient Catholic beliefs, where funeral rites were seen as a celebration for the living; but feasting, good food, and even drinking were, and still are, common parts of a traditional Scottish burial. What the funeral feast, or dirgie, was for the men, the somber preparations of the body for the coffin were for the women. Laying the contorted limbs on a board designated for that sad task, dressing the corpse in clean linen, and then in its woolen shroud were duties given to the village's older women, who found a peculiar and dark pleasure in them.

The old women paid the Master their salutations with a ghastly smile, which reminded him of the meeting betwixt Macbeth and the witches on the blasted heath of Forres. He gave them some money, and recommended to them the charge of the dead body of their contemporary, an office which they willingly undertook; intimating to him at the same time that he must leave the hut, in order that they might begin their mournful duties. Ravenswood readily agreed to depart, only tarrying to recommend to them due attention to the body, and to receive information where he was to find the sexton, or beadle, who had in charge the deserted churchyard of the Armitage, in order to prepare matters for the reception of Old Alice in the place of repose which she had selected for herself.

The old women greeted the Master with a creepy smile that reminded him of the encounter between Macbeth and the witches on the desolate heath of Forres. He gave them some money and suggested they take care of the body of their peer, a task they were more than willing to accept; they also hinted that he needed to leave the hut so they could start their sad work. Ravenswood quickly agreed to leave, but not before urging them to take proper care of the body and asking where he could find the sexton or beadle responsible for the abandoned churchyard of the Armitage, so he could arrange for Old Alice to be laid to rest in the spot she had chosen for herself.

“Ye’ll no be pinched to find out Johnie Mortsheugh,” said the elder sibyl, and still her withered cheek bore a grisly smile; “he dwells near the Tod’s Hole, an house of entertainment where there has been mony a blythe birling, for death and drink-draining are near neighbours to ane anither.”

"You're not going to struggle to find Johnie Mortsheugh," said the older woman, and her wrinkled face still showed a creepy smile; "he lives by Tod's Hole, a place where many cheerful parties have happened, since death and drinking are close companions."

“Ay! and that’s e’en true, cummer,” said the lame hag, propping herself with a crutch which supported the shortness of her left leg, “for I mind when the father of this Master of Ravenswood that is now standing before us sticked young Blackhall with his whinger, for a wrang word said ower their wine, or brandy, or what not: he gaed in as light as a lark, and he came out wi’ his feet foremost. I was at the winding of the corpse; and when the bluid was washed off, he was a bonny bouk of man’s body.” It may be easily believed that this ill-timed anecdote hastened the Master’s purpose of quitting a company so evil-omened and so odious. Yet, while walking to the tree to which his horse was tied, and busying himself with adjusting the girths of the saddle, he could not avoid hearing, through the hedge of the little garden, a conversation respecting himself, betwixt the lame woman and the octogenarian sibyl. The pair had hobbled into the garden to gather rosemary, southernwood, rue, and other plants proper to be strewed upon the body, and burned by way of fumigation in the chimney of the cottage. The paralytic wretch, almost exhausted by the journey, was left guard upon the corpse, lest witches or fiends might play their sport with it.

“Ah yes, and that’s definitely true, my friend,” said the lame old woman, leaning on a crutch that supported her shortened left leg. “I remember when the father of this Master of Ravenswood, who’s standing right here, stabbed young Blackhall with his dagger over some wrong word said during their wine or brandy or whatever it was. He went in as light as a feather and came out with his feet first. I was there for the funeral; and once the blood was cleaned off, he was a handsome figure of a man.” It’s easy to believe that this poorly timed story pushed the Master to leave a company that felt so cursed and hateful. Still, as he walked toward the tree where his horse was tied, busying himself with adjusting the saddle’s girths, he couldn’t help but overhear, through the hedge of the small garden, a conversation about him between the lame woman and the elderly seer. The two had hobbled into the garden to gather rosemary, southernwood, rue, and other herbs meant to be scattered over the body and burned for fumigation in the cottage’s chimney. The frail woman, nearly worn out from the trip, stayed behind to watch over the corpse, in case any witches or spirits might try to interfere with it.

The following law, croaking dialogue was necessarily overheard by the Master of Ravenswood:

The following law, croaking dialogue was necessarily overheard by the Master of Ravenswood:

“That’s a fresh and full-grown hemlock, Annie Winnie; mony a cummer lang syne wad hae sought nae better horse to flee over hill and how, through mist and moonlight, and light down in the King of France’s cellar.”

“That's a fresh and full-grown hemlock, Annie Winnie; many a friend long ago would have looked for no better horse to escape over hill and dale, through mist and moonlight, and right down in the King of France’s cellar.”

“Ay, cummer! but the very deil has turned as hard-hearted now as the Lord Keeper and the grit folk, that hae breasts like whinstane. They prick us and they pine us, and they pit us on the pinnywinkles for witches; and, if I say my prayers backwards ten times ower, Satan will never gie me amends o’ them.”

“Aye, friend! But the very devil has become as cold-hearted now as the Lord Keeper and the tough people, who have hearts like stone. They poke us and they starve us, and they put us on the scalding hot seat for witches; and if I say my prayers backwards ten times, Satan will never give me anything in return for them.”

“Did ye ever see the foul thief?” asked her neighbour.

“Have you ever seen the filthy thief?” asked her neighbor.

“Na!” replied the other spokeswoman; “but I trow I hae dreamed of him mony a time, and I think the day will come they will burn me for’t. But ne’er mind, cummer! we hae this dollar of the Master’s, and we’ll send doun for bread and for yill, and tobacco, and a drap brandy to burn, and a wee pickle saft sugar; and be there deil, or nae deil, lass, we’ll hae a merry night o’t.”

“Na!” replied the other spokeswoman; “but I think I’ve dreamed of him many times, and I believe the day will come when they’ll burn me for it. But never mind, friend! We have this dollar from the Master, and we’ll send down for bread, ale, tobacco, a bit of brandy to enjoy, and a little bit of soft sugar; and whether there’s a devil or not, girl, we’ll have a fun night of it.”

Here her leathern chops uttered a sort of cackling, ghastly laugh, resembling, to a certain degree, the cry of the screech-owl.

Here her leather-like jaws let out a sort of cackling, eerie laugh, similar, in a way, to the call of the screech owl.

“He’s a frank man, and a free-handed man, the Master,” said Annie Winnie, “and a comely personage—broad in the shouthers, and narrow around the lunyies. He wad mak a bonny corpse; I wad like to hae the streiking and winding o’ him.”

“He’s an honest guy and very generous, the Master,” said Annie Winnie, “and he’s a good-looking person—broad in the shoulders and slim around the waist. He would make a nice corpse; I’d like to have the honor of preparing and wrapping him.”

“It is written on his brow, Annie Winnie,” returned the octogenarian, her companion, “that hand of woman, or of man either, will never straught him: dead-deal will never be laid on his back, make you your market of that, for I hae it frae a sure hand.”

“It’s written on his forehead, Annie Winnie,” replied the elderly woman, her companion, “that no woman’s or man’s hand will ever harm him: he’ll never be struck down, so take my word for it, I have it from a reliable source.”

“Will it be his lot to die on the battle-ground then, Ailsie Gourlay? Will he die by the sword or the ball, as his forbears had dune before him, mony ane o’ them?”

“Will he end up dying on the battlefield then, Ailsie Gourlay? Will he die by the sword or the bullet, like many of his ancestors did before him?”

“Ask nae mair questions about it—he’ll no be graced sae far,” replied the sage.

“Don't ask any more questions about it—he won't be favored that much,” replied the wise man.

“I ken ye are wiser than ither folk, Aislie Gourlay. But wha tell’d ye this?”

“I know you are wiser than other people, Aislie Gourlay. But who told you this?”

“Fashna your thumb about that, Annie Winnie,” answered the sibyl, “I hae it frae a hand sure eneugh.”

“Think about that, Annie Winnie,” answered the prophet, “I got it from a reliable source.”

“But ye said ye never saw the foul thief,” reiterated her inquisitive companion.

“But you said you never saw the wicked thief,” repeated her curious companion.

“I hae it frae as sure a hand,” said Ailsie, “and frae them that spaed his fortune before the sark gaed ower his head.”

“I have it from a very reliable source,” said Ailsie, “and from those who predicted his future before he even put on his shirt.”

“Hark! I hear his horse’s feet riding aff,” said the other; “they dinna sound as if good luck was wi’ them.”

“Hear that! I can hear his horse riding away,” said the other; “it doesn’t sound like good luck is with them.”

“Mak haste, sirs,” cried the paralytic hag from the cottage, “and let us do what is needfu’, and say what is fitting; for, if the dead corpse binna straughted, it will girn and thraw, and that will fear the best o’ us.”

“Make haste, gentlemen,” shouted the paralyzed old woman from the cottage, “and let’s do what needs to be done and say what we should; for if the dead body isn’t straightened, it will grimace and twist, and that will scare the best of us.”

Ravenswood was now out of hearing. He despised most of the ordinary prejudices about witchcraft, omens, and vaticination, to which his age and country still gave such implicit credit that to express a doubt of them was accounted a crime equal to the unbelief of Jews or Saracens; he knew also that the prevailing belief, concerning witches, operating upon the hypochondriac habits of those whom age, infirmity, and poverty rendered liable to suspicion, and enforced by the fear of death and the pangs of the most cruel tortures, often extorted those confessions which encumber and disgrace the criminal records of Scotland during the 17th century. But the vision of that morning, whether real or imaginary, had impressed his mind with a superstitious feeling which he in vain endeavoured to shake off. The nature of the business which awaited him at the little inn, called Tod’s Hole, where he soon after arrived, was not of a kind to restore his spirits.

Ravenswood was now out of earshot. He looked down on most of the typical beliefs about witchcraft, omens, and predictions, which his time and place still accepted so unquestioningly that doubting them was seen as a crime on par with the disbelief of Jews or Muslims; he also understood that the common belief about witches, influenced by the anxieties of those who, due to age, illness, and poverty, were prone to suspicion, and reinforced by the fear of death and the threat of the harshest torture, often forced those confessions that clutter and shame the criminal records of Scotland during the 17th century. However, the vision he had that morning, whether real or imagined, had left him with a superstitious feeling that he tried unsuccessfully to shake off. The nature of the task that awaited him at the small inn called Tod’s Hole, where he arrived shortly after, was not likely to lift his spirits.

It was necessary he should see Mortsheugh, the sexton of the old burial-ground at Armitage, to arrange matters for the funeral of Alice; and, as the man dwelt near the place of her late residence, the Master, after a slight refreshment, walked towards the place where the body of Alice was to be deposited. It was situated in the nook formed by the eddying sweep of a stream, which issued from the adjoining hills. A rude cavern in an adjacent rock, which, in the interior, was cut into the shape of a cross, formed the hermitage, where some Saxon saint had in ancient times done penance, and given name to the place. The rich Abbey of Coldinghame had, in latter days, established a chapel in the neighbourhood, of which no vestige was now visible, though the churchyard which surrounded it was still, as upon the present occasion, used for the interment of particular persons. One or two shattered yew-trees still grew within the precincts of that which had once been holy ground. Warriors and barons had been buried there of old, but their names were forgotten, and their monuments demolished. The only sepulchral memorials which remained were the upright headstones which mark the graves of persons of inferior rank. The abode of the sexton was a solitary cottage adjacent to the ruined wall of the cemetery, but so low that, with its thatch, which nearly reached the ground, covered with a thick crop of grass, fog, and house-leeks, it resembled an overgrown grave. On inquiry, however, Ravenswood found that the man of the last mattock was absent at a bridal, being fiddler as well as grave-digger to the vicinity. He therefore retired to the little inn, leaving a message that early next morning he would again call for the person whose double occupation connected him at once with the house of mourning and the house of feasting.

It was necessary for him to see Mortsheugh, the caretaker of the old burial ground at Armitage, to make arrangements for Alice's funeral. Since the man lived close to where she had recently resided, the Master, after a quick bite to eat, walked toward the spot where Alice’s body would be laid to rest. It was located in a bend formed by the swirling flow of a stream coming from the nearby hills. A rough cave in a nearby rock, carved in the shape of a cross, served as a hermitage where some Saxon saint had done penance long ago, giving name to the place. The wealthy Abbey of Coldinghame had, in recent times, established a chapel nearby, but no trace of it remained now, although the surrounding churchyard was still used for the burial of certain individuals, just like on this occasion. One or two battered yew trees still grew within the grounds of what had once been sacred. Warriors and barons had been buried there, but their names had faded away, and their monuments had crumbled. The only remaining grave markers were the upright headstones that marked the graves of less notable individuals. The sexton's home was a lonely cottage next to the crumbling wall of the cemetery, so low that its thatched roof, almost touching the ground and covered with thick grass, moss, and houseleeks, looked like an overgrown grave. Upon asking, however, Ravenswood learned that the man with the last shovel was away at a wedding, serving as both fiddler and grave-digger for the community. He then returned to the small inn, leaving a message that he would come by early the next morning to find the person whose dual role tied him to both the house of mourning and the house of celebration.

An outrider of the Marquis arrived at Tod’s Hole shortly after, with a message, intimating that his master would join Ravenswood at that place on the following morning; and the Master, who would otherwise have proceeded to his old retreat at Wolf’s Crag, remained there accordingly to give meeting to his noble kinsman.

An outrider of the Marquis arrived at Tod’s Hole shortly after with a message, letting them know that his master would meet Ravenswood there the next morning. The Master, who would have otherwise gone back to his old hideout at Wolf's Crag, stayed there instead to meet his noble cousin.

CHAPTER XXIV.

Hamlet. Has this fellow no feeling of his business? he sings at grave making.
Horatio. Custom hath made it in him a property of easiness.
Hamlet. ’Tis e’en so: the hand of little employment hath the daintier sense.

Hamlet, Act V. Scene 1.

Hamlet. Does this guy have no understanding of his work? He's singing while digging graves.
Horatio. He's gotten used to it; it's become second nature to him.
Hamlet. That's exactly it: someone who doesn't have much to do has a more refined perspective.

Hamlet, Act V. Scene 1.

The sleep of Ravenswood was broken by ghastly and agitating visions, and his waking intervals disturbed by melancholy reflections on the past and painful anticipations of the future. He was perhaps the only traveller who ever slept in that miserable kennel without complaining of his lodgings, or feeling inconvenience from their deficiencies. It is when “the mind is free the body’s delicate.” Morning, however, found the Master an early riser, in hopes that the fresh air of the dawn might afford the refreshment which night had refused him. He took his way towards the solitary burial-ground, which lay about half a mile from the inn.

The sleep of Ravenswood was interrupted by disturbing and unsettling visions, and his waking moments were filled with sad thoughts about the past and painful worries about the future. He was probably the only traveler who ever stayed in that awful place without complaining about his accommodations or feeling bothered by their shortcomings. It’s when “the mind is free the body’s delicate.” However, morning found the Master up early, hoping that the fresh morning air might offer the refreshment that the night had denied him. He made his way toward the lonely graveyard, which was about half a mile from the inn.

The thin blue smoke, which already began to curl upward, and to distinguish the cottage of the living from the habitation of the dead, apprised him that its inmate had returned and was stirring. Accordingly, on entering the little churchyard, he saw the old man labouring in a half-made grave. “My destiny,” thought Ravenswood, “seems to lead me to scenes of fate and of death; but these are childish thoughts, and they shall not master me. I will not again suffer my imagination to beguile my senses.” The old man rested on his spade as the Master approached him, as if to receive his commands; and as he did not immediately speak, the sexton opened the discourse in his own way.

The thin blue smoke began to curl upward, marking the difference between the home of the living and the resting place of the dead, indicating to him that the person inside had returned and was stirring. So, when he entered the small churchyard, he saw the old man working on a half-dug grave. “My fate,” thought Ravenswood, “seems to lead me to places of destiny and death; but these are childish thoughts, and I won’t let them control me. I won’t allow my imagination to mislead my senses again.” The old man paused with his shovel as the Master approached, as if waiting for orders. When Ravenswood didn’t speak right away, the sexton started the conversation in his own way.

“Ye will be a wedding customer, sir, I’se warrant?”

“You’ll be a wedding customer, sir, I bet?”

“What makes you think so, friend?” replied the Master.

“What makes you think that, my friend?” replied the Master.

“I live by twa trades, sir,” replied the blythe old man—“fiddle, sir, and spade; filling the world, and emptying of it; and I suld ken baith cast of customers by head-mark in thirty years’ practice.”

“I make my living in two ways, sir,” replied the cheerful old man, “playing the fiddle, sir, and working with a spade; bringing joy to the world and taking away from it; and I should know both types of customers by heart after thirty years of practice.”

“You are mistaken, however, this morning,” replied Ravenswood.

“You’re mistaken, though, this morning,” replied Ravenswood.

“Am I?” said the old man, looking keenly at him, “troth and it may be; since, for as brent as your brow is, there is something sitting upon it this day that is as near akin to death as to wedlock. Weel—weel; the pick and shovel are as ready to your order as bow and fiddle.”

“Am I?” said the old man, looking intently at him. “You might be right; because, with how tense your brow is, there’s something there today that’s as close to death as it is to marriage. Well—well; the pick and shovel are just as ready for you as the bow and fiddle.”

“I wish you,” said Ravenswood, “to look after the decent interment of an old woman, Alice Gray, who lived at the Graig-foot in Ravenswood Park.”

“I need you,” said Ravenswood, “to handle the proper burial of an old woman, Alice Gray, who lived at Graig-foot in Ravenswood Park.”

“Alice Gray!—blind Alice!” said the sexton; “and is she gane at last? that’s another jow of the bell to bid me be ready. I mind when Habbie Gray brought her down to this land; a likely lass she was then, and looked ower her southland nose at us a’. I trow her pride got a downcome. And is she e’en gane?”

“Alice Gray!—blind Alice!” said the sexton; “and has she finally passed away? That’s another toll of the bell to tell me to get ready. I remember when Habbie Gray brought her down to this place; she was quite a girl back then, looking down her nose at all of us. I suppose her pride took a hit. And has she really gone?”

“She died yesterday,” said Ravenswood; “and desired to be buried here beside her husband; you know where he lies, no doubt?”

“She died yesterday,” said Ravenswood; “and wanted to be buried here next to her husband; you know where he’s buried, right?”

“Ken where he lies!” answered the sexton, with national indirection of response. “I ken whar a’body lies, that lies here. But ye were speaking o’ her grave? Lord help us, it’s no an ordinar grave that will haud her in, if a’s true that folk said of Alice in her auld days; and if I gae to six feet deep—and a warlock’s grave shouldna be an inch mair ebb, or her ain witch cummers would soon whirl her out of her shroud for a’ their auld acquaintance—and be’t six feet, or be’t three, wha’s to pay the making o’t, I pray ye?”

“Do you know where she is?” replied the sexton, with a typical evasiveness. “I know where everyone lies who is buried here. But you were talking about her grave? God help us, it’s not an ordinary grave that will keep her in, if what people said about Alice in her old days is true; and if I dig to six feet deep—and a witch's grave shouldn't be a single inch more, or her witch friends would quickly pull her out of her shroud because of their old connections—and whether it’s six feet or three, who’s going to pay for it, I ask you?”

“I will pay that, my friend, and all other reasonable charges.”

“I'll cover that, my friend, and any other reasonable expenses.”

“Reasonable charges!” said the sexton; “ou, there’s grundmail—and bell-siller, though the bell’s broken, nae doubt—and the kist—and my day’s wark—and my bit fee—and some brandy and yill to the dirgie, I am no thinking that you can inter her, to ca’ decently, under saxteen pund Scots.”

“Reasonable charges!” said the sexton; “Well, there’s the grave maintenance—and bell ringing, even though the bell’s broken, no doubt—and the casket—and my day’s work—and my small fee—and some brandy and ale for the funeral, I’m not thinking that you can bury her, to do it properly, for less than sixteen pounds Scots.”

“There is the money, my friend,” said Ravenswood, “and something over. Be sure you know the grave.”

“There’s the money, my friend,” said Ravenswood, “and a little extra. Make sure you know the grave.”

“Ye’ll be ane o’ her English relations, I’se warrant,” said the hoary man of skulls; “I hae heard she married far below her station. It was very right to let her bite on the bridle when she was living, and it’s very right to gie her a decent burial now she’s dead, for that’s a matter o’ credit to yoursell rather than to her. Folk may let their kindred shift for themsells when they are alive, and can bear the burden of their ain misdoings; but it’s an unnatural thing to let them be buried like dogs, when a’ the discredit gangs to the kindred. What kens the dead corpse about it?”

"You must be one of her English relatives, I bet," said the old man with the skulls. "I've heard she married someone beneath her status. It was fair to make her toe the line while she was alive, and it's only right to give her a proper burial now that she's gone, because that reflects more on you than it does on her. People might let their relatives fend for themselves when they're alive and can handle their own mistakes; but it's just wrong to let them be buried like animals when all the shame falls on the family. What does the dead body know about it?"

“You would not have people neglect their relations on a bridal occasion neither?” said Ravenswood, who was amused with the professional limitation of the grave-digger’s philanthropy.

“You wouldn’t let people ignore their relationships at a wedding, right?” said Ravenswood, who was entertained by the grave-digger's limited sense of charity.

The old man cast up his sharp grey eyes with a shrewd smile, as if he understood the jest, but instantly continued, with his former gravity: “Bridals—wha wad neglect bridals that had ony regard for plenishing the earth? To be sure, they suld be celebrated with all manner of good cheer, and meeting of friends, and musical instruments—harp, sackbut, and psaltery; or gude fiddle and pipes, when these auld-warld instruments of melody are hard to be compassed.”

The old man looked up with his piercing gray eyes and a knowing smile, as if he got the joke, but quickly went back to his serious tone: “Weddings—who would overlook weddings if they cared about populating the earth? Of course, they should be celebrated with all kinds of good food and friends coming together, along with music—harp, sackbut, and psaltery; or a good fiddle and pipes, when these old-world musical instruments are difficult to find.”

“The presence of the fiddle, I dare say,” replied Ravenswood, “would atone for the absence of all the others.”

“The presence of the fiddle, I would say,” replied Ravenswood, “would make up for the lack of all the others.”

The sexton again looked sharply up at him, as he answered. “Nae doubt—nae doubt, if it were weel played; but yonder,” he said, as if to change the discourse, “is Halbert Gray’s lang hame, that ye were speering after, just the third bourock beyond the muckle through-stane that stands on sax legs yonder, abune some ane of the Ravenswoods; for there is mony of their kin and followers here, deil lift them! though it isna just their main burial-place.”

The sexton looked up at him sharply again as he replied. “No doubt—no doubt, if it were played well; but over there,” he said, seemingly trying to change the subject, “is Halbert Gray’s long home, the third mound beyond the big gravestone that stands on six legs over there, above some of the Ravenswoods; there are many of their relatives and followers here, devil take them! though it’s not really their main burial place.”

“They are no favourites, then, of yours, these Ravenswoods?” said the Master, not much pleased with the passing benediction which was thus bestowed on his family and name.

“They're not your favorites, then, these Ravenswoods?” said the Master, not very happy with the passing praise that was given to his family and name.

“I kenna wha should favour them,” said the grave-digger; “when they had lands and power, they were ill guides of them baith, and now their head’s down, there’s few care how lang they may be of lifting it again.”

“I don’t know who should support them,” said the grave-digger; “when they had land and power, they didn’t lead either one well, and now that they’re down, few care how long it takes them to rise again.”

“Indeed!” said Ravenswood; “I never heard that this unhappy family deserved ill-will at the hands of their country. I grant their poverty, if that renders them contemptible.”

“Absolutely!” said Ravenswood; “I’ve never heard that this unfortunate family deserved any hatred from their country. I admit their poverty, if that makes them look bad.”

“It will gang a far way till’t” said the sexton of Hermitage, “ye may tak my word for that; at least, I ken naething else that suld mak myself contemptible, and folk are far frae respecting me as they wad do if I lived in a twa-lofted sclated house. But as for the Ravenswoods, I hae seen three generations of them, and deil ane to mend other.”

“It will go a long way until then,” said the sexton of Hermitage, “you can take my word for it; at least, I don’t know anything else that should make me contemptible, and people are far from respecting me like they would if I lived in a two-story slate house. But as for the Ravenswoods, I’ve seen three generations of them, and not one of them improved anything.”

“I thought they had enjoyed a fair character in the country,” said their descendant.

“I thought they were well-respected in the community,” said their descendant.

“Character! Ou, ye see, sir,” said the sexton, “as for the auld gudesire body of a lord, I lived on his land when I was a swanking young chield, and could hae blawn the trumpet wi’ ony body, for I had wind eneugh then; and touching this trumpeter Marine that I have heard play afore the lords of the circuit, I wad hae made nae mair o’ him than of a bairn and a bawbee whistle. I defy him to hae played ‘Boot and saddle,’ or ‘Horse and away,’ or ‘Gallants, come trot,’ with me; he handa the tones.”

“Character! Oh, you see, sir,” said the sexton, “as for the old gentleman lord, I lived on his land when I was a flashy young kid, and I could have blown the trumpet better than anyone because I had enough breath back then; and about this trumpeter Marine that I’ve heard play before the lords of the circuit, I wouldn’t have thought any more of him than a child with a penny whistle. I challenge him to play ‘Boot and Saddle,’ or ‘Horse and Away,’ or ‘Gallants, Come Trot,’ with me; he can't handle the notes.”

“But what is all this to old Lord Ravenswood, my friend?” said the Master, who, with an anxiety not unnatural in his circumstances, was desirous of prosecuting the musician’s first topic—“what had his memory to do with the degeneracy of the trumpet music?”

“But what does all this mean to old Lord Ravenswood, my friend?” said the Master, who, with a concern that was understandable given his situation, wanted to continue discussing the musician’s initial point—“what was his memory connected to the decline of trumpet music?”

“Just this, sir,” answered the sexton, “that I lost my wind in his service. Ye see I was trumpeter at the castle, and had allowance for blawing at break of day, and at dinner time, and other whiles when there was company about, and it pleased my lord; and when he raised his militia to caper awa’ to Bothwell Brig against the wrang-headed westland Whigs, I behoved, reason or name, to munt a horse and caper awa’ wi’ them.”

“Just this, sir,” replied the sexton, “that I lost my breath in his service. You see, I was the trumpeter at the castle and had permission to blow my horn at dawn, during lunch, and at other times when there were guests around, and it pleased my lord; and when he gathered his militia to head off to Bothwell Brig against the stubborn westland Whigs, I had no choice but to ride a horse and join them.”

“And very reasonable,” said Ravenswood; “you were his servant and vassal.”

"And that makes perfect sense," said Ravenswood; "you were his servant and vassal."

“Servitor, say ye?” replied the sexton, “and so I was; but it was to blaw folk to their warm dinner, or at the warst to a decent kirkyard, and no to skirl them awa’ to a bluidy braeside, where there was deil a bedral but the hooded craw. But bide ye, ye shall hear what cam o’t, and how far I am bund to be bedesman to the Ravenswoods. Till’t, ye see, we gaed on a braw simmer morning, twenty-fourth of June, saxteen hundred and se’enty-nine, of a’ the days of the month and year—drums beat, guns rattled, horses kicked and trampled. Hackstoun of Rathillet keepit the brig wi’ mustket and carabine and pike, sword and scythe for what I ken, and we horsemen were ordered down to cross at the ford,—I hate fords at a’ times, let abee when there’s thousands of armed men on the other side. There was auld Ravenswood brandishing his Andrew Ferrara at the head, and crying to us to come and buckle to, as if we had been gaun to a fair; there was Caleb Balderstone, that is living yet, flourishing in the rear, and swearing Gog and Magog, he would put steel through the guts of ony man that turned bridle; there was young Allan Ravenswood, that was then Master, wi’ a bended pistol in his hand—it was a mercy it gaed na aff!—crying to me, that had scarce as much wind left as serve the necessary purpose of my ain lungs, ‘Sound, you poltroon!—sound, you damned cowardly villain, or I will blow your brains out!’ and, to be sure, I blew sic points of war that the scraugh of a clockin-hen was music to them.”

“Servant, you say?” replied the sexton, “and that’s true; but I was there to call people to their warm dinner, or at worst to a decent graveyard, and not to scare them away to a bloody hillside, where there was no church officer except the hooded crow. But wait, you’ll hear what happened, and how I ended up being the caretaker for the Ravenswoods. It was a fine summer morning, June 24, 1679, out of all the days of the month and year—drums beating, guns rattling, horses kicking and trampling. Hackstoun of Rathillet held the bridge with musket and carbine and pike, sword and scythe for all I know, and we horsemen were ordered down to cross at the ford—I hate fords at any time, especially when there are thousands of armed men on the other side. There was old Ravenswood waving his Andrew Ferrara at the front, shouting for us to come and join the fight, as if we were going to a fair; there was Caleb Balderstone, who is still alive, flourishing in the back, swearing by Gog and Magog that he would stab any man who turned back; and there was young Allan Ravenswood, who was then the Master, with a cocked pistol in his hand—it was a miracle it didn’t go off!—shouting at me, that barely had enough breath left for my own lungs, ‘Sound, you coward!—sound, you damned cowardly villain, or I will blow your brains out!’ and, of course, I sounded such war points that the caw of a clucking hen was music to them.”

“Well, sir, cut all this short,” said Ravenswood.

“Well, sir, let's get to the point,” said Ravenswood.

“Short! I had like to hae been cut short mysell, in the flower of my youth, as Scripture says; and that’s the very thing that I compleen o’. Weel! in to the water we behoved a’ to splash, heels ower head, sit or fa’—ae horse driving on anither, as is the way of brute beasts, and riders that hae as little sense; the very bushes on the ither side were a-bleeze wi’ the flashes of the Whig guns; and my horse had just taen the grund, when a blackavised westland carle—I wad mind the face o’ him a hundred years yet—an ee like a wild falcon’s, and a beard as broad as my shovel—clapped the end o’ his lang black gun within a quarter’s length of my lug! By the grace o’ Mercy, the horse swarved round, and I fell aff at the tae side as the ball whistled by at the tither, and the fell auld lord took the Whig such a swauk wi’ his broadsword that he made twa pieces o’ his head, and down fell the lurdance wi’ a’ his bouk abune me.”

“Short! I might as well have been cut short myself, in the prime of my youth, as the Scripture says; and that’s exactly what I’m complaining about. Well! into the water we had to splash, head over heels, sit or fall—one horse pushing another, just like animals, and riders who have as little sense; the very bushes on the other side were blazing with the flashes of the Whig guns; and my horse had just hit the ground when a dark-faced man from the west—I'll remember his face for a hundred years—had eyes like a wild falcon and a beard as wide as my shovel—fired the end of his long black gun right next to my ear! By the grace of Mercy, the horse swerved around, and I fell off to one side just as the bullet whizzed by on the other, and the old lord dealt the Whig such a blow with his broadsword that he split his head in two, and down fell the scoundrel with all his bulk above me.”

“You were rather obliged to the old lord, I think,” said Ravenswood.

“You were pretty much indebted to the old lord, I think,” said Ravenswood.

“Was I? my sartie! first for bringing me into jeopardy, would I nould I, and then for whomling a chield on the tap o’ me that dang the very wind out of my body? I hae been short-breathed ever since, and canna gang twenty yards without peghing like a miller’s aiver.”

“Was I? My goodness! First for putting me at risk, whether I wanted it or not, and then for giving me a child on top of that who knocked the very breath out of me? I've been short of breath ever since, and I can’t walk twenty yards without gasping like an old mill wheel.”

“You lost, then, your place as trumpeter?” said Ravenswood.

“You lost your spot as the trumpeter, then?” said Ravenswood.

“Lost it! to be sure I lost it,” replied the sexton, “for I couldna hae played pew upon a dry hemlock; but I might hae dune weel eneugh, for I keepit the wage and the free house, and little to do but play on the fiddle to them, but for Allan, last Lord Ravenswood, that was far waur than ever his father was.”

“Yeah, I lost it for sure,” replied the sexton, “because I couldn't have played in a dry spot under a hemlock tree; but I could have done well enough, since I had my pay and a place to stay for free, and not much to do but play the fiddle for them, if it weren't for Allan, the last Lord Ravenswood, who was way worse than his father ever was.”

“What,” said the Master, “did my father—I mean, did his father’s son—this last Lord Ravenswood, deprive you of what the bounty of his father allowed you?”

“What,” said the Master, “did my father—I mean, did his father’s son—this last Lord Ravenswood, take away from you that his father’s generosity allowed you to have?”

“Ay, troth did he,” answered the old man; “for he loot his affairs gang to the dogs, and let in this Sir William Ashton on us, that will gie naething for naething, and just removed me and a’ the puir creatures that had bite and soup at the castle, and a hole to put our heads in, when things were in the auld way.”

“Aye, he really did,” replied the old man; “because he let his business go to waste and brought this Sir William Ashton in on us, who won’t give anything for nothing, and just kicked me out along with all the poor folks who had food and shelter at the castle when things were better.”

“If Lord Ravenswood protected his people, my friend, while he had the means of doing so, I think they might spare his memory,” replied the Master.

“If Lord Ravenswood looked after his people, my friend, while he had the chance to do so, I believe they might remember him fondly,” replied the Master.

“Ye are welcome to your ain opinion, sir,” said the sexton; “but ye winna persuade me that he did his duty, either to himsell or to huz puir dependent creatures, in guiding us the gate he has done; he might hae gien us life-rent tacks of our bits o’ houses and yards; and me, that’s an auld man, living in yon miserable cabin, that’s fitter for the dead than the quick, and killed wi’ rheumatise, and John Smith in my dainty bit mailing, and his window glazen, and a’ because Ravenswood guided his gear like a fule!”

“You're welcome to your own opinion, sir,” said the sexton; “but you won’t convince me that he did his duty, either to himself or to us poor dependent creatures, by leading us the way he has. He could have given us life leases for our little houses and yards; and me, as an old man, living in that miserable cabin, which is more suited for the dead than the living, and crippled with rheumatism, while John Smith has his nice little farm and his window panes, all because Ravenswood managed his affairs like a fool!”

“It is but too true,” said Ravenswood, conscience-struck; “the penalties of extravagance extend far beyond the prodigal’s own sufferings.”

“It’s all too true,” said Ravenswood, feeling guilty; “the consequences of being extravagant go much further than just the sufferings of the spender.”

“However,” said the sexton, “this young man Edgar is like to avenge my wrangs on the haill of his kindred.”

“However,” said the sexton, “this young man Edgar is likely to take revenge for all my wrongs against his family.”

“Indeed?” said Ravenswood; “why should you suppose so?”

“Really?” said Ravenswood. “Why do you think that?”

“They say he is about to marry the daughter of Leddy Ashton; and let her leddyship get his head ance under her oxter, and see you if she winna gie his neck a thraw. Sorra a bit, if I were him! Let her alane for hauding a’thing in het water that draws near her. Sae the warst wish I shall wish the lad is, that he may take his ain creditable gate o’t, and ally himsell wi’ his father’s enemies, that have taken his broad lands and my bonny kail-yard from the lawful owners thereof.”

“They say he’s about to marry Leddy Ashton’s daughter; and once she gets him under her control, you’ll see if she doesn’t twist his neck. I wouldn’t want to be him! She’s good at keeping everything in hot water that comes close to her. So the worst wish I’ll give the guy is that he manages to walk away with his reputation intact and aligns himself with his father’s enemies, who have taken his vast lands and my beautiful vegetable garden from the rightful owners.”

Cervantes acutely remarks, that flattery is pleasing even from the mouth of a madman; and censure, as well as praise, often affects us, while we despise the opinions and motives on which it is founded and expressed. Ravenswood, abruptly reiterating his command that Alice’s funeral should be attended to, flung away from the sexton, under the painful impression that the great as well as the small vulgar would think of his engagement with Lucy like this ignorant and selfish peasant.

Cervantes wisely noted that flattery is enjoyable even when it comes from a madman; and both criticism and praise can impact us, even as we disregard the opinions and motives behind them. Ravenswood, suddenly restating his order for Alice’s funeral arrangements, turned away from the sexton, troubled by the thought that both the elite and the ordinary would view his involvement with Lucy in the same way as this ignorant and selfish peasant.

“And I have stooped to subject myself to these calumnies, and am rejected notwithstanding! Lucy, your faith must be true and perfect as the diamond to compensate for the dishonour which men’s opinions, and the conduct of your mother, attach to the heir of Ravenswood!”

“And I have lowered myself to endure these slanders, and I'm still rejected! Lucy, your faith must be as true and perfect as a diamond to make up for the disgrace that people's opinions and your mother’s actions bring to the heir of Ravenswood!”

As he raised his eyes, he beheld the Marquis of A——, who, having arrived at the Tod’s Hole, had walked forth to look for his kinsman.

As he looked up, he saw the Marquis of A——, who, having reached Tod’s Hole, had come out to search for his relative.

After mutual greetings, he made some apology to the Master for not coming forward on the preceding evening. “It was his wish,” he said, “to have done so, but he had come to the knowledge of some matters which induced him to delay his purpose. I find,” he proceeded, “there has been a love affair here, kinsman; and though I might blame you for not having communicated with me, as being in some degree the chief of your family——”

After exchanging pleasantries, he apologized to the Master for not coming forward the night before. “I wanted to,” he said, “but I learned about some things that made me hesitate. I’ve found out,” he continued, “that there’s been a romantic situation here, relative; and while I could point fingers at you for not informing me, since I am somewhat the head of your family—”

“With your lordship’s permission,” said Ravenswood, “I am deeply grateful for the interest you are pleased to take in me, but I am the chief and head of my family.”

“With your lordship’s permission,” said Ravenswood, “I really appreciate the interest you’ve shown in me, but I am the head of my family.”

“I know it—I know it,” said the Marquis; “in a strict heraldic and genealogical sense, you certainly are so; what I mean is, that being in some measure under my guardianship——”

“I get it—I get it,” said the Marquis; “in a strict heraldic and genealogical sense, you definitely are; what I mean is, that being somewhat under my guardianship——”

“I must take the liberty to say, my lord——” answered Ravenswood, and the tone in which he interrupted the Marquis boded no long duration to the friendship of the noble relatives, when he himself was interrupted by the little sexton, who came puffing after them, to ask if their honours would choose music at the change-house to make up for short cheer.

“I need to interject, my lord——” replied Ravenswood, and the way he interrupted the Marquis suggested that their noble relationship wouldn't last long, when he was interrupted by the little sexton, who came puffing after them to ask if they would like some music at the tavern to make up for the meager meal.

“We want no music,” said the Master, abruptly.

“We don’t want any music,” said the Master, abruptly.

“Your honour disna ken what ye’re refusing, then,” said the fiddler, with the impertinent freedom of his profession. “I can play, ‘Wilt thou do’t again,’ and ‘The Auld Man’s Mear’s Dead,’ sax times better than ever Patie Birnie. I’ll get my fiddle in the turning of a coffin-screw.”

“Your honor doesn’t know what you’re turning down, then,” said the fiddler, with the boldness of his profession. “I can play ‘Will you do it again’ and ‘The Old Man’s Mare is Dead’ six times better than Patie Birnie ever could. I’ll grab my fiddle in the time it takes to turn a coffin screw.”

“Take yourself away, sir,” said the Marquis.

“Leave now, sir,” said the Marquis.

“And if your honour be a north-country gentleman,” said the persevering minstrel, “whilk I wad judge from your tongue, I can play ‘Liggeram Cosh,’ and ‘Mullin Dhu,’ and ‘The Cummers of Athole.’”

“And if you’re a gentleman from the North,” said the persistent minstrel, “which I would guess from your accent, I can play ‘Liggeram Cosh,’ ‘Mullin Dhu,’ and ‘The Cummers of Athole.’”

“Take yourself away, friend; you interrupt our conversation.”

“Step aside, friend; you’re interrupting our conversation.”

“Or if, under your honour’s favour, ye should happen to be a thought honest, I can play (this in a low and confidential tone) ‘Killiecrankie,’ and ‘The King shall hae his ain,’ and ‘The Auld Stuarts back again’; and the wife at the change-house is a decent, discreet body, neither kens nor cares what toasts are drucken, and what tunes are played, in her house: she’s deaf to a’thing but the clink o’ the siller.”

“Or if, with your honor's permission, you happen to be a bit honest, I can play (this in a low and confidential tone) ‘Killiecrankie,’ and ‘The King shall have his own,’ and ‘The Old Stuarts are back again’; and the woman at the inn is a decent, discreet person, who doesn’t know or care what toasts are drunk, and what tunes are played, in her house: she’s deaf to everything but the sound of the money.”

The Marquis, who was sometimes suspected of Jacobitism, could not help laughing as he threw the fellow a dollar, and bid him go play to the servants if he had a mind, and leave them at peace.

The Marquis, who was occasionally suspected of being a Jacobite, couldn’t help but laugh as he tossed the guy a dollar and told him to go play for the servants if he wanted, and to leave them alone.

“Aweel, gentlemen,” said he, “I am wishing your honours gude day. I’ll be a’ the better of the dollar, and ye’ll be the waur of wanting music, I’se tell ye. But I’se gang hame, and finish the grave in the tuning o’ a fiddle-string, lay by my spade, and then get my tother bread-winner, and awa’ to your folk, and see if they hae better lugs than their masters.”

“Awell, gentlemen,” he said, “I hope you all have a good day. I’ll benefit from the dollar, and you’ll miss having music, I’ll tell you. But I’ll head home, finish the grave while tuning a fiddle string, put down my spade, grab my other source of income, and go to your people to see if they have better ears than their masters.”

CHAPTER XXV.

True love, an thou be true,
    Thou has ane kittle part to play;
For fortune, fashion, fancy, and thou,
    Maun strive for many a day.

I’ve kend by mony a friend’s tale,
    Far better by this heart of mine,
What time and change of fancy avail
    A true-love knot to untwine.

HENDERSOUN.

True love, if you are genuine,
    You have a tricky role to play;
For luck, style, desire, and you,
    Must struggle for many days.

I’ve learned from many friends’ stories,
    Much more through this heart of mine,
How time and shifting feelings can
    Untangle a true-love bond.

HENDERSOUN.

“I wished to tell you, my good kinsman,” said the Marquis, “now that we are quit of that impertinent fiddler, that I had tried to discuss this love affair of yours with Sir William Ashton’s daughter. I never saw the young lady but for a few minutes to-day; so, being a stranger to her personal merits, I pay a compliment to you, and offer her no offence, in saying you might do better.”

“I wanted to tell you, my good relative,” said the Marquis, “now that we’re done with that annoying fiddler, that I tried to talk about your love situation with Sir William Ashton’s daughter. I only saw the young lady for a few minutes today, so since I’m not familiar with her personal qualities, I compliment you and mean no disrespect to her by saying you could do better.”

“My lord, I am much indebted for the interest you have taken in my affairs,” said Ravenswood. “I did not intend to have troubled you in any matter concerning Miss Ashton. As my engagement with that young lady has reached your lordship, I can only say, that you must necessarily suppose that I was aware of the objections to my marrying into her father’s family, and of course must have been completely satisfied with the reasons by which these objections are overbalanced, since I have proceeded so far in the matter.”

“My lord, I really appreciate your interest in my situation,” said Ravenswood. “I didn’t mean to trouble you with anything regarding Miss Ashton. Since my engagement with that young lady has reached your lordship, I can only say that you must assume I was aware of the objections to marrying into her father's family, and of course, I must have been entirely convinced by the reasons that outweigh those objections, considering I’ve gone this far in the matter.”

“Nay, Master, if you had heard me out,” said his noble relation, “you might have spared that observation; for, without questioning that you had reasons which seemed to you to counterbalance every other obstacle, I set myself, by every means that it became me to use towards the Ashtons, to persuade them to meet your views.”

“Nah, Master, if you had let me finish,” said his noble relative, “you might have avoided that comment; because, without doubting that you had reasons that seemed valid to you against every other issue, I did everything I could to convince the Ashtons to align with your plans.”

“I am obliged to your lordship for your unsolicited intercession,” said Ravenswood; “especially as I am sure your lordship would never carry it beyond the bounds which it became me to use.”

“I appreciate your lordship for your unexpected support,” said Ravenswood; “especially since I’m sure your lordship would never take it further than what I should have done.”

“Of that,” said the Marquis, “you may be confident; I myself felt the delicacy of the matter too much to place a gentleman nearly connected with my house in a degrading or dubious situation with these Ashtons. But I pointed out all the advantages of their marrying their daughter into a house so honourable, and so nearly related with the first of Scotland; I explained the exact degree of relationship in which the Ravenswoods stand to ourselves; and I even hinted how political matters were like to turn, and what cards would be trumps next Parliament. I said I regarded you as a son—or a nephew, or so—rather than as a more distant relation; and that I made your affair entirely my own.”

“Of that,” said the Marquis, “you can be sure; I was too aware of the sensitivity of the situation to put a gentleman closely connected to my family in a degrading or questionable position with these Ashtons. I pointed out all the benefits of their marrying their daughter into such an honorable family, closely tied to the most prominent in Scotland; I explained the exact nature of the relationship that the Ravenswoods have with us; and I even suggested how political matters were likely to unfold, and what would be the winning cards in the next Parliament. I said I saw you as a son—or a nephew, something like that—rather than as a more distant relative; and that I took your situation completely as my own.”

“And what was the issue of your lordship’s explanation?” said Ravenswood, in some doubt whether he should resent or express gratitude for his interference.

“And what was the point of your lordship’s explanation?” said Ravenswood, unsure whether he should be annoyed or thankful for his interference.

“Why, the Lord Keeper would have listened to reason,” said the Marquis; “he is rather unwilling to leave his place, which, in the present view of a change, must be vacated; and, to say truth, he seemed to have a liking for you, and to be sensible of the general advantages to be attained by such a match. But his lady, who is tongue of the trump, Master——”

“Honestly, the Lord Keeper would have considered the situation,” said the Marquis; “he's not too eager to give up his position, which, with the possibility of a change ahead, will have to be left empty; and, to be honest, he seemed to have a fondness for you and recognized the overall benefits of such a union. But his wife, who is very outspoken, Master——”

“What of Lady Ashton, my lord?” said Ravenswood; “let me know the issue of this extraordinary conference: I can bear it.”

“What about Lady Ashton, my lord?” Ravenswood asked. “Please tell me the outcome of this unusual meeting: I can handle it.”

“I am glad of that, kinsman,” said the Marquis, “for I am ashamed to tell you half what she said. It is enough—her mind is made up, and the mistress of a first-rate boarding-school could not have rejected with more haughty indifference the suit of a half-pay Irish officer, beseeching permission to wait upon the heiress of a West India planter, than Lady Ashton spurned every proposal of mediation which it could at all become me to offer in behalf of you, my good kinsman. I cannot guess what she means. A more honourable connexion she could not form, that’s certain. As for money and land, that used to be her husband’s business rather than hers; I really think she hates you for having the rank which her husband has not, and perhaps for not having the lands that her goodman has. But I should only vex you to say more about it—here we are at the change-house.”

“I’m glad to hear that, cousin,” said the Marquis, “because I’m embarrassed to share half of what she said. It’s clear—she’s made up her mind, and the head of a top boarding school couldn’t have turned down the advances of a retired Irish officer asking to visit the heiress of a West India plantation with more disdain than Lady Ashton rejected every offer of help I could possibly suggest for you, my dear cousin. I can’t figure out what she’s thinking. She couldn’t form a more honorable connection, that’s for sure. As for wealth and property, that used to be her husband’s concern more than hers; I really believe she resents you for having the status her husband lacks, and maybe for not having the property her partner has. But I’d just frustrate you if I say any more about it—here we are at the tavern.”

The Master of Ravenswood paused as he entered the cottage, which reeked through all its crevices, and they were not few, from the exertions of the Marquis’s travelling-cooks to supply good cheer, and spread, as it were, a table in the wilderness.

The Master of Ravenswood hesitated as he stepped into the cottage, which stank from every crack and crevice, and there were plenty of them, due to the efforts of the Marquis’s traveling cooks to provide good food and set up, in a way, a table in the wilderness.

“My Lord Marquis,” said Ravenswood, “I already mentioned that accident has put your lordship in possession of a secret which, with my consent, should have remained one even to you, my kinsman, for some time. Since the secret was to part from my own custody, and that of the only person besides who was interested in it, I am not sorry it should have reached your lordship’s ears, as being fully aware that you are my noble kinsman and friend.”

“My Lord Marquis,” said Ravenswood, “I already mentioned that by chance you’ve come into possession of a secret that, with my permission, should have stayed a secret even from you, my relative, for a while. Since the secret was meant to leave my control, and that of the only other person who cared about it, I’m not upset that it has reached your ears, knowing you are my noble relative and friend.”

“You may believe it is safely lodged with me, Master of Ravenswood,” said the Marquis; “but I should like well to hear you say that you renounced the idea of an alliance which you can hardly pursue without a certain degree of degradation.”

“You might think it's securely in my possession, Ravenswood,” said the Marquis; “but I would really like to hear you say that you've given up on the idea of an alliance that you can barely pursue without losing some dignity.”

“Of that, my lord, I shall judge,” answered Ravenswood, “and I hope with delicacy as sensitive as any of my friends. But I have no engagement with Sir William and Lady Ashton. It is with Miss Ashton alone that I have entered upon the subject, and my conduct in the matter shall be entirely ruled by hers. If she continues to prefer me in my poverty to the wealthier suitors whom her friends recommend, I may well make some sacrifice to her sincere affection: I may well surrender to her the less tangible and less palpable advantages of birth, and the deep-rooted prejudices of family hatred. If Miss Lucy Ashton should change her mind on a subject of such delicacy, I trust my friends will be silent on my disappointment, and I shall know how to make my enemies so.”

"That's for me to decide, my lord," Ravenswood replied, "and I hope to do so with the same sensitivity as any of my friends. But I have no obligation to Sir William and Lady Ashton. It’s only with Miss Ashton that I’ve discussed this, and my actions will be entirely guided by her. If she chooses to prefer me in my poverty over the wealthier suitors her friends suggest, I might be willing to sacrifice for her genuine affection: I might let go of the less tangible benefits of my lineage and the ingrained biases of family animosity. If Miss Lucy Ashton changes her mind about such a sensitive matter, I trust my friends will keep quiet about my disappointment, and I will know how to handle my enemies."

“Spoke like a gallant young nobleman,” said the Marquis; “for my part, I have that regard for you, that I should be sorry the thing went on. This Sir William Ashton was a pretty enough pettifogging kind of a lawyer twenty years ago, and betwixt battling at the bar and leading in committees of Parliament he has got well on; the Darien matter lent him a lift, for he had good intelligence and sound views, and sold out in time; but the best work is had out of him. No government will take him at his own, or rather his wife’s extravagant, valuation; and betwixt his indecision and her insolence, from all I can guess, he will outsit his market, and be had cheap when no one will bid for him. I say nothing of Miss Ashton; but I assure you, a connexion with her father will be neither useful nor ornamental, beyond that part of your father’s spoils which he may be prevailed upon to disgorge by way of tocher-good; and take my word for it, you will get more if you have spirit to bell the cat with him in the House of Peers. And I will be the man, cousin,” continued his lordship, “will course the fox for you, and make him rue the day that ever he refused a composition too honourable for him, and proposed by me on the behalf of a kinsman.”

“Spoke like a brave young nobleman,” said the Marquis; “as for me, I care about you enough that I’d hate to see this continue. Sir William Ashton was a decent enough lawyer twenty years ago, and between fighting in court and leading Parliament committees, he’s done pretty well for himself; the Darien situation helped boost his career because he had good information and smart ideas, and he sold his shares at the right time. But he’s reached his peak. No government will pay his, or rather his wife’s, unrealistic asking price; and between his hesitation and her arrogance, from what I can gather, he’ll wait too long and end up being sold cheap when no one wants him. I’m not saying anything about Miss Ashton; but I assure you, being connected to her father won’t be beneficial or impressive, aside from any of your father’s leftover spoils that he might be convinced to part with as a dowry; and trust me, you’ll get more if you have the guts to take him on in the House of Lords. And I will be the one, cousin,” continued his lordship, “to chase the fox for you and make him regret the day he turned down an offer far too good for him, proposed by me on behalf of a relative.”

There was something in all this that, as it were, overshot the mark. Ravenswood could not disguise from himself that his noble kinsman had more reasons for taking offence at the reception of his suit than regarded his interest and honour, yet he could neither complain nor be surprised that it should be so. He contented himself, therefore, with repeating, that his attachment was to Miss Ashton personally; that he desired neither wealth nor aggrandisement from her father’s means and influence; and that nothing should prevent his keeping his engagement, excepting her own express desire that it should be relinquished; and he requested as a favour that the matter might be no more mentioned betwixt them at present, assuring the Marquis of A——that he should be his confidant in its progress or its interruption.

There was something about all this that, if you think about it, went a bit too far. Ravenswood couldn't ignore the fact that his noble relative had more reasons to be upset about how his proposal was received than just his own interests and honor, yet he couldn’t complain or be surprised about it. So, he settled for saying again that his feelings were for Miss Ashton personally; that he didn't want wealth or power from her father’s resources and influence; and that nothing would stop him from keeping his promise, except for her own clear wish to end it; and he politely asked that they not discuss it any further for now, assuring the Marquis of A—— that he would keep him updated on how it went or if it came to a stop.

The Marquis soon had more agreeable, as well as more interesting, subjects on which to converse. A foot-post, who had followed him from Edinburgh to Ravenswood Castle, and had traced his steps to the Tod’s Hole, brought him a packet laden with good news. The political calculations of the Marquis had proved just, both in London and at Edinburgh, and he saw almost within his grasp the pre-eminence for which he had panted. The refreshments which the servants had prepared were now put on the table, and an epicure would perhaps have enjoyed them with additional zest from the contrast which such fare afforded to the miserable cabin in which it was served up.

The Marquis soon had more enjoyable and interesting topics to talk about. A messenger, who had followed him from Edinburgh to Ravenswood Castle and had tracked his movements to Tod’s Hole, brought him a packet filled with good news. The Marquis's political calculations had been correct, both in London and Edinburgh, and he was close to achieving the prominence he had been yearning for. The refreshments the servants had prepared were now laid out on the table, and a foodie might have appreciated them even more, considering the stark contrast to the miserable cabin where they were served.

The turn of conversation corresponded with and added to the social feelings of the company. The Marquis expanded with pleasure on the power which probably incidents were likely to assign to him, and on the use which he hoped to make of it in serving his kinsman Ravenswood. Ravenswood could but repeat the gratitude which he really felt, even when he considered the topic as too long dwelt upon. The wine was excellent, notwithstanding its having been brought in a runlet from Edinburgh; and the habits of the Marquis, when engaged with such good cheer, were somewhat sedentary. And so it fell out that they delayed their journey two hours later than was their original purpose.

The change in conversation matched and added to the social mood of the group. The Marquis happily elaborated on the influence he likely would have in upcoming situations and how he planned to use it to help his relative, Ravenswood. Ravenswood could only express the gratitude he genuinely felt, even if he thought they spent too much time on the subject. The wine was excellent, even though it had been brought in a small cask from Edinburgh; and the Marquis, when enjoying such good company, tended to be a bit laid back. As a result, they postponed their journey two hours longer than they originally intended.

“But what of that, my good young friend?” said the Marquis. “Your Castle of Wolf’s Crag is at but five or six miles’ distance, and will afford the same hospitality to your kinsman of A——that it gave to this same Sir William Ashton.”

“But what does that matter, my good young friend?” said the Marquis. “Your Castle of Wolf’s Crag is only five or six miles away and will provide the same hospitality to your relative of A—— that it gave to this same Sir William Ashton.”

“Sir William took the castle by storm,” said Ravenswood, “and, like many a victor, had little reason to congratulate himself on his conquest.”

“Sir William took the castle by storm,” said Ravenswood, “and, like many winners, had little reason to congratulate himself on his victory.”

“Well—well!” said Lord A——, whose dignity was something relaxed by the wine he had drunk, “I see I must bribe you to harbour me. Come, pledge me in a bumper health to the last young lady that slept at Wolf’s Crag, and liked her quarters. My bones are not so tender as hers, and I am resolved to occupy her apartment to-night, that I may judge how hard the couch is that love can soften.”

“Well—well!” said Lord A——, whose dignity was a bit loosened by the wine he had drunk, “I see I have to sweeten the deal to get you to let me stay. Come, raise a glass with me to the last young lady who stayed at Wolf’s Crag and liked her room. My bones aren’t as delicate as hers, and I’m determined to use her room tonight so I can see how hard the bed is that love can soften.”

“Your lordship may choose what penance you please,” said Ravenswood; “but I assure you, I should expect my old servant to hang himself, or throw himself from the battlements, should your lordship visit him so unexpectedly. I do assure you, we are totally and literally unprovided.”

“Your lordship can choose any penance you want,” said Ravenswood; “but I have to warn you, I’d expect my old servant to hang himself or jump from the battlements if your lordship visits him so suddenly. I really do assure you, we are completely and utterly unprepared.”

But his declaration only brought from his noble patron an assurance of his own total indifference as to every species of accommodation, and his determination to see the Tower of Wolf’s Crag. His ancestor, he said, had been feasted there, when he went forward with the then Lord Ravenswood to the fatal battle of Flodden, in which they both fell. Thus hard pressed, the Master offered to ride forward to get matters put in such preparation as time and circumstances admitted; but the Marquis protested his kinsman must afford him his company, and would only consent that an avant-courier should carry to the desinted Seneschal, Caleb Balderstone, the unexpected news of this invasion.

But his declaration only led to his noble patron assuring him that he was completely indifferent to any form of accommodation and was determined to visit the Tower of Wolf’s Crag. He mentioned that his ancestor had been hosted there when he headed to the ill-fated Battle of Flodden alongside the then Lord Ravenswood, where they both perished. Faced with this pressure, the Master offered to ride ahead to prepare things as much as time and circumstances allowed; however, the Marquis insisted that his relative must accompany him and agreed only to let a messenger inform the designated Seneschal, Caleb Balderstone, about this unexpected intrusion.

The Master of Ravenswood soon after accompanied the Marquis in his carriage, as the latter had proposed; and when they became better acquainted in the progress of the journey, his noble relation explained the very liberal views which he entertained for his relation’s preferment, in case of the success of his own political schemes. They related to a secret and highly important commission beyond sea, which could only be entrusted to a person of rank, talent, and perfect confidence, and which, as it required great trust and reliance on the envoy employed, could but not prove both honourable and advantageous to him. We need not enter into the nature and purpose of this commission, farther than to acquaint our readers that the charge was in prospect highly acceptable to the Master of Ravenswood, who hailed with pleasure the hope of emerging from his present state of indigence and inaction into independence and honourable exertion.

The Master of Ravenswood soon joined the Marquis in his carriage, just as the Marquis had suggested. As they got to know each other better during the journey, his noble relative shared his ambitious plans for Ravenswood’s advancement, should his own political strategies succeed. These plans involved a secret and extremely important mission overseas, which could only be entrusted to someone of rank, skill, and complete trustworthiness. Because this mission required a high level of trust in the envoy chosen, it would surely turn out to be both honorable and beneficial for him. We won’t delve into the details and purpose of this mission, except to let our readers know that the opportunity was highly appealing to the Master of Ravenswood, who welcomed the chance to move from his current state of poverty and inactivity to one of independence and honorable action.

While he listened thus eagerly to the details with which the Marquis now thought it necessary to entrust him, the messenger who had been despatched to the Tower of Wolf’s Crag returned with Caleb Balderstone’s humble duty, and an assurance that “a’ should be in seemly order, sic as the hurry of time permitted, to receive their lordships as it behoved.”

While he eagerly listened to the details that the Marquis now felt necessary to share, the messenger sent to the Tower of Wolf’s Crag returned with Caleb Balderstone’s respectful greetings and assurance that “everything would be in proper order, as much as time would allow, to welcome their lordships as needed.”

Ravenswood was too well accustomed to his seneschal’s mode of acting and speaking to hope much from this confident assurance. He knew that Caleb acted upon the principle of the Spanish generals, in the campaign of ——, who, much to the perplexity of the Prince of Orange, their commander-in-chief, used to report their troops as full in number, and possessed of all necessary points of equipment, not considering it consistent with their dignity, or the honour of Spain, to confess any deficiency either in men or munition, until the want of both was unavoidably discovered in the day of battle. Accordingly, Ravenswood thought it necessary to give the Marquis some hint that the fair assurance which they had just received from Caleb did not by any means ensure them against a very indifferent reception.

Ravenswood was too familiar with his seneschal's way of acting and speaking to expect much from this confident assurance. He knew Caleb operated on the principle of the Spanish generals in the campaign of ——, who, much to the confusion of the Prince of Orange, their commander-in-chief, would report their troops as fully numbered and well-equipped, not thinking it appropriate to admit any lack of men or supplies until it became painfully obvious on the battlefield. As a result, Ravenswood felt it necessary to hint to the Marquis that the reassuring message they had just received from Caleb did not guarantee them a warm welcome.

“You do yourself injustice, Master,” said the Marquis, “or you wish to surprise me agreeably. From this window I see a great light in the direction where, if I remember aright, Wolf’s Crag lies; and, to judge from the splendour which the old Tower sheds around it, the preparations for our reception must be of no ordinary description. I remember your father putting the same deception on me, when we went to the Tower for a few days’ hawking, about twenty years since, and yet we spent our time as jollily at Wolf’s Crag as we could have done at my own hunting seat at B——.”

“You’re being unfair to yourself, Master,” said the Marquis, “or you’re trying to pleasantly surprise me. From this window, I can see a bright light in the direction of Wolf’s Crag, if I’m remembering correctly; and judging by the brilliance the old Tower is giving off, the preparations for our arrival must be quite extraordinary. I recall your father pulling the same fast one on me when we went to the Tower for a few days of hawking about twenty years ago, and we had just as much fun at Wolf’s Crag as we could have had at my own hunting lodge at B——.”

“Your lordship, I fear, will experience that the faculty of the present proprietor to entertain his friends is greatly abridged,” said Ravenswood; “the will, I need hardly say, remains the same. But I am as much at a loss as your lordship to account for so strong and brilliant a light as is now above Wolf’s Crag; the windows of the Tower are few and narrow, and those of the lower story are hidden from us by the walls of the court. I cannot conceive that any illumination of an ordinary nature could afford such a blaze of light.”

“Your lordship, I’m afraid you’ll find that the current owner’s ability to host his friends is quite limited,” said Ravenswood; “the intention, I don’t need to mention, stays the same. But I'm just as puzzled as you are by the intense and shining light that’s now shining over Wolf’s Crag; the Tower has only a few narrow windows, and the windows on the lower floor are blocked from our view by the courtyard walls. I can’t understand how any ordinary source of light could create such a bright glow.”


The mystery was soon explained; for the cavalcade almost instantly halted, and the voice of Caleb Balderstone was heard at the coach window, exclaiming, in accents broken by grief and fear, “Och, gentlemen! Och, my gude lords! Och, haud to the right! Wolf’s Crag is burning, bower and ha’—a’ the rich plenishing outside and inside—a’ the fine graith, pictures, tapestries, needle-wark, hangings, and other decorements—a’ in a bleeze, as if they were nae mair than sae mony peats, or as muckle pease-strae! Haud to the right, gentlemen, I implore ye; there is some sma’ provision making at Luckie Sma’trash’s; but oh, wae for this night, and wae for me that lives to see it!”

The mystery was quickly explained; the procession almost immediately came to a stop, and the voice of Caleb Balderstone could be heard at the coach window, crying out, in tones filled with grief and fear, “Oh, gentlemen! Oh, my good lords! Oh, turn to the right! Wolf’s Crag is on fire, the house and the hall—everything rich inside and out—all the fine stuff, pictures, tapestries, needlework, hangings, and other decorations—all in flames, as if they were nothing more than a pile of peat, or as much as some peas straw! Turn to the right, gentlemen, I beg you; there’s some small provision being made at Luckie Sma’trash’s; but oh, woe for this night, and woe for me that lives to see it!”

Ravenswood was first stunned by this new and unexpected calamity; but after a moment’s recollection he sprang from the carriage, and hastily bidding his noble kinsman goodnight, was about to ascend the hill towards the castle, the broad and full conflagration of which now flung forth a high column of red light, that flickered far to seaward upon the dashing waves of the ocean.

Ravenswood was initially shocked by this sudden and unexpected disaster; but after a moment of thought, he jumped out of the carriage and quickly said goodnight to his noble relative. He was about to head up the hill toward the castle, where the large and bright fire now sent up a tall column of red light that flickered far out to sea on the crashing waves of the ocean.

“Take a horse, Master,” exclaimed the Marquis, greatly affected by this additional misfortune, so unexpectedly heaped upon his young protege; “and give me my ambling palfrey; and haste forward, you knaves, to see what can be done to save the furniture, or to extinguish the fire—ride, you knaves, for your lives!”

“Get a horse, Master,” shouted the Marquis, deeply upset by this extra misfortune suddenly thrown at his young protege; “and bring me my comfortable horse; and hurry up, you guys, to see what can be done to save the furniture or put out the fire—ride, you guys, for your lives!”

The attendants bustled together, and began to strike their horses with the spur, and call upon Caleb to show them the road. But the voice of that careful seneschal was heard above the tumult, “Oh, stop sirs, stop—turn bridle, for the luve of Mercy; add not loss of lives to the loss of warld’s gean! Thirty barrels of powther, landed out of a Dunkirk dogger in the auld lord’s time—a’ in the vau’ts of the auld tower,—the fire canna be far off it, I trow. Lord’s sake, to the right, lads—to the right; let’s pit the hill atween us and peril,—a wap wi’ a corner-stane o’ Wolf’s Crag wad defy the doctor!”

The attendants huddled together, started to spur their horses, and called out to Caleb to lead the way. But the voice of that careful steward rose above the chaos, “Oh, stop, gentlemen, stop—turn back, for the love of mercy; don’t add more loss of life to the destruction of worldly goods! Thirty barrels of gunpowder, brought over from a Dunkirk ship in the old lord’s time—all stored in the vaults of the old tower—the fire can’t be far from it, I believe. For heaven’s sake, to the right, guys—to the right; let’s put the hill between us and danger—a whack with a corner stone of Wolf’s Crag would keep the doctor at bay!”

It will readily be supposed that this annunciation hurried the Marquis and his attendants into the route which Caleb prescribed, dragging Ravenswood along with them, although there was much in the matter which he could not possibly comprehend. “Gunpowder!” he exclaimed, laying hold of Caleb, who in vain endeavoured to escape from him; “what gunpowder? How any quantity of powder could be in Wolf’s Crag without my knowledge, I cannot possibly comprehend.”

It’s easy to assume that this announcement hurried the Marquis and his crew onto the path Caleb suggested, pulling Ravenswood along with them, even though there was a lot that he just couldn’t understand. “Gunpowder!” he shouted, grabbing hold of Caleb, who was desperately trying to get away from him. “What gunpowder? How could there be any amount of powder in Wolf’s Crag without me knowing about it? I just can’t understand.”

“But I can,” interrupted the Marquis, whispering him, “I can comprehend it thoroughly; for God’s sake, ask him no more questions at present.”

“But I can,” the Marquis interrupted him quietly, “I can understand it completely; for goodness’ sake, don’t ask him any more questions right now.”

“There it is, now,” said Caleb, extricating himself from his master, and adjusting his dress, “your honour will believe his lordship’s honourable testimony. His lordship minds weel how, in the year that him they ca’d King Willie died——”

“There it is, now,” said Caleb, freeing himself from his master and straightening his clothes, “you’ll believe his lordship’s honorable testimony. His lordship remembers well how, in the year they called King Willie died——”

“Hush! hush, my good friend!” said the Marquis; “I shall satisfy your master upon that subject.”

“Hush! Be quiet, my good friend!” said the Marquis; “I’ll take care of your master regarding that.”

“And the people at Wolf’s Hope,” said Ravenswood, “did none of them come to your assistance before the flame got so high?”

“And the people at Wolf’s Hope,” Ravenswood said, “didn’t anyone come to help you before the fire got so big?”

“Ay did they, mony ane of them, the rapscallions!” said Caleb; “but truly I was in nae hurry to let them into the Tower, where there were so much plate and valuables.”

“Yeah, many of them, those troublemakers!” said Caleb; “but honestly, I wasn't in any rush to let them into the Tower, where there were so many precious items and valuables.”

“Confound you for an impudent liar!” said Ravenswood, in uncontrollable ire, “there was not a single ounce of——”

“Damn you for an arrogant liar!” said Ravenswood, in uncontrollable anger, “there wasn’t a single ounce of——”

“Forbye,” said the butler, most irreverently raising his voice to a pitch which drowned his master’s, “the fire made fast on us, owing to the store of tapestry and carved timmer in the banqueting-ha’, and the loons ran like scaulded rats sae sune as they heard of the gunpouther.”

“Forbes,” said the butler, dismissively raising his voice to a level that overshadowed his master's, “the fire got to us quickly because of all the tapestry and carved wood in the banquet hall, and the men ran like scalded rats as soon as they heard about the gunpowder.”

“I do entreat,” said the Marquis to Ravenswood, “you will ask him no more questions.”

“I really ask you,” said the Marquis to Ravenswood, “not to ask him any more questions.”

“Only one, my lord. What has become of poor Mysie?”

“Only one, my lord. What happened to poor Mysie?”

“Mysie!” said Caleb, “I had nae time to look about ony Mysie; she’s in the Tower, I’se warrant, biding her awful doom.”

“Mysie!” said Caleb, “I didn’t have time to look for any Mysie; she’s in the Tower, I’m sure, waiting for her terrible fate.”

“By heaven,” said Ravenswood, “I do not understand all this! The life of a faithful old creature is at stake; my lord, I will be withheld no longer; I will at least ride up, and see whether the danger is as imminent as this old fool pretends.”

“By heaven,” said Ravenswood, “I don’t get all this! The life of a loyal old creature is on the line; my lord, I can't hold back any longer; I’m at least going to ride up and see if the danger is as real as this old fool claims.”

“Weel, then, as I live by bread,” said Caleb, “Mysie is weel and safe. I saw her out of the castle before I left it mysell. Was I ganging to forget an auld fellow-servant?”

"We'll, then, as I live by bread," said Caleb, "Mysie is well and safe. I saw her out of the castle before I left it myself. Was I going to forget an old fellow servant?"

“What made you tell me the contrary this moment?” said his master.

“What made you tell me something different just now?” said his master.

“Did I tell you the contrary?” said Caleb; “then I maun hae been dreaming surely, or this awsome night has turned my judgment; but safe she is, and ne’er a living soul in the castle, a’ the better for them: they wau have gotten an unco heezy.”

“Did I say otherwise?” Caleb said. “Then I must have been dreaming, or this eerie night has messed with my judgment; but she’s safe, and there’s not a living person in the castle, which is better for them: they would have gotten a real scare.”

The Master of Ravenswood, upon this assurance being solemnly reiterated, and notwithstanding his extreme wish to witness the last explosion, which was to ruin to the ground the mansion of his fathers, suffered himself to be dragged onward towards the village of Wolf’s Hope, where not only the change-house, but that of our well-known friend the cooper, were all prepared for reception of himself and his noble guest, with a liberality of provision which requires some explanation.

The Master of Ravenswood, after this promise was repeated seriously, and despite his strong desire to see the final blast that would destroy his ancestral home, allowed himself to be pulled away toward the village of Wolf’s Hope. There, not only the inn but also our good friend the cooper’s place were ready to welcome him and his noble guest, with a generosity of food and drink that needs some clarification.

We omitted to mention in its place, that Lockhard having fished out the truth concerning the mode by which Caleb had obtained the supplies for his banquet, the Lord Keeper, amused with the incident, and desirous at the time to gratify Ravenswood, had recommended the cooper of Wolf’s Hope to the official situation under government the prospect of which had reconciled him to the loss of his wild-fowl. Mr. Girder’s preferment had occasioned a pleasing surprise to old Caleb; for when, some days after his master’s departure, he found himself absolutely compelled, by some necessary business, to visit the fishing hamlet, and was gliding like a ghost past the door of the cooper, for fear of being summoned to give some account of the progress of the solicitation in his favour, or, more probably that the inmates might upbraid him with the false hope he had held out upon the subject, he heard himself, not without some apprehension, summoned at once in treble, tenor, and bass—a trio performed by the voices of Mrs. Girder, old Dame Loup-the-Dyke, and the goodman of the dwelling—“Mr. Caleb!—Mr. Caleb Balderstone! I hope ye arena ganging dry-lipped by our door, and we sae muckle indebted to you?”

We forgot to mention that Lockhard, after discovering how Caleb had gotten the supplies for his feast, amused by the situation and wanting to please Ravenswood, suggested the cooper from Wolf’s Hope for an official position in the government, which made Caleb accept the loss of his wildfowl. Mr. Girder’s promotion surprised old Caleb pleasantly. A few days after his master's departure, Caleb found himself needing to visit the fishing village and was sneaking past the cooper's door, worried about being asked for updates on the support for Mr. Girder or, more likely, being scolded by the residents for giving false hope. To his surprise and slight fear, he was called out in three voices—Mrs. Girder, old Dame Loup-the-Dyke, and the head of the household—“Mr. Caleb!—Mr. Caleb Balderstone! I hope you’re not passing by our door without saying hi, with so much thanks owed to you?”

This might be said ironically as well as in earnest. Caleb augured the worst, turned a deaf ear to the trio aforesaid, and was moving doggedly on, his ancient castor pulled over his brows, and his eyes bent on the ground, as if to count the flinty pebbles with which the rude pathway was causewayed. But on a sudden he found himself surrounded in his progress, like a stately merchantman in the Gut of Gibraltar (I hope the ladies will excuse the tarpaulin phrase) by three Algerine galleys. “Gude guide us, Mr. Balderstone!” said Mrs. Girder. “Wha wad hae thought it of an auld and kenn’d friend!” said the mother.

This could be said both jokingly and seriously. Caleb predicted the worst, ignored the three people mentioned earlier, and kept moving determinedly, his old hat pulled down over his eyes, staring at the ground as if trying to count the rocky pebbles lining the rough path. But suddenly, he found himself surrounded in his journey, like a grand ship in the Strait of Gibraltar (I hope the ladies will forgive the nautical expression) by three Algerian ships. “Good heavens, Mr. Balderstone!” exclaimed Mrs. Girder. “Who would have thought this of an old and familiar friend!” said the mother.

“And no sae muckle as stay to receive our thanks,” said the cooper himself, “and frae the like o’ me that seldom offers them! I am sure I hope there’s nae ill seed sawn between us, Mr. Balderstone. Ony man that has said to ye I am no gratefu’ for the situation of Queen’s cooper, let me hae a whample at him wi’ mine eatche, that’s a’.”

“And not even enough to stay and accept our thanks,” said the cooper himself, “and coming from someone like me who rarely offers them! I really hope there's no bad blood between us, Mr. Balderstone. Anyone who’s told you that I'm not grateful for the position of Queen’s cooper, let me have a word with him myself, that’s all.”

“My good friends—my dear friends,” said Caleb, still doubting how the certainty of the matter might stand, “what needs a’ this ceremony? Ane tries to serve their friends, and sometimes they may happen to prosper, and sometimes to misgie. Naething I care to be fashed wi’ less than thanks; I never could bide them.”

“My good friends—my dear friends,” said Caleb, still unsure about the situation, “what’s with all this ceremony? One tries to help their friends, and sometimes it works out, and sometimes it doesn’t. I don’t want to deal with anything less than thanks; I’ve never been able to stand that.”

“Faith, Mr. Balderstone, ye suld hae been fashed wi’ few o’ mine,” said the downright man of staves and hoops, “if I had only your gude-will to thank ye for: I suld e’en hae set the guse, and the wild deukes, and the runlet of sack to balance that account. Gude-will, man, is a geizen’d tub, that hauds in nae liquor; but gude deed’s like the cask, tight, round, and sound, that will haud liquor for the king.”

“Faith, Mr. Balderstone, you shouldn't have been troubled by a few of mine,” said the straightforward man of staves and hoops, “if I only had your good will to thank you for: I would’ve just set the goose, the wild ducks, and the barrel of sherry to settle that score. Good will, my friend, is like a leaky barrel that holds no liquid; but good deeds are like the cask, tight, round, and solid, that can hold liquor for the king.”

“Have ye no heard of our letter,” said the mother-in-law, “making our John [Gibbie] the Queen’s cooper for certain? and scarce a chield that had ever hammered gird upon tub but was applying for it?”

“Have you not heard about our letter?” said the mother-in-law. “It makes our John [Gibbie] the Queen’s cooper for sure! And hardly a kid who has ever worked on a tub hasn’t been applying for it?”

“Have I heard!!!” said Caleb, who now found how the wind set, with an accent of exceeding contempt, at the doubt expressed—“have I heard, quo’she!!!” and as he spoke he changed his shambling, skulking, dodging pace into a manly and authoritative step, readjusted his cocked hat, and suffered his brow to emerge from under it in all the pride of aristocracy, like the sun from behind a cloud.

“Have I heard that?!” said Caleb, who now realized how the situation was turning, with an impressive tone of disdain at the doubt expressed—“Have I heard that?!” And as he spoke, he transformed his awkward, sneaky pace into a confident and commanding stride, adjusted his hat, and let his forehead show with all the pride of nobility, like the sun breaking through a cloud.

“To be sure, he canna but hae heard,” said the good woman.

“To be sure, he must have heard,” said the good woman.

“Ay, to be sure it’s impossible but I should,” said Caleb; “and sae I’ll be the first to kiss ye, joe, and wish you, cooper, much joy of your preferment, naething doubting but ye ken wha are your friends, and have helped ye, and can help ye. I thought it right to look a wee strange upon it at first,” added Caleb, “just to see if ye were made of the right mettle; but ye ring true, lad—ye ring true!”

“Aye, it’s definitely impossible, but I should,” said Caleb; “so I’ll be the first to kiss you, Joe, and wish you, Cooper, all the best with your promotion, having no doubt that you know who your friends are, and have helped you, and can help you. I thought it was right to act a little strange about it at first,” added Caleb, “just to see if you were made of the right stuff; but you ring true, lad—you ring true!”

So saying, with a most lordly air he kissed the women, and abandoned his hand, with an air of serene patronage, to the hearty shake of Mr. Girder’s horn-hard palm. Upon this complete, and to Caleb most satisfactory, information he did not, it may readily be believed, hesitate to accept an invitation to a solemn feast, to which were invited, not only all the notables of the village, but even his ancient antagonist, Mr. Dingwall, himself. At this festivity he was, of course, the most welcome and most honoured guest; and so well did he ply the company with stories of what he could do with his master, his master with the Lord Keeper, the Lord Keeper with the council, and the council with the king [queen], that before the company dismissed (which was, indeed, rather at an early hour than a late one), every man of note in the village was ascending to the top-gallant of some ideal preferment by the ladder of ropes which Caleb had presented to their imagination. Nay, the cunning butler regained in that moment not only all the influence he possessed formerly over the villagers, when the baronial family which he served were at the proudest, but acquired even an accession of importance. The writer—the very attorney himself, such is the thirst of preferment—felt the force of the attraction, and taking an opportunity to draw Caleb into a corner, spoke, with affectionate regret, of the declining health of the sheriff-clerk of the county.

So saying, with a very grand air, he kissed the women and offered his hand, with a calm sense of superiority, to the firm handshake of Mr. Girder’s tough palm. Given this complete, and to Caleb very pleasing, information, he certainly didn’t hesitate to accept an invitation to a formal feast that included not only all the important people in the village but even his old rival, Mr. Dingwall, himself. At this gathering, he was, of course, the most welcomed and honored guest; and he engaged the company with stories about what he could do with his master, what his master could do with the Lord Keeper, what the Lord Keeper could do with the council, and what the council could do with the king [queen], so much so that before the evening wrapped up (which was actually rather early than late), every distinguished man in the village was picturing themselves climbing to the heights of some imagined promotion by the ropes Caleb had laid out in their minds. Moreover, in that moment, the clever butler regained not only all the influence he used to have over the villagers when the noble family he worked for was at its peak, but even gained an added significance. The writer—the very attorney himself, driven by ambition—felt the pull of this allure, and seizing the chance to pull Caleb aside, spoke with a touch of sentimental concern about the declining health of the county's sheriff-clerk.

“An excellent man—a most valuable man, Mr. Caleb; but fat sall I say! we are peer feckless bodies, here the day and awa’ by cock-screech the morn; and if he failyies, there maun be somebody in his place; and gif that ye could airt it my way, I sall be thankful, man—a gluve stuffed wi gowd nobles; an’ hark ye, man something canny till yoursell, and the Wolf’s Hope carles to settle kindly wi’ the Master of Ravenswood—that is, Lord Ravenswood—God bless his lordship!”

“An excellent man—a truly valuable man, Mr. Caleb; but to be frank! we are pretty useless right now, here today and gone tomorrow; and if he falters, someone has to take his place; and if you could arrange that for me, I would be grateful, man—a glove stuffed with gold coins; and listen, man, something nice for yourself, and the Wolf’s Hope guys want to settle nicely with the Master of Ravenswood—that is, Lord Ravenswood—God bless his lordship!”

A smile, and a hearty squeeze by the hand, was the suitable answer to this overture; and Caleb made his escape from the jovial party, in order to avoid committing himself by any special promises.

A smile and a firm handshake were the right response to this invitation, and Caleb slipped away from the cheerful group to avoid making any specific commitments.

“The Lord be gude to me,” said Caleb, when he found himself in the open air, and at liberty to give vent to the self-exultation with which he was, as it were, distended; “did ever ony man see sic a set of green-gaislings? The very pickmaws and solan-geese out-bye yonder at the Bass hae ten times their sense! God, an I had been the Lord High Commissioner to the Estates o’ Parliament, they couldna hae beflumm’d me mair; and, to speak Heaven’s truth, I could hardly hae beflumm’d them better neither! But the writer—ha! ha! ha!—ah, ha! ha! ha! mercy on me, that I suld live in my auld days to gie the ganag-bye to the very writer! Sheriff-clerk!!! But I hae an auld account to settle wi’ the carle; and to make amends for bye-ganes, the office shall just cost him as much time-serving and tide-serving as if he were to get it in gude earnest, of whilk there is sma’ appearance, unless the Master learns mair the ways of this warld, whilk it is muckle to be doubted that he never will do.”

“The Lord be good to me,” said Caleb, when he found himself outside, free to express the overwhelming self-satisfaction he felt; “has any man ever seen such a bunch of foolish people? The gulls and solan geese over there at the Bass have ten times their smarts! Honestly, if I had been the Lord High Commissioner to the Estates of Parliament, they couldn’t have fooled me any better; and, truthfully, I could hardly have fooled them any better either! But the writer—ha! ha! ha!—oh my, it’s amusing that I should live to see the very writer get taken down! Sheriff-clerk!!! But I have an old score to settle with that guy; and to make up for past wrongs, the office will cost him as much time flattery and sycophancy as if he were getting it seriously, which seems unlikely, unless the Master learns more about how this world works, and it’s highly doubtful he ever will.”

CHAPTER XXVI.

Why flames yon far summit—why shoot to the blast
Those embers, like stars from the firmament cast?
’Tis the fire-shower of ruin, all dreadfully driven
From thine eyrie, that beacons the darkness of Heaven.

CAMPBELL.

Why do those flames blaze on the distant peak—why do they launch into the wind
Those sparks, like stars from the sky?
It’s the fiery rain of destruction, all terrifyingly propelled
From your nest, that signals the darkness of Heaven.

CAMPBELL.

The circumstances announced in the conclusion of the last chapter will account for the ready and cheerful reception of the Marquis of A—— and the Master of Ravenswood in the village of Wolf’s Hope. In fact, Caleb had no sooner announced the conflagration of the tower than the whole hamlet were upon foot to hasten to extinguish the flames. And although that zealous adherent diverted their zeal by intimating the formidable contents of the subterranean apartments, yet the check only turned their assiduity into another direction. Never had there been such slaughtering of capons, and fat geese, and barndoor fowls; never such boiling of reested hams; never such making of car-cakes and sweet scones, Selkirk bannocks, cookies, and petticoat-tails—delicacies little known to the present generation. Never had there been such a tapping of barrels, and such uncorking of greybeards, in the village of Wolf’s Hope. All the inferior houses were thrown open for the reception of the Marquis’s dependants, who came, it was thought, as precursors of the shower of preferment which hereafter was to leave the rest of Scotland dry, in order to distil its rich dews on the village of Wolf’s Hope under Lammermoor. The minister put in his claim to have the guests of distinction lodged at the manse, having his eye, it was thought, upon a neighbouring preferment, where the incumbent was sickly; but Mr. Balderstone destined that honour to the cooper, his wife, and wife’s mother, who danced for joy at the preferences thus assigned them.

The situation described at the end of the last chapter explains why the village of Wolf’s Hope warmly welcomed the Marquis of A—— and the Master of Ravenswood. As soon as Caleb announced the fire at the tower, the entire village sprang into action to put out the flames. Even though that eager supporter distracted them with hints about the alarming contents of the underground rooms, their focus just shifted to other activities. Never before had there been such a killing of capons, fat geese, and barnyard chickens; never so much boiling of hams; never such a making of car-cakes, sweet scones, Selkirk bannocks, cookies, and petticoat-tails—treats little known to today’s generation. There had never been so much tapping of barrels and opening of aged wines in the village of Wolf’s Hope. All the smaller houses opened their doors to accommodate the Marquis’s followers, who were believed to be heralding a wave of favor that would leave the rest of Scotland dry, only to shower blessings on the village of Wolf’s Hope under Lammermoor. The minister claimed the honor of hosting the distinguished guests at the manse, eyeing a nearby position that was available due to the current minister’s poor health; however, Mr. Balderstone had planned that honor for the cooper, his wife, and his mother-in-law, who were thrilled about the preference given to them.

Many a beck and many a bow welcomed these noble guests to as good entertainment as persons of such rank could set before such visitors; and the old dame, who had formerly lived in Ravenswood Castle, and knew, as she said, the ways of the nobility, was in no whit wanting in arranging matters, as well as circumstances permitted, according to the etiquette of the times. The cooper’s house was so roomy that each guest had his separate retiring-room, to which they were ushered with all due ceremony, while the plentiful supper was in the act of being placed upon the table.

Many streams and many trees welcomed these noble guests to the best entertainment that people of such high rank could offer to their visitors. The old woman, who had once lived in Ravenswood Castle and claimed to know the ways of the nobility, was more than capable of organizing everything, as much as the circumstances allowed, according to the etiquette of the time. The cooper's house was so spacious that each guest had their own private room, which they were shown to with all proper ceremony, while the abundant supper was being set on the table.

Ravenswood no sooner found himself alone than, impelled by a thousand feelings, he left the apartment, the house, and the village, and hastily retraced his steps to the brow of the hill, which rose betwixt the village and screened it from the tower, in order to view the final fall of the house of his fathers. Some idle boys from the hamlet had taken the same direction out of curiosity, having first witnessed the arrival of the coach and six and its attendants. As they ran one by one past the Master, calling to each other to “Come and see the auld tower blaw up in the lift like the peelings of an ingan,” he could not but feel himself moved with indignation. “And these are the sons of my father’s vassals,” he said—“of men bound, both by law and gratitude, to follow our steps through battle, and fire, and flood; and now the destruction of their liege lord’s house is but a holiday’s sight to them.”

Ravenswood barely found himself alone when, driven by a flood of emotions, he left the apartment, the house, and the village, quickly making his way back to the top of the hill that separated the village from the tower, wanting to witness the final downfall of his family home. Some curious boys from the village had followed him, having first seen the arrival of the coach and its attendants. As they ran past him, one by one, shouting to each other to “Come and see the old tower go up in smoke like the skins of an onion,” he couldn’t help but feel a surge of anger. “And these are the sons of my father’s tenants,” he said—“of men who are supposed to be bound, by law and loyalty, to stand by us through battle, fire, and flood; and now, watching the destruction of their lord’s house is nothing more than a day of fun to them.”

These exasperating reflections were partly expressed in the acrimony with which he exclaimed, on feeling himself pulled by the cloak: “What do you want, you dog?”

These frustrating thoughts were partly revealed in the bitterness with which he shouted, feeling himself pulled by the cloak: “What do you want, you dog?”

“I am a dog, and an auld dog too,” answered Caleb, for it was he who had taken the freedom, “and I am like to get a dog’s wages; but it does not signification a pinch of sneesing, for I am ower auld a dog to learn new tricks, or to follow a new master.”

“I’m a dog, and an old dog too,” replied Caleb, since it was him who had spoken up, “and I’m likely to get a dog’s pay; but it doesn’t really mean anything, because I’m too old a dog to learn new tricks or to follow a new master.”

As he spoke, Ravenswood attained the ridge of the hill from which Wolf’s Crag was visible; the flames had entirely sunk down, and, to his great surprise, there was only a dusky reddening upon the clouds immediately over the castle, which seemed the reflection of the embers of the sunken fire.

As he talked, Ravenswood reached the top of the hill where he could see Wolf’s Crag; the flames had completely died down, and to his great surprise, there was just a dark red glow on the clouds above the castle, which looked like the reflection of the dying embers from the extinguished fire.

“The place cannot have blown up,” said the Master; “we must have heard the report: if a quarter of the gunpowder was there you tell me of, it would have been heard twenty miles off.”

“The place can’t have blown up,” said the Master; “we must have heard the explosion: if a quarter of the gunpowder you mentioned was there, it would have been heard twenty miles away.”

“It’ve very like it wad,” said Balderstone, composedly.

“It’s very much like it was,” said Balderstone, calmly.

“Then the fire cannot have reached the vaults?”

“Then the fire couldn't have reached the vaults?”

“It’s like no,” answered Caleb, with the same impenetrable gravity.

“It’s like no,” Caleb replied, maintaining the same serious demeanor.

“Hark ye, Caleb,” said his master, “this grows a little too much for my patience. I must go and examine how matters stand at Wolf’s Crag myself.”

“Hear me, Caleb,” said his master, “this is becoming a bit too much for my patience. I need to go and see how things are at Wolf’s Crag myself.”

“Your honour is ganging to gang nae sic gate,” said Caleb, firmly.

“Your honor is going to go no such way,” said Caleb, firmly.

“And why not?” said Ravenswood, sharply; “who or what shall prevent me?”

“And why not?” said Ravenswood, sharply. “Who or what is going to stop me?”

“Even I mysell,” said Caleb, with the same determination.

“Even I myself,” said Caleb, with the same determination.

“You, Balderstone!” replied the Master; “you are forgetting yourself, I think.”

“You, Balderstone!” replied the Master; “I think you're forgetting yourself.”

“But I think no,” said Balderstone; “for I can just tell ye a’ about the castle on this knowe-head as weel as if ye were at it. Only dinna pit yoursell into a kippage, and expose yoursell before the weans, or before the Marquis, when ye gang down-bye.”

“But I think not,” said Balderstone; “because I can tell you all about the castle on this hill just as well as if you were there. Just don’t get yourself into a mess and embarrass yourself in front of the kids, or the Marquis, when you go down.”

“Speak out, you old fool,” replied his master, “and let me know the best and the worst at once.”

“Speak up, you old fool,” his master replied, “and tell me the best and worst all at once.”

“Ou, the best and the warst is, just that the tower is standing hail and feir, as safe and as empty as when ye left it.”

“Or, the best and the worst is, just that the tower is standing strong and proud, as safe and as empty as when you left it.”

“Indeed! and the fire?” said Ravenswood.

“Really! And the fire?” said Ravenswood.

“Not a gleed of fire, then, except the bit kindling peat, and maybe a spunk in Mysie’s cutty-pipe,” replied Caleb.

“Not a spark of fire, then, except the little kindling peat, and maybe a spark in Mysie’s short pipe,” replied Caleb.

“But the flame?” demanded Ravenswood—“the broad blaze which might have been seen ten miles off—what occasioned that?”

“But the flame?” asked Ravenswood. “The huge fire that could be seen from ten miles away—what caused that?”

“Hout awa’! it’s an auld saying and a true—

“Hout awa’! it’s an old saying and it's true—

Little’s the light
Will be seen far in a mirk night.

Little's the light
Will be seen far in a dark night.

A wheen fern and horse little that I fired in the courtyard, after sending back the loon of a footman; and, to speak Heaven’s truth, the next time that ye send or bring ony body here, let them ge gentles allenarly, without ony fremd servants, like that chield Lockhard, to be gledging and gleeing about, and looking upon the wrang side of ane’s housekeeping, to the discredit of the family, and forcing ane to damn their souls wi’ telling ae lee after another faster than I can count them: I wad rather set fire to the tower in gude earnest, and burn it ower my ain head into the bargain, or I see the family dishonoured in the sort.”

A bunch of ferns and a little horse that I set on fire in the courtyard, after sending back that lazy servant; and, to tell you the honest truth, the next time you send or bring anyone here, let them be only guests, without any random servants, like that guy Lockhard, messing around, and criticizing my household, which brings disgrace to the family, and forcing me to lie over and over faster than I can count them: I would rather actually set fire to the tower and burn it down myself than see the family dishonored this way.

“Upon my word, I am infinitely obliged by the proposal, Caleb,” said his master, scarce able to restrain his laughter, though rather angry at the same time. “But the gunpowder—is there such a thing in the tower? The Marquis seemed to know of it.”

“Honestly, I’m really grateful for the suggestion, Caleb,” said his master, barely able to hold back his laughter, though somewhat annoyed at the same time. “But the gunpowder—does it really exist in the tower? The Marquis seemed to be aware of it.”

“The pouther, ha! ha! ha!—the Marquis, ha! ha! ha!” replied Caleb,—“if your honour were to brain me, I behooved to laugh,—the Marquis—the pouther! Was it there? Ay, it was there. Did he ken o’t? My certie! the Marquis kenn’d o’t, and it was the best o’ the game; for, when I couldna pacify your honour wi’ a’ that I could say, I aye threw out a word mair about the gunpouther, and garr’d the Marquis tak the job in his ain hand.”

“The powder, ha! ha! ha!—the Marquis, ha! ha! ha!” replied Caleb, “if you were to knock me out, I would have to laugh,—the Marquis—the powder! Was it there? Yes, it was there. Did he know about it? Oh, of course! The Marquis knew about it, and it was the best part of the game; because when I couldn’t calm you down with everything I said, I always threw in another word about the gunpowder, and got the Marquis to take the matter into his own hands.”

“But you have not answered my question,” said the Master, impatiently; “how came the powder there, and where is it now?”

“But you haven’t answered my question,” said the Master, impatiently. “How did the powder get there, and where is it now?”

“Ou, it came there, an ye maun needs ken,” said Caleb, looking mysteriously, and whispering, “when there was like to be a wee bit rising here; and the Marquis, and a’ the great lords of the north, were a’ in it, and mony a gudely gun and broadsword were ferried ower frae Dunkirk forbye the pouther. Awfu’ work we had getting them into the tower under cloud o’ night, for ye maun think it wasna everybody could be trusted wi’ sic kittle jobs. But if ye will gae hame to your supper, I will tell you a’ about it as ye gang down.”

“Or, it came there, and you must know,” said Caleb, looking mysterious and whispering, “when there was about to be a little uprising here; and the Marquis, along with all the great lords of the north, were involved, and many a good gun and broadsword were ferried over from Dunkirk along with the powder. We had a terrible time getting them into the tower under the cover of night, because you must think it wasn’t everyone who could be trusted with such delicate tasks. But if you go home to your supper, I’ll tell you all about it as you head down.”

“And these wretched boys,” said Ravenswood, “is it your pleasure they are to sit there all night, to wait for the blowing up of a tower that is not even on fire?”

“And these poor boys,” said Ravenswood, “do you really want them to sit there all night, waiting for a tower that’s not even on fire to blow up?”

“Surely not, if it is your honour’s pleasure that they suld gang hame; although,” added Caleb, “it wanda do them a grain’s damage: they wad screigh less the next day, and sleep the sounder at e’en. But just as your honour likes.”

“Surely not, if it’s your honor’s pleasure that they should go home; although,” Caleb added, “it wouldn’t do them any harm: they would yell less the next day and sleep more soundly at night. But just as you prefer.”

Stepping accordingly towards the urchins who manned the knolls near which they stood, Caleb informed them, in an authoritative tone, that their honours Lord Ravenswood and the Marquis of A—— had given orders that the tower was not to be blow up till next day at noon. The boys dispersed upon this comfortable assurance. One or two, however, followed Caleb for more information, particularly the urchin whom he had cheated while officiating as turnspit, who screamed, “Mr. Balderstone!—Mr. Balderstone! then the castle’s gane out like an auld wife’s spunk?”

As Caleb stepped towards the kids hanging out on the hills nearby, he told them in a commanding voice that their lords, Lord Ravenswood and the Marquis of A——, had ordered that the tower shouldn’t be blown up until the next day at noon. The boys scattered after hearing that reassuring news. However, a couple of them trailed behind Caleb for more details, especially the kid he had tricked while acting as a turnspit, who shouted, “Mr. Balderstone!—Mr. Balderstone! So the castle’s done for like an old lady’s candle?”

“To be sure it is, callant,” said the butler; “do ye think the castle of as great a lord as Lord Ravenswood wad continue in a bleeze, and him standing looking on wi’ his ain very een? It’s aye right,” continued Caleb, shaking off his ragged page, and closing in to his Master, “to train up weans, as the wise man says, in the way they should go, and, aboon a’, to teach them respect to their superiors.”

“To be sure it is, kid,” said the butler; “do you think the castle of a lord as great as Lord Ravenswood would keep burning while he just stands there watching? It’s always right,” continued Caleb, brushing off his tattered clothes and moving closer to his Master, “to raise children, as the wise man says, in the way they should go, and above all, to teach them to respect their superiors.”

“But all this while, Caleb, you have never told me what became of the arms and powder,” said Ravenswood.

“But all this time, Caleb, you’ve never told me what happened to the weapons and gunpowder,” said Ravenswood.

“Why, as for the arms,” said Caleb, “it was just like the bairn’s rhyme—

“Why, as for the weapons,” said Caleb, “it was just like the kid’s rhyme—

Some gaed east and some gaed west,
And some gaed to the craw’s nest.

Some went east and some went west,
And some went to the crow's nest.

And for the pouther, I e’en changed it, as occasion served, with the skippers o’ Dutch luggers and French vessels, for gin and brandy, and is served the house mony a year—a gude swap too, between what cheereth the soul of man and that which hingeth it clean out of his body; forbye, I keepit a wheen pounds of it for yoursell when ye wanted to take the pleasure o’ shooting: whiles, in these latter days, I wad hardly hae kenn’d else whar to get pouther for your pleasure. And now that your anger is ower, sir, wasna that weel managed o’ me, and arena ye far better sorted doun yonder than ye could hae been in your ain auld ruins up-bye yonder, as the case stands wi’ us now? the mair’s the pity!”

And for the powder, I even changed it, as needed, with the skippers of Dutch luggers and French ships, for gin and brandy, and it served the house for many years—a good trade too, between something that cheers the soul of man and that which leads him straight out of his body; besides, I kept a few pounds of it for you when you wanted to enjoy shooting: sometimes, in these later days, I would hardly have known where else to get powder for your enjoyment. And now that your anger is over, sir, wasn’t that well managed on my part, and aren’t you far better situated down there than you could have been in your own old ruins up above, given the situation we’re in now? The more’s the pity!

“I believe you may be right, Caleb; but, before burning down my castle, either in jest or in earnest,” said Ravenswood, “I think I had a right to be in the secret.”

“I think you might be right, Caleb; however, before setting my castle on fire, whether as a joke or for real,” said Ravenswood, “I believe I have the right to know the secret.”

“Fie for shame, your honour!” replied Caleb; “it fits an auld carle like me weel eneugh to tell lees for the credit of the family, but it wanda beseem the like o’ your honour’s sell; besides, young folk are no judicious: they cannot make the maist of a bit figment. Now this fire—for a fire it sall be, if I suld burn the auld stable to make it mair feasible—this fire, besides that it will be an excuse for asking ony thing we want through the country, or doun at the haven—this fire will settle mony things on an honourable footing for the family’s credit, that cost me telling twenty daily lees to a wheen idle chaps and queans, and, what’s waur, without gaining credence.”

"How shameful, your honor!" replied Caleb. "It’s fine for an old man like me to tell a few lies for the family's reputation, but it doesn't suit someone like you. Besides, young people aren't wise; they can't appreciate a little exaggeration. Now this fire — and it will be a fire, even if I have to burn down the old stable to make it happen — this fire will not only give us a reason to ask for anything we need around the area or down at the harbor, but it will also settle many matters in a way that benefits the family's reputation. That would save me from telling twenty daily lies to a bunch of lazy guys and girls, and what's worse, without even being believed."

“That was hard indeed, Caleb; but I do not see how this fire should help your veracity or your credit.”

“That was really tough, Caleb; but I don’t see how this fire will help your truthfulness or your reputation.”

“There it is now?” said Caleb; “wasna I saying that young folk had a green judgment? How suld it help me, quotha? It will be a creditable apology for the honour of the family for this score of years to come, if it is weel guided. ‘Where’s the family pictures?’ says ae meddling body. ‘The great fire at Wolf’s Crag,’ answers I. ‘Where’s the family plate?’ says another. ‘The great fire,’ says I; ‘wha was to think of plate, when life and limb were in danger?’ ‘Where’s the wardrobe and the linens?—where’s the tapestries and the decorements?—beds of state, twilts, pands and testors, napery and broidered wark?’ ‘The fire—the fire—the fire.’ Guide the fire weel, and it will serve ye for a’ that ye suld have and have not; and, in some sort, a gude excuse is better than the things themselves; for they maun crack and wear out, and be consumed by time, whereas a gude offcome, prudently and creditably handled, may serve a nobleman and his family, Lord kens how lang!”

“There it is now?” said Caleb. “Wasn’t I saying that young people have poor judgment? How is that supposed to help me, really? It will be a respectable excuse for the family's honor for years to come if it's handled well. ‘Where are the family pictures?’ asks one nosy person. ‘The big fire at Wolf’s Crag,’ I reply. ‘Where’s the family silver?’ asks another. ‘The big fire,’ I say; ‘who could think about silver when our lives were in danger?’ ‘Where are the clothes and linens?—where are the tapestries and decorations?—the state beds, curtains, pans, and canopies, the tableware and embroidered work?’ ‘The fire—the fire—the fire.’ Manage the fire well, and it will serve you for everything you should have and don’t; in a way, a good excuse is better than the things themselves because they will crack, wear out, and be consumed by time, while a good outcome, wisely and respectably handled, can serve a nobleman and his family for a long time!”

Ravenswood was too well acquainted with his butler’s pertinacity and self-opinion to dispute the point with him any farther. Leaving Caleb, therefore, to the enjoyment of his own successful ingenuity, he returned to the hamlet, where he found the Marquis and the good women of the mansion under some anxiety—the former on account of his absence, the others for the discredit their cookery might sustain by the delay of the supper. All were now at ease, and heard with pleasure that the fire at the castle had burned out of itself without reaching the vaults, which was the only information that Ravenswood thought it proper to give in public concerning the event of his butler’s strategem.

Ravenswood knew his butler’s stubbornness and self-importance well enough not to argue with him any further. So, leaving Caleb to enjoy his own cleverness, he went back to the village, where he found the Marquis and the kind women of the house a bit anxious—the Marquis due to his absence, and the women worried about the damage to their cooking reputation because of the delay in supper. Everyone relaxed when they heard that the fire at the castle had put itself out without reaching the vaults, which was the only information Ravenswood deemed appropriate to share publicly about his butler’s plan.

They sat down to an excellent supper. No invitation could prevail on Mr. and Mrs. Girder, even in their own house, to sit down at table with guests of such high quality. They remained standing in the apartment, and acted the part of respectful and careful attendants on the company. Such were the manners of the time. The elder dame, confident through her age and connexion with the Ravenswood family, was less scrupulously ceremonious. She played a mixed part betwixt that of the hostess of an inn and the mistress of a private house, who receives guests above her own degree. She recommended, and even pressed, what she thought best, and was herself easily entreated to take a moderate share of the good cheer, in order to encourage her guests by her own example. Often she interrupted herself, to express her regret that “my lord did not eat; that the Master was pyking a bare bane; that, to be sure, there was naething there fit to set before their honours; that Lord Allan, rest his saul, used to like a pouthered guse, and said it was Latin for a tass o’ brandy; that the brandy came frae France direct; for, for a’ the English laws and gaugers, the Wolf’s Hope brigs handa forgotten the gate to Dunkirk.”

They sat down to a great dinner. No invitation could convince Mr. and Mrs. Girder, even in their own home, to sit at the table with such esteemed guests. They stayed standing in the room, acting as respectful and attentive servants to the company. That was the custom of the time. The elder lady, secure in her age and her connection to the Ravenswood family, was less strict about the formalities. She played a role somewhere between that of an innkeeper and a private hostess who welcomes guests of a higher status. She suggested and even insisted on what she thought was best and was easily persuaded to take a modest portion of the food to encourage her guests by her own example. She often interrupted herself to express her regret that "my lord wasn’t eating; that the Master was picking at a bare bone; that, surely, there was nothing there fit for their honors; that Lord Allan, God rest his soul, used to like a spiced goose and said it was Latin for a glass of brandy; that the brandy came straight from France; because, despite all the English laws and regulations, the Wolf’s Hope bridge had conveniently forgotten the way to Dunkirk.”

Here the cooper admonished his mother-in-law with his elbow, which procured him the following special notice in the progress of her speech:

Here, the cooper nudged his mother-in-law with his elbow, which earned him this special mention during her speech:

“Ye needna be dunshin that gate, John,” continued the old lady; “naebody says that ye ken whar the brandy comes frae; and it wanda be fitting ye should, and you the Queen’s cooper; and what signifies’t,” continued she, addressing Lord Ravenswood, “to king, queen, or kaiser whar an auld wife like me buys her pickle sneeshin, or her drap brandy-wine, to haud her heart up?”

“Don’t be so hard on that gate, John,” continued the old lady; “nobody says that you know where the brandy comes from; and it wouldn’t be right for you to, and you the Queen’s cooper; and what does it matter,” she added, addressing Lord Ravenswood, “to a king, queen, or emperor where an old woman like me buys her little snuff or her drop of brandy to keep her spirits up?”

Having thus extricated herself from her supposed false step, Dame Loup-the-Dyke proceeded, during the rest of the evening, to supply, with great animation, and very little assistance from her guests, the funds necessary for the support of the conversation, until, declining any further circulation of their glass, her guests requested her permission to retire to their apartments.

Having managed to free herself from what she thought was a mistake, Dame Loup-the-Dyke spent the rest of the evening enthusiastically driving the conversation forward, with very little help from her guests, until they politely asked her if they could head back to their rooms after refusing any more drinks.

The Marquis occupied the chamber of dais, which, in every house above the rank of a mere cottage, was kept sacred for such high occasions as the present. The modern finishing with plaster was then unknown, and tapestry was confined to the houses of the nobility and superior gentry. The cooper, therefore, who was a man of some vanity, as well as some wealth, had imitated the fashion observed by the inferior landholders and clergy, who usually ornamented their state apartments with hangings of a sort of stamped leather, manufactured in the Netherlands, garnished with trees and animals executed in copper foil, and with many a pithy sentence of morality, which, although couched in Low Dutch, were perhaps as much attended to in practice as if written in broad Scotch. The whole had somewhat of a gloomy aspect; but the fire, composed of old pitch-barrel staves, blazed merrily up the chimney; the bed was decorated with linen of most fresh and dazzling whiteness, which had never before been used, and might, perhaps, have never been used at all, but for this high occasion. On the toilette beside, stood an old-fashioned mirror, in a fillagree frame, part of the dispersed finery of the neighbouring castle. It was flanked by a long-necked bottle of Florence wine, by which stood a glass nearly as tall, resembling in shape that which Teniers usually places in the hands of his own portrait, when he paints himself as mingling in the revels of a country village. To counterbalance those foreign sentinels, there mounted guard on the other side of the mirror two stout warders of Scottish lineage; a jug, namely, of double ale, which held a Scotch pint, and a quaigh, or bicker, of ivory and ebony, hooped with silver, the work of John Girder’s own hands, and the pride of his heart. Besides these preparations against thirst, there was a goodly diet-loaf, or sweet cake; so that, with such auxiliaries, the apartment seemed victualled against a siege of two or three days.

The Marquis occupied the grand chamber, which, in any house above the level of a simple cottage, was reserved for important occasions like this one. At that time, modern plaster finishes were unknown, and tapestries were limited to the homes of the nobility and upper-class gentry. Therefore, the cooper, who was somewhat vain and wealthy, had mimicked the style of lower landowners and clergy, who typically decorated their main rooms with hangings made of stamped leather from the Netherlands, featuring trees and animals crafted in copper foil, alongside various moral sayings that, although written in Low Dutch, were probably just as ignored in practice as if they were in broad Scottish. The whole space had a somewhat gloomy vibe; however, the fire, made of old pitch-barrel staves, blazed cheerfully up the chimney. The bed was adorned with linen of the freshest, most dazzling white, which had never been used before, and might never have been used at all, except for this special occasion. Next to it stood an old-fashioned mirror in a filigree frame, part of the scattered finery from the nearby castle. Flanking it was a tall bottle of Florence wine and a glass nearly as tall, resembling the one Teniers usually includes in his self-portrait when he depicts himself enjoying the festivities in a country village. To balance these foreign items, there were two stout Scottish guards on the other side of the mirror: a jug of double ale that held a Scotch pint and a quaigh, or bicker, made of ivory and ebony with silver hoops, crafted by John Girder himself, which he took great pride in. Alongside these refreshments, there was a lovely diet loaf, or sweet cake, so that, equipped with such provisions, the room seemed stocked for a siege lasting two or three days.

It only remains to say, that the Marquis’s valet was in attendance, displaying his master’s brocaded nightgown, and richly embroidered velvet cap, lined and faced with Brussels lace, upon a huge leathern easy-chair, wheeled round so as to have the full advantage of the comfortable fire which we have already mentioned. We therefore commit that eminent person to his night’s repose, trusting he profited by the ample preparations made for his accommodation—preparations which we have mentioned in detail, as illustrative of ancient Scottish manners.

It only remains to say that the Marquis's valet was present, showcasing his master's brocaded nightgown and richly embroidered velvet cap, which was lined and faced with Brussels lace, on a large leather armchair, positioned to fully benefit from the cozy fire we mentioned earlier. We will now leave this distinguished person to his night's rest, hoping he appreciated the thorough arrangements made for his comfort—arrangements we detailed to illustrate traditional Scottish customs.

It is not necessary we should be equally minute in describing the sleeping apartment of the Master of Ravenswood, which was that usually occupied by the goodman and goodwife themselves. It was comfortably hung with a sort of warm-coloured worsted, manufactured in Scotland, approaching in texture to what is now called shalloon. A staring picture of John [Gibbie] Girder himself ornamented this dormitory, painted by a starving Frenchman, who had, God knows how or why, strolled over from Flushing or Dunkirk to Wolf’s Hope in a smuggling dogger. The features were, indeed, those of the stubborn, opinionative, yet sensible artisan, but Monsieur had contrived to throw a French grace into the look and manner, so utterly inconsistent with the dogged gravity of the original, that it was impossible to look at it without laughing. John and his family, however, piqued themselves not a little upon this picture, and were proportionably censured by the neighbourhood, who pronounced that the cooper, in sitting for the same, and yet more in presuming to hang it up in his bedchamber, had exceeded his privilege as the richest man of the village; at once stept beyond the bounds of his own rank, and encroached upon those of the superior orders; and, in fine, had been guilty of a very overweening act of vanity and presumption. Respect for the memory of my deceased friend, Mr. Richard Tinto, has obliged me to treat this matter at some length; but I spare the reader his prolix though curious observations, as well upon the character of the French school as upon the state of painting in Scotland at the beginning of the 18th century.

It’s not essential to go into detail about the bedroom of the Master of Ravenswood, which was usually used by the husband and wife. The room was comfortably decorated with a kind of warm-colored fabric, made in Scotland, similar in texture to what we now call shalloon. A striking portrait of John [Gibbie] Girder himself adorned this room, painted by a struggling French artist who had, for who knows what reason, made his way from Flushing or Dunkirk to Wolf’s Hope in a smuggling boat. The features, indeed, resembled the stubborn yet sensible craftsman, but the artist managed to add a French flair to the expression and demeanor that was so inconsistent with the original's serious nature that it was impossible to look at it without laughing. John and his family, however, took great pride in this portrait, which drew criticism from the neighbors, who claimed that the cooper, by posing for it and daring to hang it in his bedroom, overstepped his bounds as the wealthiest man in the village; he had crossed the lines of his own social status and intruded upon those of the upper class, and in short, had committed a rather bold act of vanity and arrogance. Out of respect for my late friend, Mr. Richard Tinto, I felt the need to discuss this matter at some length, but I will spare the reader my lengthy yet interesting insights on both the character of the French school and the state of painting in Scotland at the beginning of the 18th century.

The other preparations of the Master’s sleeping apartment were similar to those in the chamber of dais.

The other arrangements in the Master's bedroom were similar to those in the chamber of dais.

At the usual early hour of that period, the Marquis of A—— and his kinsman prepared to resume their journey. This could not be done without an ample breakfast, in which cold meat and hot meat, and oatmeal flummery, wine and spirits, and milk varied by every possible mode of preparation, evinced the same desire to do honour to their guests which had been shown by the hospitable owners of the mansion upon the evening before. All the bustle of preparation for departure now resounded through Wolf’s Hope. There was paying of bills and shaking of hands, and saddling of horses, and harnessing of carriages, and distributing of drink-money. The Marquis left a broad piece for the gratification of John Girder’s household, which he, the said John, was for some time disposed to convert to his own use; Dingwall, the writer, assuring him he was justified in so doing, seeing he was the disburser of those expenses which were the occasion of the gratification. But, notwithstanding this legal authority, John could not find in his heart to dim the splendour of his late hospitality by picketing anything in the nature of a gratuity. He only assured his menials he would consider them as a damned ungrateful pack if they bought a gill of brandy elsewhere than out of his own stores; and as the drink-money was likely to go to its legitimate use, he comforted himself that, in this manner, the Marquis’s donative would, without any impeachment of credit and character, come ultimately into his own exclusive possession.

At the usual early hour of that time, the Marquis of A—— and his cousin got ready to continue their journey. This couldn’t happen without a generous breakfast, which included cold and hot meats, oatmeal porridge, wine, spirits, and milk prepared in every possible way, reflecting the same desire to honor their guests that the hospitable owners of the house had shown the night before. The bustling preparation for departure echoed throughout Wolf’s Hope. There was bill-paying, handshaking, saddling of horses, harnessing of carriages, and handing out tips. The Marquis left a substantial amount for John Girder’s household, which John considered using for himself for a while; Dingwall, the writer, convinced him he could do so since he was the one covering those expenses that led to the treat. However, despite this justification, John couldn't bring himself to tarnish the generosity of his recent hospitality by taking any part of the tip. He simply warned his servants that he would consider them an extremely ungrateful lot if they bought a drink of brandy anywhere other than from his own stock; and since the drink money was likely to go to a rightful cause, he reassured himself that, in this way, the Marquis’s gift would, without any damage to his reputation, eventually end up solely in his possession.

While arrangements were making for departure, Ravenswood made blythe the heart of his ancient butler by informing him, cautiously however (for he knew Caleb’s warmth of imagination), of the probable change which was about to take place in his fortunes. He deposited with Balderstone, at the same time, the greater part of his slender funds, with an assurance, which he was obliged to reiterate more than once, that he himself had sufficient supplies in certain prospect. He therefore enjoined Caleb, as he valued his favour, to desist from all farther maneouvres against the inhabitants of Wolf’s Hope, their cellars, poultry-yards, and substance whatsoever. In this prohibition, the old domestic acquiesced more readily than his master expected.

While they were getting ready to leave, Ravenswood cheered up his old butler by cautiously informing him—knowing how imaginative Caleb could be—about the possible change in his fortunes. At the same time, he entrusted Balderstone with most of his limited savings, ensuring him, as he had to repeat more than once, that he had enough resources available soon. Therefore, he urged Caleb, as he valued his goodwill, to stop any further schemes against the people of Wolf’s Hope, their cellars, poultry yards, and whatever else they had. To this request, the old servant agreed more readily than Ravenswood had expected.

“It was doubtless,” he said, “a shame, a discredit, and a sin to harry the puir creatures, when the family were in circumstances to live honourably on their ain means; and there might be wisdom,” he added, “in giving them a while’s breathing-time at any rate, that they might be the more readily brought forward upon his honour’s future occasions.”

“It was definitely,” he said, “a shame, a disgrace, and a wrong to hound the poor creatures, when the family could live respectably on their own means; and there might be some sense,” he added, “in giving them a bit of breathing room at least, so they could be more easily called upon for his honor’s future needs.”

This matter being settled, and having taken an affectionate farewell of his old domestic, the Master rejoined his noble relative, who was now ready to enter his carriage. The two landladies, old and young, having received in all kindly greeting a kiss from each of their noble guests, stood simpering at the door of their house, as the coach and six, followed by its train of clattering horsemen, thundered out of the village. John Girder also stood upon his threshold, now looking at his honoured right hand, which had been so lately shaken by a marquis and a lord, and now giving a glance into the interior of his mansion, which manifested all the disarray of the late revel, as if balancing the distinction which he had attained with the expenses of the entertainment.

This matter settled, and after saying a warm goodbye to his old housekeeper, the Master rejoined his noble relative, who was now ready to get into his carriage. The two landladies, old and young, received a friendly kiss from each of their noble guests and stood smiling at the door of their house as the coach and six, followed by a group of noisy horsemen, rumbled out of the village. John Girder also stood on his doorstep, looking at his respected right hand, which had just been shaken by a marquis and a lord, and he glanced inside his house, which showed all the mess from the recent celebration, as if weighing the distinction he had gained against the costs of the festivities.

At length he opened his oracular jaws. “Let every man and woman here set about their ain business, as if there was nae sic thing as marquis or master, duke or drake, laird or lord, in this world. Let the house be redd up, the broken meat set bye, and if there is ony thing totally uneatable, let it be gien to the puir folk; and, gude mother and wife, I hae just ae thing to entreat ye, that ye will never speak to me a single word, good or bad, anent a’ this nonsense wark, but keep a’ your cracks about it to yoursells and your kimmers, for my head is weel-nigh dung donnart wi’ it already.”

Finally, he spoke up. “Let everyone here get back to their own business, as if there are no marquises, masters, dukes, or lords in this world. Let the house be cleaned up, the leftover food be set aside, and if there's anything completely inedible, give it to the poor folks; and, good mother and wife, I have just one thing to ask of you: please don’t say a single word to me, good or bad, about all this nonsense, but keep all your chatter about it to yourselves and your friends, because my head is almost ready to burst from it already.”

As John’s authority was tolerably absolute, all departed to their usual occupations, leaving him to build castles in the air, if he had a mind, upon the court favour which he had acquired by the expenditure of his worldly substance.

As John’s authority was pretty much absolute, everyone went back to their usual activities, leaving him to daydream, if he wanted, about the court favor he had gained by spending his money.

CHAPTER XXVII.

Why, now I have Dame Fortune by the Forelock,
And if she escapes my grasp, the fault is mine;
He that hath buffeted with stern adversity
Best knows the shape his course to favouring breezes.

Old Play.

Why, now I have Lady Luck by the hair,
And if she slips away from me, it's my fault;
He who has struggled through tough times
Knows best how to steer his way to favorable winds.

Old Play.

Our travellers reach Edinburgh without any farther adventure, and the Master of Ravenswood, as had been previously settled, took up his abode with his noble friend.

Our travelers arrive in Edinburgh without any more adventures, and the Master of Ravenswood, as previously agreed, stayed with his noble friend.

In the mean time, the political crisis which had been expected took place, and the Tory party obtained in the Scottish, as in the English, councils of Queen Anne a short-lived ascendency, of which it is not our business to trace either the cause or consequences. Suffice it to say, that it affected the different political parties according to the nature of their principles. In England, many of the High Church party, with Harley, afterwards Earl of Oxford, at their head, affected to separate their principles from those of the Jacobites, and, on that account, obtained the denomination of Whimsicals. The Scottish High Church party, on the contrary, or, as they termed themselves, the Cavaliers, were more consistent, if not so prudent, in their politics, and viewed all the changes now made as preparatory to calling to the throne, upon the queen’s demise, her brother the Chevalier de St. George. Those who had suffered in his service now entertained the most unreasonable hopes, not only of indemnification, but of vengeance upon their political adversaries; while families attached to the Whig interest saw nothing before them but a renewal of the hardships they had undergone during the reigns of Charles the Second and his brother, and a retaliation of the confiscation which had been inflicted upon the Jacobites during that of King William.

In the meantime, the political crisis that had been anticipated occurred, and the Tory party gained a brief hold on power in the Scottish councils, just like in the English ones, during Queen Anne's reign. We won't delve into the reasons or outcomes of this shift. It’s enough to say that it affected the various political parties based on their principles. In England, many members of the High Church party, led by Harley, who later became the Earl of Oxford, tried to distance their beliefs from those of the Jacobites and consequently were labeled as Whimsicals. In contrast, the Scottish High Church party, which called themselves the Cavaliers, were more steadfast, though not as cautious, in their politics and viewed all the recent changes as a prelude to restoring her brother, the Chevalier de St. George, to the throne after the queen’s death. Those who had suffered for his cause now held unrealistic hopes not only for compensation but also for revenge against their political rivals; meanwhile, families aligned with the Whig interest could only foresee a return to the hardships they had experienced during the reigns of Charles II and his brother, along with a revenge for the confiscations imposed on the Jacobites during King William's time.

But the most alarmed at the change of system was that prudential set of persons, some of whom are found in all governments, but who abound in a provincial administration like that of Scotland during the period, and who are what Cromwell called waiters upon Providence, or, in other words, uniform adherents to the party who are uppermost. Many of these hastened to read their recantation to the Marquis of A——; and, as it was easily seen that he took a deep interest in the affairs of his kinsman, the Master of Ravenswood, they were the first to suggest measures for retrieving at least a part of his property, and for restoring him in blood against his father’s attainder.

But the most alarmed by the change in the system were those cautious individuals, some of whom can be found in every government, but who are particularly prevalent in a local administration like Scotland's during that time. They are what Cromwell referred to as waiters upon Providence, or in simpler terms, loyal supporters of whoever is in power. Many of them rushed to express their loyalty to the Marquis of A——; and since it was clear he had a strong interest in the affairs of his relative, the Master of Ravenswood, they were the first to propose actions to recover at least part of his property and to reinstate him socially due to his father's disgrace.

Old Lord Turntippet professed to be one of the most anxious for the success of these measures; for “it grieved him to the very saul,” he said, “to see so brave a young gentleman, of sic auld and undoubted nobility, and, what was mair than a’ that, a bluid relation of the Marquis of A——, the man whom,” he swore, “he honoured most upon the face of the earth, brought to so severe a pass. For his ain puir peculiar,” as he said, “and to contribute something to the rehabilitation of sae auld ane house,” the said Turntippet sent in three family pictures lacking the frames, and six high-backed chairs, with worked Turkey cushions, having the crest of Ravenswood broidered thereon, without charging a penny either of the principal or interest they had cost him, when he bought them, sixteen years before, at a roup of the furniture of Lord Ravenswood’s lodgings in the Canongate.

Old Lord Turntippet claimed to be one of the most eager supporters of these measures; for “it broke his heart,” he said, “to see such a brave young man, of such old and undeniable nobility, and, more importantly, a blood relative of the Marquis of A——, the man whom,” he vowed, “he respected the most in the world, in such a dire situation. For his own poor sake,” as he put it, “and to do something for the revival of such an old family,” Lord Turntippet donated three family portraits without frames and six high-backed chairs with beautifully embroidered Turkey cushions featuring the Ravenswood crest, without charging a dime for either the original cost or interest from when he purchased them sixteen years prior at an auction of Lord Ravenswood’s belongings in the Canongate.

Much more to Lord Turntippet’s dismay than to his surprise, although he affected to feel more of the latter than the former, the Marquis received his gift very drily, and observed, that his lordship’s restitution, if he expected it to be received by the Master of Ravenswood and his friends, must comprehend a pretty large farm, which, having been mortgaged to Turntippet for a very inadequate sum, he had contrived, during the confusion of the family affairs, and by means well understood by the lawyers of that period, to acquire to himself in absolute property.

Much to Lord Turntippet’s dismay, more than his surprise—though he pretended to feel more surprised than dismayed—the Marquis accepted his gift very coldly and remarked that if his lordship expected his restitution to be accepted by the Master of Ravenswood and his friends, it would need to include a fairly large farm. This farm, which had been mortgaged to Turntippet for a very small amount, he had managed to acquire outright during the turmoil of the family's affairs, using methods well known to the lawyers of that time.

The old time-serving lord winced excessively under the requisition, protesting to God, that he saw no occasion the lad could have for the instant possession of the land, seeing he would doubtless now recover the bulk of his estate from Sir William Ashton, to which he was ready to contribute by every means in his power, as was just and reasonable; and finally declaring, that he was willing to settle the land on the young gentleman after his own natural demise.

The old, self-serving lord struggled under the demand, arguing to God that there was no reason the young man needed immediate ownership of the land, since he would likely get most of his estate back from Sir William Ashton soon anyway. He was prepared to help in every way he could, as was fair and right, and ultimately stated that he was willing to give the land to the young man after his own natural death.

But all these excuses availed nothing, and he was compelled to disgorge the property, on receiving back the sum for which it had been mortgaged. Having no other means of making peace with the higher powers, he returned home sorrowful and malcontent, complaining to his confidants, “That every mutation or change in the state had hitherto been productive of some sma’ advantage to him in his ain quiet affairs; but that the present had—pize upon it!—cost him one of the best penfeathers o’ his wing.”

But all these excuses didn’t help, and he had to give back the property, getting back the amount for which it was mortgaged. With no other way to make amends with the higher-ups, he went home feeling sad and discontent, complaining to his close friends, “Every change in the situation has usually brought me some small benefit in my own quiet matters; but this time—damn it!—it has cost me one of the best feathers in my cap.”

Similar measures were threatened against others who had profited by the wreck of the fortune of Ravenswood; and Sir William Ashton, in particular, was menaced with an appeal to the House of Peers, a court of equity, against the judicial sentences, proceeding upon a strict and severe construction of the letter of the law, under which he held the castle and barony of Ravenswood. With him, however, the Master, as well for Lucy’s sake as on account of the hospitality he had received from him, felt himself under the necessity of proceeding with great candor. He wrote to the late Lord Keeper, for he no longer held that office, stating frankly the engagement which existed between him and Miss Ashton, requesting his permission for their union, and assuring him of his willingness to put the settlement of all matters between them upon such a footing as Sir William himself should think favourable.

Similar actions were threatened against others who had benefited from the downfall of Ravenswood's fortune; and Sir William Ashton, in particular, faced the possibility of an appeal to the House of Peers, an equity court, against the legal sentences that were based on a strict and harsh interpretation of the law under which he held the castle and barony of Ravenswood. However, the Master felt it necessary to proceed with complete honesty, both for Lucy's sake and because of the hospitality he had received from him. He wrote to the former Lord Keeper, as he no longer held that position, openly stating the commitment that existed between him and Miss Ashton, asking for his permission for their marriage, and assuring him of his willingness to arrange all matters between them in a way that Sir William would find favorable.

The same messenger was charged with a letter to Lady Ashton, deprecating any cause of displeasure which the Master might unintentionally have given her, enlarging upon his attachment to Miss Ashton, and the length to which it had proceeded, and conjuring the lady, as a Douglas in nature as well as in name, generously to forget ancient prejudices and misunderstandings, and to believe that the family had acquired a friend, and she herself a respectful and attached humble servant, in him who subscribed himself, “Edgar, Master of Ravenswood.” A third letter Ravenswood addressed to Lucy, and the messenger was instructed to find some secret and secure means of delivering it into her own hands. It contained the strongest protestations of continued affection, and dwelt upon the approaching change of the writer’s fortunes, as chiefly valuable by tending to remove the impediments to their union. He related the steps he had taken to overcome the prejudices of her parents, and especially of her mother, and expressed his hope they might prove effectual. If not, he still trusted that his absence from Scotland upon an important and honourable mission might give time for prejudices to die away; while he hoped and trusted Miss Ashton’s constancy, on which he had the most implicit reliance, would baffle any effort that might be used to divert her attachment. Much more there was, which, however interesting to the lovers themselves, would afford the reader neither interest nor information. To each of these three letters the Master of Ravenswood received an answer, but by different means of conveyance, and certainly couched in very different styles.

The same messenger was tasked with delivering a letter to Lady Ashton, expressing regret for any unintentional offense the Master might have caused her, elaborating on his feelings for Miss Ashton and how far his affection had developed. He urged the lady, being a Douglas both by nature and by name, to kindly set aside old prejudices and misunderstandings and to see that the family had gained a friend, and she had a respectful and devoted humble servant in him, who signed off as “Edgar, Master of Ravenswood.” A third letter was addressed to Lucy, and the messenger was instructed to find a discreet and secure way to hand it to her personally. This letter contained heartfelt declarations of ongoing love and emphasized the upcoming changes in the writer's fortunes, which he believed would help remove obstacles to their union. He shared the efforts he had made to overcome her parents' biases, particularly her mother's, expressing hope that they would be successful. Even if they weren't, he believed his absence from Scotland during an important and honorable mission would allow time for prejudices to fade; he also had faith in Miss Ashton’s loyalty, which he trusted would withstand any attempts to sway her feelings. There was much more included that, while meaningful to the lovers, would not provide the reader with much interest or insight. Each of the three letters received responses from the Master of Ravenswood, but they arrived through different methods of delivery and were certainly written in very different tones.

Lady Ashton answered his letter by his own messenger, who was not allowed to remain at Ravenswood a moment longer than she was engaged in penning these lines.

Lady Ashton replied to his letter through his own messenger, who wasn't permitted to stay at Ravenswood any longer than it took her to write these lines.

For the hand of Mr. Ravenswood of Wolf’s Crag—These:

For the hand of Mr. Ravenswood of Wolf’s Crag—These:

“SIR, UNKNOWN,—I have received a letter, signed ‘Edgar, Master of Ravenswood,’ concerning the writer whereof I am uncertain, seeing that the honours of such a family were forfeited for high treason in the person of Allan, late Lord Ravenswood. Sir, if you shall happen to be the person so subscribing yourself, you will please to know, that I claim the full interest of a parent in Miss Lucy Ashton, which I have disposed of irrevocably in behalf of a worthy person. And, sir, were this otherwise, I would not listen to a proposal from you, or any of your house, seeing their hand has been uniformly held up against the freedom of the subject and the immunities of God’s kirk. Sir, it is not a flightering blink of prosperity which can change my constant opinion in this regard, seeing it has been my lot before now, like holy David, to see the wicked great in power and flourishing like a green bay-tree; nevertheless I passed, and they were not, and the place thereof knew them no more. Wishing you to lay these things to your heart for your own sake, so far as they may concern you, I pray you to take no farther notice of her who desires to remain your unknown servant,

“SIR, UNKNOWN,—I have received a letter signed ‘Edgar, Master of Ravenswood,’ regarding the writer’s identity, which I am unsure of, since the honors of that family were lost due to high treason by Allan, the late Lord Ravenswood. If you are indeed the person who signed it, please know that I have a parental claim on Miss Lucy Ashton, which I have irrevocably committed to a deserving individual. Furthermore, if things were different, I would not entertain a proposal from you or anyone in your family, as you have consistently opposed the freedom of the people and the rights of God’s church. It’s not a brief moment of prosperity that will change my firm belief on this matter, as I have, like the holy David, witnessed the wicked thrive in power and grow like a flourishing bay tree; yet they passed away, and their place recognized them no more. I urge you to consider these matters for your own sake, as they may pertain to you, and I ask that you take no further notice of someone who wishes to remain your unknown servant,

“MARGARET DOUGLAS,
    “otherwise ASHTON.”

“MARGARET DOUGLAS,
    “also ASHTON.”

About two days after he had received this very unsatisfactory epistle, the Master of Ravenswood, while walking up the High Street of Edinburgh, was jostled by a person, in whom, as the man pulled off his hat to make an apology, he recognized Lockhard, the confidential domestic of Sir William Ashton. The man bowed, slipt a letter into his hand, and disappeared. The packet contained four close-written folios, from which, however, as is sometimes incident to the compositions of great lawyers, little could be extracted, excepting that the writer felt himself in a very puzzling predicament.

About two days after he received this really unsatisfactory letter, the Master of Ravenswood was walking up the High Street of Edinburgh when he was bumped into by someone. As the man took off his hat to apologize, he recognized Lockhard, the trusted servant of Sir William Ashton. The man nodded, quickly slipped a letter into his hand, and vanished. The package contained four densely written pages, from which, as is sometimes the case with works by great lawyers, little could be understood, except that the writer felt he was in a very confusing situation.

Sir William spoke at length of his high value and regard for his dear young friend, the Master of Ravenswood, and of his very extreme high value and regard for the Marquis of A——, his very dear old friend; he trusted that any measures that they might adopt, in which he was concerned, would be carried on with due regard to the sanctity of decreets and judgments obtained in foro contentioso; protesting, before men and angels, that if the law of Scotland, as declared in her supreme courts, were to undergo a reversal in the English House of Lords, the evils which would thence arise to the public would inflict a greater wound upon his heart than any loss he might himself sustain by such irregular proceedings. He flourished much on generosity and forgiveness of mutual injuries, and hinted at the mutability of human affairs, always favourite topics with the weaker party in politics. He pathetically lamented, and gently censured, the haste which had been used in depriving him of his situation of Lord Keeper, which his experience had enabled him to fill with some advantage to the public, without so much as giving him an opportunity of explaining how far his own views of general politics might essentially differ from those now in power. He was convinced the Marquis of A—— had as sincere intentions towards the public as himself or any man; and if, upon a conference, they could have agreed upon the measures by which it was to be pursued, his experience and his interest should have gone to support the present administration. Upon the engagement betwixt Ravenswood and his daughter, he spoke in a dry and confused manner. He regretted so premature a step as the engagement of the young people should have been taken, and conjured the Master to remember he had never given any encouragement thereunto; and observed that, as a transaction inter minores, and without concurrence of his daughter’s natural curators, the engagement was inept, and void in law. This precipitate measure, he added, had produced a very bad effect upon Lady Ashton’s mind, which it was impossible at present to remove. Her son, Colonel Douglas Ashton, had embraced her prejudices in the fullest extent, and it was impossible for Sir William to adopt a course disagreeable to them without a fatal and irreconcilable breach in his family; which was not at present to be thought of. Time, the great physician, he hoped, would mend all.

Sir William talked at length about how much he valued his dear young friend, the Master of Ravenswood, and how highly he regarded the Marquis of A——, his dear old friend. He hoped that any actions they might take together would respect the authority of verdicts and judgments obtained in foro contentioso; asserting, before both people and angels, that if the law of Scotland, as stated in its highest courts, were to be overturned in the English House of Lords, the harm caused to the public would hurt him more than any personal loss he might suffer from such irregular actions. He talked a lot about generosity and forgiving mutual grievances, mentioning the uncertainty of human affairs, which were always favorite topics among the weaker side in politics. He expressed concern and lightly criticized the rush to remove him from his position as Lord Keeper, a role he believed he filled with some benefit to the public, without even being given a chance to explain how his views on general politics might differ from those in power now. He was convinced that the Marquis of A—— had as genuine intentions for the public as he did. If they could have discussed and agreed on the measures to pursue, his experience and support would have backed the current administration. Regarding the engagement between Ravenswood and his daughter, he spoke in a vague and unclear way. He regretted that such a hasty step as the engagement should have been made and urged the Master to remember that he had never encouraged it. He pointed out that, as a situation inter minores, and without the agreement of his daughter's legal guardians, the engagement was invalid and meaningless in law. He added that this rash action had negatively impacted Lady Ashton’s mindset, a problem that was currently impossible to resolve. Her son, Colonel Douglas Ashton, completely shared her prejudices, and it was impossible for Sir William to take a path that clashed with them without causing a serious and irreparable rift in his family; something he couldn't consider at this time. He hoped that time, the great healer, would fix everything.

In a postscript, Sir William said something more explicitly, which seemed to intimate that, rather than the law of Scotland should sustain a severe wound through his sides, by a reversal of the judgment of her supreme courts, in the case of the barony of Ravenswood, through the intervention of what, with all submission, he must term a foreign court of appeal, he himself would extrajudically consent to considerable sacrifices.

In a postscript, Sir William stated more clearly that, rather than letting the law of Scotland take a serious blow through a reversal of the judgment by her highest courts in the Ravenswood barony case, due to what he humbly referred to as a foreign court of appeal, he would personally agree to make significant sacrifices outside of the legal process.

From Lucy Ashton, by some unknown conveyance, the Master received the following lines:

From Lucy Ashton, through some unknown means, the Master received the following message:

“I received yours, but it was at the utmost risk; do not attempt to write again till better times. I am sore beset, but I will be true to my word, while the exercise of my reason is vouchsafed to me. That you are happy and prosperous is some consolation, and my situation requires it all.”

“I got your message, but it was a huge risk; don’t try to write again until things are better. I’m under a lot of pressure, but I’ll keep my promise as long as I can think clearly. It’s a bit comforting that you’re happy and doing well, and I really need that right now.”

The note was signed “L.A.”

The note was signed "L.A."

This letter filled Ravenswood with the most lively alarm. He made many attempts, notwithstanding her prohibition, to convey letters to Miss Ashton, and even to obtain an interview; but his plans were frustrated, and he had only the mortification to learn that anxious and effectual precautions had been taken to prevent the possibility of their correspondence. The Master was the more distressed by these circumstances, as it became impossible to delay his departure from Scotland, upon the important mission which had been confided to him. Before his departure, he put Sir William Ashton’s letter into the hands of the Marquis of A——, who observed with a smile, that Sir William’s day of grace was past, and that he had now to learn which side of the hedge the sun had got to. It was with the greatest difficulty that Ravenswood extorted from the Marquis a promise that he would compromise the proceedings in Parliament, providing Sir William should be disposed to acquiesce in a union between him and Lucy Ashton.

This letter filled Ravenswood with intense worry. He made several attempts, despite her request not to, to sneak letters to Miss Ashton and even to meet her; but his efforts were thwarted, and he was left frustrated to find out that strict measures had been taken to block their communication. The Master was even more troubled by these events, as he couldn't postpone his departure from Scotland on the significant mission entrusted to him. Before leaving, he handed Sir William Ashton’s letter to the Marquis of A——, who remarked with a smirk that Sir William’s chances had run out, and he now needed to figure out which way the wind was blowing. Ravenswood had to work hard to get the Marquis to promise that he would ease the situation in Parliament, as long as Sir William was willing to agree to a match between him and Lucy Ashton.

“I would hardly,” said the Marquis, “consent to your throwing away your birthright in this manner, were I not perfectly confident that Lady Ashton, or Lady Douglas, or whatever she calls herself, will, as Scotchmen say, keep her threep; and that her husband dares not contradict her.”

“I would hardly,” said the Marquis, “agree to you wasting your birthright like this, if I wasn’t completely sure that Lady Ashton, or Lady Douglas, or whatever she calls herself, will, as Scots say, keep her threep; and that her husband wouldn’t dare contradict her.”

“But yet,” said the Master, “I trust your lordship will consider my engagement as sacred.”

“But still,” said the Master, “I hope you’ll see my commitment as sacred.”

“Believe my word of honour,” said the Marquis, “I would be a friend even to your follies; and having thus told you my opinion, I will endeavour, as occasion offers, to serve you according to your own.”

“Believe me, I swear,” said the Marquis, “I would be a friend even to your mistakes; and having shared my opinion, I will try, as opportunities arise, to support you based on your own.”

The master of Ravenswood could but thank his generous kinsman and patron, and leave him full power to act in all his affairs. He departed from Scotland upon his mission, which, it was supposed, might detain him upon the continent for some months.

The master of Ravenswood could only thank his generous relative and supporter, and give him full authority to handle all his matters. He left Scotland for his mission, which was expected to keep him on the continent for several months.

CHAPTER XXVIII.

Was ever woman in this humor wooed?
Was ever woman in this humour won?
I’ll have her.

Richard III.

Was any woman ever courted like this?
Was any woman ever won over like this?
I’m going to have her.

Richard III.

Twelve months had passed away since the Master of Ravenswood’s departure for the continent, and, although his return to Scotland had been expected in a much shorter space, yet the affairs of his mission, or, according to a prevailing report, others of a nature personal to himself, still detained him abroad. In the mean time, the altered state of affairs in Sir William Ashton’s family may be gathered from the following conversation which took place betwixt Bucklaw and his confidential bottle companion and dependant, the noted Captain Craigengelt. They were seated on either side of the huge sepulchral-looking freestone chimney in the low hall at Girnington. A wood fire blazed merrily in the grate; a round oaken table, placed between them, supported a stoup of excellent claret, two rummer glasses, and other good cheer; and yet, with all these appliances and means to boot, the countenance of the patron was dubious, doubtful, and unsatisfied, while the invention of his dependant was taxed to the utmost to parry what he most dreaded, a fit, as he called it, of the sullens, on the part of his protector. After a long pause, only interrupted by the devil’s tattoo, which Bucklaw kept beating against the hearth with the toe of his boot, Craigengelt at last ventured to break silence. “May I be double distanced,” said he, “if ever I saw a man in my life have less the air of a bridegroom! Cut me out of feather, if you have not more the look of a man condemned to be hanged!”

Twelve months had passed since the Master of Ravenswood left for the continent, and although everyone expected him to return to Scotland much sooner, his mission—or, as the rumor goes, personal matters—kept him abroad. Meanwhile, the changed circumstances in Sir William Ashton’s family can be understood through the following conversation between Bucklaw and his trusted accomplice, the infamous Captain Craigengelt. They were sitting on either side of a large, grave-looking stone fireplace in the low hall at Girnington. A wood fire crackled cheerfully in the grate; a round oak table between them held a jug of excellent claret, two large glasses, and other good food and drink. Yet, despite all this, Bucklaw's expression was dubious, uncertain, and unsatisfied, while Craigengelt struggled to come up with a way to avoid what he feared most: Bucklaw getting a fit of the sulks. After a long silence, only interrupted by Bucklaw tapping his boot on the hearth, Craigengelt finally dared to speak. “I swear,” he said, “I’ve never seen a man who looks less like a groom! Honestly, you look more like someone who's about to be hanged!”

“My kind thanks for the compliment,” replied Bucklaw; “but I suppose you think upon the predicament in which you yourself are most likely to be placed; and pray, Captain Craigengelt, if it please your worship, why should I look merry, when I’m sad, and devilish sad too?”

“My sincere thanks for the compliment,” Bucklaw replied. “But I guess you’re considering the situation you’re probably going to find yourself in. And please, Captain Craigengelt, if it’s alright with you, why should I look happy when I’m sad, really sad too?”

“And that’s what vexes me,” said Craigengelt. “Here is this match, the best in the whole country, and which you were so anxious about, is on the point of being concluded, and you are as sulky as a bear that has lost its whelps.”

“And that’s what annoys me,” said Craigengelt. “Here is this match, the best in the whole country, and you were so worried about it, and it’s about to be finished, and you’re as grumpy as a bear that has lost its cubs.”

“I do not know,” answered the Laird, doggedly, “whether I should conclude or not, if it was not that I am too far forwards to leap back.”

“I don’t know,” replied the Laird stubbornly, “whether I should come to a conclusion or not, if it weren’t for the fact that I’m too far along to turn back.”

“Leap back!” exclaimed Craigengelt, with a well-assumed air of astonishment, “that would be playing the back-game with a witness! Leap back! Why, is not the girl’s fortune——”

“Jump back!” shouted Craigengelt, pretending to be surprised, “that would be playing a trick on a witness! Jump back! Isn’t the girl’s fortune——”

“The young lady’s, if you please,” said Hayston, interrupting him.

"The young lady’s, if you don’t mind," said Hayston, cutting him off.

“Well—well, no disrespect meant. Will Miss Ashton’s tocher not weigh against any in Lothian?”

“Well—well, no disrespect intended. Won’t Miss Ashton’s dowry carry as much weight as any in Lothian?”

“Granted,” answered Bucklaw; “but I care not a penny for her tocher; I have enough of my own.”

“Sure,” answered Bucklaw; “but I don’t care at all about her dowry; I have plenty of my own.”

“And the mother, that loves you like her own child?”

“And the mother who loves you like her own child?”

“Better than some of her children, I believe,” said Bucklaw, “or there would be little love wared on the matter.”

“Better than some of her kids, I believe,” said Bucklaw, “or there wouldn’t be much love wasted on the issue.”

“And Colonel Sholto Douglas Ashton, who desires the marriage above all earthly things?”

“And Colonel Sholto Douglas Ashton, who wants the marriage more than anything else in the world?”

“Because,” said Bucklaw, “he expects to carry the county of —— through my interest.”

“Because,” said Bucklaw, “he thinks he can win the county of —— with my support.”

“And the father, who is as keen to see the match concluded as ever I have been to win a main?”

“And the father, who is just as eager to see the match finished as I have always been to win a big one?”

“Ay,” said Bucklaw, in the same disparaging manner, “it lies with Sir William’s policy to secure the next best match, since he cannot barter his child to save the great Ravenswood estate, which the English House of Lords are about to wrench out of his clutches.”

“Ay,” said Bucklaw, in the same dismissive tone, “it’s up to Sir William’s strategy to secure the next best match, since he can’t trade his child to save the great Ravenswood estate, which the English House of Lords is about to take from him.”

“What say you to the young lady herself?” said Craigengelt; “the finest young woman in all Scotland, one that you used to be so fond of when she was cross, and now she consents to have you, and gives up her engagement with Ravenswood, you are for jibbing. I must say, the devil’s in ye, when ye neither know what you would have nor what you would want.”

“What do you think of the young lady herself?” said Craigengelt; “the most wonderful young woman in all of Scotland, the one you used to care so much about when she was difficult, and now she agrees to be with you and breaks off her engagement with Ravenswood, and you’re hesitating. I have to say, there’s something really off about you when you don’t know what you want or what you should want.”

“I’ll tell you my meaning in a word,” answered Bucklaw, getting up and walking through the room; “I want to know what the devil is the cause of Miss Ashton’s changing her mind so suddenly?”

“I’ll tell you what I mean in one word,” answered Bucklaw, getting up and walking around the room; “I want to know what the heck caused Miss Ashton to change her mind so suddenly?”

“And what need you care,” said Craigengelt, “since the change is in your favour?”

“And why should you care,” said Craigengelt, “since the change is in your favor?”

“I’ll tell you what it is,” returned his patron, “I never knew much of that sort of fine ladies, and I believe they may be as capricious as the devil; but there is something in Miss Ashton’s change a devilish deal too sudden and too serious for a mere flisk of her own. I’ll be bound, Lady Ashton understands every machine for breaking in the human mind, and there are as many as there are cannon-bit, martingales, and cavessons for young colts.”

“I’ll tell you what it is,” replied his patron, “I never really knew much about those kinds of fancy ladies, and I think they can be as unpredictable as anything; but there’s something about Miss Ashton’s change that’s way too sudden and serious for just a little episode on her part. I bet Lady Ashton understands every trick to manipulating the human mind, and there are as many of those as there are bits, martingales, and nosebands for young horses.”

“And if that were not the case,” said Craigengelt, “how the devil should we ever get them into training at all?”

“And if that weren’t the case,” said Craigengelt, “how on earth would we ever get them into training at all?”

“And that’s true too,” said Bucklaw, suspending his march through the dining-room, and leaning upon the back of a chair. “And besides, here’s Ravenswood in the way still, do you think he’ll give up Lucy’s engagement?”

“And that’s true too,” said Bucklaw, stopping his walk through the dining room and leaning on the back of a chair. “And besides, here’s Ravenswood still in the way; do you think he’ll give up Lucy’s engagement?”

“To be sure he will,” answered Craigengelt; “what good can it do him to refuse, since he wishes to marry another woman and she another man?”

“To be sure he will,” answered Craigengelt; “what good would it do him to refuse, since he wants to marry another woman and she wants to marry another man?”

“And you believe seriously,” said Bucklaw, “that he is going to marry the foreign lady we heard of?”

“And you really think,” said Bucklaw, “that he’s going to marry the foreign woman we heard about?”

“You heard yourself,” answered Craigengelt, “what Captain Westenho said about it, and the great preparation made for their blythesome bridal.”

“You heard yourself,” replied Craigengelt, “what Captain Westenho said about it, and the huge preparations made for their joyful wedding.”

“Captain Westenho,” replied Bucklaw, “has rather too much of your own cast about, Craigie, to make what Sir William would call a ‘famous witness.’ He drinks deep, plays deep, swears deep, and I suspect can lie and cheat a little into the bargain; useful qualities, Craigie, if kept in their proper sphere, but which have a little too much of the freebooter to make a figure in a court of evidence.”

“Captain Westenho,” Bucklaw replied, “has a bit too much of your style, Craigie, to be what Sir William would consider a ‘great witness.’ He drinks heavily, gambles seriously, swears a lot, and I suspect he can lie and cheat a bit too; useful traits, Craigie, if they're kept in check, but they have a bit too much of the rogue to stand out in a court of law.”

“Well, then,” said Craigengelt, “will you believe Colonel Douglas Ashton, who heard the Marquis of A—— say in a public circle, but not aware that he was within ear-shot, that his kinsman had made a better arrangement for himself than to give his father’s land for the pale-cheeked daughter of a broken-down fanatic, and that Bucklaw was welcome to the wearing of Ravenswood’s shaughled shoes.”

“Well, then,” said Craigengelt, “will you believe Colonel Douglas Ashton, who heard the Marquis of A—— say in a public setting, not realizing he was within earshot, that his relative had made a better deal for himself than to trade his father’s land for the pale-faced daughter of a washed-up fanatic, and that Bucklaw was free to wear Ravenswood’s shabby shoes.”

“Did he say so, by heavens!” cried Bucklaw, breaking out into one of those incontrollable fits of passion to which he was constitutionally subject; “if I had heard him, I would have torn the tongue out of his throat before all his peats and minions, and Highland bullies into the bargain. Why did not Ashton run him through the body?”

“Did he really say that?” Bucklaw exclaimed, bursting into one of his uncontrollable fits of rage that he was naturally prone to; “if I had heard him, I would have ripped his tongue out before all his lackeys and Highland thugs too. Why didn’t Ashton stab him?”

“Capot me if I know,” said the Captain. “He deserved it sure enough; but he is an old man, and a minister of state, and there would be more risk than credit in meddling with him. You had more need to think of making up to Miss Lucy Ashton the disgrace that’s like to fall upon her than of interfering with a man too old to fight, and on too high a tool for your hand to reach him.”

“Who knows,” said the Captain. “He really deserved it; but he’s an old man and a government official, and there’s more risk than reward in getting involved with him. You should be more concerned about making amends with Miss Lucy Ashton for the shame that’s likely to come her way than about messing with a guy who’s too old to fight and too high up for you to deal with.”

“It shall reach him, though, one day,” said Bucklaw, “and his kinsman Ravenswood to boot. In the mean time, I’ll take care Miss Ashton receives no discredit for the slight they have put upon her. It’s an awkward job, however, and I wish it were ended; I scarce know how to talk to her,—but fill a bumper, Craigie, and we’ll drink her health. It grows late, and a night-cowl of good claret is worth all the considering-caps in Europe.”

“It will reach him eventually,” said Bucklaw, “along with his relative Ravenswood. In the meantime, I’ll make sure Miss Ashton doesn’t get any blame for the slight they’ve given her. It’s a tricky situation, though, and I wish it were over; I hardly know how to talk to her—so pour a drink, Craigie, and we’ll toast to her health. It’s getting late, and a glass of good wine is worth more than all the thinking caps in Europe.”

CHAPTER XXIX.

It was the copy of our conference.
In bed she slept not, for my urging it;
At board she fed not, for my urging it;
Alone, it was the subject of my theme;
In company I often glanced at it.

Comedy of Errors.

It was the copy of our conference.
In bed she didn't sleep, despite my urging;
At the table, she didn't eat, despite my urging;
Alone, it was the topic of my thoughts;
In company, I often glanced at it.

Comedy of Errors.

The next morning saw Bucklaw and his faithful Achates, Craigengelt, at Ravenswood Castle. They were most courteously received by the knight and his lady, as well as by their son and heir, Colonel Ashton. After a good deal of stammering and blushing—for Bucklaw, notwithstanding his audacity in other matters, had all the sheepish bashfulness common to those who have lived little in respectable society—he contrived at length to explain his wish to be admitted to a conference with Miss Ashton upon the subject of their approaching union. Sir William and his son looked at Lady Ashton, who replied with the greatest composure, “That Lucy would wait upon Mr. Hayston directly. I hope,” she added with a smile, “that as Lucy is very young, and has been lately trepanned into an engagement of which she is now heartily ashamed, our dear Bucklaw will excuse her wish that I should be present at their interview?”

The next morning, Bucklaw and his loyal friend, Craigengelt, arrived at Ravenswood Castle. They were warmly welcomed by the knight and his lady, as well as their son and heir, Colonel Ashton. After quite a bit of stammering and blushing—because Bucklaw, despite his boldness in other matters, had the kind of awkwardness typical of those who haven't spent much time in respectable society—he finally managed to express his desire to speak with Miss Ashton about their upcoming union. Sir William and his son glanced at Lady Ashton, who calmly responded, “Lucy will meet with Mr. Hayston shortly. I hope,” she added with a smile, “that since Lucy is very young and has recently been tricked into an engagement she now deeply regrets, our dear Bucklaw will understand her wish for me to be present during their meeting?”

“In truth, my dear lady,” said Bucklaw, “it is the very thing that I would have desired on my own account; for I have been so little accustomed to what is called gallantry, that I shall certainly fall into some cursed mistake unless I have the advantage of your ladyship as an interpreter.”

“In truth, my dear lady,” said Bucklaw, “it’s exactly what I would have wanted for myself; because I’m not used to what you’d call gallantry, I’m sure I’ll make some awful mistake unless I have you as my guide.”

It was thus that Bucklaw, in the perturbation of his embarrassment upon this critical occasion, forgot the just apprehensions he had entertained of Lady Ashton’s overbearing ascendency over her daughter’s mind, and lost an opportunity of ascertaining, by his own investigation, the real state of Lucy’s feelings.

It was then that Bucklaw, feeling embarrassed in this tough moment, forgot the valid concerns he had about Lady Ashton’s overwhelming influence on her daughter’s mind, and missed a chance to find out for himself how Lucy truly felt.

The other gentlemen left the room, and in a short time Lady Ashton, followed by her daughter, entered the apartment. She appeared, as he had seen her on former occasions, rather composed than agitated; but a nicer judge than he could scarce have determined whether her calmness was that of despair or of indifference. Bucklaw was too much agitated by his own feelings minutely to scrutinise those of the lady. He stammered out an unconnected address, confounding together the two or three topics to which it related, and stopt short before he brought it to any regular conclusion. Miss Ashton listened, or looked as if she listened, but returned not a single word in answer, continuing to fix her eyes on a small piece of embroidery on which, as if by instinct or habit, her fingers were busily employed. Lady Ashton sat at some distance, almost screened from notice by the deep embrasure of the window in which she had placed her chair. From this she whispered, in a tone of voice which, though soft and sweet, had something in it of admonition, if not command: “Lucy, my dear, remember—have you heard what Bucklaw has been saying?”

The other gentlemen left the room, and shortly after, Lady Ashton, followed by her daughter, entered the space. She looked, as he had seen her before, more composed than agitated; but a sharper observer than he could hardly tell if her calmness was from despair or indifference. Bucklaw was too caught up in his own feelings to pay close attention to the lady’s. He stammered out a disjointed speech, mixing together the two or three topics he meant to address, and stopped short without reaching a proper conclusion. Miss Ashton listened, or at least pretended to, but didn’t respond with a single word, continuing to focus on a small piece of embroidery that her fingers were working on, seemingly without thinking. Lady Ashton sat a bit away, almost hidden from view by the deep recess of the window where she had placed her chair. From there, she whispered in a tone that was soft and sweet yet carried a hint of warning, if not command: “Lucy, my dear, remember—have you heard what Bucklaw has been saying?”

The idea of her mother’s presence seemed to have slipped from the unhappy girl’s recollection. She started, dropped her needle, and repeated hastily, and almost in the same breath, the contradictory answers: “Yes, madam—no, my lady—I beg pardon, I did not hear.”

The thought of her mother’s presence appeared to have faded from the sad girl's memory. She jumped, dropped her needle, and quickly repeated, almost in one breath, the conflicting responses: “Yes, ma'am—no, my lady—I’m sorry, I didn’t catch that.”

“You need not blush, my love, and still less need you look so pale and frightened,” said Lady Ashton, coming forward; “we know that maiden’s ears must be slow in receiving a gentleman’s language; but you must remember Mr. Hayston speaks on a subject on which you have long since agreed to give him a favourable hearing. You know how much your father and I have our hearts set upon an event so extremely desirable.”

“You don’t need to be embarrassed, my love, and you certainly don’t need to look so pale and scared,” said Lady Ashton, stepping forward. “We understand that it can take time for a young woman to process a gentleman’s words; but you should remember that Mr. Hayston is talking about something you’ve already agreed to listen to positively. You know how much your father and I are hoping for an outcome that is so very desirable.”

In Lady Ashton’s voice, a tone of impressive, and even stern, innuendo was sedulously and skilfully concealed under an appearance of the most affectionate maternal tenderness. The manner was for Bucklaw, who was easily enough imposed upon; the matter of the exhortation was for the terrified Lucy, who well knew how to interpret her mother’s hints, however skilfully their real purport might be veiled from general observation.

In Lady Ashton’s voice, a tone of impressive and even stern undertones was carefully and skillfully hidden behind the guise of the most affectionate maternal warmth. The way she spoke was aimed at Bucklaw, who was easily deceived; the content of her advice was directed at the terrified Lucy, who knew exactly how to read her mother’s hints, no matter how skillfully their true meaning might be obscured from everyone else.

Miss Ashton sat upright in her chair, cast round her a glance in which fear was mingled with a still wilder expression, but remained perfectly silent. Bucklaw, who had in the mean time paced the room to and fro, until he had recovered his composure, now stopped within two or three yards of her chair, and broke out as follows: “I believe I have been a d—d fool, Miss Ashton; I have tried to speak to you as people tell me young ladies like to be talked to, and I don’t think you comprehend what I have been saying; and no wonder, for d—n me if I understand it myself! But, however, once for all, and in broad Scotch, your father and mother like what is proposed, and if you can take a plain young fellow for your husband, who will never cross you in anything you have a mind to, I will place you at the head of the best establishment in the three Lothians; you shall have Lady Girnington’s lodging in the Canongate of Edinburgh, go where you please, do what you please, and see what you please—and that’s fair. Only I must have a corner at the board-end for a worthless old playfellow of mine, whose company I would rather want than have, if it were not that the d—d fellow has persuaded me that I can’t do without him; and so I hope you won’t except against Craigie, although it might be easy to find much better company.”

Miss Ashton sat straight up in her chair, glanced around with a look that mixed fear with something even more intense, but stayed completely silent. Bucklaw, who had been pacing the room back and forth until he got his composure back, now stopped about two or three yards away from her chair and said, “I think I’ve been a real idiot, Miss Ashton; I tried to talk to you the way people say young ladies like to be talked to, and I don’t think you get what I’ve been saying; and it’s no surprise, because hell, I don’t even get it myself! But, let me be clear, and in plain Scots, your parents are okay with the proposal, and if you can marry a straightforward guy like me, who will never stand in your way, I will set you up with the best house in the three Lothians; you’ll have Lady Girnington’s place in the Canongate of Edinburgh, go wherever you want, do whatever you want, and see whoever you want—and that’s fair. Just know that I need a spot at the table for an old friend of mine, whose company I’d rather not have, if it weren’t for the fact that the annoying guy keeps telling me I can’t live without him; so I hope you won’t mind Craigie, even though it’d be easy to find much better company.”

“Now, out upon you, Bucklaw,” said Lady Ashton, again interposing; “how can you think Lucy can have any objection to that blunt, honest, good-natured creature, Captain Craigengelt?”

“Now, listen up, Bucklaw,” said Lady Ashton, stepping in again; “how can you think Lucy would have any problem with that straightforward, honest, good-natured guy, Captain Craigengelt?”

“Why, madam,” replied Bucklaw, “as to Craigie’s sincerity, honesty, and good-nature, they are, I believe, pretty much upon a par; but that’s neither here nor there—the fellow knows my ways, and has got useful to me, and I cannot well do without him, as I said before. But all this is nothing to the purpose; for since I have mustered up courage to make a plain proposal, I would fain hear Miss Ashton, from her own lips, give me a plain answer.”

“Why, ma'am,” Bucklaw replied, “when it comes to Craigie's sincerity, honesty, and good nature, I think they're pretty much the same; but that’s beside the point—the guy knows how I operate, and he’s been helpful to me, so I really can’t do without him, as I mentioned earlier. But none of this is relevant; since I've gathered the courage to make a straightforward proposal, I’d really like to hear Miss Ashton give me a clear answer in her own words.”

“My dear Bucklaw,” said Lady Ashton, “let me spare Lucy’s bashfulness. I tell you, in her presence, that she has already consented to be guided by her father and me in this matter. Lucy, my love,” she added, with that singular combination of suavity of tone and pointed energy which we have already noticed—“Lucy, my dearest love! speak for yourself, is it not as I say?”

“My dear Bucklaw,” Lady Ashton said, “let me spare Lucy’s shyness. I’m telling you, in front of her, that she has already agreed to let her father and me guide her in this matter. Lucy, my love,” she added, with that unique mix of gentleness and firmness we’ve already noted—“Lucy, my dearest love! Speak for yourself, isn’t that right?”

Her victim answered in a tremulous and hollow voice: “I have promised to obey you—but upon one condition.”

Her victim replied in a shaky and empty voice: “I have promised to obey you—but only on one condition.”

“She means,” said Lady Ashton, turning to Bucklaw, “she expects an answer to the demand which she has made upon the man at Vienna, or Ratisbon, or Paris—or where is he?—for restitution of the engagement in which he had the art to involve her. You will not, I am sure, my dear friend, think it is wrong that she should feel much delicacy upon this head; indeed, it concerns us all.”

“She means,” said Lady Ashton, turning to Bucklaw, “she expects a response to her request made to the man in Vienna, Ratisbon, or Paris—or where is he?—for the return of the engagement he cleverly got her into. You won’t, I’m sure, my dear friend, think it’s wrong for her to feel a lot of sensitivity about this issue; it really affects all of us.”

“Perfectly right—quite fair,” said Bucklaw, half humming, half speaking the end of the old song—

“Absolutely right—totally fair,” said Bucklaw, half humming, half speaking the end of the old song—

“It is best to be off wi’ the old love
Before you be on wi’ the new.

“It’s best to be done with the old love
Before you start with the new.”

But I thought,” said he, pausing, “you might have had an answer six times told from Ravenswood. D—n me, if I have not a mind to go fetch one myself, if Miss Ashton will honour me with the commission.”

But I thought,” he said, pausing, “you might have had an answer repeated six times from Ravenswood. Damn it, I feel like going to get one myself, if Miss Ashton will do me the honor of giving me the task.”

“By no means,” said Lady Ashton; “we have had the utmost difficulty of preventing Douglas, for whom it would be more proper, from taking so rash a step; and do you think we could permit you, my good friend, almost equally dear to us, to go to a desperate man upon an errand so desperate? In fact, all the friends of the family are of opinion, and my dear Lucy herself ought so to think, that, as this unworthy person has returned no answer to her letter, silence must on this, as in other cases, be held to give consent, and a contract must be supposed to be given up, when the party waives insisting upon it. Sir William, who should know best, is clear upon this subject; and therefore, my dear Lucy——”

“Not at all,” said Lady Ashton; “we’ve had a really hard time stopping Douglas, who should be the one doing this, from taking such a reckless step; and do you think we could let you, my good friend, who is almost as dear to us, go to a desperate person on such a desperate mission? In fact, all the family friends agree, and my dear Lucy should think this way too, that since this unworthy man hasn’t replied to her letter, his silence must, like in other situations, imply consent, and we must assume that the contract has been dropped since the party chose not to insist on it. Sir William, who knows best, is very clear on this matter; and so, my dear Lucy——”

“Madam,” said Lucy, with unwonted energy, “urge me no farther; if this unhappy engagement be restored, I have already said you shall dispose of me as you will; till then I should commit a heavy sin in the sight of God and man in doing what you require.”

“Ma'am,” Lucy said with unusual energy, “please don’t push me any further; if this unfortunate engagement is restored, I’ve already said you can do whatever you want with me; until then, I would be committing a serious sin in the eyes of God and everyone else by doing what you're asking.”

“But, my love, if this man remains obstinately silent——”

“But, my love, if this man stays stubbornly silent——”

“He will not be silent,” answered Lucy; “it is six weeks since I sent him a double of my former letter by a sure hand.”

“He will not stay quiet,” replied Lucy; “it’s been six weeks since I sent him a copy of my earlier letter through a reliable source.”

“You have not—you could not—you durst not,” said Lady Ashton, with violence inconsistent with the tone she had intended to assume; but instantly correcting herself, “My dearest Lucy,” said she, in her sweetest tone of expostulation, “how could you think of such a thing?”

“You haven’t—you couldn’t—you wouldn’t dare,” said Lady Ashton, with a forcefulness that didn’t match the tone she meant to use; but quickly adjusting herself, “My dearest Lucy,” she said, in her most gentle tone of disapproval, “how could you even think of something like that?”

“No matter,” said Bucklaw; “I respect Miss Ashton for her sentiments, and I only wish I had been her messenger myself.”

“No worries,” said Bucklaw; “I admire Miss Ashton for her feelings, and I just wish I could have been the one to deliver the message myself.”

“And pray how long, Miss Ashton,” said her mother, ironically, “are we to wait the return of your Pacolet—your fairy messenger—since our humble couriers of flesh and blood could not be trusted in this matter?”

“And just how long, Miss Ashton,” her mother said sarcastically, “are we supposed to wait for your Pacolet—your fairy messenger—since our ordinary messengers of flesh and blood can’t be relied upon for this?”

“I have numbered weeks, days, hours, and minutes,” said Miss Ashton; “within another week I shall have an answer, unless he is dead. Till that time, sir,” she said, addressing Bucklaw, “let me be thus far beholden to you, that you will beg my mother to forbear me upon this subject.”

“I’ve counted the weeks, days, hours, and minutes,” said Miss Ashton. “In just another week, I should have an answer, unless he’s dead. Until then, sir,” she said, looking at Bucklaw, “I would appreciate it if you could ask my mother to let me be on this topic.”

“I will make it my particular entreaty to Lady Ashton,” said Bucklaw. “By my honour, madam, I respect your feelings; and, although the prosecution of this affair be rendered dearer to me than ever, yet, as I am a gentleman, I would renounce it, were it so urged as to give you a moment’s pain.”

“I will make it my personal request to Lady Ashton,” said Bucklaw. “I promise you, madam, I respect your feelings; and even though pursuing this matter has become more important to me than ever, as a gentleman, I would give it up if it was pushed in a way that caused you even a moment of distress.”

“Mr. Hayston, I think, cannot comprehend that,” said Lady Ashton, looking pale with anger, “when the daughter’s happiness lies in the bosom of the mother. Let me ask you, Miss Ashton, in what terms your last letter was couched?”

“Mr. Hayston, I don’t think he can understand that,” said Lady Ashton, looking pale with anger, “when the daughter’s happiness depends on the mother. Let me ask you, Miss Ashton, how did you word your last letter?”

“Exactly in the same, madam,” answered Lucy, “which you dictated on a former occasion.”

“Exactly the same, ma'am,” replied Lucy, “as you dictated before.”

“When eight days have elapsed, then,” said her mother, resuming her tone of tenderness, “we shall hope, my dearest love, that you will end this suspense.”

“When eight days have passed, then,” her mother said, returning to her gentle tone, “we can hope, my dearest love, that you will bring this suspense to an end.”

“Miss Ashton must not be hurried, madam,” said Bucklaw, whose bluntness of feeling did not by any means arise from want of good-nature; “messengers may be stopped or delayed. I have known a day’s journey broke by the casting of a foreshoe. Stay, let me see my calendar: the twentieth day from this is St. Jude’s, and the day before I must be at Caverton Edge, to see the match between the Laird of Kittlegirth’s black mare and Johnston the meal-monger’s four-year-old-colt; but I can ride all night, or Craigie can bring me word how the match goes; and I hope, in the mean time, as I shall not myself distress Miss Ashton with any further importunity, that your ladyship yourself, and Sir William, and Colonel Douglas will have the goodness to allow her uninterrupted time for making up her mind.”

“Miss Ashton shouldn't be rushed, ma'am,” said Bucklaw, whose straightforwardness didn’t come from a lack of kindness; “messages can get delayed or interrupted. I've seen a day’s travel messed up because of a lost horseshoe. Wait, let me check my calendar: the twentieth from now is St. Jude’s, and the day before that, I need to be at Caverton Edge to watch the match between the Laird of Kittlegirth’s black mare and Johnston the meal dealer’s four-year-old colt; but I can ride through the night, or Craigie can fill me in on how the match goes; and I hope, since I won’t impose on Miss Ashton any further, that you, ma'am, as well as Sir William and Colonel Douglas, will kindly give her the time she needs to think things over.”

“Sir,” said Miss Ashton, “you are generous.”

“Sir,” Miss Ashton said, “you’re very generous.”

“As for that, madam,” answered Bucklaw, “I only pretend to be a plain, good-humoured young fellow, as I said before, who will willingly make you happy if you will permit him, and show him how to do so.” Having said this, he saluted her with more emotion than was consistent with his usual train of feeling, and took his leave; Lady Ashton, as she accompanied him out of the apartment, assuring him that her daughter did full justice to the sincerity of his attachment, and requesting him to see Sir William before his departure, “since,” as she said, with a keen glance reverting towards Lucy, “against St. Jude’s day, we must all be ready to sign and seal.”

“As for that, madam,” Bucklaw replied, “I’m just pretending to be a simple, easy-going young man, as I mentioned before, who would happily make you happy if you let him and guide him on how to do it.” After saying this, he greeted her with more emotion than his usual demeanor would suggest and took his leave; Lady Ashton, as she walked him out of the room, assured him that her daughter truly appreciated the sincerity of his feelings for her and asked him to meet Sir William before he left, “because,” she said, casting a sharp glance back at Lucy, “by St. Jude’s Day, we all need to be ready to sign and seal.”

“To sign and seal!” echoed Lucy, in a muttering tone, as the door of the apartment closed—“to sign and seal—to do and die!” and, clasping her extenuated hands together, she sunk back on the easy-chair she occupied, in a state resembling stupor.

“To sign and seal!” Lucy murmured as the apartment door closed—“to sign and seal—to do and die!” Clasping her thin hands together, she sank back into the easy chair she was sitting in, feeling almost numb.

From this she was shortly after awakened by the boisterous entry of her brother Henry, who clamorously reminded her of a promise to give him two yards of carnation ribbon to make knots to his new garters. With the most patient composure Lucy arose, and opening a little ivory cabinet, sought out the ribbon the lad wanted, measured it accurately, cut it off into proper lengths, and knotted it into the fashion his boyish whim required.

From this, she was soon awakened by her loud brother Henry, who noisily reminded her of a promise to give him two yards of pink ribbon to make knots for his new garters. With remarkable patience, Lucy got up, opened a small ivory cabinet, found the ribbon he wanted, measured it precisely, cut it into the right lengths, and knotted it in the way his boyish imagination wanted.

“Dinna shut the cabinet yet,” said Henry, “for I must have some of your silver wire to fasten the bells to my hawk’s jesses,—and yet the new falcon’s not worth them neither; for do you know, after all the plague we had to get her from an eyrie, all the way at Posso, in Mannor Water, she’s going to prove, after all, nothing better than a rifler: she just wets her singles in the blood of the partridge, and then breaks away, and lets her fly; and what good can the poor bird do after that, you know, except pine and die in the first heather-cow or whin-bush she can crawl into?”

“Don’t close the cabinet yet,” said Henry, “because I need some of your silver wire to attach the bells to my hawk’s jesses—but honestly, the new falcon isn’t even worth it. After all the trouble we went through to get her from a nest all the way at Posso in Mannor Water, it turns out she’s going to be nothing more than a thief: she just dips her feet in the blood of the partridge, then flies off, leaving me with nothing. What good can that poor bird do after that, except wither away and die in the first patch of heather or gorse she can find?”

“Right, Henry—right—very right,” said Luch, mournfully, holding the boy fast by the hand, after she had given him the wire he wanted; “but there are more riflers in the world than your falcon, and more wounded birds that seek but to die in quiet, that can find neither brake nor whin-bush to hide their head in.”

“Right, Henry—right—very right,” said Luch sadly, holding the boy tightly by the hand after she had given him the wire he asked for; “but there are more poachers in the world than your falcon, and more injured birds that just want to die in peace, who can’t find any thicket or bush to hide their heads in.”

“Ah! that’s some speech out of your romances,” said the boy; “and Sholto says they have turned your head. But I hear Norman whistling to the hawk; I must go fasten on the jesses.”

“Ah! that’s some line from your stories,” said the boy; “and Sholto says they’ve messed with your head. But I hear Norman whistling to the hawk; I need to go put on the jesses.”

And he scampered away with the thoughtless gaiety of boyhood, leaving his sister to the bitterness of her own reflections.

And he ran off with the carefree joy of youth, leaving his sister to deal with the pain of her own thoughts.

“It is decreed,” she said, “that every living creature, even those who owe me most kindness, are to shun me, and leave me to those by whom I am beset. It is just it should be thus. Alone and uncounselled, I involved myself in these perils; alone and uncounselled, I must extricate myself or die.”

“It has been decided,” she said, “that every living being, even those who have been kindest to me, should avoid me and leave me to face those who are attacking me. It’s only fair it should be this way. I got myself into these troubles alone and without guidance; alone and without guidance, I must find a way out or die.”

CHAPTER XXX.

What doth ensue
But moody and dull melancholy,
Kinsman to grim and comfortless despair,
And at her heel, a huge infectious troop
Of pale distemperatures, and foes to life?

Comedy of Errors.

What follows
Is a gloomy and heavy sadness,
Related to grim and hopeless despair,
And behind her, a large, infectious group
Of pale illnesses and enemies to life?

Comedy of Errors.

As some vindication of the ease with which Bucklaw (who otherwise, as he termed himself, was really a very good-humoured fellow) resigned his judgment to the management of Lady Ashton, while paying his addresses to her daughter, the reader must call to mind the strict domestic discipline which, at this period, was exercised over the females of a Scottish family.

As some proof of how easily Bucklaw (who, as he liked to say, was actually a pretty good-natured guy) let Lady Ashton take charge while he pursued her daughter, the reader should remember the strict household rules that were enforced on the women in a Scottish family during this time.

The manners of the country in this, as in many other respects, coincided with those of France before the Revolution. Young women of the higher rank seldom mingled in society until after marriage, and, both in law and fact, were held to be under the strict tutelage of their parents, who were too apt to enforce the views for their settlement in life without paying any regard to the inclination of the parties chiefly interested. On such occasions, the suitor expected little more from his bride than a silent acquiescence in the will of her parents; and as few opportunities of acquaintance, far less of intimacy, occurred, he made his choice by the outside, as the lovers in the Merchant of Venice select the casket, contented to trust to chance the issue of the lottery in which he had hazarded a venture.

The customs of the country in this respect, as in many others, were similar to those of France before the Revolution. Young women of the upper class rarely socialized until after marriage and were legally and practically under the strict control of their parents, who often imposed their own views on how their daughters should settle down in life, ignoring the preferences of the individuals actually involved. In such situations, suitors expected little more from their brides than to quietly accept their parents' decisions; and since there were few opportunities to get to know each other, let alone become close, he made his choice based on appearances, much like how the lovers in the Merchant of Venice choose the casket, willing to leave the outcome of this gamble to chance.

It was not therefore surprising, such being the general manners of the age, that Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw, whom dissipated habits had detached in some degree from the best society, should not attend particularly to those feelings in his elected bride to which many men of more sentiment, experience, and reflection would, in all probability, have been equally indifferent. He knew what all accounted the principal point, that her parents and friends, namely, were decidedly in his favour, and that there existed most powerful reasons for their predilection.

It wasn’t surprising, given the general attitudes of the time, that Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw, whose reckless habits had somewhat separated him from the best social circles, didn’t pay much attention to the feelings of his chosen bride—feelings that many more sentimental, experienced, and thoughtful men would likely have overlooked as well. He was aware of what everyone considered the main point: that her parents and friends were definitely in his favor, and that there were very strong reasons for their preference.

In truth, the conduct of the Marquis of A——, since Ravenswood’s departure, had been such as almost to bar the possibility of his kinsman’s union with Lucy Ashton. The Marquis was Ravenswood’s sincere but misjudging friend; or rather, like many friends and patrons, he consulted what he considered to be his relation’s true interest, although he knew that in doing so he ran counter to his inclinations.

In reality, the behavior of the Marquis of A—— since Ravenswood left had made it almost impossible for his relative to be with Lucy Ashton. The Marquis was a genuine but misguided friend to Ravenswood; more accurately, like many friends and supporters, he acted in what he thought was his relative's best interest, even though he knew that this went against what he personally wanted.

The Marquis drove on, therefore, with the plentitude of ministerial authority, an appeal to the British House of Peers against those judgments of the courts of law by which Sir William became possessed of Ravenswood’s hereditary property. As this measure, enforced with all the authority of power, was new in Scottish judicial proceedings, though now so frequently resorted to, it was exclaimed against by the lawyers on the opposite side of politics, as an interference with the civil judicature of the country, equally new, arbitrary, and tyrannical. And if it thus affected even strangers connected with them only by political party, it may be guessed what the Ashton family themselves said and thought under so gross a dispensation. Sir William, still more worldly-minded than he was timid, was reduced to despair by the loss by which he was threatened. His son’s haughtier spirit was exalted into rage at the idea of being deprived of his expected patrimony. But to Lady Ashton’s yet more vindictive temper the conduct of Ravenswood, or rather of his patron, appeared to be an offence challenging the deepest and most immortal revenge. Even the quiet and confiding temper of Lucy herself, swayed by the opinions expressed by all around her, could not but consider the conduct of Ravenswood as precipitate, and even unkind. “It was my father,” she repeated with a sigh, “who welcomed him to this place, and encouraged, or at least allowed, the intimacy between us. Should he not have remembered this, and requited it with at least some moderate degree of procrastination in the assertion of his own alleged rights? I would have forfeited for him double the value of these lands, which he pursues with an ardour that shows he has forgotten how much I am implicated in the matter.”

The Marquis continued on, fully backed by his government authority, appealing to the British House of Peers against the court decisions that gave Sir William Ravenswood's hereditary property. This approach, enforced with all the might of his power, was new in Scottish legal proceedings, even though it’s now commonly used. Lawyers from the opposing political side condemned it as an interference with the country's civil justice system, labeling it as new, arbitrary, and tyrannical. If this affected even those who were only politically connected, one can imagine what the Ashton family thought and said about such an unjust situation. Sir William, who was more focused on worldly matters than he was timid, fell into despair over the loss he faced. His son, with a more arrogant spirit, was filled with rage at the thought of losing his expected inheritance. But for Lady Ashton, whose vengeful nature was even stronger, Ravenswood's actions, or rather those of his supporter, felt like a personal offense that demanded deep and lasting revenge. Even gentle and trusting Lucy, swayed by the opinions of those around her, couldn’t help but see Ravenswood's actions as hasty and inconsiderate. “It was my father,” she sighed, “who welcomed him here and encouraged, or at least allowed, our friendship. Shouldn’t he have remembered this and shown some restraint before asserting his supposed rights? I would have given up twice the value of this land for him, and yet he pursues it with a fervor that indicates he has forgotten how much I am involved in this situation.”

Lucy, however, could only murmur these things to herself, unwilling to increase the prejudices against her lover entertained by all around her, who exclaimed against the steps pursued on his account as illegal, vexatious, and tyrannical, resembling the worst measures in the worst times of the worst Stuarts, and a degradation of Scotland, the decisions of whose learned judges were thus subjected to the review of a court composed indeed of men of the highest rank, and who were not trained to the study of any municipal law, and might be supposed specially to hold in contempt that of Scotland. As a natural consequence of the alleged injustice meditated towards her father, every means was restored to, and every argument urged to induce Miss Ashton to break off her engagement with Ravenswood, as being scandalous, shameful, and sinful, formed with the mortal enemy of her family, and calculated to add bitterness to the distress of her parents.

Lucy, however, could only whisper these thoughts to herself, not wanting to add to the negative opinions about her lover held by those around her. They were criticizing the actions taken on his behalf as illegal, annoying, and oppressive, comparing them to the worst measures from the worst times of the worst Stuarts, which was a disgrace to Scotland. The judgments of its respected judges were now subject to review by a court made up of high-ranking individuals who had no training in local law and probably looked down on Scotland's legal system. As a natural result of the supposed injustice aimed at her father, every method was used, and every argument presented, to persuade Miss Ashton to end her engagement with Ravenswood, labeling it as scandalous, shameful, and sinful, since it was formed with the sworn enemy of her family, which would only add to her parents' suffering.

Lucy’s spirit, however, was high, and, although unaided and alone, she could have borne much: she could have endured the repinings of her father; his murmurs against what he called the tyrannical usage of the ruling party; his ceaseless charges of ingratitude against Ravenswood; his endless lectures on the various means by which contracts may be voided and annulled; his quotations from the civil, municipal, and the canon law; and his prelections upon the patria potestas.

Lucy’s spirit, however, was high, and even though she was alone and unsupported, she could have handled a lot: she could have dealt with her father’s complaints; his grumbling about what he called the oppressive actions of those in power; his constant accusations of ingratitude toward Ravenswood; his never-ending lectures about the different ways contracts can be voided and canceled; his references to civil, municipal, and canon law; and his discussions about patria potestas.

She might have borne also in patience, or repelled with scorn, the bitter taunts and occasional violence of her brother, Colonel Douglas Ashton, and the impertinent and intrusive interference of other friends and relations. But it was beyond her power effectually to withstand or elude the constant and unceasing persecution of Lady Ashton, who, laying every other wish aside, had bent the whole efforts of her powerful mind to break her daughter’s contract with Ravenswood, and to place a perpetual bar between the lovers, by effecting Lucy’s union with Bucklaw. Far more deeply skilled than her husband in the recesses of the human heart, she was aware that in this way she might strike a blow of deep and decisive vengeance upon one whom she esteemed as her mortal enemy; nor did she hesitate at raising her arm, although she knew that the wound must be dealt through the bosom of her daughter. With this stern and fixed purpose, she sounded every deep and shallow of her daughter’s soul, assumed alternately every disguise of manner which could serve her object, and prepared at leisure every species of dire machinery by which the human mind can be wrenched from its settled determination. Some of these were of an obvious description, and require only to be cursorily mentioned; others were characteristic of the time, the country, and the persons engaged in this singular drama.

She could have endured, or reacted with disdain, the harsh insults and occasional attacks from her brother, Colonel Douglas Ashton, along with the meddling and intrusive behavior of other friends and family. But it was beyond her ability to effectively resist or avoid the constant and relentless harassment from Lady Ashton, who, putting aside all other desires, had focused all her considerable efforts on breaking her daughter’s relationship with Ravenswood and creating a permanent barrier between the lovers by arranging Lucy’s marriage to Bucklaw. Much more skilled than her husband in understanding human emotions, she knew that this was a way to deliver a deep and decisive blow to someone she considered her mortal enemy; she didn’t hesitate to act, even knowing that the wound would be inflicted upon her own daughter. With this firm and unyielding goal, she explored every depth and surface of her daughter’s soul, took on every possible disguise that could help her goal, and meticulously prepared every type of cruel tactic that could force someone’s mind away from its firm decisions. Some of these methods were straightforward and only need to be briefly mentioned; others were typical of the era, the location, and the people involved in this unusual drama.

It was of the last consequence that all intercourse betwixt the lovers should be stopped, and, by dint of gold and authority, Lady Ashton contrived to possess herself of such a complete command of all who were placed around her daughter, that, if fact, no leaguered fortress was ever more completely blockaded; while, at the same time, to all outward appearance Miss Ashton lay under no restriction. The verge of her parents’ domains became, in respect to her, like the viewless and enchanted line drawn around a fairy castle, where nothing unpermitted can either enter from without or escape from within. Thus every letter, in which Ravenswood conveyed to Lucy Ashton the indispensable reasons which detained him abroad, and more than one note which poor Lucy had addressed to him through what she thought a secure channel, fell into the hands of her mother. It could not be but that the tenor of these intercepted letters, especially those of Ravenswood, should contain something to irritate the passions and fortify the obstinacy of her into whose hands they fell; but Lady Ashton’s passions were too deep-rooted to require this fresh food. She burnt the papers as regularly as she perused them; and as they consumed into vapour and tinder, regarded them with a smile upon her compressed lips, and an exultation in her steady eye, which showed her confidence that the hopes of the writers should soon be rendered equally unsubstantial.

It was crucial that any communication between the lovers be completely stopped, and through a mix of money and influence, Lady Ashton managed to gain total control over everyone around her daughter. In fact, no besieged fortress was ever more thoroughly blockaded. Yet, on the surface, Miss Ashton seemed to have no restrictions. The boundary of her parents’ property became, for her, like the invisible and magical line around a fairy castle, where nothing forbidden could enter from the outside or escape from within. As a result, every letter that Ravenswood sent to Lucy Ashton explaining why he had to stay away, as well as several notes that poor Lucy tried to send him through what she believed was a secure method, ended up in her mother’s hands. It's inevitable that the content of these intercepted letters, especially those from Ravenswood, would provoke anger and strengthen the resolve of the person who received them; however, Lady Ashton’s feelings ran too deep to need this additional fuel. She burned the letters as regularly as she read them; and as they turned to ash, she looked at them with a smile on her tightly pressed lips and a triumphant glint in her unwavering gaze, showing her confidence that the writers’ hopes would soon become just as insubstantial.

It usually happens that fortune aids the machinations of those who are prompt to avail themselves of every chance that offers. A report was wafted from the continent, founded, like others of the same sort, upon many plausible circumstances, but without any real basis, stating the Master of Ravenswood to be on the eve of marriage with a foreign lady of fortune and distinction. This was greedily caught up by both the political parties, who were at once struggling for power and for popular favour, and who seized, as usual, upon the most private circumstances in the lives of each other’s partisans to convert them into subjects of political discussion.

It often happens that luck favors those who are quick to take advantage of every opportunity that comes their way. A rumor circulated from the continent, based, like many others of its kind, on several believable circumstances but lacking any real foundation, claiming that the Master of Ravenswood was about to marry a wealthy and distinguished foreign lady. This was eagerly seized upon by both political parties, who were simultaneously vying for power and public support, and who, as usual, exploited the most personal details in each other’s supporters' lives to turn them into topics for political debate.

The Marquis of A—— gave his opinion aloud and publicly, not indeed in the coarse terms ascribed to him by Captain Craigengelt, but in a manner sufficiently offensive to the Ashtons. “He thought the report,” he said, “highly probable, and heartily wished it might be true. Such a match was fitter and far more creditable for a spirited young fellow than a marriage with the daughter of an old Whig lawyer, whose chicanery had so nearly ruined his father.”

The Marquis of A—— expressed his thoughts openly and publicly, not in the crude language attributed to him by Captain Craigengelt, but in a way that was still quite offensive to the Ashtons. “I think the report,” he said, “is very likely, and I sincerely hope it’s true. A match like that is much more suitable and respectable for an ambitious young man than marrying the daughter of an old Whig lawyer, whose tricks nearly destroyed his father.”

The other party, of course, laying out of view the opposition which the Master of Ravenswood received from Miss Ashton’s family, cried shame upon his fickleness and perfidy, as if he had seduced the young lady into an engagement, and wilfully and causelessly abandoned her for another.

The other side, of course, ignoring the resistance the Master of Ravenswood faced from Miss Ashton’s family, condemned his infidelity and betrayal, as if he had tricked the young lady into a commitment and then intentionally and without reason left her for someone else.

Sufficient care was taken that this report should find its way to Ravenswood Castle through every various channel, Lady Ashton being well aware that the very reiteration of the same rumour, from so many quarters, could not but give it a semblance of truth. By some it was told as a piece of ordinary news, by some communicated as serious intelligence; now it was whispered to Lucy Ashton’s ear in the tone of malignant pleasantry, and now transmitted to her as a matter of grave and serious warning.

Sufficient care was taken to ensure that this report reached Ravenswood Castle through various channels, as Lady Ashton knew that the repeated spread of the same rumor from so many sources could make it seem true. Some shared it as just regular news, while others presented it as serious information; at times, it was whispered to Lucy Ashton as a cruel joke, and at other times, it was communicated to her as a matter of serious concern.

Even the boy Henry was made the instrument of adding to his sister’s torments. One morning he rushed into the room with a willow branch in his hand, which he told her had arrived that instant from Germany for her special wearing. Lucy, as we have seen, was remarkably fond of her younger brother, and at that moment his wanton and thoughtless unkindness seemed more keenly injurious than even the studied insults of her elder brother. Her grief, however, had no shade of resentment; she folded her arms about the boy’s neck, and saying faintly, “Poor Henry! you speak but what they tell you” she burst into a flood of unrestrained tears. The boy was moved, notwithstanding the thoughtlessness of his age and character. “The devil take me,” said he, “Lucy, if I fetch you any more of these tormenting messages again; for I like you better,” said he, kissing away the tears, “than the whole pack of them; and you shall have my grey pony to ride on, and you shall canter him if you like—ay, and ride beyond the village, too, if you have a mind.”

Even Henry, the boy, ended up contributing to his sister's suffering. One morning, he burst into the room with a willow branch in his hand, claiming it had just arrived from Germany for her to wear. As we've seen, Lucy was very fond of her younger brother, and at that moment, his careless and thoughtless unkindness felt even more hurtful than the deliberate insults from their older brother. However, her sadness was free of resentment; she wrapped her arms around the boy's neck and said softly, “Poor Henry! You're just repeating what they tell you,” before breaking down in tears. Despite his age and the carelessness that came with it, the boy felt moved. “I swear, Lucy,” he said, “if I ever bring you any more of these annoying messages again, it’s a deal; because I like you way more,” he said, wiping away her tears, “than all of them put together. You can ride my grey pony, and you can canter him if you want—yeah, and ride out past the village, too, if you feel like it.”

“Who told you,” said Lucy, “that I am not permitted to ride where I please?”

“Who told you,” Lucy said, “that I'm not allowed to ride wherever I want?”

“That’s a secret,” said the boy; “but you will find you can never ride beyond the village but your horse will cast a shoe, or fall lame, or the cattle bell will ring, or something will happen to bring you back. But if I tell you more of these things, Douglas will not get me the pair of colours they have promised me, and so good-morrow to you.”

“That's a secret,” said the boy; “but you'll see that you can never ride beyond the village without your horse throwing a shoe, or going lame, or the cattle bell ringing, or something else happening to bring you back. But if I share more of these things, Douglas won’t get me the pair of colors they promised, so good morning to you.”

This dialogue plunged Lucy in still deeper dejection, as it tended to show her plainly what she had for some time suspected, that she was little better than a prisoner at large in her father’s house. We have described her in the outset of our story as of a romantic disposition, delighting in tales of love and wonder, and readily identifying herself with the situation of those legendary heroines with whose adventures, for want of better reading, her memory had become stocked. The fairy wand, with which in her solitude she had delighted to raise visions of enchantment, became now the rod of a magician, the bond slave of evil genii, serving only to invoke spectres at which the exorcist trembled. She felt herself the object of suspicion, of scorn, of dislike at least, if not of hatred, to her own family; and it seemed to her that she was abandoned by the very person on whose account she was exposed to the enmity of all around her. Indeed, the evidence of Ravenswood’s infidelity began to assume every day a more determined character. A soldier of fortune, of the name of Westenho, an old familiar of Craigengelt’s, chanced to arrive from abroad about this time. The worthy Captain, though without any precise communication with Lady Ashton, always acted most regularly and sedulously in support of her plans, and easily prevailed upon his friend, by dint of exaggeration of real circumstances and coming of others, to give explicit testimony to the truth of Ravenswood’s approaching marriage.

This conversation left Lucy feeling even more miserable, as it clearly indicated what she had suspected for a while: that she was nothing more than a prisoner in her father's home. At the beginning of our story, we described her as having a romantic nature, enjoying tales of love and wonder, and easily relating to the situations of those legendary heroines whose stories filled her mind because she had no better reading options. The fairy wand that she had enjoyed using to conjure visions of magic in her solitude now felt like a magician's rod, enslaved by evil spirits, producing only specters that caused the exorcist to shudder. She sensed that her family regarded her with suspicion, scorn, and at least dislike, if not outright hatred, and it felt to her that she had been deserted by the very person for whom she was facing the hostility of everyone around her. In fact, the signs of Ravenswood’s unfaithfulness began to become more evident each day. Around this time, a mercenary named Westenho, an old acquaintance of Craigengelt’s, happened to arrive from abroad. Although the worthy Captain had no direct communication with Lady Ashton, he consistently acted diligently to support her plans and easily convinced his friend, using exaggerated claims about real events and mentioning others, to provide clear evidence of Ravenswood’s impending marriage.

Thus beset on all hands, and in a manner reduced to despair, Lucy’s temper gave way under the pressure of constant affliction and persecution. She became gloomy and abstracted, and, contrary to her natural and ordinary habit of mind, sometimes turned with spirit, and even fierceness, on those by whom she was long and closely annoyed. Her health also began to be shaken, and her hectic cheek and wandering eye gave symptoms of what is called a fever upon the spirits. In most mothers this would have moved compassion; but Lady Ashton, compact and firm of purpose, saw these waverings of health and intellect with no greater sympathy than that with which the hostile engineer regards the towers of a beleaguered city as they reel under the discharge of his artillery; or rather, she considered these starts and inequalities of temper as symptoms of Lucy’s expiring resolution; as the angler, by the throes and convulsive exertions of the fish which he has hooked, becomes aware that he soon will be able to land him. To accelerate the catastrophe in the present case, Lady Ashton had recourse to an expedient very consistent with the temper and credulity of those times, but which the reader will probably pronounce truly detestable and diabolical.

Surrounded on all sides and feeling completely hopeless, Lucy's mood deteriorated under the weight of constant suffering and harassment. She became withdrawn and moody, and, unlike her usual self, would sometimes snap back, even fiercely, at those who had been bothering her for so long. Her health also started to decline, with a flushed face and a wandering gaze showing signs of what people would call a nervous breakdown. Most mothers would have felt compassion in this situation; however, Lady Ashton, strong-willed and determined, viewed these signs of Lucy's declining health and sanity with no more sympathy than a hostile engineer would have for the crumbling towers of a besieged city under bombardment; in fact, she saw these fluctuations in Lucy's mood as indications of her fading resolve. It was like an angler recognizes by the struggling and thrashing of a hooked fish that he is about to reel it in. To speed up the unfortunate outcome in this case, Lady Ashton resorted to a method typical of the beliefs and superstitions of the time, which the reader will likely deem truly despicable and wicked.

CHAPTER XXXI.

In which a witch did dwell, in loathly weeds,
And wilful want, all careless of her deeds;
So choosing solitary to abide,
Far from all neighbours, that her devilish deeds
And hellish arts from people she might hide,
And hurt far off, unknown, whome’er she envied.

Faerie Queene.

In which a witch lived, in ugly clothes,
And reckless desire, completely indifferent to her actions;
Choosing to live alone,
Far from all neighbors, so she could keep her wicked actions
And dark magic hidden from people,
And harm from a distance, secretly, whoever she envied.

Faerie Queene.

The health of Lucy Ashton soon required the assistance of a person more skilful in the office of a sick-nurse than the female domestics of the family. Ailsie Gourlay, sometimes called the Wise Woman of Bowden, was the person whom, for her own strong reasons, Lady Ashton selected as an attendant upon her daughter.

The health of Lucy Ashton soon needed the help of someone more skilled in caring for the sick than the female staff in the household. Ailsie Gourlay, sometimes known as the Wise Woman of Bowden, was the person whom, for her own compelling reasons, Lady Ashton chose to look after her daughter.

This woman had acquired a considerable reputation among the ignorant by the pretended cures which she performed, especially in oncomes, as the Scotch call them, or mysterious diseases, which baffle the regular physician. Her pharmacopeia consisted partly of herbs selected in planetary hours, partly of words, signs, and charms, which sometimes, perhaps, produced a favourable influence upon the imagination of her patients. Such was the avowed profession of Luckie Gourlay, which, as may well be supposed, was looked upon with a suspicious eye, not only by her neighbours, but even by the clergy of the district. In private, however, she traded more deeply in the occult sciences; for, notwithstanding the dreadful punishments inflicted upon the supposed crime of witchcraft, there wanted not those who, steeled by want and bitterness of spirit, were willing to adopt the hateful and dangerous character, for the sake of the influence which its terrors enabled them to exercise in the vicinity, and the wretched emolument which they could extract by the practice of their supposed art.

This woman had gained a significant reputation among the misinformed due to the fake cures she claimed to perform, especially for what the Scots call oncomes, or mysterious illnesses that confuse regular doctors. Her collection of remedies included herbs chosen during specific planetary hours, along with words, signs, and charms that maybe, just maybe, had a positive effect on her patients' imaginations. Luckie Gourlay was openly known for this profession, which, as you can imagine, was viewed with suspicion not just by her neighbors but also by the local clergy. However, in private, she delved much deeper into the occult; despite the severe punishments for those accused of witchcraft, there were still people who, driven by desperation and bitterness, were willing to take on the dangerous and despised role for the influence and fear it allowed them to wield in the community and the meager profits they could squeeze from practicing their supposed skills.

Ailsie Gourlay was not indeed fool enough to acknowledge a compact with the Evil One, which would have been a swift and ready road to the stake and tar-barrel. Her fairy, she said, like Caliban’s, was a harmless fairy. Nevertheless, she “spaed fortunes,” read dreams, composed philtres, discovered stolen goods, and made and dissolved matches as successfully as if, according to the belief of the whole neighbourhood, she had been aided in those arts by Beelzebub himself. The worst of the pretenders to these sciences was, that they were generally persons who, feeling themselves odious to humanity, were careless of what they did to deserve the public hatred. Real crimes were often committed under pretence of magical imposture; and it somewhat relieves the disgust with which we read, in the criminal records, the conviction of these wretches, to be aware that many of them merited, as poisoners, suborners, and diabolical agents in secret domestic crimes, the severe fate to which they were condemned for the imaginary guilt of witchcraft.

Ailsie Gourlay wasn’t foolish enough to admit to making a deal with the Devil, which would have quickly led her to execution. She insisted that her fairy, like Caliban’s, was a harmless one. Still, she “spaed fortunes,” interpreted dreams, created potions, found stolen things, and formed and broke partnerships just as successfully as if, according to everyone around her, she had been assisted in those skills by Beelzebub himself. The worst thing about the people pretending to have these powers was that they often felt rejected by society and didn’t care about what they did to earn that public disdain. Real crimes were frequently committed under the guise of magical fraud; and it somewhat eases the disgust we feel when reading about the convictions of these individuals in the criminal records to know that many of them deserved, as poisoners, conspirators, and secret agents in domestic crimes, the harsh penalties they received for the fabricated charges of witchcraft.

Such was Aislie Gourlay, whom, in order to attain the absolute subjugation of Lucy Ashton’s mind, her mother thought it fitting to place near her person. A woman of less consequence than Lady Ashton had not dared to take such a step; but her high rank and strength of character set her above the censure of the world, and she was allowed to have selected for her daughter’s attendant the best and most experienced sick-nurse and “mediciner” in the neighbourhood, where an inferior person would have fallen under the reproach of calling in the assistance of a partner and ally of the great Enemy of mankind.

Such was Aislie Gourlay, whom, to completely control Lucy Ashton’s mind, her mother believed it was appropriate to have close by. A woman of lesser status than Lady Ashton wouldn’t have dared to take such a step; but her high rank and strong character protected her from societal judgment, and she was permitted to choose the best and most experienced nurse and healer in the area for her daughter’s care, whereas someone of lower standing would have faced criticism for seeking help from a partner of the great Enemy of humanity.

The beldam caught her cue readily and by innuendo, without giving Lady Ashton the pain of distinct explanation. She was in many respects qualified for the part she played, which indeed could not be efficiently assumed without some knowledge of the human heart and passions. Dame Gourlay perceived that Lucy shuddered at her external appearance, which we have already described when we found her in the death-chamber of blind Alice; and while internally she hated the poor girl for the involuntary horror with which she saw she was regarded, she commenced her operations by endeavouring to efface or overcome those prejudices which, in her heart, she resented as mortal offences. This was easily done, for the hag’s external ugliness was soon balanced by a show of kindness and interest, to which Lucy had of late been little accustomed; her attentive services and real skill gained her the ear, if not the confidence, of her patient; and under pretence of diverting the solitude of a sick-room, she soon led her attention captive by the legends in which she was well skilled, and to which Lucy’s habit of reading and reflection induced her to “lend an attentive ear.” Dame Gourlay’s tales were at first of a mild and interesting character—

The old woman picked up on her cue quickly and subtly, without putting Lady Ashton through the trouble of a direct explanation. In many ways, she was suited for the role she played, which really couldn’t be done well without some understanding of human emotions and desires. Dame Gourlay noticed that Lucy recoiled at her appearance, which we previously described when we found her in the death room of blind Alice; and while she secretly resented the poor girl for the unintentional disgust with which she was treated, she began her efforts by trying to eliminate or overcome those feelings, which she privately viewed as serious offenses. This was easily accomplished, as the hag’s outward ugliness was quickly countered by her display of kindness and interest, which Lucy hadn’t been used to lately; her caring actions and genuine skills earned her the attention, if not the trust, of her patient. Under the guise of easing the isolation of a sick room, she soon captivated Lucy’s focus with the stories she was well-versed in, and Lucy’s tendency to read and reflect prompted her to “listen intently.” Dame Gourlay’s tales initially had a gentle and engaging tone—

Of fays that nightly dance upon the wold,
And lovers doom’d to wander and to weep,
And castles high, where wicked wizards keep
Their captive thralls.

Of fairies that dance every night on the hillside,
And lovers destined to roam and cry,
And tall castles, where evil wizards hold
Their captured servants.

Gradually, however, they assumed a darker and more mysterious character, and became such as, told by the midnight lamp, and enforced by the tremulous tone, the quivering and livid lip, the uplifted skinny forefinger, and the shaking head of the blue-eyed hag, might have appalled a less credulous imagination in an age more hard of belief. The old Sycorax saw her advantage, and gradually narrowed her magic circle around the devoted victim on whose spirit she practised. Her legends began to relate to the fortunes of the Ravenswood family, whose ancient grandeur and portentous authority credulity had graced with so many superstitious attributes. The story of the fatal fountain was narrated at full length, and with formidable additions, by the ancient sibyl. The prophecy, quoted by Caleb, concerning the dead bride who was to be won by the last of the Ravenswoods, had its own mysterious commentary; and the singular circumstance of the apparition seen by the Master of Ravenswood in the forest, having partly transpired through his hasty inquiries in the cottage of Old Alice, formed a theme for many exaggerations.

Gradually, however, they took on a darker and more mysterious tone, becoming something that, revealed by the midnight lamp and emphasized by the trembling voice, the quivering and pale lip, the raised bony finger, and the shaking head of the blue-eyed witch, might have terrified a less gullible imagination in a time more resistant to belief. The old Sycorax recognized her opportunity and slowly tightened her magic circle around the devoted victim upon whom she practiced her arts. Her stories started to reference the fortunes of the Ravenswood family, whose ancient greatness and ominous power credulity had adorned with numerous superstitious traits. The tale of the cursed fountain was recounted in full detail, along with terrifying additions, by the old seer. The prophecy quoted by Caleb about the dead bride who was to be claimed by the last of the Ravenswoods had its own mysterious interpretation; and the strange incident of the apparition seen by the Master of Ravenswood in the forest, which had partly come to light through his urgent questions in Old Alice's cottage, provided material for many exaggerations.

Lucy might have despised these tales if they had been related concerning another family, or if her own situation had been less despondent. But circumstanced as she was, the idea that an evil fate hung over her attachment became predominant over her other feelings; and the gloom of superstition darkened a mind already sufficiently weakened by sorrow, distress, uncertainty, and an oppressive sense of desertion and desolation. Stories were told by her attendant so closely resembling her own in their circumstances, that she was gradually led to converse upon such tragic and mystical subjects with the beldam, and to repose a sort of confidence in the sibyl, whom she still regarded with involuntary shuddering. Dame Gourlay knew how to avail herself of this imperfect confidence. She directed Lucy’s thoughts to the means of inquiring into futurity—the surest mode perhaps, of shaking the understanding and destroying the spirits. Omens were expounded, dreams were interpreted, and other tricks of jugglery perhaps resorted to, by which the pretended adepts of the period deceived and fascinated their deluded followers. I find it mentioned in the articles of distay against Ailsie Gourlay—for it is some comfort to know that the old hag was tried, condemned, and burned on the top of North Berwick Law, by sentence of a commission from the privy council—I find, I say, it was charged against her, among other offences, that she had, by the aid and delusions of Satan, shown to a young person of quality, in a mirror glass, a gentleman then abroad, to whom the said young person was betrothed, and who appeared in the vision to be in the act of bestowing his hand upon another lady. But this and some other parts of the record appear to have been studiously left imperfect in names and dates, probably out of regard to the honour of the families concerned. If Dame Gourlay was able actually to play off such a piece of jugglery, it is clear she must have had better assistance to practise the deception than her own skill or funds could supply. Meanwhile, this mysterious visionary traffic had its usual effect in unsettling Miss Ashton’s mind. Her temper became unequal, her health decayed daily, her manners grew moping, melancholy, and uncertain. Her father, guessing partly at the cause of these appearances, made a point of banishing Dame Gourlay from the castle; but the arrow was shot, and was rankling barb-deep in the side of the wounded deer.

Lucy might have hated these stories if they were about someone else, or if her own situation had been less hopeless. But given her circumstances, the idea that a terrible fate loomed over her relationship took over her other feelings; the weight of superstition darkened a mind already weakened by sorrow, anxiety, uncertainty, and a heavy sense of abandonment and despair. Her attendant told her tales that were so similar to her own experiences that she gradually began to discuss these tragic and mysterious subjects with the old woman and to place a kind of trust in the seer, whom she still regarded with involuntary fear. Dame Gourlay knew how to take advantage of this shaky trust. She led Lucy to think about ways to seek knowledge of the future—the surest method, perhaps, of distorting her understanding and destroying her spirit. Omens were explained, dreams were interpreted, and other tricks of deception were likely used, by which the supposed experts of the time misled and captivated their gullible followers. I find it mentioned in the charges against Ailsie Gourlay—for it’s somewhat reassuring to know that the old witch was tried, convicted, and executed on the top of North Berwick Law, by order of a commission from the privy council—I find, I say, it was claimed against her, among other offenses, that she had, with the help and tricks of Satan, shown a young woman of nobility, in a mirror, a gentleman who was abroad, to whom the young woman was engaged, and who appeared in the vision to be giving his hand to another lady. But this and other parts of the record seem to have been deliberately left vague regarding names and dates, probably to protect the reputation of the families involved. If Dame Gourlay could actually pull off such a trick, it’s clear she must have had better resources to carry out the deception than her own skills or funding could provide. In the meantime, this mysterious visionary activity had its usual impact in disturbing Miss Ashton’s mind. Her mood became erratic, her health declined daily, and her behavior grew gloomy, melancholy, and uncertain. Her father, partially guessing the cause of these changes, made it a point to banish Dame Gourlay from the castle; but the damage was done, and the wound was deep in the side of the injured deer.

It was shortly after the departure of this woman, that Lucy Ashton, urged by her parents, announced to them, with a vivacity by which they were startled, “That she was conscious heaven and earth and hell had set themselves against her union with Ravenswood; still her contract,” she said, “was a binding contract, and she neither would nor could resign it without the consent of Ravenswood. Let me be assured,” she concluded, “that he will free me from my engagement, and dispose of me as you please, I care not how. When the diamonds are gone, what signifies the casket?”

It was shortly after this woman left that Lucy Ashton, pushed by her parents, declared to them with surprising energy, “I know that heaven, earth, and hell are all against my being with Ravenswood; still, my agreement,” she said, “is a binding one, and I won’t or can’t break it without Ravenswood’s approval. Just let me know,” she finished, “that he will release me from my commitment and arrange my future as you wish; I don’t care how. When the diamonds are gone, what does the casket matter?”

The tone of obstinacy with which this was said, her eyes flashing with unnatural light, and her hands firmly clenched, precluded the possibility of dispute; and the utmost length which Lady Ashton’s art could attain, only got her the privilege of dictating the letter, by which her daughter required to know of Ravenswood whether he intended to abide by or to surrender what she termed “their unfortunate engagement.” Of this advantage Lady Ashton so far and so ingeniously availed herself that, according to the wording of the letter, the reader would have supposed Lucy was calling upon her lover to renounce a contract which was contrary to the interests and inclinations of both. Not trusting even to this point of deception, Lady Ashton finally determined to suppress the letter altogether, in hopes that Lucy’s impatience would induce her to condemn Ravenswood unheard and in absence. In this she was disappointed. The time, indeed, had long elapsed when an answer should have been received from the continent. The faint ray of hope which still glimmered in Lucy’s mind was well nigh extinguished. But the idea never forsook her that her letter might not have been duly forwarded. One of her mother’s new machinations unexpectedly furnished her with the means of ascertaining what she most desired to know.

The stubborn tone with which this was said, her eyes flashing with an unnatural light, and her hands tightly clenched made any argument impossible; and the most Lady Ashton could manage was to get the right to dictate a letter in which her daughter asked Ravenswood whether he planned to stick to or give up what she called “their unfortunate engagement.” Lady Ashton cleverly used this advantage to make it seem like Lucy was asking her lover to break a promise that went against the interests and feelings of both. Not even trusting this level of deception, Lady Ashton decided to suppress the letter entirely, hoping that Lucy’s impatience would lead her to unfairly judge Ravenswood without hearing his side. She was disappointed in this plan. The time for receiving a reply from the continent had long passed. The faint glimmer of hope that still shone in Lucy’s mind was nearly gone. But she never completely abandoned the idea that her letter might not have been sent properly. One of her mother’s latest schemes unexpectedly gave her a way to find out what she most wanted to know.

The female agent of hell having been dismissed from the castle, Lady Ashton, who wrought by all variety of means, resolved to employ, for working the same end on Lucy’s mind, an agent of a very different character. This was no other than the Reverend Mr. Bide-the-Bent, a presbyterian clergyman, formerly mentioned, of the very strictest order and the most rigid orthodoxy, whose aid she called in, upon the principle of the tyrant in the tragedy:

The female agent of hell having been dismissed from the castle, Lady Ashton, who used all kinds of methods, decided to employ a very different kind of agent to influence Lucy’s mind. This was none other than the Reverend Mr. Bide-the-Bent, a Presbyterian clergyman, previously mentioned, known for being extremely strict and orthodox, whose help she sought, based on the principle of the tyrant in the tragedy:

I’ll have a priest shall preach her from her faith,
And make it sin not to renounce that vow
Which I’d have broken.

I’ll arrange for a priest to convince her to abandon her faith,
And make it a sin not to break that vow
Which I wanted to break.

But Lady Ashton was mistaken in the agent she had selected. His prejudices, indeed, were easily enlisted on her side, and it was no difficult matter to make him regard with horror the prospect of a union betwixt the daughter of a God-fearing, professing, and Presbyterian family of distinction and the heir of a bloodthirsty prelatist and persecutor, the hands of whose fathers had been dyed to the wrists in the blood of God’s saints. This resembled, in the divine’s opinion, the union of a Moabitish stranger with a daughter of Zion. But with all the more severe prejudices and principles of his sect, Bide-the-Bent possessed a sound judgment, and had learnt sympathy even in that very school of persecution where the heart is so frequently hardened. In a private interview with Miss Ashton, he was deeply moved by her distress, and could not but admit the justice of her request to be permitted a direct communication with Ravenswood upon the subject of their solemn contract. When she urged to him the great uncertainty under which she laboured whether her letter had been ever forwarded, the old man paced the room with long steps, shook his grey head, rested repeatedly for a space on his ivory-headed staff, and, after much hesitation, confessed that he thought her doubts so reasonable that he would himself aid in the removal of them.

But Lady Ashton was wrong about the agent she had chosen. His biases were easily aligned with hers, and it wasn't hard to make him view with disgust the idea of a union between the daughter of a respectable, God-fearing Presbyterian family and the heir of a ruthless persecutor, whose ancestors had been complicit in the bloodshed of God’s followers. In the divine’s view, this was like a Moabite marrying a daughter of Zion. However, despite his sect’s strict prejudices and principles, Bide-the-Bent had good judgment and had learned compassion even in that harsh environment where people often become hardened. During a private meeting with Miss Ashton, he was genuinely affected by her distress and couldn’t deny the validity of her request to communicate directly with Ravenswood about their serious contract. When she expressed her uncertainty about whether her letter had ever been sent, the old man paced the room, shook his grey head, stopped several times to lean on his ivory-headed staff, and after much hesitation, admitted that he found her concerns so reasonable that he would help address them himself.

“I cannot but opine, Miss Lucy,” he said, “that your worshipful lady mother hath in this matter an eagerness whilk, although it ariseth doubtless from love to your best interests here and hereafter, for the man is of persecuting blood, and himself a persecutor, a Cavalier or Malignant, and a scoffer, who hath no inheritance in Jesse; nevertheless, we are commanded to do justice unto all, and to fulfil our bond and covenant, as well to the stranger as to him who is in brotherhood with us. Wherefore myself, even I myself, will be aiding unto the delivery of your letter to the man Edgar Ravenswood, trusting that the issue thereof may be your deliverance from the nets in which he hath sinfully engaged you. And that I may do in this neither more nor less than hath been warranted by your honourable parents, I pray you to transcribe, without increment or subtraction, the letter formerly expeded under the dictation of your right honourable mother; and I shall put it into such sure course of being delivered, that if, honourable young madam, you shall receive no answer, it will be necessary that you conclude that the man meaneth in silence to abandon that naughty contract, which, peradventure, he may be unwilling directly to restore.”

“I can’t help but think, Miss Lucy,” he said, “that your esteemed mother is quite eager in this matter, which, although it surely comes from her love for your best interests now and in the future, is concerning because the man comes from a family of persecutors—he’s a Cavalier or Malignant and a scoffer, with no rightful place in Jesse. Still, we are obligated to deliver justice to everyone and to honor our commitments, both to strangers and to those who are our brothers. Therefore, I, myself, will help you send your letter to Edgar Ravenswood, hoping that it will free you from the traps in which he has mistakenly caught you. To ensure that I do this as your honorable parents would allow, I ask you to rewrite the letter that was previously sent under the guidance of your esteemed mother, without adding or taking anything away. I’ll make sure it’s delivered safely, so if, honorable young lady, you don’t receive a response, you should take that as a sign that he intends to quietly break off that troublesome agreement, which he may not want to directly abandon.”

Lucy eagerly embraced the expedient of the worthy divine. A new letter was written in the precise terms of the former, and consigned by Mr. Bide-the-Bent to the charge of Saunders Moonshine, a zealous elder of the church when on shore, and when on board his brig as bold a smuggler as ever ran out a sliding bowsprit to the winds that blow betwixt Campvere and the east coast of Scotland. At the recommendation of his pastor, Saunders readily undertook that the letter should be securely conveyed to the Master of Ravenswood at the court where he now resided.

Lucy eagerly took up the easy solution suggested by the respected clergyman. A new letter was written in the exact words of the previous one and handed over by Mr. Bide-the-Bent to Saunders Moonshine, a dedicated elder of the church when he was on land, and as daring a smuggler as anyone when he was aboard his brig, often setting out to sea with a sliding bowsprit to catch the winds between Campvere and the east coast of Scotland. At his pastor's suggestion, Saunders gladly agreed to make sure the letter was safely delivered to the Master of Ravenswood at the court where he was currently staying.

This retrospect became necessary to explain the conference betwixt Miss Ashton, her mother, and Bucklaw which we have detailed in a preceding chapter.

This look back is needed to explain the meeting between Miss Ashton, her mother, and Bucklaw that we covered in an earlier chapter.

Lucy was now like the sailor who, while drifting through a tempestuous ocean, clings for safety to a single plank, his powers of grasping it becoming every moment more feeble, and the deep darkness of the night only checkered by the flashes of lightning, hissing as they show the white tops of the billows, in which he is soon to be engulfed.

Lucy was now like a sailor drifting through a stormy ocean, clinging for safety to a single plank, his grip weakening with every passing moment, and the pitch-black night only interrupted by flashes of lightning, hissing as they reveal the white caps of the waves, into which he is soon to be swallowed.

Week crept away after week, and day after day. St. Jude’s day arrived, the last and protracted term to which Lucy had limited herself, and there was neither letter nor news of Ravenswood.

Week after week passed slowly, and day by day. St. Jude's day came, the final deadline Lucy had set for herself, and there was no letter or news from Ravenswood.

CHAPTER XXXII.

How fair these names, how much unlike they look
To all the blurr’d subscriptions in my book!
The bridegroom’s letters stand in row above,
Tapering, yet straight, like pine-trees in his grove;
While free and fine the bride’s appear below,
As light and slender as her jessamines grow.

CRABBE.

How beautiful these names are, and how different they look
From all the messy signatures in my book!
The groom’s letters line up neatly above,
Tapering yet straight, like pine trees in his grove;
While the bride’s appear below, loose and elegant,
As light and delicate as her jasmine flowers grow.

CRABBE.

St. jude’s day came, the term assigned by Lucy herself as the furthest date of expectation, and, as we have already said, there were neither letters from nor news of Ravenswood. But there were news of Bucklaw, and of his trusty associate Craigengelt, who arrived early in the morning for the completion of the proposed espousals, and for signing the necessary deeds.

St. Jude’s Day arrived, the date that Lucy had set as the latest she would expect news, and as we mentioned before, there was still no word from Ravenswood. However, there was news about Bucklaw and his reliable partner Craigengelt, who showed up early in the morning to finalize the planned marriage and sign the required documents.

These had been carefully prepared under the revisal of Sir William Ashton himself, it having been resolved, on account of the state of Miss Ashton’s health, as it was said, that none save the parties immediately interested should be present when the parchments were subscribed. It was further determined that the marriage should be solemnised upon the fourth day after signing the articles, a measure adopted by Lady Ashton, in order that Lucy might have as little time as possible to recede or relapse into intractability. There was no appearance, however, of her doing either. She heard the proposed arrangement with the calm indifference of despair, or rather with an apathy arising from the oppressed and stupefied state of her feelings. To an eye so unobserving as that of Bucklaw, her demeanour had little more of reluctance than might suit the character of a bashful young lady, who, however, he could not disguise from himself, was complying with the choice of her friends rather than exercising any personal predilection in his favour.

These had been carefully prepared under the review of Sir William Ashton himself, as it was decided, due to Miss Ashton’s health, that only the parties directly involved would be present when the documents were signed. It was also determined that the wedding would take place on the fourth day after signing the articles, a decision made by Lady Ashton, so that Lucy would have as little time as possible to back out or fall back into stubbornness. However, there was no sign of her doing either. She reacted to the proposed arrangement with a calm indifference that felt like despair, or rather with an apathy that came from being overwhelmed and numb. To the unobservant eye of Bucklaw, her demeanor showed little more reluctance than what would be expected from a shy young woman, who, however, he couldn’t deny was going along with her friends' choice rather than showing any real preference for him.

When the morning compliment of the bridegroom had been paid, Miss Ashton was left for some time to herself; her mother remarking, that the deeds must be signed before the hour of noon, in order that the marriage might be happy. Lucy suffered herself to be attired for the occasion as the taste of her attendants suggested, and was of course splendidly arrayed. Her dress was composed of white satin and Brussels lace, and her hair arranged with a profusion of jewels, whose lustre made a strange contrast to the deadly paleness of her complexion, and to the trouble which dwelt in her unsettled eye.

When the bridegroom had given his morning compliments, Miss Ashton was left alone for a while; her mother pointed out that the documents needed to be signed before noon for the marriage to be blessed. Lucy allowed herself to be dressed for the occasion according to her attendants' preferences, and of course, she looked stunning. Her gown was made of white satin and Brussels lace, and her hair was styled with an abundance of jewels, whose shine created a striking contrast to her pale complexion and the distress reflected in her restless eyes.

Her toilette was hardly finished ere Henry appeared, to conduct the passive bride to the state apartment, where all was prepared for signing the contract. “Do you know, sister,” he said, “I am glad you are to have Bucklaw after all, instead of Ravenswood, who looked like a Spanish grandee come to cut our throats and trample our bodies under foot. And I am glad the broad seas are between us this day, for I shall never forget how frightened I was when I took him for the picture of old Sir Malise walked out of the canvas. Tell me true, are you not glad to be fairly shot of him?”

Her makeup was hardly done when Henry showed up to take the passive bride to the main room, where everything was ready for signing the contract. “You know, sister,” he said, “I’m really glad you’re ending up with Bucklaw instead of Ravenswood, who looked like a Spanish noble here to slit our throats and walk over our bodies. And I’m thankful the wide ocean is between us today because I’ll never forget how scared I was when I mistook him for the image of old Sir Malise stepping out of the painting. Tell me honestly, aren’t you relieved to be done with him?”

“Ask me no questions, dear Henry,” said his unfortunate sister; “there is little more can happen to make me either glad or sorry in this world.”

“Don't ask me any questions, dear Henry,” said his unfortunate sister; “there's not much more that can happen to make me either happy or sad in this world.”

“And that’s what all young brides say,” said Henry; “and so do not be cast down, Lucy, for you’ll tell another tale a twelvemonth hence; and I am to be bride’s-man, and ride before you to the kirk; and all our kith, kin, and allies, and all Bucklaw’s, are to be mounted and in order; and I am to have a scarlet laced coat, and a feathered hat, and a sword-belt, double bordered with gold, and point d’espagne, and a dagger instead of a sword; and I should like a sword much better, but my father won’t hear of it. All my things, and a hundred besides, are to come out from Edinburgh to-night with old Gilbert and the sumpter mules; and I will bring them and show them to you the instant they come.”

“And that’s what every young bride says,” said Henry; “so don’t be discouraged, Lucy, because you’ll have a different story to tell a year from now. I’m going to be the best man and ride ahead of you to the church; all our family and friends, along with all of Bucklaw's, will be mounted and in line; I’ll have a scarlet laced coat, a feathered hat, and a gold-trimmed sword belt, along with a dagger instead of a sword. I’d really prefer a sword, but my father won’t allow it. All my stuff, plus a hundred more things, is coming from Edinburgh tonight with old Gilbert and the pack mules; I’ll bring everything to you as soon as it arrives.”

The boy’s chatter was here interrupted by the arrival of Lady Ashton, somewhat alarmed at her daughter’s stay. With one of her sweetest smiles, she took Lucy’s arm under her own.

The boy's chatter was interrupted by Lady Ashton arriving, a bit worried about how long her daughter had been gone. With one of her sweetest smiles, she took Lucy’s arm and wrapped it around her own.

There were only present, Sir William Ashton and Colonel Douglas Ashton, the last in full regimentals; Bucklaw, in bridegroom trim; Craigengelt, freshly equipt from top to toe by the bounty of his patron, and bedizened with as much lace as might have become the dress of the Copper Captain; together with the Rev. Mr. Bide-the-Bent; the presence of a minister being, in strict Presbyterian families, an indispensable requisite upon all occasions of unusual solemnity.

There were only Sir William Ashton and Colonel Douglas Ashton present, the latter dressed in full military uniform; Bucklaw was in groom's attire; Craigengelt was decked out from head to toe thanks to his patron's generosity, adorned with as much lace as would suit the outfit of the Copper Captain; along with Rev. Mr. Bide-the-Bent, because having a minister was, in strict Presbyterian families, an essential requirement for any unusual solemn occasion.

Wines and refreshments were placed on a table, on which the writings were displayed, ready for signature.

Wines and drinks were set out on a table, along with the documents, all ready to be signed.

But before proceeding either to business or refreshment, Mr. Bide-the-Bent, at a signal from Sir William Ashton, invited the company to join him in a short extemporary prayer, in which he implored a blessing upon the contract now to be solemnised between the honourable parties then present. With the simplicity of his times and profession, which permitted strong personal allusions, he petitioned that the wounded mind of one of these noble parties might be healed, in reward of her compliance with the advice of her right honourable parents; and that, as she had proved herself a child after God’s commandment, by honouring her father and mother, she and hers might enjoy the promised blessing—length of days in the land here, and a happy portion hereafter in a better country. He prayed farther, that the bridegroom might be weaned from those follies which seduced youth from the path of knowledge; that he might cease to take delight in vain and unprofitable company, scoffers, rioters, and those who sit late at the wine (here Bucklaw winked at Craigengelt), and cease from the society that causeth to err. A suitable supplication in behalf of Sir William and Lady Ashton and their family concluded this religious address, which thus embraced every individual present excepting Craigengelt, whom the worthy divine probably considered as past all hopes of grace.

But before moving on to business or refreshments, Mr. Bide-the-Bent, at a nod from Sir William Ashton, asked everyone to join him in a quick, spontaneous prayer. He asked for blessings upon the contract about to be made between the honorable parties present. With the straightforwardness typical of his time and profession, which allowed for direct personal references, he prayed that the troubled heart of one of these noble individuals might be healed as a reward for following the advice of her esteemed parents. He noted that since she had honored her father and mother as God commands, she and her family might enjoy the promised blessing—long life in this land and happiness in a better one to come. He also prayed that the groom would be distanced from the distractions that lead young people away from knowledge; that he would stop finding joy in shallow, unproductive company, mockers, party-goers, and those who indulge late into the night with wine (here Bucklaw winked at Craigengelt), and that he would avoid associations that lead to downfall. The prayer wrapped up with a suitable request for Sir William, Lady Ashton, and their family, embracing everyone present except for Craigengelt, whom the good minister likely considered beyond redemption.

The business of the day now went forward: Sir William Ashton signed the contract with legal solemnity and precision; his son, with military nonchalance; and Bucklaw, having subscribed as rapidly as Craigengelt could manage to turn the leaves, concluded by wiping his pen on that worthy’s new laced cravat. It was now Miss Ashton’s turn to sign the writings, and she was guided by her watchful mother to the table for that purpose. At her first attempt, she began to write with a dry pen, and when the circumstance was pointed out, seemed unable, after several attempts, to dip it in the massive silver ink-standish, which stood full before her. Lady Ashton’s vigilance hastened to supply the deficiency. I have myself seen the fatal deed, and in the distinct characters in which the name of Lucy Ashton is traced on each page there is only a very slight tremulous irregularity, indicative of her state of mind at the time of the subscription. But the last signature is incomplete, defaced, and blotted; for, while her hand was employed in tracing it, the hasty tramp of a horse was heard at the gate, succeeded by a step in the outer gallery, and a voice which, in a commanding tone, bore down the opposition of the menials. The pen dropped from Lucy’s fingers, as she exclaimed with a faint shriek: “He is come—he is come!”

The business of the day continued: Sir William Ashton signed the contract with legal formality and precision; his son did so with military casualness; and Bucklaw, after signing as quickly as Craigengelt could turn the pages, finished by wiping his pen on that gentleman’s new laced cravat. It was now Miss Ashton’s turn to sign the documents, and her watchful mother guided her to the table for that purpose. On her first attempt, she tried to write with a dry pen, and when this was pointed out, she seemed unable, after several attempts, to dip it in the heavy silver inkstand sitting right in front of her. Lady Ashton’s keen eye rushed to fix the issue. I’ve seen the fateful deed myself, and in the clear handwriting of Lucy Ashton on each page, there’s only a slight shaky irregularity, showing her state of mind at the time of the signing. But the last signature is incomplete, messed up, and smeared; for, while she was trying to write it, the hurried sound of a horse was heard at the gate, followed by a step in the outer hallway, and a voice that, in a commanding tone, overpowered the objections of the servants. The pen slipped from Lucy’s fingers as she exclaimed with a faint cry: “He has come—he has come!”

CHAPTER XXXIII.

This by his tongue should be a Montague!
Fetch me my rapier, boy;
Now, by the faith and honour of my kin,
To strike him dead I hold it not a sin.

Romeo and Juliet.

This guy must be a Montague!
Get me my rapier, kid;
Now, by the faith and honor of my family,
I don’t see it as a sin to kill him.

Romeo and Juliet.

Hardly had Miss Ashton dropped the pen, when the door of the apartment flew open, and the Master of Ravenswood entered the apartment.

Hardly had Miss Ashton put down the pen when the apartment door swung open, and the Master of Ravenswood walked in.

Lockhard and another domestic, who had in vain attempted to oppose his passage through the gallery or antechamber, were seen standing on the threshold transfixed with surprise, which was instantly communicated to the whole party in the state-room. That of Colonel Douglas Ashton was mingled with resentment; that of Bucklaw with haughty and affected indifference; the rest, even Lady Ashton herself, showed signs of fear; and Lucy seemed stiffened to stone by this unexpected apparition. Apparition it might well be termed, for Ravenswood had more the appearance of one returned from the dead than of a living visitor.

Lockhard and another servant, who had unsuccessfully tried to block his way through the hallway, were seen standing at the doorway, frozen in shock. Their surprise quickly spread to everyone in the room. Colonel Douglas Ashton looked both angry and surprised; Bucklaw appeared haughty and pretended to be indifferent; the rest of the group, including Lady Ashton, showed signs of fear; and Lucy seemed petrified by this sudden appearance. It could truly be called an apparition, for Ravenswood looked more like someone who had risen from the dead than a living person.

He planted himself full in the middle of the apartment, opposite to the table at which Lucy was seated, on whom, as if she had been alone in the chamber, he bent his eyes with a mingled expression of deep grief and deliberate indignation. His dark-coloured riding cloak, displaced from one shoulder, hung around one side of his person in the ample folds of the Spanish mantle. The rest of his rich dress was travel-soiled, and deranged by hard riding. He had a sword by his side, and pistols in his belt. His slouched hat, which he had not removed at entrance, gave an additional gloom to his dark features, which, wasted by sorrow and marked by the ghastly look communicated by long illness, added to a countenance naturally somewhat stern and wild a fierce and even savage expression. The matted and dishevelled locks of hair which escaped from under his hat, together with his fixed and unmoved posture, made his head more resemble that of a marble bust than that of a living man. He said not a single word, and there was a deep silence in the company for more than two minutes.

He positioned himself right in the middle of the apartment, directly across from the table where Lucy sat, staring at her as if she were the only person in the room, his expression a mix of deep sorrow and intense anger. His dark riding cloak, slipping off one shoulder, hung down one side of him in the loose folds of a Spanish mantle. The rest of his elegant outfit was travel-worn and disheveled from rough riding. He carried a sword at his side and had pistols in his belt. His slouched hat, which he hadn’t taken off upon entering, added to the somberness of his dark features, which were gaunt from grief and marked by the pale complexion that came from long illness. This gave his face, which was already somewhat stern and wild, a fierce and almost savage look. The tangled and messy hair that poked out from under his hat, combined with his still and unmoving stance, made his head seem more like a marble statue than a living man. He didn’t say a word, and there was a heavy silence in the room for over two minutes.

It was broken by Lady Ashton, who in that space partly recovered her natural audacity. She demanded to know the cause of this unauthorised intrusion.

It was interrupted by Lady Ashton, who during that time partly regained her natural boldness. She asked what was the reason for this unauthorized intrusion.

“That is a question, madam,” said her son, “which I have the best right to ask; and I must request of the Master of Ravenswood to follow me where he can answer it at leisure.”

“That is a question, ma'am,” her son said, “that I have the best right to ask; and I must ask the Master of Ravenswood to follow me where he can answer it at his convenience.”

Bucklaw interposed, saying, “No man on earth should usurp his previous right in demanding an explanation from the Master. Craigengelt,” he added, in an undertone, “d—n ye, why do you stand staring as if you saw a ghost? fetch me my sword from the gallery.”

Bucklaw interjected, saying, “No one on earth should take away his right to demand an explanation from the Master. Craigengelt,” he added quietly, “damn you, why are you standing there staring like you’ve seen a ghost? Go get my sword from the gallery.”

“I will relinquish to none,” said Colonel Ashton, “my right of calling to account the man who has offered this unparalleled affront to my family.”

“I won’t give up,” said Colonel Ashton, “my right to hold accountable the man who has delivered this unprecedented insult to my family.”

“Be patient, gentlemen,” said Ravenswood, turning sternly towards them, and waving his hand as if to impose silence on their altercation. “If you are as weary of your lives as I am, I will find time and place to pledge mine against one or both; at present, I have no leisure for the disputes of triflers.”

“Be patient, guys,” Ravenswood said, turning seriously toward them and waving his hand to silence their argument. “If you’re as tired of your lives as I am, I’ll make time and a place to wager mine against one or both of you; right now, I don’t have time for the arguments of fools.”

“Triflers!” echoed Colonel Ashton, half unsheathing his sword, while Bucklaw laid his hand on the hilt of that which Craigengelt had just reached him.

“Triflers!” shouted Colonel Ashton, partially drawing his sword, while Bucklaw placed his hand on the hilt of the one that Craigengelt had just handed him.

Sir William Ashton, alarmed for his son’s safety, rushed between the young men and Ravenswood, exclaiming: “My son, I command you—Bucklaw, I entreat you—keep the peace, in the name of the Queen and of the law!”

Sir William Ashton, worried about his son's safety, rushed between the young men and Ravenswood, shouting: “My son, I order you—Bucklaw, I beg you—stay calm, in the name of the Queen and the law!”

“In the name of the law of God,” said Bide-the-Bent, advancing also with uplifted hands between Bucklaw, the Colonel, and the object of their resentment—“in the name of Him who brought peace on earth and good-will to mankind, I implore—I beseech—I command you to forbear violence towards each other! God hateth the bloodthirsty man; he who striketh with the sword shall perish with the sword.”

“In the name of God's law,” said Bide-the-Bent, stepping forward with raised hands between Bucklaw, the Colonel, and their target of anger—“in the name of Him who brought peace to the world and goodwill to everyone, I beg—I urge—I command you to stop the violence against each other! God despises those who are bloodthirsty; whoever strikes with a sword will die by the sword.”

“Do you take me for a dog, sir” said Colonel Ashton, turning fiercely upon him, “or something more brutally stupid, to endure this insult in my father’s house? Let me go, Bucklaw! He shall account to me, or, by Heavens, I will stab him where he stands!”

“Do you think I'm some kind of dog, sir?” Colonel Ashton said, turning angrily toward him. “Or something even more foolish to put up with this insult in my father’s house? Let me go, Bucklaw! He’ll have to answer to me, or I swear I’ll stab him right where he stands!”

“You shall not touch him here,” said Bucklaw; “he once gave me my life, and were he the devil come to fly away with the whole house and generation, he shall have nothing but fair play.”

“You can’t touch him here,” Bucklaw said; “he once saved my life, and even if he were the devil coming to take the whole house and everyone in it, he deserves nothing but fair treatment.”

The passions of the two young men thus counteracting each other gave Ravenswood leisure to exclaim, in a stern and steady voice: “Silence!—let him who really seeks danger take the fitting time when it is to be found; my mission here will be shortly accomplished. Is that your handwriting, madam?” he added in a softer tone, extending towards Miss Ashton her last letter.

The conflicting emotions of the two young men allowed Ravenswood the opportunity to say in a firm and calm voice: “Be quiet!—let anyone who truly wants danger choose the right moment when it comes; my task here will soon be done. Is that your handwriting, miss?” he added more gently, handing Miss Ashton her last letter.

A faltering “Yes” seemed rather to escape from her lips than to be uttered as a voluntary answer.

A hesitant "Yes" seemed to slip from her lips rather than being spoken as a deliberate response.

“And is this also your handwriting?” extending towards her the mutual engagement.

“And is this also your handwriting?” extending towards her the mutual engagement.

Lucy remained silent. Terror, and a yet stronger and more confused feeling, so utterly disturbed her understanding that she probably scarcely comprehended the question that was put to her.

Lucy stayed quiet. Fear, along with an even stronger and more confusing emotion, disturbed her mind so much that she probably barely understood the question being asked.

“If you design,” said Sir William Ashton, “to found any legal claim on that paper, sir, do not expect to receive any answer to an extrajudicial question.”

“If you plan,” said Sir William Ashton, “to base any legal claim on that paper, don’t expect to get a response to a question outside of the courts.”

“Sir William Ashton,” said Ravenswood, “I pray you, and all who hear me, that you will not mistake my purpose. If this young lady, of her own free will, desires the restoration of this contract, as her letter would seem to imply, there is not a withered leaf which this autumn wind strews on the heath that is more valueless in my eyes. But I must and will hear the truth from her own mouth; without this satisfaction I will not leave this spot. Murder me by numbers you possibly may; but I am an armed man—I am a desperate man, and I will not die without ample vengeance. This is my resolution, take it as you may. I WILL hear her determination from her own mouth; from her own mouth, alone, and without witnesses, will I hear it. Now, choose,” he said, drawing his sword with the right hand, and, with the left, by the same motion taking a pistol from his belt and cocking it, but turning the point of one weapon and the muzzle of the other to the ground—“choose if you will have this hall floated with blood, or if you will grant me the decisive interview with my affianced bride which the laws of God and the country alike entitle me to demand.”

“Sir William Ashton,” Ravenswood said, “I urge you, and everyone here, not to misunderstand my intentions. If this young lady, of her own free will, wishes to restore this contract, as her letter suggests, then not even a withered leaf that this autumn wind blows across the heath holds any value for me. But I must hear the truth from her directly; without that, I will not leave this place. You might be able to kill me in numbers, but I am an armed man—I am a desperate man, and I won’t die without seeking my revenge. This is my resolve, take it as you wish. I WILL hear her decision from her own lips; from her own lips only, and without witnesses. Now, choose,” he said, drawing his sword with one hand while taking a pistol from his belt and cocking it with the other, but pointing both weapons toward the ground—“decide if you want this hall to be filled with blood, or if you will allow me the meeting with my fiancé that the laws of God and the country both entitle me to demand.”


All recoiled at the sound of his voice and the determined action by which it was accompanied; for the ecstasy of real desperation seldom fails to overpower the less energetic passions by which it may be opposed. The clergyman was the first to speak. “In the name of God,” he said, “receive an overture of peace from the meanest of His servants. What this honourable person demands, albeit it is urged with over violence, hath yet in it something of reason. Let him hear from Miss Lucy’s own lips that she hath dutifully acceded to the will of her parents, and repenteth her of her covenant with him; and when he is assured of this he will depart in peace unto his own dwelling, and cumber us no more. Alas! the workings of the ancient Adam are strong even in the regenerate; surely we should have long-suffering with those who, being yet in the gall of bitterness and bond of iniquity, are swept forward by the uncontrollable current of worldly passion. Let then, the Master of Ravenswood have the interview on which he insisteth; it can but be as a passing pang to this honourable maiden, since her faith is now irrevocably pledged to the choice of her parents. Let it, I say, be this: it belongeth to my functions to entreat your honours’ compliance with this headling overture.”

Everyone flinched at the sound of his voice and the firm action that accompanied it; for the intense feeling of real desperation often eclipses the less powerful emotions that might counter it. The clergyman was the first to speak. “In the name of God,” he said, “accept a gesture of peace from the least of His servants. What this honorable person is demanding, even if it is pushed with great force, does contain some reason. Let him hear from Miss Lucy’s own words that she has obediently agreed to her parents' wishes and regrets her promise to him; and once he is assured of this, he will leave in peace to his own home and trouble us no more. Alas! the influence of the old Adam is strong even in the changed; surely we should be patient with those who, still caught in the bitterness and bondage of sin, are swept along by the relentless flow of worldly desire. So let the Master of Ravenswood have the meeting he insists on; it can only be a fleeting moment of pain for this honorable young woman, since her commitment is now firmly with her parents’ choice. Let it be, I say; it is my duty to ask for your honors’ agreement to this initial offer.”

“Never!” answered Lady Ashton, whose rage had now overcome her first surprise and terror—“never shall this man speak in private with my daughter, the affianced bride of another! pass from this room who will, I remain here. I fear neither his violence nor his weapons, though some,” she said, glancing a look towards Colonel Ashton, “who bear my name appear more moved by them.”

“Never!” replied Lady Ashton, her anger now overshadowing her initial shock and fear. “This man will never speak alone with my daughter, who is engaged to someone else! Anyone who wants to leave this room can go, but I will stay here. I’m not afraid of his aggression or his weapons, even if some,” she said, glancing at Colonel Ashton, “who share my name seem to be more affected by them.”

“For God’s sake, madam,” answered the worthy divine, “add not fuel to firebrands. The Master of Ravenswood cannot, I am sure, object to your presence, the young lady’s state of health being considered, and your maternal duty. I myself will also tarry; peradventure my grey hairs may turn away wrath.”

“For goodness’ sake, ma’am,” replied the respectable clergyman, “don’t add fuel to the fire. The Master of Ravenswood surely won’t object to your being here, given the young lady’s health and your role as a mother. I’ll stay too; maybe my gray hairs will calm things down.”

“You are welcome to do so, sir,” said Ravenswood; “and Lady Ashton is also welcome to remain, if she shall think proper; but let all others depart.”

“You're welcome to do that, sir,” said Ravenswood; “and Lady Ashton can stay if she wants; but everyone else should leave.”

“Ravenswood,” said Colonel Ashton, crossing him as he went out, “you shall account for this ere long.”

“Ravenswood,” Colonel Ashton said as he passed by him on his way out, “you'll have to answer for this soon.”

“When you please,” replied Ravenswood.

"Whenever you're ready," replied Ravenswood.

“But I,” said Bucklaw, with a half smile, “have a prior demand on your leisure, a claim of some standing.”

“But I,” said Bucklaw, with a half-smile, “have a prior claim on your time, one that’s been around for a while.”

“Arrange it as you will,” said Ravenswood; “leave me but this day in peace, and I will have no dearer employment on earth to-morrow than to give you all the satisfaction you can desire.”

“Do it however you like,” said Ravenswood; “just leave me in peace today, and I will have no better job tomorrow than to give you all the satisfaction you could want.”

The other gentlemen left the apartment; but Sir William Ashton lingered.

The other guys left the apartment, but Sir William Ashton stayed behind.

“Master of Ravenswood,” he said, in a conciliating tone, “I think I have not deserved that you should make this scandal and outrage in my family. If you will sheathe your sword, and retire with me into my study, I will prove to you, by the most satisfactory arguments, the inutility of your present irregular procedure——”

“Master of Ravenswood,” he said in a calming tone, “I believe I don't deserve for you to cause this scandal and trouble in my family. If you will put away your sword and come with me to my study, I will show you, with the clearest arguments, how pointless your current actions are——”

“To-morrow, sir—to-morrow—to-morrow, I will hear you at length,” reiterated Ravenswood, interrupting him; “this day hath its own sacred and indispensable business.”

“To-morrow, sir—to-morrow—to-morrow, I will listen to you at length,” Ravenswood interrupted him. “Today has its own important and necessary matters.”

He pointed to the door, and Sir William left the apartment.

He pointed to the door, and Sir William walked out of the apartment.

Ravenswood sheathed his sword, uncocked and returned his pistol to his belt; walked deliberately to the door of the apartment, which he bolted; returned, raised his hat from his forehead, and gazing upon Lucy with eyes in which an expression of sorrow overcame their late fierceness, spread his dishevelled locks back from his face, and said, “Do you know me, Miss Ashton? I am still Edgar Ravenswood.” She was silent, and he went on with increasing vehemence: “I am still that Edgar Ravenswood who, for your affection, renounced the dear ties by which injured honour bound him to seek vengeance. I am that Ravenswood who, for your sake, forgave, nay, clasped hands in friendship with, the oppressor and pillager of his house, the traducer and murderer of his father.”

Ravenswood sheathed his sword, uncocked and returned his pistol to his belt; walked deliberately to the door of the apartment, which he locked; came back, lifted his hat from his forehead, and looking at Lucy with eyes where sorrow replaced their previous fierceness, brushed his disheveled hair back from his face and said, “Do you recognize me, Miss Ashton? I am still Edgar Ravenswood.” She stayed silent, and he continued with increasing intensity: “I am still that Edgar Ravenswood who, for your love, gave up the precious bonds that honor forced him to seek revenge. I am that Ravenswood who, for your sake, forgave, even shook hands in friendship with, the oppressor and plunderer of his family, the slanderer and murderer of his father.”

“My daughter,” answered Lady Ashton, interrupting him, “has no occasion to dispute the identity of your person; the venom of your present language is sufficient to remind her that she speaks with the mortal enemy of her father.”

“My daughter,” Lady Ashton said, cutting him off, “has no reason to question who you are; the bitterness of your words is enough to remind her that she’s speaking with her father's sworn enemy.”

“I pray you to be patient, madam,” answered Ravenswood; “my answer must come from her own lips. Once more, Miss Lucy Ashton, I am that Ravenswood to whom you granted the solemn engagement which you now desire to retract and cancel.”

“I ask you to be patient, ma'am,” replied Ravenswood; “my answer has to come from her directly. Once again, Miss Lucy Ashton, I am that Ravenswood to whom you gave the serious commitment that you now wish to take back and cancel.”

Lucy’s bloodless lips could only falter out the words, “It was my mother.”

Lucy’s pale lips could barely whisper the words, “It was my mom.”

“She speaks truly,” said Lady Ashton, “it was I who, authorised alike by the laws of God and man, advised her, and concurred with her, to set aside an unhappy and precipitate engagement, and to annul it by the authority of Scripture itself.”

“She’s speaking the truth,” said Lady Ashton, “it was me who, backed by the laws of God and man, advised her, and agreed with her, to end an unhappy and rushed engagement, and to cancel it by the authority of Scripture itself.”

“Scripture!” said Ravenswood, scornfully.

“Scripture!” Ravenswood said, scornfully.

“Let him hear the text,” said Lady Ashton, appealing to the divine, “on which you yourself, with cautious reluctance, declared the nullity of the pretended engagement insisted upon by this violent man.”

“Let him hear the text,” said Lady Ashton, appealing to the divine, “on which you yourself, with careful hesitation, stated the invalidity of the supposed engagement demanded by this aggressive man.”

The clergyman took his clasped Bible from his pocket, and read the following words: “If a woman vow a vow unto the Lord, and bind herself by a bond, being in her father’s house in her youth, and her father hear her vow, and her bond wherewith she hath bound her soul, and her father shall hold his peace at her; then all her vows shall stand, and every vow wherewith she hath bound her soul shall stand.”

The clergyman took his closed Bible from his pocket and read these words: “If a woman makes a vow to the Lord and commits herself while living at home with her father in her youth, and her father hears her vow and the commitment she has made, but he says nothing about it; then all her vows will be valid, and every promise she has made will be upheld.”

“And was it not even so with us?” interrrupted Ravenswood.

“And wasn't it the same with us?” interrupted Ravenswood.

“Control thy impatience, young man,” answered the divine, “and hear what follows in the sacred text: ‘But if her father disallow her in the day that he heareth, not any of her vows, or of her bonds wherewith she hath bound her soul, shall stand; and the Lord shall forgive her, because her father disallowed her.”

“Calm your impatience, young man,” replied the divine, “and listen to what follows in the sacred text: ‘But if her father disapproves on the day he hears, none of her vows or the promises she has made will count; and the Lord will forgive her because her father disapproved.’”

“And was not,” said Lady Ashton, fiercely and triumphantly breaking in—“was not ours the case stated in the Holy Writ? Will this person deny, that the instant her parents heard of the vow, or bond, by which our daughter had bound her soul, we disallowed the same in the most express terms, and informed him by writing of our determination?”

“And wasn’t it,” Lady Ashton said, fiercely and triumphantly interrupting, “wasn’t our case mentioned in the scriptures? Will anyone deny that as soon as her parents found out about the vow that our daughter had made to bind her soul, we rejected it in the clearest terms and informed him of our decision in writing?”

“And is this all?” said Ravenswood, looking at Lucy. “Are you willing to barter sworn faith, the exercise of free will, and the feelings of mutual affection to this wretched hypocritical sophistry?”

“And is this it?” said Ravenswood, looking at Lucy. “Are you really willing to trade your sworn loyalty, your free will, and the feelings we share for this wretched, hypocritical nonsense?”

“Hear him!” said Lady Ashton, looking to the clergyman—“hear the blasphemer!”

“Hear him!” said Lady Ashton, looking at the clergyman—“hear the blasphemer!”

“May God forgive him,” said Bide-the-Bent, “and enlighten his ignorance!”

“May God forgive him,” said Bide-the-Bent, “and enlighten his ignorance!”

“Hear what I have sacrificed for you,” said Ravenswood, still addressing Lucy, “ere you sanction what has been done in your name. The honour of an ancient family, the urgent advice of my best friends, have been in vain used to sway my resolution; neither the arguments of reason nor the portents of superstition have shaken my fidelity. The very dead have arisen to warn me, and their warning has been despised. Are you prepared to pierce my heart for its fidelity with the very weapon which my rash confidence entrusted to your grasp?”

“Hear what I’ve given up for you,” said Ravenswood, still speaking to Lucy, “before you approve what has been done in your name. The honor of an old family and the urgent advice of my closest friends have failed to change my mind; neither the reasoning nor the signs of superstition have shaken my loyalty. Even the dead have come back to warn me, and their warning has been ignored. Are you ready to stab my heart for its loyalty with the very weapon that my foolish trust put into your hands?”

“Master of Ravenswood,” said Lady Ashton, “you have asked what questions you thought fit. You see the total incapacity of my daughter to answer you. But I will reply for her, and in a manner which you cannot dispute. You desire to know whether Lucy Ashton, of her own free will, desires to annul the engagement into which she has been trepanned. You have her letter under her own hand, demanding the surrender of it; and, in yet more full evidence of her purpose, here is the contract which she has this morning subscribed, in presence of this reverend gentleman, with Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw.”

“Master of Ravenswood,” said Lady Ashton, “you’ve asked your questions. You can see that my daughter is completely unable to answer you. But I will speak for her, and in a way you can’t dispute. You want to know if Lucy Ashton, of her own free will, wishes to end the engagement she was tricked into. You have her letter, written in her own hand, requesting it be canceled; and to further prove her intention, here is the contract she signed this morning, in front of this respected gentleman and Mr. Hayston of Bucklaw.”

Ravenswood gazed upon the deed as if petrified. “And it was without fraud or compulsion,” said he, looking towards the clergyman, “that Miss Ashton subscribed this parchment?”

Ravenswood stared at the deed, nearly frozen. “And it was without any deceit or pressure,” he asked the clergyman, “that Miss Ashton signed this document?”

“I couch it upon my sacred character.”

"I base it on my sacred character."

“This is indeed, madam, an undeniable piece of evidence,” said Ravenswood, sternly; “and it will be equally unnecessary and dishonourable to waste another word in useless remonstrance or reproach. There, madam,” he said, laying down before Lucy the signed paper and the broken piece of gold—“there are the evidences of your first engagement; may you be more faithful to that which you have just formed. I will trouble you to return the corresponding tokens of my ill-placed confidence; I ought rather to say, of my egregious folly.”

"This is definitely, ma'am, undeniable evidence," Ravenswood said firmly. "It would be pointless and dishonorable to waste another word on useless complaints or blame. Here, ma'am," he said, placing the signed paper and the broken piece of gold in front of Lucy, "are the signs of your first commitment; I hope you are more loyal to the one you just made. I would appreciate it if you could return the tokens of my misplaced trust; I should say, my ridiculous mistake."

Lucy returned the scornful glance of her lover with a gaze from which perception seemed to have been banished; yet she seemed partly to have understood his meaning, for she raised her hands as if to undo a blue ribbon which she wore around her neck. She was unable to accomplish her purpose, but Lady Ashton cut the ribbon asunder, and detached the broken piece of gold, which Miss Ashton had till then worn concealed in her bosom; the written counterpart of the lovers’ engagement she for some time had had in her own possession. With a haughty courtesy, she delivered both to Ravenswood, who was much softened when he took the piece of gold.

Lucy met her lover’s disdainful look with a blank stare, as if she couldn't grasp anything. Still, she seemed to partly understand what he meant, raising her hands as if to untie a blue ribbon she wore around her neck. She couldn't manage to do it, but Lady Ashton cut the ribbon and removed the broken piece of gold that Miss Ashton had been hiding in her dress; it was the written copy of the lovers' engagement that she had kept for a while. With a proud politeness, she handed both items to Ravenswood, who felt much more moved when he took the piece of gold.

“And she could wear it thus,” he said, speaking to himself—“could wear it in her very bosom—could wear it next to her heart—even when—But complaint avails not,” he said, dashing from his eye the tear which had gathered in it, and resuming the stern composure of his manner. He strode to the chimney, and threw into the fire the paper and piece of gold, stamping upon the coals with the heel of his boot, as if to ensure their destruction. “I will be no longer,” he then said, “an intruder here. Your evil wishes, and your worse offices, Lady Ashton, I will only return by hoping these will be your last machinations against your daughter’s honour and happiness. And to you, madam,” he said, addressing Lucy, “I have nothing farther to say, except to pray to God that you may not become a world’s wonder for this act of wilful and deliberate perjury.” Having uttered these words, he turned on his heel and left the apartment.

“And she could wear it like this,” he said to himself—“could wear it right against her chest—could wear it next to her heart—even when—But lamenting won’t help,” he said, wiping away the tear that had formed in his eye and regaining his stern composure. He walked over to the fireplace and tossed the paper and piece of gold into the flames, stamping on the coals with the heel of his boot as if to make sure they were burned completely. “I will no longer be an intruder here,” he then said, “Your malicious intentions and your even worse actions, Lady Ashton, I will only respond to by hoping these will be your last schemes against your daughter’s honor and happiness. And to you, madam,” he said, addressing Lucy, “I have nothing more to say, except to pray to God that you do not become a spectacle for this act of willful and deliberate perjury.” After saying this, he turned on his heel and left the room.

Sir William Ashton, by entreaty and authority, had detained his son and Bucklaw in a distant part of the castle, in order to prevent their again meeting with Ravenswood; but as the Master descended the great staircase, Lockhard delivered him a billet, signed “Sholto Douglas Ashton,” requesting to know where the Master of Ravenswood would be heard of four or five days from hence, as the writer had business of weight to settle with him, so soon as an important family event had taken place.

Sir William Ashton, using both pleading and his position, had kept his son and Bucklaw in a remote section of the castle to keep them from running into Ravenswood again. However, as the Master was coming down the grand staircase, Lockhard handed him a note signed “Sholto Douglas Ashton,” asking where the Master of Ravenswood could be found four or five days later, as the writer had important matters to discuss with him once a significant family event had occurred.

“Tell Colonel Ashton,” said Ravenswood, composedly, “I shall be found at Wolf’s Crag when his leisure serves him.”

“Tell Colonel Ashton,” said Ravenswood calmly, “I’ll be at Wolf’s Crag when he’s free.”

As he descended the outward stair which led from the terrace, he was a second time interrupted by Craigengelt, who, on the part of his principal, the Laird of Bucklaw, expressed a hope that Ravenswood would not leave Scotland within ten days at least, as he had both former and recent civilities for which to express his gratitude.

As he went down the outside stairs from the terrace, he was interrupted again by Craigengelt, who, on behalf of his boss, the Laird of Bucklaw, hoped that Ravenswood wouldn’t leave Scotland for at least ten days, as he had both past and recent kindnesses to thank him for.

“Tell your master,” said Ravenswood, fiercely, “to choose his own time. He will find me at Wolf’s Crag, if his purpose is not forestalled.”

“Tell your boss,” said Ravenswood, fiercely, “to pick his own time. He’ll find me at Wolf’s Crag if his plan isn’t stopped first.”

My master!” replied Craigengelt, encouraged by seeing Colonel Ashton and Bucklaw at the bottom of the terrace. “Give me leave to say I know of no such person upon earth, nor will I permit such language to be used to me!”

My master!” replied Craigengelt, feeling more confident as he spotted Colonel Ashton and Bucklaw at the bottom of the terrace. “Let me be clear, I don’t know anyone like that on this planet, and I won’t allow anyone to speak to me like that!”

“Seek your master, then, in hell!” exclaimed Ravenswood, giving way to the passion he had hitherto restrained, and throwing Craigengelt from him with such violence that he rolled down the steps and lay senseless at the foot of them. “I am a fool,” he instantly added, “to vent my passion upon a caitiff so worthless.”

“Go find your master in hell!” shouted Ravenswood, finally giving in to the anger he had been holding back and throwing Craigengelt away from him with such force that he tumbled down the steps and lay unconscious at the bottom. “I’m such a fool,” he quickly added, “for wasting my anger on a scoundrel so insignificant.”

He then mounted his horse, which at his arrival he had secured to a balustrade in front of the castle, rode very slowly past Bucklaw and Colonel Ashton, raising his hat as he passed each, and looking in their faces steadily while he offered this mute salutation, which was returned by both with the same stern gravity. Ravenswood walked on with equal deliberation until he reached the head of the avenue, as if to show that he rather courted than avoided interruption. When he had passed the upper gate, he turned his horse, and looked at the castle with a fixed eye; then set spurs to his good steed, and departed with the speed of a demon dismissed by the exorcist.

He then got on his horse, which he had tied to a railing in front of the castle upon his arrival. He rode slowly past Bucklaw and Colonel Ashton, tipping his hat as he went by each one, looking them in the eye while he offered this silent greeting, which both returned with the same serious demeanor. Ravenswood continued with equal slowness until he reached the end of the driveway, as if he preferred to welcome interruption rather than avoid it. After passing through the upper gate, he turned his horse to look at the castle intently; then he kicked his horse into a gallop and took off like a demon released by an exorcist.

CHAPTER XXXIV.

Who comes from the bridal chamber?
It is Azrael, the angel of death.

Thalaba.

Who’s coming from the bridal chamber?
It’s Azrael, the angel of death.

Thalaba.

After the dreadful scene that had taken place at the castle, Lucy was transported to her own chamber, where she remained for some time in a state of absolute stupor. Yet afterwards, in the course of the ensuing day, she seemed to have recovered, not merely her spirits and resolution, but a sort of flighty levity, that was foreign to her character and situation, and which was at times chequered by fits of deep silence and melancholy and of capricious pettishness. Lady Ashton became much alarmed and consulted the family physicians. But as her pulse indicated no change, they could only say that the disease was on the spirits, and recommended gentle exercise and amusement. Miss Ashton never alluded to what had passed in the state-room. It seemed doubtful even if she was conscious of it, for she was often observed to raise her hands to her neck, as if in search of the ribbon that had been taken from it, and mutter, in surprise and discontent, when she could not find it, “It was the link that bound me to life.”

After the terrible scene at the castle, Lucy was taken to her own room, where she remained for a while completely dazed. However, the next day, she appeared to have regained not only her spirits and determination but also a kind of lightheartedness that was unusual for her personality and circumstances, though this was sometimes interrupted by deep silence, sadness, and occasional moodiness. Lady Ashton became very worried and consulted the family doctors. But since her pulse showed no changes, they could only conclude that the issue was with her spirits and suggested gentle exercise and some fun. Miss Ashton never mentioned what had happened in the state-room. It even seemed uncertain if she was aware of it, as she was often seen raising her hands to her neck, seemingly looking for the ribbon that had been taken from it, and muttering in surprise and frustration when she couldn’t find it, “It was the link that bound me to life.”

Notwithstanding all these remarkable symptoms, Lady Ashton was too deeply pledged to delay her daughter’s marriage even in her present state of health. It cost her much trouble to keep up the fair side of appearances towards Bucklaw. She was well aware, that if he once saw any reluctance on her daughter’s part, he would break off the treaty, to her great personal shame and dishonour. She therefore resolved that, if Lucy continued passive, the marriage should take place upon the day that had been previously fixed, trusting that a change of place, of situation, and of character would operate a more speedy and effectual cure upon the unsettled spirits of her daughter than could be attained by the slow measures which the medical men recommended. Sir William Ashton’s views of family aggrandisement, and his desire to strengthen himself against the measures of the Marquis of A——, readily induced him to acquiesce in what he could not have perhaps resisted if willing to do so. As for the young men, Bucklaw and Colonel Ashton, they protested that, after what had happened, it would be most dishonourable to postpone for a single hour the time appointed for the marriage, as it would be generally ascribed to their being intimidated by the intrusive visit and threats of Ravenswood.

Despite all these striking symptoms, Lady Ashton was too committed to delay her daughter's marriage, even in her current state of health. She found it difficult to maintain a good appearance toward Bucklaw. She knew that if he sensed any hesitation from her daughter, he would call off the engagement, bringing her great personal shame and dishonor. So, she decided that if Lucy remained passive, the wedding would take place on the previously set date, hoping that a change of place, situation, and environment would help cure her daughter's unsettled spirits more quickly and effectively than the slow treatments the doctors suggested. Sir William Ashton’s ambitions for family advancement and his desire to strengthen his position against the plans of the Marquis of A—— made him readily agree to something he might not have been able to resist if he had wanted to. As for the young men, Bucklaw and Colonel Ashton, they insisted that after what had happened, it would be extremely dishonorable to postpone the wedding for even an hour, as it would be viewed as them being intimidated by Ravenswood's intrusive visit and threats.

Bucklaw would indeed have been incapable of such precipitation, had he been aware of the state of Miss Ashton’s health, or rather of her mind. But custom, upon these occasions, permitted only brief and sparing intercourse between the bridegroom and the betrothed; a circumstance so well improved by Lady Ashton, that Bucklaw neither saw nor suspected the real state of the health and feelings of his unhappy bride.

Bucklaw definitely wouldn’t have acted so rashly if he had known about Miss Ashton’s health, or more accurately, her mental state. But tradition during these times allowed only limited and brief interactions between the groom and his fiancée; a situation that Lady Ashton skillfully took advantage of, so Bucklaw neither saw nor suspected the true condition of his unfortunate bride's health and emotions.

On the eve of the bridal day, Lucy appeared to have one of her fits of levity, and surveyed with a degree of girlish interest the various preparations of dress, etc., etc., which the different members of the family had prepared for the occasion.

On the night before the wedding, Lucy seemed to be in one of her playful moods and looked with a sense of youthful curiosity at the different outfits and preparations that the various family members had made for the event.

The morning dawned bright and cheerily. The bridal guests assembled in gallant troops from distant quarters. Not only the relations of Sir William Ashton, and the still more dignified connexions of his lady, together with the numerous kinsmen and allies of the bridegroom, were present upon this joyful ceremony, gallantly mounted, arrayed, and caparisoned, but almost every Presbyterian family of distinction within fifty miles made a point of attendance upon an occasion which was considered as giving a sort of triumph over the Marquis of A——, in the person of his kinsman. Splendid refreshments awaited the guests on their arrival, and after these were finished, the cry was “To horse.” The bride was led forth betwixt her brother Henry and her mother. Her gaiety of the preceding day had given rise [place] to a deep shade of melancholy, which, however, did not misbecome an occasion so momentous. There was a light in her eyes and a colour in her cheek which had not been kindled for many a day, and which, joined to her great beauty, and the splendour of her dress, occasioned her entrance to be greeted with an universal murmur of applause, in which even the ladies could not refrain from joining. While the cavalcade were getting to horse, Sir William Ashton, a man of peace and of form, censured his son Henry for having begirt himself with a military sword of preposterous length, belonging to his brother, Colonel Ashton.

The morning began bright and cheerful. The wedding guests gathered in impressive groups from far and wide. Not only were the relatives of Sir William Ashton and the even more distinguished connections of his wife present, along with the many family members and supporters of the groom, but nearly every prominent Presbyterian family within fifty miles made it a point to attend this event, which was seen as a kind of victory over the Marquis of A——, through his relative. Luxurious refreshments awaited the guests upon their arrival, and once they were finished, the call was “To horse.” The bride was led out between her brother Henry and her mother. The cheerful mood from the previous day had shifted to a deep sadness, which, however, seemed fitting for such an important occasion. There was a sparkle in her eyes and a blush on her cheeks that hadn’t appeared in a long time, and combined with her great beauty and the elegance of her dress, her entrance was met with a wave of applause, even the ladies couldn't help but join in. While the procession was getting ready to mount their horses, Sir William Ashton, a man of peace and decorum, scolded his son Henry for strapping on a ridiculously long military sword that belonged to his brother, Colonel Ashton.

“If you must have a weapon,” he said, “upon such a peaceful occasion, why did you not use the short poniard sent from Edinburgh on purpose?”

“If you really need a weapon,” he said, “on such a peaceful occasion, why didn’t you use the short dagger that was sent from Edinburgh just for this purpose?”

The boy vindicated himself by saying it was lost.

The boy defended himself by saying it was lost.

“You put it out of the way yourself, I suppose,” said his father, “out of ambition to wear that preposterous thing, which might have served Sir William Wallace. But never mind, get to horse now, and take care of your sister.”

“You put it aside yourself, I guess,” said his father, “just to show off that ridiculous thing, which might have suited Sir William Wallace. But forget it, get on your horse now, and look after your sister.”

The boy did so, and was placed in the centre of the gallant train. At the time, he was too full of his own appearance, his sword, his laced cloak, his feathered hat, and his managed horse, to pay much regard to anything else; but he afterwards remembered to the hour of his death, that when the hand of his sister, by which she supported herself on the pillion behind him, touched his own, it felt as wet and cold as sepulchral marble.

The boy did so and was positioned in the center of the impressive procession. At that moment, he was too focused on his own looks—his sword, his stylish cloak, his feathered hat, and his well-trained horse—to pay much attention to anything else. However, he later remembered, until the hour of his death, that when his sister's hand, which she used to hold onto the pillion behind him, brushed against his own, it felt as cold and wet as tombstone marble.

Glancing wide over hill and dale, the fair bridal procession at last reached the parish church, which they nearly filled; for, besides domestics, above a hundred gentlemen and ladies were present upon the occasion. The marriage ceremony was performed according to the rites of the Presbyterian persuasion, to which Bucklaw of late had judged it proper to conform.

Glancing over the hills and valleys, the beautiful wedding procession finally arrived at the parish church, which they almost filled; for, in addition to the staff, over a hundred men and women were present for the event. The wedding ceremony was performed according to the practices of the Presbyterian faith, which Bucklaw had recently decided to follow.

On the outside of the church, a liberal dole was distributed to the poor of the neighbouring parishes, under the direction of Johnie Mortheuch [Mortsheugh], who had lately been promoted from his desolate quarters at the Hermitage to fill the more eligible situation of sexton at the parish church of Ravenswood. Dame Gourlay, with two of her contemporaries, the same who assisted at Alice’s late-wake, seated apart upon a flat monument, or through-stane, sate enviously comparing the shares which had been allotted to them in dividing the dole.

On the outside of the church, a generous distribution was made to the poor from nearby parishes, overseen by Johnie Mortheuch [Mortsheugh], who had recently been moved from his lonely location at the Hermitage to take on the more favorable role of sexton at the parish church of Ravenswood. Dame Gourlay, along with two of her peers, the same ones who helped at Alice’s recent wake, sat separately on a flat monument, or through-stane, enviously comparing the portions they received from the distribution.

“Johnie Mortheuch,” said Annie Winnie, “might hae minded auld lang syne, and thought of his auld kimmers, for as braw as he is with his new black coat. I hae gotten but five herring instead o’ sax, and this disna look like a gude saxpennys, and I dare say this bit morsel o’ beef is an unce lighter than ony that’s been dealt round; and it’s a bit o’ the tenony hough, mair by token that yours, Maggie, is out o’ the back-sey.”

“Johnie Mortheuch,” said Annie Winnie, “might have remembered old times and thought of his old friends, even though he looks sharp in his new black coat. I only got five herring instead of six, and this doesn’t seem worth a good sixpence, and I must say this piece of beef is a bit lighter than what’s been handed out; plus, yours, Maggie, is from the back end.”

“Mine, quo’ she!” mumbled the paralytic hag—“mine is half banes, I trow. If grit folk gie poor bodies ony thing for coming to their weddings and burials, it suld be something that wad do them gude, I think.”

“Mine, she said!” mumbled the paralytic hag—“mine is half bones, I guess. If rich people give poor folks anything for coming to their weddings and funerals, it should be something that would actually help them, I think.”

“Their gifts,” said Ailsie Gourlay, “are dealt for nae love of us, nor out of respect for whether we feed or starve. They wad gie us whinstanes for loaves, if it would serve their ain vanity, and yet they expect us to be as gratefu’, as they ca’ it, as if they served us for true love and liking.”

“Their gifts,” said Ailsie Gourlay, “are given with no love for us, nor out of concern for whether we eat or starve. They would give us stones for bread if it would boost their own vanity, and yet they expect us to be just as grateful, as they call it, as if they were helping us out of genuine love and affection.”

“And that’s truly said,” answered her companion.

“And that's really true,” her companion replied.

“But, Aislie Gourlay, ye’re the auldest o’ us three—did ye ever see a mair grand bridal?”

“But, Aislie Gourlay, you’re the oldest of us three—have you ever seen a more magnificent wedding?”

“I winna say that I have,” answered the hag; “but I think soon to see as braw a burial.”

“I won’t say that I have,” replied the old woman; “but I expect to see a just as fine a burial soon.”

“And that wad please me as weel,” said Annie Winnie; “for there’s as large a dole, and folk are no obliged to girn and laugh, and mak murgeons, and wish joy to these hellicat quality, that lord it ower us like brute beasts. I like to pack the dead-dole in my lap and rin ower my auld rhyme—

“And that would please me just as much,” said Annie Winnie; “because there's a good amount to share, and people aren’t forced to complain and laugh, and make a fuss, and wish happiness to these reckless nobles, who treat us like animals. I like to hold the dead share in my lap and go over my old rhyme—

My loaf in my lap, my penny in my purse,
Thou art ne’er the better, and
I’m ne’er the worse.”

My bread in my lap, my coin in my pocket,
You’re never better off, and
I’m never worse off.”

“That’s right, Annie,” said the paralytic woman; “God send us a green Yule and a fat kirkyard!”

“That’s right, Annie,” said the paralyzed woman; “May God give us a green Christmas and a full graveyard!”

“But I wad like to ken, Luckie Gourlay, for ye’re the auldest and wisest amang us, whilk o’ these revellers’ turn it will be to be streikit first?”

“But I would like to know, Luckie Gourlay, since you’re the oldest and wisest among us, whose turn it will be to be stretched out first?”

“D’ye see yon dandilly maiden,” said Dame Gourlay, “a’ glistenin’ wi’ gowd and jewels, that they are lifting up on the white horse behind that hare-brained callant in scarlet, wi’ the lang sword at his side?”

“Do you see that fancy young lady,” said Dame Gourlay, “all shining with gold and jewels, that they are raising up on the white horse behind that reckless guy in red, with the long sword at his side?”

“But that’s the bride!” said her companion, her cold heart touched with some sort of compassion—“that’s the very bride hersell! Eh, whow! sae young, sae braw, and sae bonny—and is her time sae short?”

“But that’s the bride!” said her friend, her cold heart stirred with some kind of compassion—“that’s really the bride herself! Oh wow! So young, so beautiful, and so lovely—and is her time really so short?”

“I tell ye,” said the sibyl, “her winding sheet is up as high as her throat already, believe it wha list. Her sand has but few grains to rin out; and nae wonder—they’ve been weel shaken. The leaves are withering fast on the trees, but she’ll never see the Martinmas wind gar them dance in swirls like the fairy rings.”

“I tell you,” said the sibyl, “her shroud is pulled up as high as her throat already, believe it if you want. Her time is almost run out; and it’s no surprise—they’ve been well shaken. The leaves are quickly withering on the trees, but she’ll never see the Martinmas wind make them dance in swirls like fairy rings.”

“Ye waited on her for a quarter,” said the paralytic woman, “and got twa red pieces, or I am far beguiled?”

“Did you wait on her for a quarter?” said the paralyzed woman, “and got two red pieces, or am I completely deceived?”

“Ay, ay,” answered Ailsie, with a bitter grin; “and Sir William Ashton promised me a bonny red gown to the boot o’ that—a stake, and a chain, and a tar-barrel, lass! what think ye o’ that for a propine?—for being up early and doun late for fourscore nights and mair wi’ his dwining daughter. But he may keep it for his ain leddy, cummers.”

“Ay, ay,” Ailsie replied with a bitter smile, “and Sir William Ashton promised me a nice red dress on top of that—a stake, a chain, and a tar barrel, girl! What do you think of that as a reward?—for being up early and down late for eighty nights and more with his fading daughter. But he can keep it for his own lady, friends.”

“I hae heard a sough,” said Annie Winnie, “as if Leddy Ashton was nae canny body.”

“I’ve heard a whisper,” said Annie Winnie, “as if Lady Ashton wasn’t a good person.”

“D’ye see her yonder,” said Dame Gourlay, “as she prances on her grey gelding out at the kirkyard? There’s mair o’ utter deevilry in that woman, as brave and fair-fashioned as she rides yonder, than in a’ the Scotch withces that ever flew by moonlight ower North Berwick Law.”

“Do you see her over there,” said Dame Gourlay, “as she prances on her gray gelding out at the churchyard? There’s more sheer wickedness in that woman, as brave and beautiful as she rides over there, than in all the Scottish witches who ever flew by moonlight over North Berwick Law.”

“What’s that ye say about witches, ye damned hags?” said Johnie Mortheuch [Mortsheugh]; “are ye casting yer cantrips in the very kirkyard, to mischieve the bride and bridegroom? Get awa’ hame, for if I tak my souple t’ye, I’ll gar ye find the road faster than ye wad like.”

“What’s that you’re saying about witches, you damned hags?” said Johnie Mortheuch; “are you casting your spells right in the graveyard, to mess with the bride and groom? Get home, because if I catch you, I’ll make you find the way out faster than you’d like.”

“Hegh, sirs!” answered Ailsie Gourlay; “how bra’ are we wi’ our new black coat and our weel-pouthered head, as if we had never kenn’d hunger nor thirst oursells! and we’ll be screwing up our bit fiddle, doubtless, in the ha’ the night, amang a’ the other elbo’-jiggers for miles round. Let’s see if the pins haud, Johnie—that’s a’, lad.”

“Hegh, sirs!” replied Ailsie Gourlay; “look at us in our new black coat and our nicely powdered hair, like we’ve never known hunger or thirst ourselves! And we’ll be tightening up our little fiddle tonight in the hall, among all the other elbow joggers for miles around. Let’s see if the pins hold, Johnie—that’s all, lad.”

“I take ye a’ to witness, gude people,” said Morheuch, “that she threatens me wi’ mischief, and forespeaks me. If ony thing but gude happens to me or my fiddle this night, I’ll make it the blackest night’s job she ever stirred in. I’ll hae her before presbytery and synod: I’m half a minister mysell, now that I’m a bedral in an inhabited parish.”

“I want all of you to bear witness, good people,” said Morheuch, “that she’s threatening me with harm and putting a curse on me. If anything bad happens to me or my fiddle tonight, I will make it the worst night she ever caused trouble. I’ll take her to the presbytery and synod: I’m half a minister myself, now that I’m a beadle in a thriving parish.”

Although the mutual hatred betwixt these hags and the rest of mankind had steeled their hearts against all impressions of festivity, this was by no means the case with the multitude at large. The splendour of the bridal retinue, the gay dresses, the spirited horses, the blythesome appearance of the handsome women and gallant gentlemen assembled upon the occasion, had the usual effect upon the minds of the populace. The repeated shouts of “Ashton and Bucklaw for ever!” the discharge of pistols, guns, and musketoons, to give what was called the bridal shot, evinced the interest the people took in the occasion of the cavalcade, as they accompanied it upon their return to the castle. If there was here and there an elder peasant or his wife who sneered at the pomp of the upstart family, and remembered the days of the long-descended Ravenswoods, even they, attracted by the plentiful cheer which the castle that day afforded to rich and poor, held their way thither, and acknowledged, notwithstanding their prejudices, the influence of l’Amphitrion où l’on dîne.

Although the mutual hatred between these witches and the rest of humanity had hardened their hearts against any sense of celebration, that definitely wasn't true for the rest of the crowd. The splendor of the bridal procession, the colorful outfits, the spirited horses, and the cheerful presence of the beautiful women and dashing gentlemen gathered for the occasion had the usual effect on the minds of the people. The repeated cheers of “Ashton and Bucklaw forever!” and the firing of pistols, guns, and musketoons to deliver what was known as the bridal shot showed how invested the public was in the celebration as they followed the cavalcade back to the castle. Even if there were a few older peasants or their wives who scoffed at the ostentation of the newly prominent family and reminisced about the days of the long-established Ravenswoods, even they, lured by the abundant hospitality the castle offered to both rich and poor that day, made their way there and recognized, despite their biases, the allure of l’Amphitrion où l’on dîne.

Thus accompanied with the attendance both of rich and poor, Lucy returned to her father’s house. Bucklaw used his privilege of riding next to the bride, but, new to such a situation, rather endeavoured to attract attention by the display of his person and horsemanship, than by any attempt to address her in private. They reached the castle in safety, amid a thousand joyous acclamations.

Thus accompanied by both the rich and the poor, Lucy returned to her father’s house. Bucklaw took the opportunity to ride next to the bride, but being new to this kind of situation, he focused more on showing off his appearance and riding skills rather than trying to talk to her privately. They reached the castle safely, surrounded by a thousand joyful cheers.

It is well known that the weddings of ancient days were celebrated with a festive publicity rejected by the delicacy of modern times. The marriage guests, on the present occasion, were regaled with a banquet of unbounded profusion, the relics of which, after the domestics had feasted in their turn, were distributed among the shouting crowd, with as many barrels of ale as made the hilarity without correspond to that within the castle. The gentlemen, according to the fashion of the times, indulged, for the most part, in deep draughts of the richest wines, while the ladies, prepared for the ball which always closed a bridal entertainment, impatiently expected their arrival in the state gallery. At length the social party broke up at a late hour, and the gentlemen crowded into the saloon, where, enlivened by wine and the joyful occasion, they laid aside their swords and handed their impatient partners to the floor. The music already rung from the gallery, along the fretted roof of the ancient state apartment. According to strict etiquette, the bride ought to have opened the ball; but Lady Ashton, making an apology on account of her daughter’s health, offered her own hand to Bucklaw as substitute for her daughter’s. But as Lady Ashton raised her head gracefully, expecting the strain at which she was to begin the dance, she was so much struck by an unexpected alteration in the ornaments of the apartment that she was surprised into an exclamation, “Who has dared to change the pictures?”

It’s well known that weddings in ancient times were celebrated with a festive display that modern sensibilities find excessive. The guests at this wedding were treated to an extravagant banquet, the leftovers of which, after the staff enjoyed their share, were handed out to the cheering crowd, along with plenty of barrels of ale that matched the merriment inside the castle. The gentlemen, in keeping with the customs of the time, mostly indulged in generous glasses of the finest wines, while the ladies, ready for the ball that typically followed a wedding celebration, eagerly awaited their arrival in the grand gallery. Eventually, the gathering broke up late into the night, and the gentlemen made their way to the ballroom, where, fueled by wine and the joyful atmosphere, they took off their swords and escorted their eager partners onto the dance floor. Music echoed from the gallery, filling the intricately designed ceiling of the historic state room. By tradition, the bride was supposed to start the dance; however, Lady Ashton, apologizing for her daughter’s health, offered her own hand to Bucklaw as a stand-in for her daughter. But as Lady Ashton gracefully lifted her head, ready to begin dancing, she was taken aback by a surprising change in the decorations of the room, prompting her to exclaim, “Who has dared to change the pictures?”

All looked up, and those who knew the usual state of the apartment observed, with surprise, that the picture of Sir William Ashton’s father was removed from its place, and in its stead that of old Sir Malise Ravenswood seemed to frown wrath and vengeance upon the party assembled below. The exchange must have been made while the apartments were empty, but had not been observed until the torches and lights in the sconces were kindled for the ball. The haughty and heated spirits of the gentlemen led them to demand an immediate inquiry into the cause of what they deemed an affront to their host and to themselves; but Lady Ashton, recovering herself, passed it over as the freak of a crazy wench who was maintained about the castle, and whose susceptible imagination had been observed to be much affected by the stories which Dame Gourlay delighted to tell concerning “the former family,” so Lady Ashton named the Ravenswoods. The obnoxious picture was immediately removed, and the ball was opened by Lady Ashton, with a grace and dignity which supplied the charms of youth, and almost verified the extravagant encomiums of the elder part of the company, who extolled her performance as far exceeding the dancing of the rising generation.

Everyone looked up, and those who were familiar with how the apartment usually looked noticed, with surprise, that the portrait of Sir William Ashton's father was gone, replaced by one of old Sir Malise Ravenswood, who seemed to glare down in anger and vengeance at the crowd below. The swap must have happened while the rooms were empty, but no one had seen it until the torches and lights in the sconces were lit for the ball. The prideful and passionate gentlemen insisted on an immediate investigation into what they considered an insult to their host and themselves; however, Lady Ashton, regaining her composure, dismissed it as just the whim of a crazy servant who lived in the castle and whose sensitive imagination had been greatly influenced by the tales that Dame Gourlay loved to tell about “the former family,” as Lady Ashton referred to the Ravenswoods. The offending portrait was quickly taken down, and the ball commenced with Lady Ashton, who handled it with a grace and dignity that made her seem youthful and almost confirmed the praises of the older guests, who claimed her dancing was far superior to that of the younger generation.

When Lady Ashton sat down, she was not surprised to find that her daughter had left the apartment, and she herself followed, eager to obviate any impression which might have been made upon her nerves by an incident so likely to affect them as the mysterious transposition of the portraits. Apparently she found her apprehensions groundless, for she returned in about an hour, and whispered the bridegroom, who extricated himself from the dancers, and vanished from the apartment. The instruments now played their loudest strains; the dancers pursued their exercise with all the enthusiasm inspired by youth, mirth, and high spirits, when a cry was heard so shrill and piercing as at once to arrest the dance and the music. All stood motionless; but when the yell was again repeated, Colonel Ashton snatched a torch from the sconce, and demanding the key of the bridal-chamber from Henry, to whom, as bride’s-man, it had been entrusted, rushed thither, followed by Sir William Ashton and Lady Ashton, and one or two others, near relations of the family. The bridal guests waited their return in stupefied amazement.

When Lady Ashton sat down, she wasn't surprised to see that her daughter had left the apartment, so she followed her, eager to shake off any nerves caused by the mysterious rearrangement of the portraits. She seemed to find her worries unfounded, as she came back about an hour later and quietly signaled to the groom, who pulled away from the dancers and disappeared from the room. The music now played at its loudest; the dancers continued their routine with all the excitement fueled by youth, joy, and high spirits, when a scream was heard that was sharp and piercing enough to stop both the dance and the music. Everyone froze in place, but when the scream echoed again, Colonel Ashton grabbed a torch from the wall, demanded the key to the bridal chamber from Henry, who had been given the responsibility as the bride’s man, and rushed there, followed by Sir William Ashton, Lady Ashton, and a few other close family members. The bridal guests waited for their return in stunned silence.

Arrived at the door of the apartment, Colonel Ashton knocked and called, but received no answer except stifled groans. He hesitated no longer to open the door of the apartment, in which he found opposition from something which lay against it. When he had succeeded in opening it, the body of the bridegroom was found lying on the threshold of the bridal chamber, and all around was flooded with blood. A cry of surprise and horror was raised by all present; and the company, excited by this new alarm, began to rush tumultuously towards the sleeping apartment. Colonel Ashton, first whispering to his mother, “Search for her; she has murdered him!” drew his sword, planted himself in the passage, and declared he would suffer no man to pass excepting the clergyman and a medical person present. By their assistance, Bucklaw, who still breathed, was raised from the ground, and transported to another apartment, where his friends, full of suspicion and murmuring, assembled round him to learn the opinion of the surgeon.

Arriving at the door of the apartment, Colonel Ashton knocked and called out, but only heard muffled groans in response. Without hesitation, he opened the door, finding something blocking it. Once he managed to push it open, he discovered the bridegroom's body lying on the threshold of the bridal chamber, with blood all around. A shout of shock and horror erupted from everyone present, and the guests, stirred by the new alarm, began to rush excitedly toward the sleeping quarters. Colonel Ashton, first whispering to his mother, “Look for her; she must have killed him!” drew his sword, positioned himself in the hallway, and declared that no one could enter except for the clergyman and a doctor present. With their help, Bucklaw, who was still alive, was lifted from the floor and taken to another room, where his friends, filled with suspicion and whispering among themselves, gathered around him to hear the surgeon's assessment.

In the mean while, Lady Ashton, her husband, and their assistants in vain sought Lucy in the bridal bed and in the chamber. There was no private passage from the room, and they began to think that she must have thrown herself from the window, when one of the company, holding his torch lower than the rest, discovered something white in the corner of the great old-fashioned chimney of the apartment. Here they found the unfortunate girl seated, or rather couched like a hare upon its form—her head-gear dishevelled, her night-clothes torn and dabbled with blood, her eyes glazed, and her features convulsed into a wild paroxysm of insanity. When she saw herself discovered, she gibbered, made mouths, and pointed at them with her bloody fingers, with the frantic gestures of an exulting demoniac.

Meanwhile, Lady Ashton, her husband, and their helpers searched in vain for Lucy in the bridal bed and the room. There was no private exit from the room, and they began to think she must have jumped out the window when one of the group, holding his torch lower than the others, spotted something white in the corner of the large old-fashioned chimney of the room. They found the unfortunate girl sitting, or rather crouched like a hare, her hair a mess, her nightgown torn and stained with blood, her eyes vacant, and her face twisted into a wild fit of madness. When she realized she had been found, she shrieked, made faces, and pointed at them with her bloody fingers, using frantic gestures like a triumphant demon.

Female assistance was now hastily summoned; the unhappy bride was overpowered, not without the use of some force. As they carried her over the threshold, she looked down, and uttered the only articulate words that she had yet spoken, saying, with a sort of grinning exultation, “So, you have ta’en up your bonny bridegroom?” She was, by the shuddering assistants, conveyed to another and more retired apartment, where she was secured as her situation required, and closely watched. The unutterable agony of the parents, the horror and confusion of all who were in the castle, the fury of contending passions between the friends of the different parties—passions augmented by previous intemperance—surpass description.

Female help was quickly called in; the distraught bride was restrained, not without some force. As they carried her over the threshold, she looked down and said the only clear words she had spoken, with a sort of gloating satisfaction, “So, you’ve taken up your pretty bridegroom?” She was taken by the trembling helpers to another, more private room, where she was secured as her situation required and closely monitored. The indescribable agony of the parents, the horror and confusion of everyone in the castle, and the heated emotions from both sides—emotions intensified by prior drunkenness—are beyond description.

The surgeon was the first who obtained something like a patient hearing; he pronounced that the wound of Bucklaw, though severe and dangerous, was by no means fatal, but might readily be rendered so by disturbance and hasty removal. This silenced the numerous party of Bucklaw’s friends, who had previously insisted that he should, at all rates, be transported from the castle to the nearest of their houses. They still demanded, however, that, in consideration of what had happened, four of their number should remain to watch over the sick-bed of their friend, and that a suitable number of their domestics, well armed, should also remain in the castle. This condition being acceded to on the part of Colonel Ashton and his father, the rest of the bridegroom’s friends left the castle, notwithstanding the hour and the darkness of the night. The cares of the medical man were next employed in behalf of Miss Ashton, whom he pronounced to be in a very dangerous state. Farther medical assistance was immediately summoned. All night she remained delirious. On the morning, she fell into a state of absolute insensibility. The next evening, the physicians said, would be the crisis of her malady. It proved so; for although she awoke from her trance with some appearance of calmness, and suffered her night-clothes to be changed, or put in order, yet so soon as she put her hand to her neck, as if to search for the for the fatal blue ribbon, a tide of recollections seemed to rush upon her, which her mind and body were alike incapable of bearing. Convulsion followed convulsion, till they closed in death, without her being able to utter a word explanatory of the fatal scene.

The surgeon was the first to get a somewhat attentive hearing; he stated that Bucklaw's wound, although serious and dangerous, was not fatal but could easily become so if disturbed or if he was moved too quickly. This quieted Bucklaw's friends, who had been insisting that he should be taken from the castle to the nearest of their homes. However, they still insisted that, considering what had happened, four of them should stay to watch over their friend's bedside, and that a suitable number of their armed servants should also remain in the castle. Once Colonel Ashton and his father agreed to this condition, the rest of the groom's friends left the castle, despite the late hour and the darkness of the night. The surgeon then turned his attention to Miss Ashton, whom he declared to be in a very serious condition. Additional medical help was immediately called for. She was delirious throughout the night. By morning, she had lapsed into complete insensibility. The next evening, the doctors said, would be critical for her illness. It turned out to be so; although she awoke from her stupor with some semblance of calmness and allowed her nightclothes to be changed or tidied up, as soon as she touched her neck, as if searching for the fatal blue ribbon, a wave of memories seemed to flood her mind, which both her mind and body could not handle. Seizure after seizure followed until they ended in death, and she was unable to say a word to explain the tragic event.

The provincial judge of the district arrived the day after the young lady had expired, and executed, though with all possible delicacy to the afflicted family, the painful duty of inquiring into this fatal transaction. But there occurred nothing to explain the general hypothesis that the bride, in a sudden fit of insanity, had stabbed the bridegroom at the threshold of the apartment. The fatal weapon was found in the chamber smeared with blood. It was the same poniard which Henry should have worn on the wedding-day, and the unhappy sister had probably contrived to secrete on the preceding evening, when it had been shown to her among other articles of preparation for the wedding.

The provincial judge of the district arrived the day after the young lady had died and, with as much sensitivity as possible towards the grieving family, carried out the difficult task of investigating this tragic incident. However, nothing emerged to clarify the widespread assumption that the bride, in a sudden moment of madness, had stabbed the groom at the doorway of their room. The deadly weapon was discovered in the room, covered in blood. It was the same dagger that Henry was supposed to wear on their wedding day, and the unfortunate sister had likely managed to hide it the night before when it had been shown to her along with other wedding items.

The friends of Bucklaw expected that on his recovery he would throw some light upon this dark story, and eagerly pressed him with inquiries, which for some time he evaded under pretext of weakness. When, however, he had been transported to his own house, and was considered in a state of convalescence, he assembled those persons, both male and female, who had considered themselves as entitled to press him on this subject, and returned them thanks for the interest they had exhibited in his behalf, and their offers of adherence and support. “I wish you all,” he said, “my friends, to understand, however, that I have neither story to tell nor injuries to avenge. If a lady shall question me henceforward upon the incident of that unhappy night, I shall remain silent, and in future consider her as one who has shown herself desirous to break off her friendship with me; in a word, I will never speak to her again. But if a gentleman shall ask me the same question, I shall regard the incivility as equivalent to an invitation to meet him in the Duke’s Walk, and I expect that he will rule himself accordingly.”

The friends of Bucklaw thought that once he recovered, he would shed some light on this mysterious story, so they eagerly bombarded him with questions, which he avoided for a while under the excuse of being weak. However, after he was moved to his home and was considered to be on the mend, he gathered those who believed they had the right to press him on this issue and thanked them for their concern and support. “I want you all,” he said, “my friends, to understand that I have no story to tell and no grievances to settle. If a lady asks me about that unfortunate night from now on, I will remain quiet and will consider her someone who wishes to end our friendship; in short, I won't speak to her again. But if a gentleman asks me the same question, I will see such rudeness as an invitation to meet him in the Duke’s Walk, and I expect him to act accordingly.”

A declaration so decisive admitted no commentary; and it was soon after seen that Bucklaw had arisen from the bed of sickness a sadder and a wiser man than he had hitherto shown himself. He dismissed Craigengelt from his society, but not without such a provision as, if well employed, might secure him against indigence and against temptation. Bucklaw afterwards went abroad, and never returned to Scotland; nor was he known ever to hint at the circumstances attending his fatal marriage. By many readers this may be deemed overstrained, romantic, and composed by the wild imagination of an author desirous of gratifying the popular appetite for the horrible; but those who are read in the private family history of Scotland during the period in which the scene is laid, will readily discover, through the disguise of borrowed names and added incidents, the leading particulars of AN OWER TRUE TALE.

A declaration so clear left no room for discussion; and it soon became apparent that Bucklaw had emerged from his illness a sadder and wiser man than he had been before. He cut ties with Craigengelt, but not without providing a safety net that could help him avoid poverty and temptation if used wisely. Bucklaw later went abroad and never returned to Scotland; nor did he ever mention the events surrounding his tragic marriage. Many readers might find this excessive, overly dramatic, and the product of a writer's wild imagination wanting to satisfy the public's taste for the macabre; however, those familiar with the private family history of Scotland during this time will quickly recognize, beneath the disguise of fictional names and additional events, the key details of AN OWER TRUE TALE.

CHAPTER XXXV.

Whose mind’s so marbled, and his heart so hard,
That would not, when this huge mishap was heard,
To th’ utmost note of sorrow set their song,
To see a gallant, with so great a grace,
So suddenly unthought on, so o’erthrown,
And so to perish, in so poor a place,
By too rash riding in a ground unknown!

Poem, in Nisbet’s Heraldry, vol. ii.

Whose mind is so mixed up and heart so cold,
That wouldn’t, when this great tragedy was heard,
Put their song to the highest note of sorrow,
To see a noble person, with such elegance,
So suddenly forgotten, so defeated,
And to die in such a sad place,
Because of reckless riding in unfamiliar territory?

Poem, in Nisbet’s Heraldry, vol. ii.

We have anticipated the course of time to mention Bucklaw’s recovery and fate, that we might not interrupt the detail of events which succeeded the funeral of the unfortunate Lucy Ashton. This melancholy ceremony was performed in the misty dawn of an autumnal morning, with such moderate attendance and ceremony as could not possibly be dispensed with. A very few of the nearest relations attended her body to the same churchyard to which she had so lately been led as a bride, with as little free will, perhaps, as could be now testified by her lifeless and passive remains. An aisle adjacent to the church had been fitted up by Sir William Ashton as a family cemetery; and here, in a coffin bearing neither name nor date, were consigned to dust the remains of what was once lovely, beautiful, and innocent, though exasperated to frenzy by a long tract of unremitting persecution.

We have looked ahead to discuss Bucklaw’s recovery and fate, so we won’t disrupt the flow of events following the funeral of the unfortunate Lucy Ashton. This sorrowful ceremony took place in the early light of an autumn morning, with just a minimal attendance and ceremony that couldn't be avoided. Only a few of her closest relatives accompanied her body to the same churchyard where she had recently been taken as a bride, perhaps with just as little free will, as shown by her lifeless and still remains. An aisle next to the church had been set up by Sir William Ashton as a family cemetery; here, in a coffin without a name or date, lay the remains of what was once lovely, beautiful, and innocent, though driven to madness by a long period of relentless persecution.

While the mourners were busy in the vault, the three village hags, who, notwithstanding the unwonted earliness of the hour, had snuffed the carrion like vultures, were seated on the “through-stane,” and engaged in their wonted unhallowed conference.

While the mourners were occupied in the vault, the three village hags, who, despite the unusual early hour, had sniffed out the dead like vultures, were sitting on the “through-stane” and involved in their usual unholy discussion.

“Did not I say,” said Dame Gourlay, “that the braw bridal would be followed by as braw a funeral?”

“Didn’t I say,” said Dame Gourlay, “that the fancy wedding would be followed by an equally fancy funeral?”

“I think,” answered Dame Winnie, “there’s little bravery at it: neither meat nor drink, and just a wheen silver tippences to the poor folk; it was little worth while to come sae far a road for sae sma’ profit, and us sae frail.”

“I think,” replied Dame Winnie, “there’s not much courage in that: no food or drink, and just a few silver pennies for the poor people; it wasn’t really worth coming such a long way for so little profit, especially since we’re so weak.”

“Out, wretch!” replied Dame Gourlay, “can a’ the dainties they could gie us be half sae sweet as this hour’s vengeance? There they are that were capering on their prancing nags four days since, and they are now ganging as dreigh and sober as oursells the day. They were a’ glistening wi’ gowd and silver; they’re now as black as the crook. And Miss Lucy Ashton, that grudged when an honest woman came near her—a taid may sit on her coffin that day, and she can never scunner when he croaks. And Lady Ashton has hell-fire burning in her breast by this time; and Sir William, wi’ his gibbets, and his faggots, and his chains, how likes he the witcheries of his ain dwelling-house?”

“Get out, you miserable wretch!” Dame Gourlay replied. “Can any of the treats they could give us be anywhere near as sweet as this moment of revenge? Just four days ago, they were prancing around on their fancy horses, and now they’re trudging along as dull and somber as we are today. They were all shining with gold and silver; now they’re as dark as coal. And Miss Lucy Ashton, who complained whenever an honest woman got too close—she’ll have a toad sitting on her coffin that day, and she’ll never shudder when it croaks. Lady Ashton must have hellfire burning in her heart by now; and Sir William, with his gallows, and his kindling, and his chains—how does he feel about the curses of his own home?”

“And is it true, then,” mumbled the paralytic wretch, “that the bride was trailed out of her bed and up the chimly by evil spirits, and that the bridegroom’s face was wrung round ahint him?”

“And is it true, then,” mumbled the paralyzed person, “that the bride was dragged out of her bed and up the chimney by evil spirits, and that the bridegroom's face was twisted around behind him?”

“Ye needna care wha did it, or how it was done,” said Aislie Gourlay; “but I’ll uphaud it for nae stickit job, and that the lairds and leddies ken weel this day.”

“You don’t need to worry about who did it or how it happened,” said Aislie Gourlay; “but I won’t back it for any half-hearted job, and the lords and ladies know this well today.”

“And was it true,” said Annie Winnie, “sin ye ken sae muckle about it, that the picture of auld Sir Malise Ravenswood came down on the ha’ floor, and led out the brawl before them a’?”

“And was it true,” said Annie Winnie, “since you know so much about it, that the picture of old Sir Malise Ravenswood came down from the hall floor and started the fight in front of them all?”

“Na,” said Ailsie; “but into the ha’ came the picture—and I ken weel how it came there—to gie them a warning that pride wad get a fa’. But there’s as queer a ploy, cummers, as ony o’ thae, that’s gaun on even now in the burial vault yonder: ye saw twall mourners, wi’ crape and cloak, gang down the steps pair and pair!”

“Not at all,” said Ailsie; “but into the hall came the picture—and I know well how it got there—to give them a warning that pride would lead to a downfall. But there’s as strange a trick, ladies, as any of those, that’s happening even now in the burial vault over there: you saw two mourners, with black mourning clothes, go down the steps two by two!”

“What should ail us to see them?” said the one old woman.

“What should stop us from seeing them?” said the old woman.

“I counted them,” said the other, with the eagerness of a person to whom the spectacle had afforded too much interest to be viewed with indifference.

“I counted them,” said the other, with the eagerness of someone who found the sight too interesting to ignore.

“But ye did not see,” said Ailsie, exulting in her superior observation, “that there’s a thirteenth amang them that they ken naething about; and, if auld freits say true, there’s ane o’ that company that’ll no be lang for this warld. But come awa’ cummers; if we bide here, I’se warrant we get the wyte o’ whatever ill comes of it, and that gude will come of it nane o’ them need ever think to see.”

“But you didn’t notice,” Ailsie said, reveling in her sharp observation, “that there’s a thirteenth among them that they know nothing about; and if old rumors are to be believed, there’s one in that group who won’t be around much longer. But come on, friends; if we stay here, I’m sure we’ll get blamed for whatever bad happens, and none of them should think anything good will come of it.”

And thus, croaking like the ravens when they anticipate pestilence, the ill-boding sibyls withdrew from the churchyard.

And so, croaking like the ravens when they sense disease, the ominous seers left the graveyard.

In fact, the mourners, when the service of interment was ended, discovered that there was among them one more than the invited number, and the remark was communicated in whispers to each other. The suspicion fell upon a figure which, muffled in the same deep mourning with the others, was reclined, almost in a state of insensibility, against one of the pillars of the sepulchral vault. The relatives of the Ashton family were expressing in whispers their surprise and displeasure at the intrusion, when they were interrupted by Colonel Ashton, who, in his father’s absence, acted as principal mourner. “I know,” he said in a whisper, “who this person is, he has, or shall soon have, as deep cause of mourning as ourselves; leave me to deal with him, and do not disturb the ceremony by unnecessary exposure.” So saying, he separated himself from the group of his relations, and taking the unknown mourner by the cloak, he said to him, in a tone of suppressed emotion, “Follow me.”

In fact, when the burial service was over, the mourners realized there was one person among them who wasn’t on the guest list, and they whispered about it to each other. Their suspicion fell on a figure who, dressed in deep mourning like everyone else, was slumped almost unconsciously against one of the pillars of the burial vault. The relatives of the Ashton family were quietly expressing their surprise and annoyance at the unexpected presence when Colonel Ashton, acting as the main mourner in his father's absence, interrupted them. “I know,” he whispered, “who this person is. He has, or will soon have, as much reason to mourn as we do. Let me handle this, and don’t disturb the ceremony with unnecessary exposure.” With that, he stepped away from his relatives and, taking hold of the unknown mourner’s cloak, said to him in a low voice, “Follow me.”

The stranger, as if starting from a trance at the sound of his voice, mechanically obeyed, and they ascended the broken ruinous stair which led from the sepulchre into the churchyard. The other mourners followed, but remained grouped together at the door of the vault, watching with anxiety the motions of Colonel Ashton and the stranger, who now appeared to be in close conference beneath the shade of a yew-tree, in the most remote part of the burial-ground.

The stranger, as if coming out of a trance at the sound of his voice, automatically followed, and they climbed the crumbling, ruined stairs that led from the tomb to the churchyard. The other mourners trailed behind but stayed gathered at the vault's entrance, anxiously observing the movements of Colonel Ashton and the stranger, who now seemed to be deep in conversation under the shade of a yew tree in the farthest corner of the graveyard.

To this sequestered spot Colonel Ashton had guided the stranger, and then turning round, addressed him in a stern and composed tone.—“I cannot doubt that I speak to the Master of Ravenswood?” No answer was returned. “I cannot doubt,” resumed the Colonel, trembling with rising passion, “that I speak to the murderer of my sister!”

To this secluded place, Colonel Ashton had brought the stranger, and then turning around, he spoke to him in a serious and calm tone. “I can’t doubt that I’m speaking to the Master of Ravenswood?” There was no response. “I can’t doubt,” the Colonel continued, shaking with growing anger, “that I’m speaking to the killer of my sister!”

“You have named me but too truly,” said Ravenswood, in a hollow and tremulous voice.

“You've called me out more accurately than I would have liked,” said Ravenswood, in a hollow and shaky voice.

“If you repent what you have done,” said the Colonel, “may your penitence avail you before God; with me it shall serve you nothing. Here,” he said, giving a paper, “is the measure of my sword, and a memorandum of the time and place of meeting. Sunrise to-morrow morning, on the links to the east of Wolf’s Hope.”

“If you regret what you’ve done,” said the Colonel, “I hope your remorse helps you before God; but with me, it will do you no good. Here,” he said, handing over a piece of paper, “is the length of my sword, and a note about the time and place of our meeting. Sunrise tomorrow morning, on the links to the east of Wolf’s Hope.”

The Master of Ravenswood held the paper in his hand, and seemed irresolute. At length he spoke—“Do not,” he said, “urge to farther desperation a wretch who is already desperate. Enjoy your life while you can, and let me seek my death from another.”

The Master of Ravenswood held the paper in his hand and seemed unsure. Finally, he spoke—“Please don’t push someone who’s already at a low point into even more despair. Live your life to the fullest while you can, and let me find my own end elsewhere.”

“That you never, never shall!” said Douglas Ashton. “You shall die by my hand, or you shall complete the ruin of my family by taking my life. If you refuse my open challenge, there is no advantage I will not take of you, no indignity with which I will not load you, until the very name of Ravenswood shall be the sign of everything that is dishonourable, as it is already of all that is villainous.”

“That you never, ever will!” said Douglas Ashton. “You will either die by my hand, or you will finish destroying my family by taking my life. If you turn down my open challenge, there is no advantage I won’t take from you, no humiliation I won’t inflict on you, until the very name of Ravenswood becomes a symbol of everything dishonorable, just as it already stands for all that is villainous.”

“That it shall never be,” said Ravenswood, fiercely; “if I am the last who must bear it, I owe it to those who once owned it that the name shall be extinguished without infamy. I accept your challenge, time, and place of meeting. We meet, I presume, alone?”

“That will never happen,” Ravenswood said fiercely. “Even if I’m the last one standing, I owe it to those who owned it before me to make sure the name goes out without disgrace. I accept your challenge, the time, and the place for our meeting. I assume we’re meeting alone?”

“Alone we meet,” said Colonel Ashton, “and alone will the survivor of us return from that place of rendezvous.”

“Alone we meet,” said Colonel Ashton, “and alone will the survivor among us return from that meeting place.”

“Then God have mercy on the soul of him who falls!” said Ravenswood.

“Then God have mercy on the soul of anyone who falls!” said Ravenswood.

“So be it!” said Colonel Ashton; “so far can my charity reach even for the man I hate most deadly, and with the deepest reason. Now, break off, for we shall be interrupted. The links by the sea-shore to the east of Wolf’s Hope; the hour, sunrise; our swords our only weapons.”

“So be it!” said Colonel Ashton; “this is as far as my kindness can extend, even for the man I absolutely despise, and there’s a good reason for it. Now, let’s wrap this up, because we’ll be interrupted soon. The place is the chains by the seaside to the east of Wolf’s Hope; the time is sunrise; our swords will be our only weapons.”

“Enough,” said the Master, “I will not fail you.”

“Enough,” said the Master, “I won’t let you down.”

They separated; Colonel Ashton joining the rest of the mourners, and the Master of Ravenswood taking his horse, which was tied to a tree behind the church. Colonel Ashton returned to the castle with the funeral guests, but found a pretext for detaching himself from them in the evening, when, changing his dress to a riding-habit, he rode to Wolf’s Hope, that night, and took up his abode in the little inn, in order that he might be ready for his rendezvous in the morning.

They parted ways; Colonel Ashton joined the other mourners, while the Master of Ravenswood headed for his horse, which was tied to a tree behind the church. Colonel Ashton went back to the castle with the funeral guests but found an excuse to separate from them in the evening. Changing into a riding outfit, he rode to Wolf’s Hope that night and stayed at the small inn so he would be ready for his meeting in the morning.

It is not known how the Master of Ravenswood disposed of the rest of that unhappy day. Late at night, however, he arrived at Wolf’s Crag, and aroused his old domestic, Caleb Balderstone, who had ceased to expect his return. Confused and flying rumours of the late tragical death of Miss Ashton, and of its mysterious cause, had already reached the old man, who was filled with the utmost anxiety, on account of the probable effect these events might produce upon the mind of his master.

It’s unclear how the Master of Ravenswood spent the rest of that terrible day. However, late at night, he got to Wolf’s Crag and woke up his old servant, Caleb Balderstone, who had stopped expecting him back. Confused and hearing rumors about the tragic death of Miss Ashton and its mysterious cause, the old man was filled with deep worry about how these events might affect his master’s state of mind.

The conduct of Ravenswood did not alleviate his apprehensions. To the butler’s trembling entreaties that he would take some refreshment, he at first returned no answer, and then suddenly and fiercely demanding wine, he drank, contrary to his habits, a very large draught. Seeing that his master would eat nothing, the old man affectionately entreated that he would permit him to light him to his chamber. It was not until the request was three or four times repeated that Ravenswood made a mute sign of compliance. But when Balderstone conducted him to an apartment which had been comfortably fitted up, and which, since his return, he had usually occupied, Ravenswood stopped short on the threshold.

The way Ravenswood was acting didn’t ease his worries. When the butler begged him, shaking with fear, to have something to eat or drink, Ravenswood initially didn’t reply. Then, suddenly demanding wine with anger, he drank a large glass, which was unusual for him. Noticing that his master wasn’t eating anything, the old man kindly asked to help him to his room. It took three or four times of asking before Ravenswood finally gave a silent nod. But when Balderstone led him to a well-furnished room that he usually stayed in since returning, Ravenswood paused at the doorway.

“Not here,” said he, sternly; “show me the room in which my father died; the room in which SHE slept the night they were at the castle.”

“Not here,” he said firmly; “show me the room where my father died; the room where SHE slept the night they were at the castle.”

“Who, sir?” said Caleb, too terrified to preserve his presence of mind.

“Who, sir?” Caleb said, too scared to keep his composure.

She, Lucy Ashton! Would you kill me, old man, by forcing me to repeat her name?”

She, Lucy Ashton! Are you trying to kill me, old man, by making me say her name again?”

Caleb would have said something of the disrepair of the chamber, but was silenced by the irritable impatience which was expressed in his master’s countenance; he lighted the way trembling and in silence, placed the lamp on the table of the deserted room, and was about to attempt some arrangement of the bed, when his master bid him begone in a tone that admitted of no delay. The old man retired, not to rest, but to prayer; and from time to time crept to the door of the apartment, in order to find out whether Ravenswood had gone to repose. His measured heavy step upon the floor was only interrupted by deep groans; and the repeated stamps of the heel of his heavy boot intimated too clearly that the wretched inmate was abandoning himself at such moments to paroxysms of uncontrolled agony. The old man thought that the morning, for which he longed, would never have dawned; but time, whose course rolls on with equal current, however it may seem more rapid or more slow to mortal apprehension, brought the dawn at last, and spread a ruddy light on the broad verge of the glistening ocean. It was early in November, and the weather was serene for the season of the year. But an easterly wind had prevailed during the night, and the advancing tide rolled nearer than usual to the foot of the crags on which the castle was founded.

Caleb would have commented on how rundown the chamber was, but he held back due to the frustrated impatience visible on his master’s face. He lit the way, trembling and silent, put the lamp on the table in the empty room, and was about to try to fix the bed when his master ordered him to leave in a tone that allowed no argument. The old man left, not to rest, but to pray; every so often, he crept to the door of the room to check if Ravenswood had gone to sleep. His heavy footsteps on the floor were only interrupted by deep groans, and the repeated stamping of his heavy boot made it clear that the miserable occupant was giving in to moments of uncontrollable agony. The old man feared that the morning he longed for would never come, but time, which moves at the same pace regardless of how fast or slow it feels to us, finally brought the dawn, spreading a reddish light over the wide edge of the shining ocean. It was early November, and the weather was clear for this time of year. However, an easterly wind had blown throughout the night, and the incoming tide rolled closer than usual to the base of the cliffs where the castle stood.

With the first peep of light, Caleb Balderstone again resorted to the door of Ravenswood’s sleeping apartment, through a chink of which he observed him engaged in measuring the length of two or three swords which lay in a closet adjoining to the apartment. He muttered to himself, as he selected one of these weapons: “It is shorter: let him have this advantage, as he has every other.”

With the first light of day, Caleb Balderstone went back to the door of Ravenswood’s bedroom, through a crack of which he saw him measuring the length of two or three swords that were in a nearby closet. He mumbled to himself as he picked one of the weapons: “This one is shorter: let him have this advantage, just like he has every other.”

Caleb Balderstone knew too well, from what he witnessed, upon what enterprise his master was bound, and how vain all interference on his part must necessarily prove. He had but time to retreat from the door, so nearly was he surprised by his master suddenly coming out and descending to the stables. The faithful domestic followed; and from the dishevelled appearance of his master’s dress, and his ghastly looks, was confirmed in his conjecture that he had passed the night without sleep or repose. He found him busily engaged in saddling his horse, a service from which Caleb, though with faltering voice and trembling hands, offered to relieve him. Ravenswood rejected his assistance by a mute sign, and having led the animal into the court, was just about to mount him, when the old domestic’s fear giving way to the strong attachment which was the principal passion of his mind, he flung himself suddenly at Ravenswood’s feet, and clasped his knees, while he exclaimed: “Oh, sir! oh, master! kill me if you will, but do not go out on this dreadful errand! Oh! my dear master, wait but this day; the Marquis of A—— comes to-morrow, and a’ will be remedied.”

Caleb Balderstone knew all too well, from what he had seen, what mission his master was on, and how pointless any interference from him would be. He barely had time to step back from the door before his master suddenly came out and headed to the stables. The loyal servant followed him, and seeing his master’s disheveled clothes and pale face confirmed his suspicion that he had spent the night without sleep or rest. He found him hard at work saddling his horse, a task Caleb, although with a shaky voice and trembling hands, offered to take over. Ravenswood declined his help with a silent gesture, and having led the horse into the courtyard, was just about to mount when the old servant’s fear shifted to the deep loyalty that was his main emotion. He suddenly threw himself at Ravenswood’s feet, clasping his knees, and cried out: “Oh, sir! Oh, master! You can kill me if you want, but please don’t go on this terrible mission! Oh! My dear master, just wait one day; the Marquis of A—— is coming tomorrow, and everything will be fixed.”

“You have no longer a master, Caleb,” said Ravenswood, endeavouring to extricate himself; “why, old man, would you cling to a falling tower?”

“You don't have a master anymore, Caleb,” said Ravenswood, trying to free himself. “Why, old man, would you hold on to a crumbling tower?”

“But I have a master,” cried Caleb, still holding him fast, “while the heir of Ravenswood breathes. I am but a servant; but I was born your father’s—your grandfather’s servant. I was born for the family—I have lived for them—I would die for them! Stay but at home, and all will be well!”

“But I have a master,” cried Caleb, still holding him tight, “as long as the heir of Ravenswood is alive. I’m just a servant, but I was born your father’s—your grandfather’s servant. I was meant for this family—I’ve lived for them—I would die for them! Just stay home, and everything will be fine!”

“Well, fool! well!” said Ravenswood. “Vain old man, nothing hereafter in life will be well with me, and happiest is the hour that shall soonest close it!”

“Well, fool! well!” said Ravenswood. “Vain old man, nothing in life will be well for me anymore, and the happiest hour will be the one that comes the soonest to end it!”

So saying, he extricated himself from the old man’s hold, threw himself on his horse, and rode out the gate; but instantly turning back, he threw towards Caleb, who hastened to meet him, a heavy purse of gold.

So saying, he freed himself from the old man’s grip, jumped onto his horse, and rode out the gate; but immediately turning back, he tossed a heavy purse of gold towards Caleb, who rushed to meet him.

“Caleb!” he said, with a ghastly smile, “I make you my executor”; and again turning his bridle, he resumed his course down the hill.

“Caleb!” he said, with a creepy smile, “I appoint you my executor”; and once again turning his reins, he continued his way down the hill.

The gold fell unheeded on the pavement, for the old man ran to observe the course which was taken by his master, who turned to the left down a small and broken path, which gained the sea-shore through a cleft in the rock, and led to a sort of cove where, in former times, the boats of the castle were wont to be moored. Observing him take this course, Caleb hastened to the eastern battlement, which commanded the prospect of the whole sands, very near as far as the village of Wolf’s Hope. He could easily see his master riding in that direction, as fast as the horse could carry him. The prophecy at once rushed on Balderstone’s mind, that the Lord of Ravenswood should perish on the Kelpie’s flow, which lay half-way betwixt the Tower and the links, or sand knolls, to the northward of Wolf’s Hope. He saw him according reach the fatal spot; but he never saw him pass further.

The gold fell ignored on the pavement as the old man rushed to see which way his master went. His master turned left down a narrow, rough path that led to the shore through a gap in the rocks, taking him to a cove where the castle's boats used to be moored. Noticing this, Caleb hurried to the eastern battlement, which offered a view of the entire beach, almost all the way to the village of Wolf’s Hope. He could easily see his master riding in that direction as fast as the horse could go. A prophecy flashed in Balderstone’s mind that the Lord of Ravenswood would meet his end at the Kelpie’s flow, located halfway between the Tower and the sandy hills to the north of Wolf’s Hope. He saw him reach that fateful spot, but he never saw him pass beyond it.

Colonel Ashton, frantic for revenge, was already in the field, pacing the turf with eagerness, and looking with impatience towards the Tower for the arrival of his antagonist. The sun had now risen, and showed its broad disk above the eastern sea, so that he could easily discern the horseman who rode towards him with speed which argued impatience equal to his own. At once the figure became invisible, as if it had melted into the air. He rubbed his eyes, as if he had witnessed an apparition, and then hastened to the spot, near which he was met by Balderstone, who came from the opposite direction. No trace whatever of horse or rider could be discerned; it only appeared that the late winds and high tides had greatly extended the usual bounds of the quicksand, and that the unfortunate horseman, as appeared from the hoof-tracks, in his precipitate haste, had not attended to keep on the firm sands on the foot of the rock, but had taken the shortest and most dangerous course. One only vestige of his fate appeared. A large sable feather had been detached from his hat, and the rippling waves of the rising tide wafted it to Caleb’s feet. The old man took it up, dried it, and placed it in his bosom.

Colonel Ashton, desperate for revenge, was already in the field, pacing the ground with eagerness and looking impatiently toward the Tower for the arrival of his opponent. The sun had now risen, casting its bright light over the eastern sea, allowing him to clearly see the horseman riding toward him with a speed that matched his own impatience. Suddenly, the figure disappeared, as if it had vanished into thin air. He rubbed his eyes, feeling as if he had seen a ghost, and then rushed to the spot where he was met by Balderstone, who was coming from the opposite direction. There was no sign of the horse or rider; it appeared that the recent winds and high tides had greatly expanded the usual limits of the quicksand, and that the unfortunate horseman, as indicated by the hoof-tracks, in his frantic speed, had not stayed on the firm sand at the base of the rock, but had taken the shortest and most dangerous route. The only trace of his fate was a large black feather that had come loose from his hat, and the rippling waves of the rising tide carried it to Caleb’s feet. The old man picked it up, dried it, and tucked it into his shirt.

The inhabitants of Wolf’s Hope were now alarmed, and crowded to the place, some on shore, and some in boats, but their search availed nothing. The tenacious depths of the quicksand, as is usual in such cases, retained its prey.

The people of Wolf’s Hope were now frightened and gathered around the area, some on land and some in boats, but their search was fruitless. The stubborn depths of the quicksand, as is typical in such situations, held onto its victim.

Our tale draws to a conclusion. The Marquis of A——, alarmed at the frightful reports that were current, and anxious for his kinsman’s safety, arrived on the subsequent day to mourn his loss; and, after renewing in vain a search for the body, returned, to forget what had happened amid the bustle of politics and state affairs.

Our story is coming to an end. The Marquis of A——, worried about the horrific rumors going around and concerned for his relative’s safety, showed up the next day to grieve his loss. After searching for the body without success, he went back to his normal life, trying to forget what had happened in the chaos of politics and state matters.

Not so Caleb Balderstone. If worldly profit could have consoled the old man, his age was better provided for than his earlier years had ever been; but life had lost to him its salt and its savour. His whole course of ideas, his feelings, whether of pride or of apprehension, of pleasure or of pain, had all arisen from its close connexion with the family which was now extinguished. He held up his head no longer, forsook all his usual haunts and occupations, and seemed only to find pleasure in moping about those apartments in the old castle which the Master of Ravenswood had last inhabited. He ate without refreshment, and slumbered without repose; and, with a fidelity sometimes displayed by the canine race, but seldom by human beings, he pined and died within a year after the catastrophe which we have narrated.

Not Caleb Balderstone. If worldly gain could have comforted the old man, his later years were better taken care of than his earlier ones ever were; but life had lost its flavor for him. His entire way of thinking, his emotions—whether pride or fear, joy or sadness—had all stemmed from his close connection to the family that was now gone. He no longer held his head high, abandoned all his usual spots and activities, and seemed to find joy only in wandering those rooms in the old castle where the Master of Ravenswood had last lived. He ate without any satisfaction and slept without any rest; and with a loyalty sometimes shown by dogs, but rarely by people, he pined away and died within a year after the tragedy we’ve just described.

The family of Ashton did not long survive that of Ravenswood. Sir William Ashton outlived his eldest son, the Colonel, who was slain in a duel in Flanders; and Henry, by whom he was succeeded, died unmarried. Lady Ashton lived to the verge of extreme old age, the only survivor of the group of unhappy persons whose misfortunes were owing to her implacability. That she might internally feel compunction, and reconcile herself with Heaven, whom she had offended, we will not, and we dare not, deny; but to those around her she did not evince the slightest symptom either of repentance or remorse. In all external appearance she bore the same bold, haughty, unbending character which she had displayed before these unhappy events. A splendid marble monument records her name, titles, and virtues, while her victims remain undistinguished by tomb or epitaph.

The Ashton family didn't last long after the Ravenswoods. Sir William Ashton outlived his oldest son, the Colonel, who was killed in a duel in Flanders, and Henry, his successor, died without marrying. Lady Ashton lived to a very old age, the only one left of the group of unfortunate people whose troubles were caused by her unforgiving nature. While she may have felt guilt inside and wanted to make peace with Heaven, whom she had wronged, we can't deny or dismiss that. However, to those around her, she showed no signs of regret or remorse. On the outside, she maintained the same bold, proud, and unyielding demeanor that she had shown before all these tragic events. A grand marble monument honors her name, titles, and supposed virtues, while her victims remain unrecognized by grave or epitaph.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!